Contact
CoCalc Logo Icon
StoreFeaturesDocsShareSupportNewsAboutSign UpSign In
| Download

📚 The CoCalc Library - books, templates and other resources

Views: 96171
License: OTHER
1
The Project Gutenberg EBook of Emma, by Jane Austen
2
3
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
4
almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
5
re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
6
with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
7
8
9
Title: Emma
10
11
Author: Jane Austen
12
13
Release Date: August, 1994 [Etext #158]
14
Posting Date: January 21, 2010
15
Last Updated: March 10, 2018
16
17
Language: English
18
19
Character set encoding: UTF-8
20
21
*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK EMMA ***
22
23
24
25
26
Produced by An Anonymous Volunteer
27
28
29
30
31
32
EMMA
33
34
By Jane Austen
35
36
37
38
39
VOLUME I
40
41
42
43
CHAPTER I
44
45
46
Emma Woodhouse, handsome, clever, and rich, with a comfortable home
47
and happy disposition, seemed to unite some of the best blessings of
48
existence; and had lived nearly twenty-one years in the world with very
49
little to distress or vex her.
50
51
She was the youngest of the two daughters of a most affectionate,
52
indulgent father; and had, in consequence of her sister's marriage, been
53
mistress of his house from a very early period. Her mother had died
54
too long ago for her to have more than an indistinct remembrance of
55
her caresses; and her place had been supplied by an excellent woman as
56
governess, who had fallen little short of a mother in affection.
57
58
Sixteen years had Miss Taylor been in Mr. Woodhouse's family, less as a
59
governess than a friend, very fond of both daughters, but particularly
60
of Emma. Between _them_ it was more the intimacy of sisters. Even before
61
Miss Taylor had ceased to hold the nominal office of governess, the
62
mildness of her temper had hardly allowed her to impose any restraint;
63
and the shadow of authority being now long passed away, they had been
64
living together as friend and friend very mutually attached, and Emma
65
doing just what she liked; highly esteeming Miss Taylor's judgment, but
66
directed chiefly by her own.
67
68
The real evils, indeed, of Emma's situation were the power of having
69
rather too much her own way, and a disposition to think a little too
70
well of herself; these were the disadvantages which threatened alloy to
71
her many enjoyments. The danger, however, was at present so unperceived,
72
that they did not by any means rank as misfortunes with her.
73
74
Sorrow came--a gentle sorrow--but not at all in the shape of any
75
disagreeable consciousness.--Miss Taylor married. It was Miss Taylor's
76
loss which first brought grief. It was on the wedding-day of this
77
beloved friend that Emma first sat in mournful thought of any
78
continuance. The wedding over, and the bride-people gone, her father and
79
herself were left to dine together, with no prospect of a third to cheer
80
a long evening. Her father composed himself to sleep after dinner, as
81
usual, and she had then only to sit and think of what she had lost.
82
83
The event had every promise of happiness for her friend. Mr. Weston
84
was a man of unexceptionable character, easy fortune, suitable age, and
85
pleasant manners; and there was some satisfaction in considering
86
with what self-denying, generous friendship she had always wished and
87
promoted the match; but it was a black morning's work for her. The want
88
of Miss Taylor would be felt every hour of every day. She recalled her
89
past kindness--the kindness, the affection of sixteen years--how she had
90
taught and how she had played with her from five years old--how she had
91
devoted all her powers to attach and amuse her in health--and how
92
nursed her through the various illnesses of childhood. A large debt of
93
gratitude was owing here; but the intercourse of the last seven
94
years, the equal footing and perfect unreserve which had soon followed
95
Isabella's marriage, on their being left to each other, was yet a
96
dearer, tenderer recollection. She had been a friend and companion such
97
as few possessed: intelligent, well-informed, useful, gentle, knowing
98
all the ways of the family, interested in all its concerns, and
99
peculiarly interested in herself, in every pleasure, every scheme of
100
hers--one to whom she could speak every thought as it arose, and who had
101
such an affection for her as could never find fault.
102
103
How was she to bear the change?--It was true that her friend was going
104
only half a mile from them; but Emma was aware that great must be the
105
difference between a Mrs. Weston, only half a mile from them, and a Miss
106
Taylor in the house; and with all her advantages, natural and domestic,
107
she was now in great danger of suffering from intellectual solitude. She
108
dearly loved her father, but he was no companion for her. He could not
109
meet her in conversation, rational or playful.
110
111
The evil of the actual disparity in their ages (and Mr. Woodhouse had
112
not married early) was much increased by his constitution and habits;
113
for having been a valetudinarian all his life, without activity of
114
mind or body, he was a much older man in ways than in years; and though
115
everywhere beloved for the friendliness of his heart and his amiable
116
temper, his talents could not have recommended him at any time.
117
118
Her sister, though comparatively but little removed by matrimony, being
119
settled in London, only sixteen miles off, was much beyond her daily
120
reach; and many a long October and November evening must be struggled
121
through at Hartfield, before Christmas brought the next visit from
122
Isabella and her husband, and their little children, to fill the house,
123
and give her pleasant society again.
124
125
Highbury, the large and populous village, almost amounting to a town,
126
to which Hartfield, in spite of its separate lawn, and shrubberies, and
127
name, did really belong, afforded her no equals. The Woodhouses
128
were first in consequence there. All looked up to them. She had many
129
acquaintance in the place, for her father was universally civil, but
130
not one among them who could be accepted in lieu of Miss Taylor for even
131
half a day. It was a melancholy change; and Emma could not but sigh over
132
it, and wish for impossible things, till her father awoke, and made it
133
necessary to be cheerful. His spirits required support. He was a nervous
134
man, easily depressed; fond of every body that he was used to, and
135
hating to part with them; hating change of every kind. Matrimony, as the
136
origin of change, was always disagreeable; and he was by no means yet
137
reconciled to his own daughter's marrying, nor could ever speak of her
138
but with compassion, though it had been entirely a match of affection,
139
when he was now obliged to part with Miss Taylor too; and from his
140
habits of gentle selfishness, and of being never able to suppose that
141
other people could feel differently from himself, he was very much
142
disposed to think Miss Taylor had done as sad a thing for herself as for
143
them, and would have been a great deal happier if she had spent all the
144
rest of her life at Hartfield. Emma smiled and chatted as cheerfully
145
as she could, to keep him from such thoughts; but when tea came, it was
146
impossible for him not to say exactly as he had said at dinner,
147
148
“Poor Miss Taylor!--I wish she were here again. What a pity it is that
149
Mr. Weston ever thought of her!”
150
151
“I cannot agree with you, papa; you know I cannot. Mr. Weston is such
152
a good-humoured, pleasant, excellent man, that he thoroughly deserves
153
a good wife;--and you would not have had Miss Taylor live with us for
154
ever, and bear all my odd humours, when she might have a house of her
155
own?”
156
157
“A house of her own!--But where is the advantage of a house of her own?
158
This is three times as large.--And you have never any odd humours, my
159
dear.”
160
161
“How often we shall be going to see them, and they coming to see us!--We
162
shall be always meeting! _We_ must begin; we must go and pay wedding
163
visit very soon.”
164
165
“My dear, how am I to get so far? Randalls is such a distance. I could
166
not walk half so far.”
167
168
“No, papa, nobody thought of your walking. We must go in the carriage,
169
to be sure.”
170
171
“The carriage! But James will not like to put the horses to for such a
172
little way;--and where are the poor horses to be while we are paying our
173
visit?”
174
175
“They are to be put into Mr. Weston's stable, papa. You know we have
176
settled all that already. We talked it all over with Mr. Weston last
177
night. And as for James, you may be very sure he will always like going
178
to Randalls, because of his daughter's being housemaid there. I only
179
doubt whether he will ever take us anywhere else. That was your doing,
180
papa. You got Hannah that good place. Nobody thought of Hannah till you
181
mentioned her--James is so obliged to you!”
182
183
“I am very glad I did think of her. It was very lucky, for I would not
184
have had poor James think himself slighted upon any account; and I am
185
sure she will make a very good servant: she is a civil, pretty-spoken
186
girl; I have a great opinion of her. Whenever I see her, she always
187
curtseys and asks me how I do, in a very pretty manner; and when you
188
have had her here to do needlework, I observe she always turns the lock
189
of the door the right way and never bangs it. I am sure she will be an
190
excellent servant; and it will be a great comfort to poor Miss Taylor
191
to have somebody about her that she is used to see. Whenever James goes
192
over to see his daughter, you know, she will be hearing of us. He will
193
be able to tell her how we all are.”
194
195
Emma spared no exertions to maintain this happier flow of ideas, and
196
hoped, by the help of backgammon, to get her father tolerably
197
through the evening, and be attacked by no regrets but her own. The
198
backgammon-table was placed; but a visitor immediately afterwards walked
199
in and made it unnecessary.
200
201
Mr. Knightley, a sensible man about seven or eight-and-thirty, was not
202
only a very old and intimate friend of the family, but particularly
203
connected with it, as the elder brother of Isabella's husband. He lived
204
about a mile from Highbury, was a frequent visitor, and always welcome,
205
and at this time more welcome than usual, as coming directly from their
206
mutual connexions in London. He had returned to a late dinner, after
207
some days' absence, and now walked up to Hartfield to say that all were
208
well in Brunswick Square. It was a happy circumstance, and animated
209
Mr. Woodhouse for some time. Mr. Knightley had a cheerful manner, which
210
always did him good; and his many inquiries after “poor Isabella” and
211
her children were answered most satisfactorily. When this was over, Mr.
212
Woodhouse gratefully observed, “It is very kind of you, Mr. Knightley,
213
to come out at this late hour to call upon us. I am afraid you must have
214
had a shocking walk.”
215
216
“Not at all, sir. It is a beautiful moonlight night; and so mild that I
217
must draw back from your great fire.”
218
219
“But you must have found it very damp and dirty. I wish you may not
220
catch cold.”
221
222
“Dirty, sir! Look at my shoes. Not a speck on them.”
223
224
“Well! that is quite surprising, for we have had a vast deal of rain
225
here. It rained dreadfully hard for half an hour while we were at
226
breakfast. I wanted them to put off the wedding.”
227
228
“By the bye--I have not wished you joy. Being pretty well aware of what
229
sort of joy you must both be feeling, I have been in no hurry with my
230
congratulations; but I hope it all went off tolerably well. How did you
231
all behave? Who cried most?”
232
233
“Ah! poor Miss Taylor! 'Tis a sad business.”
234
235
“Poor Mr. and Miss Woodhouse, if you please; but I cannot possibly say
236
'poor Miss Taylor.' I have a great regard for you and Emma; but when it
237
comes to the question of dependence or independence!--At any rate, it
238
must be better to have only one to please than two.”
239
240
“Especially when _one_ of those two is such a fanciful, troublesome
241
creature!” said Emma playfully. “That is what you have in your head, I
242
know--and what you would certainly say if my father were not by.”
243
244
“I believe it is very true, my dear, indeed,” said Mr. Woodhouse, with a
245
sigh. “I am afraid I am sometimes very fanciful and troublesome.”
246
247
“My dearest papa! You do not think I could mean _you_, or suppose Mr.
248
Knightley to mean _you_. What a horrible idea! Oh no! I meant only
249
myself. Mr. Knightley loves to find fault with me, you know--in a
250
joke--it is all a joke. We always say what we like to one another.”
251
252
Mr. Knightley, in fact, was one of the few people who could see faults
253
in Emma Woodhouse, and the only one who ever told her of them: and
254
though this was not particularly agreeable to Emma herself, she knew
255
it would be so much less so to her father, that she would not have him
256
really suspect such a circumstance as her not being thought perfect by
257
every body.
258
259
“Emma knows I never flatter her,” said Mr. Knightley, “but I meant no
260
reflection on any body. Miss Taylor has been used to have two persons
261
to please; she will now have but one. The chances are that she must be a
262
gainer.”
263
264
“Well,” said Emma, willing to let it pass--“you want to hear about
265
the wedding; and I shall be happy to tell you, for we all behaved
266
charmingly. Every body was punctual, every body in their best looks: not
267
a tear, and hardly a long face to be seen. Oh no; we all felt that we
268
were going to be only half a mile apart, and were sure of meeting every
269
day.”
270
271
“Dear Emma bears every thing so well,” said her father. “But, Mr.
272
Knightley, she is really very sorry to lose poor Miss Taylor, and I am
273
sure she _will_ miss her more than she thinks for.”
274
275
Emma turned away her head, divided between tears and smiles. “It
276
is impossible that Emma should not miss such a companion,” said Mr.
277
Knightley. “We should not like her so well as we do, sir, if we could
278
suppose it; but she knows how much the marriage is to Miss Taylor's
279
advantage; she knows how very acceptable it must be, at Miss Taylor's
280
time of life, to be settled in a home of her own, and how important to
281
her to be secure of a comfortable provision, and therefore cannot allow
282
herself to feel so much pain as pleasure. Every friend of Miss Taylor
283
must be glad to have her so happily married.”
284
285
“And you have forgotten one matter of joy to me,” said Emma, “and a very
286
considerable one--that I made the match myself. I made the match, you
287
know, four years ago; and to have it take place, and be proved in the
288
right, when so many people said Mr. Weston would never marry again, may
289
comfort me for any thing.”
290
291
Mr. Knightley shook his head at her. Her father fondly replied, “Ah!
292
my dear, I wish you would not make matches and foretell things, for
293
whatever you say always comes to pass. Pray do not make any more
294
matches.”
295
296
“I promise you to make none for myself, papa; but I must, indeed, for
297
other people. It is the greatest amusement in the world! And after such
298
success, you know!--Every body said that Mr. Weston would never marry
299
again. Oh dear, no! Mr. Weston, who had been a widower so long, and who
300
seemed so perfectly comfortable without a wife, so constantly occupied
301
either in his business in town or among his friends here, always
302
acceptable wherever he went, always cheerful--Mr. Weston need not spend
303
a single evening in the year alone if he did not like it. Oh no! Mr.
304
Weston certainly would never marry again. Some people even talked of a
305
promise to his wife on her deathbed, and others of the son and the
306
uncle not letting him. All manner of solemn nonsense was talked on the
307
subject, but I believed none of it.
308
309
“Ever since the day--about four years ago--that Miss Taylor and I met
310
with him in Broadway Lane, when, because it began to drizzle, he darted
311
away with so much gallantry, and borrowed two umbrellas for us from
312
Farmer Mitchell's, I made up my mind on the subject. I planned the match
313
from that hour; and when such success has blessed me in this instance,
314
dear papa, you cannot think that I shall leave off match-making.”
315
316
“I do not understand what you mean by 'success,'” said Mr. Knightley.
317
“Success supposes endeavour. Your time has been properly and delicately
318
spent, if you have been endeavouring for the last four years to bring
319
about this marriage. A worthy employment for a young lady's mind! But
320
if, which I rather imagine, your making the match, as you call it, means
321
only your planning it, your saying to yourself one idle day, 'I think it
322
would be a very good thing for Miss Taylor if Mr. Weston were to marry
323
her,' and saying it again to yourself every now and then afterwards, why
324
do you talk of success? Where is your merit? What are you proud of? You
325
made a lucky guess; and _that_ is all that can be said.”
326
327
“And have you never known the pleasure and triumph of a lucky guess?--I
328
pity you.--I thought you cleverer--for, depend upon it a lucky guess is
329
never merely luck. There is always some talent in it. And as to my
330
poor word 'success,' which you quarrel with, I do not know that I am so
331
entirely without any claim to it. You have drawn two pretty pictures;
332
but I think there may be a third--a something between the do-nothing and
333
the do-all. If I had not promoted Mr. Weston's visits here, and given
334
many little encouragements, and smoothed many little matters, it might
335
not have come to any thing after all. I think you must know Hartfield
336
enough to comprehend that.”
337
338
“A straightforward, open-hearted man like Weston, and a rational,
339
unaffected woman like Miss Taylor, may be safely left to manage their
340
own concerns. You are more likely to have done harm to yourself, than
341
good to them, by interference.”
342
343
“Emma never thinks of herself, if she can do good to others,” rejoined
344
Mr. Woodhouse, understanding but in part. “But, my dear, pray do not
345
make any more matches; they are silly things, and break up one's family
346
circle grievously.”
347
348
“Only one more, papa; only for Mr. Elton. Poor Mr. Elton! You like Mr.
349
Elton, papa,--I must look about for a wife for him. There is nobody in
350
Highbury who deserves him--and he has been here a whole year, and has
351
fitted up his house so comfortably, that it would be a shame to have him
352
single any longer--and I thought when he was joining their hands to-day,
353
he looked so very much as if he would like to have the same kind office
354
done for him! I think very well of Mr. Elton, and this is the only way I
355
have of doing him a service.”
356
357
“Mr. Elton is a very pretty young man, to be sure, and a very good young
358
man, and I have a great regard for him. But if you want to shew him any
359
attention, my dear, ask him to come and dine with us some day. That will
360
be a much better thing. I dare say Mr. Knightley will be so kind as to
361
meet him.”
362
363
“With a great deal of pleasure, sir, at any time,” said Mr. Knightley,
364
laughing, “and I agree with you entirely, that it will be a much better
365
thing. Invite him to dinner, Emma, and help him to the best of the fish
366
and the chicken, but leave him to chuse his own wife. Depend upon it, a
367
man of six or seven-and-twenty can take care of himself.”
368
369
370
371
CHAPTER II
372
373
374
Mr. Weston was a native of Highbury, and born of a respectable family,
375
which for the last two or three generations had been rising into
376
gentility and property. He had received a good education, but, on
377
succeeding early in life to a small independence, had become indisposed
378
for any of the more homely pursuits in which his brothers were engaged,
379
and had satisfied an active, cheerful mind and social temper by entering
380
into the militia of his county, then embodied.
381
382
Captain Weston was a general favourite; and when the chances of his
383
military life had introduced him to Miss Churchill, of a great Yorkshire
384
family, and Miss Churchill fell in love with him, nobody was surprized,
385
except her brother and his wife, who had never seen him, and who were
386
full of pride and importance, which the connexion would offend.
387
388
Miss Churchill, however, being of age, and with the full command of her
389
fortune--though her fortune bore no proportion to the family-estate--was
390
not to be dissuaded from the marriage, and it took place, to the
391
infinite mortification of Mr. and Mrs. Churchill, who threw her off with
392
due decorum. It was an unsuitable connexion, and did not produce much
393
happiness. Mrs. Weston ought to have found more in it, for she had a
394
husband whose warm heart and sweet temper made him think every thing due
395
to her in return for the great goodness of being in love with him;
396
but though she had one sort of spirit, she had not the best. She had
397
resolution enough to pursue her own will in spite of her brother,
398
but not enough to refrain from unreasonable regrets at that brother's
399
unreasonable anger, nor from missing the luxuries of her former home.
400
They lived beyond their income, but still it was nothing in comparison
401
of Enscombe: she did not cease to love her husband, but she wanted at
402
once to be the wife of Captain Weston, and Miss Churchill of Enscombe.
403
404
Captain Weston, who had been considered, especially by the Churchills,
405
as making such an amazing match, was proved to have much the worst of
406
the bargain; for when his wife died, after a three years' marriage, he
407
was rather a poorer man than at first, and with a child to maintain.
408
From the expense of the child, however, he was soon relieved. The boy
409
had, with the additional softening claim of a lingering illness of his
410
mother's, been the means of a sort of reconciliation; and Mr. and Mrs.
411
Churchill, having no children of their own, nor any other young creature
412
of equal kindred to care for, offered to take the whole charge of the
413
little Frank soon after her decease. Some scruples and some reluctance
414
the widower-father may be supposed to have felt; but as they were
415
overcome by other considerations, the child was given up to the care and
416
the wealth of the Churchills, and he had only his own comfort to seek,
417
and his own situation to improve as he could.
418
419
A complete change of life became desirable. He quitted the militia and
420
engaged in trade, having brothers already established in a good way in
421
London, which afforded him a favourable opening. It was a concern which
422
brought just employment enough. He had still a small house in Highbury,
423
where most of his leisure days were spent; and between useful occupation
424
and the pleasures of society, the next eighteen or twenty years of his
425
life passed cheerfully away. He had, by that time, realised an easy
426
competence--enough to secure the purchase of a little estate adjoining
427
Highbury, which he had always longed for--enough to marry a woman as
428
portionless even as Miss Taylor, and to live according to the wishes of
429
his own friendly and social disposition.
430
431
It was now some time since Miss Taylor had begun to influence his
432
schemes; but as it was not the tyrannic influence of youth on youth,
433
it had not shaken his determination of never settling till he could
434
purchase Randalls, and the sale of Randalls was long looked forward to;
435
but he had gone steadily on, with these objects in view, till they were
436
accomplished. He had made his fortune, bought his house, and obtained
437
his wife; and was beginning a new period of existence, with every
438
probability of greater happiness than in any yet passed through. He had
439
never been an unhappy man; his own temper had secured him from that,
440
even in his first marriage; but his second must shew him how delightful
441
a well-judging and truly amiable woman could be, and must give him the
442
pleasantest proof of its being a great deal better to choose than to be
443
chosen, to excite gratitude than to feel it.
444
445
He had only himself to please in his choice: his fortune was his own;
446
for as to Frank, it was more than being tacitly brought up as his
447
uncle's heir, it had become so avowed an adoption as to have him assume
448
the name of Churchill on coming of age. It was most unlikely, therefore,
449
that he should ever want his father's assistance. His father had no
450
apprehension of it. The aunt was a capricious woman, and governed her
451
husband entirely; but it was not in Mr. Weston's nature to imagine that
452
any caprice could be strong enough to affect one so dear, and, as he
453
believed, so deservedly dear. He saw his son every year in London, and
454
was proud of him; and his fond report of him as a very fine young man
455
had made Highbury feel a sort of pride in him too. He was looked on as
456
sufficiently belonging to the place to make his merits and prospects a
457
kind of common concern.
458
459
Mr. Frank Churchill was one of the boasts of Highbury, and a lively
460
curiosity to see him prevailed, though the compliment was so little
461
returned that he had never been there in his life. His coming to visit
462
his father had been often talked of but never achieved.
463
464
Now, upon his father's marriage, it was very generally proposed, as a
465
most proper attention, that the visit should take place. There was not a
466
dissentient voice on the subject, either when Mrs. Perry drank tea with
467
Mrs. and Miss Bates, or when Mrs. and Miss Bates returned the visit. Now
468
was the time for Mr. Frank Churchill to come among them; and the hope
469
strengthened when it was understood that he had written to his new
470
mother on the occasion. For a few days, every morning visit in Highbury
471
included some mention of the handsome letter Mrs. Weston had received.
472
“I suppose you have heard of the handsome letter Mr. Frank Churchill
473
has written to Mrs. Weston? I understand it was a very handsome letter,
474
indeed. Mr. Woodhouse told me of it. Mr. Woodhouse saw the letter, and
475
he says he never saw such a handsome letter in his life.”
476
477
It was, indeed, a highly prized letter. Mrs. Weston had, of course,
478
formed a very favourable idea of the young man; and such a pleasing
479
attention was an irresistible proof of his great good sense, and a most
480
welcome addition to every source and every expression of congratulation
481
which her marriage had already secured. She felt herself a most
482
fortunate woman; and she had lived long enough to know how fortunate
483
she might well be thought, where the only regret was for a partial
484
separation from friends whose friendship for her had never cooled, and
485
who could ill bear to part with her.
486
487
She knew that at times she must be missed; and could not think, without
488
pain, of Emma's losing a single pleasure, or suffering an hour's ennui,
489
from the want of her companionableness: but dear Emma was of no feeble
490
character; she was more equal to her situation than most girls would
491
have been, and had sense, and energy, and spirits that might be hoped
492
would bear her well and happily through its little difficulties and
493
privations. And then there was such comfort in the very easy distance of
494
Randalls from Hartfield, so convenient for even solitary female walking,
495
and in Mr. Weston's disposition and circumstances, which would make the
496
approaching season no hindrance to their spending half the evenings in
497
the week together.
498
499
Her situation was altogether the subject of hours of gratitude to Mrs.
500
Weston, and of moments only of regret; and her satisfaction--her more
501
than satisfaction--her cheerful enjoyment, was so just and so apparent,
502
that Emma, well as she knew her father, was sometimes taken by surprize
503
at his being still able to pity 'poor Miss Taylor,' when they left her
504
at Randalls in the centre of every domestic comfort, or saw her go away
505
in the evening attended by her pleasant husband to a carriage of her
506
own. But never did she go without Mr. Woodhouse's giving a gentle sigh,
507
and saying, “Ah, poor Miss Taylor! She would be very glad to stay.”
508
509
There was no recovering Miss Taylor--nor much likelihood of ceasing to
510
pity her; but a few weeks brought some alleviation to Mr. Woodhouse.
511
The compliments of his neighbours were over; he was no longer teased by
512
being wished joy of so sorrowful an event; and the wedding-cake, which
513
had been a great distress to him, was all eat up. His own stomach
514
could bear nothing rich, and he could never believe other people to be
515
different from himself. What was unwholesome to him he regarded as unfit
516
for any body; and he had, therefore, earnestly tried to dissuade them
517
from having any wedding-cake at all, and when that proved vain, as
518
earnestly tried to prevent any body's eating it. He had been at the
519
pains of consulting Mr. Perry, the apothecary, on the subject. Mr. Perry
520
was an intelligent, gentlemanlike man, whose frequent visits were one
521
of the comforts of Mr. Woodhouse's life; and upon being applied to, he
522
could not but acknowledge (though it seemed rather against the bias
523
of inclination) that wedding-cake might certainly disagree with
524
many--perhaps with most people, unless taken moderately. With such an
525
opinion, in confirmation of his own, Mr. Woodhouse hoped to influence
526
every visitor of the newly married pair; but still the cake was eaten;
527
and there was no rest for his benevolent nerves till it was all gone.
528
529
There was a strange rumour in Highbury of all the little Perrys being
530
seen with a slice of Mrs. Weston's wedding-cake in their hands: but Mr.
531
Woodhouse would never believe it.
532
533
534
535
CHAPTER III
536
537
538
Mr. Woodhouse was fond of society in his own way. He liked very much to
539
have his friends come and see him; and from various united causes, from
540
his long residence at Hartfield, and his good nature, from his fortune,
541
his house, and his daughter, he could command the visits of his
542
own little circle, in a great measure, as he liked. He had not much
543
intercourse with any families beyond that circle; his horror of late
544
hours, and large dinner-parties, made him unfit for any acquaintance but
545
such as would visit him on his own terms. Fortunately for him, Highbury,
546
including Randalls in the same parish, and Donwell Abbey in the parish
547
adjoining, the seat of Mr. Knightley, comprehended many such. Not
548
unfrequently, through Emma's persuasion, he had some of the chosen and
549
the best to dine with him: but evening parties were what he preferred;
550
and, unless he fancied himself at any time unequal to company, there
551
was scarcely an evening in the week in which Emma could not make up a
552
card-table for him.
553
554
Real, long-standing regard brought the Westons and Mr. Knightley; and by
555
Mr. Elton, a young man living alone without liking it, the privilege
556
of exchanging any vacant evening of his own blank solitude for the
557
elegancies and society of Mr. Woodhouse's drawing-room, and the smiles
558
of his lovely daughter, was in no danger of being thrown away.
559
560
After these came a second set; among the most come-at-able of whom were
561
Mrs. and Miss Bates, and Mrs. Goddard, three ladies almost always at
562
the service of an invitation from Hartfield, and who were fetched and
563
carried home so often, that Mr. Woodhouse thought it no hardship for
564
either James or the horses. Had it taken place only once a year, it
565
would have been a grievance.
566
567
Mrs. Bates, the widow of a former vicar of Highbury, was a very old
568
lady, almost past every thing but tea and quadrille. She lived with her
569
single daughter in a very small way, and was considered with all the
570
regard and respect which a harmless old lady, under such untoward
571
circumstances, can excite. Her daughter enjoyed a most uncommon degree
572
of popularity for a woman neither young, handsome, rich, nor married.
573
Miss Bates stood in the very worst predicament in the world for having
574
much of the public favour; and she had no intellectual superiority to
575
make atonement to herself, or frighten those who might hate her into
576
outward respect. She had never boasted either beauty or cleverness. Her
577
youth had passed without distinction, and her middle of life was devoted
578
to the care of a failing mother, and the endeavour to make a small
579
income go as far as possible. And yet she was a happy woman, and a woman
580
whom no one named without good-will. It was her own universal good-will
581
and contented temper which worked such wonders. She loved every body,
582
was interested in every body's happiness, quicksighted to every body's
583
merits; thought herself a most fortunate creature, and surrounded with
584
blessings in such an excellent mother, and so many good neighbours
585
and friends, and a home that wanted for nothing. The simplicity and
586
cheerfulness of her nature, her contented and grateful spirit, were a
587
recommendation to every body, and a mine of felicity to herself. She was
588
a great talker upon little matters, which exactly suited Mr. Woodhouse,
589
full of trivial communications and harmless gossip.
590
591
Mrs. Goddard was the mistress of a School--not of a seminary, or an
592
establishment, or any thing which professed, in long sentences of
593
refined nonsense, to combine liberal acquirements with elegant morality,
594
upon new principles and new systems--and where young ladies for enormous
595
pay might be screwed out of health and into vanity--but a real,
596
honest, old-fashioned Boarding-school, where a reasonable quantity of
597
accomplishments were sold at a reasonable price, and where girls might
598
be sent to be out of the way, and scramble themselves into a little
599
education, without any danger of coming back prodigies. Mrs. Goddard's
600
school was in high repute--and very deservedly; for Highbury was
601
reckoned a particularly healthy spot: she had an ample house and garden,
602
gave the children plenty of wholesome food, let them run about a great
603
deal in the summer, and in winter dressed their chilblains with her own
604
hands. It was no wonder that a train of twenty young couple now walked
605
after her to church. She was a plain, motherly kind of woman, who
606
had worked hard in her youth, and now thought herself entitled to the
607
occasional holiday of a tea-visit; and having formerly owed much to Mr.
608
Woodhouse's kindness, felt his particular claim on her to leave her neat
609
parlour, hung round with fancy-work, whenever she could, and win or lose
610
a few sixpences by his fireside.
611
612
These were the ladies whom Emma found herself very frequently able to
613
collect; and happy was she, for her father's sake, in the power; though,
614
as far as she was herself concerned, it was no remedy for the absence of
615
Mrs. Weston. She was delighted to see her father look comfortable, and
616
very much pleased with herself for contriving things so well; but the
617
quiet prosings of three such women made her feel that every evening so
618
spent was indeed one of the long evenings she had fearfully anticipated.
619
620
As she sat one morning, looking forward to exactly such a close of the
621
present day, a note was brought from Mrs. Goddard, requesting, in most
622
respectful terms, to be allowed to bring Miss Smith with her; a most
623
welcome request: for Miss Smith was a girl of seventeen, whom Emma knew
624
very well by sight, and had long felt an interest in, on account of
625
her beauty. A very gracious invitation was returned, and the evening no
626
longer dreaded by the fair mistress of the mansion.
627
628
Harriet Smith was the natural daughter of somebody. Somebody had placed
629
her, several years back, at Mrs. Goddard's school, and somebody
630
had lately raised her from the condition of scholar to that of
631
parlour-boarder. This was all that was generally known of her history.
632
She had no visible friends but what had been acquired at Highbury, and
633
was now just returned from a long visit in the country to some young
634
ladies who had been at school there with her.
635
636
She was a very pretty girl, and her beauty happened to be of a sort
637
which Emma particularly admired. She was short, plump, and fair, with a
638
fine bloom, blue eyes, light hair, regular features, and a look of great
639
sweetness, and, before the end of the evening, Emma was as much pleased
640
with her manners as her person, and quite determined to continue the
641
acquaintance.
642
643
She was not struck by any thing remarkably clever in Miss Smith's
644
conversation, but she found her altogether very engaging--not
645
inconveniently shy, not unwilling to talk--and yet so far from pushing,
646
shewing so proper and becoming a deference, seeming so pleasantly
647
grateful for being admitted to Hartfield, and so artlessly impressed
648
by the appearance of every thing in so superior a style to what she had
649
been used to, that she must have good sense, and deserve encouragement.
650
Encouragement should be given. Those soft blue eyes, and all those
651
natural graces, should not be wasted on the inferior society of Highbury
652
and its connexions. The acquaintance she had already formed were
653
unworthy of her. The friends from whom she had just parted, though very
654
good sort of people, must be doing her harm. They were a family of the
655
name of Martin, whom Emma well knew by character, as renting a large
656
farm of Mr. Knightley, and residing in the parish of Donwell--very
657
creditably, she believed--she knew Mr. Knightley thought highly of
658
them--but they must be coarse and unpolished, and very unfit to be the
659
intimates of a girl who wanted only a little more knowledge and elegance
660
to be quite perfect. _She_ would notice her; she would improve her; she
661
would detach her from her bad acquaintance, and introduce her into good
662
society; she would form her opinions and her manners. It would be an
663
interesting, and certainly a very kind undertaking; highly becoming her
664
own situation in life, her leisure, and powers.
665
666
She was so busy in admiring those soft blue eyes, in talking and
667
listening, and forming all these schemes in the in-betweens, that the
668
evening flew away at a very unusual rate; and the supper-table, which
669
always closed such parties, and for which she had been used to sit and
670
watch the due time, was all set out and ready, and moved forwards to the
671
fire, before she was aware. With an alacrity beyond the common impulse
672
of a spirit which yet was never indifferent to the credit of doing every
673
thing well and attentively, with the real good-will of a mind delighted
674
with its own ideas, did she then do all the honours of the meal, and
675
help and recommend the minced chicken and scalloped oysters, with an
676
urgency which she knew would be acceptable to the early hours and civil
677
scruples of their guests.
678
679
Upon such occasions poor Mr. Woodhouse's feelings were in sad warfare.
680
He loved to have the cloth laid, because it had been the fashion of his
681
youth, but his conviction of suppers being very unwholesome made him
682
rather sorry to see any thing put on it; and while his hospitality would
683
have welcomed his visitors to every thing, his care for their health
684
made him grieve that they would eat.
685
686
Such another small basin of thin gruel as his own was all that he could,
687
with thorough self-approbation, recommend; though he might constrain
688
himself, while the ladies were comfortably clearing the nicer things, to
689
say:
690
691
“Mrs. Bates, let me propose your venturing on one of these eggs. An egg
692
boiled very soft is not unwholesome. Serle understands boiling an egg
693
better than any body. I would not recommend an egg boiled by any body
694
else; but you need not be afraid, they are very small, you see--one of
695
our small eggs will not hurt you. Miss Bates, let Emma help you to a
696
_little_ bit of tart--a _very_ little bit. Ours are all apple-tarts. You
697
need not be afraid of unwholesome preserves here. I do not advise the
698
custard. Mrs. Goddard, what say you to _half_ a glass of wine? A
699
_small_ half-glass, put into a tumbler of water? I do not think it could
700
disagree with you.”
701
702
Emma allowed her father to talk--but supplied her visitors in a much
703
more satisfactory style, and on the present evening had particular
704
pleasure in sending them away happy. The happiness of Miss Smith was
705
quite equal to her intentions. Miss Woodhouse was so great a personage
706
in Highbury, that the prospect of the introduction had given as much
707
panic as pleasure; but the humble, grateful little girl went off with
708
highly gratified feelings, delighted with the affability with which Miss
709
Woodhouse had treated her all the evening, and actually shaken hands
710
with her at last!
711
712
713
714
CHAPTER IV
715
716
717
Harriet Smith's intimacy at Hartfield was soon a settled thing. Quick
718
and decided in her ways, Emma lost no time in inviting, encouraging, and
719
telling her to come very often; and as their acquaintance increased, so
720
did their satisfaction in each other. As a walking companion, Emma had
721
very early foreseen how useful she might find her. In that respect
722
Mrs. Weston's loss had been important. Her father never went beyond the
723
shrubbery, where two divisions of the ground sufficed him for his long
724
walk, or his short, as the year varied; and since Mrs. Weston's marriage
725
her exercise had been too much confined. She had ventured once alone to
726
Randalls, but it was not pleasant; and a Harriet Smith, therefore,
727
one whom she could summon at any time to a walk, would be a valuable
728
addition to her privileges. But in every respect, as she saw more of
729
her, she approved her, and was confirmed in all her kind designs.
730
731
Harriet certainly was not clever, but she had a sweet, docile, grateful
732
disposition, was totally free from conceit, and only desiring to be
733
guided by any one she looked up to. Her early attachment to herself
734
was very amiable; and her inclination for good company, and power of
735
appreciating what was elegant and clever, shewed that there was no
736
want of taste, though strength of understanding must not be expected.
737
Altogether she was quite convinced of Harriet Smith's being exactly the
738
young friend she wanted--exactly the something which her home required.
739
Such a friend as Mrs. Weston was out of the question. Two such could
740
never be granted. Two such she did not want. It was quite a different
741
sort of thing, a sentiment distinct and independent. Mrs. Weston was the
742
object of a regard which had its basis in gratitude and esteem. Harriet
743
would be loved as one to whom she could be useful. For Mrs. Weston there
744
was nothing to be done; for Harriet every thing.
745
746
Her first attempts at usefulness were in an endeavour to find out who
747
were the parents, but Harriet could not tell. She was ready to tell
748
every thing in her power, but on this subject questions were vain. Emma
749
was obliged to fancy what she liked--but she could never believe that in
750
the same situation _she_ should not have discovered the truth. Harriet
751
had no penetration. She had been satisfied to hear and believe just what
752
Mrs. Goddard chose to tell her; and looked no farther.
753
754
Mrs. Goddard, and the teachers, and the girls and the affairs of
755
the school in general, formed naturally a great part of the
756
conversation--and but for her acquaintance with the Martins of
757
Abbey-Mill Farm, it must have been the whole. But the Martins occupied
758
her thoughts a good deal; she had spent two very happy months with them,
759
and now loved to talk of the pleasures of her visit, and describe
760
the many comforts and wonders of the place. Emma encouraged her
761
talkativeness--amused by such a picture of another set of beings,
762
and enjoying the youthful simplicity which could speak with so much
763
exultation of Mrs. Martin's having “_two_ parlours, two very good
764
parlours, indeed; one of them quite as large as Mrs. Goddard's
765
drawing-room; and of her having an upper maid who had lived
766
five-and-twenty years with her; and of their having eight cows, two of
767
them Alderneys, and one a little Welch cow, a very pretty little Welch
768
cow indeed; and of Mrs. Martin's saying as she was so fond of it,
769
it should be called _her_ cow; and of their having a very handsome
770
summer-house in their garden, where some day next year they were all to
771
drink tea:--a very handsome summer-house, large enough to hold a dozen
772
people.”
773
774
For some time she was amused, without thinking beyond the immediate
775
cause; but as she came to understand the family better, other feelings
776
arose. She had taken up a wrong idea, fancying it was a mother and
777
daughter, a son and son's wife, who all lived together; but when it
778
appeared that the Mr. Martin, who bore a part in the narrative, and was
779
always mentioned with approbation for his great good-nature in doing
780
something or other, was a single man; that there was no young Mrs.
781
Martin, no wife in the case; she did suspect danger to her poor little
782
friend from all this hospitality and kindness, and that, if she were not
783
taken care of, she might be required to sink herself forever.
784
785
With this inspiriting notion, her questions increased in number and
786
meaning; and she particularly led Harriet to talk more of Mr. Martin,
787
and there was evidently no dislike to it. Harriet was very ready to
788
speak of the share he had had in their moonlight walks and merry evening
789
games; and dwelt a good deal upon his being so very good-humoured and
790
obliging. He had gone three miles round one day in order to bring her
791
some walnuts, because she had said how fond she was of them, and in
792
every thing else he was so very obliging. He had his shepherd's son into
793
the parlour one night on purpose to sing to her. She was very fond
794
of singing. He could sing a little himself. She believed he was very
795
clever, and understood every thing. He had a very fine flock, and, while
796
she was with them, he had been bid more for his wool than any body in
797
the country. She believed every body spoke well of him. His mother and
798
sisters were very fond of him. Mrs. Martin had told her one day (and
799
there was a blush as she said it,) that it was impossible for any body
800
to be a better son, and therefore she was sure, whenever he married, he
801
would make a good husband. Not that she _wanted_ him to marry. She was
802
in no hurry at all.
803
804
“Well done, Mrs. Martin!” thought Emma. “You know what you are about.”
805
806
“And when she had come away, Mrs. Martin was so very kind as to send
807
Mrs. Goddard a beautiful goose--the finest goose Mrs. Goddard had ever
808
seen. Mrs. Goddard had dressed it on a Sunday, and asked all the three
809
teachers, Miss Nash, and Miss Prince, and Miss Richardson, to sup with
810
her.”
811
812
“Mr. Martin, I suppose, is not a man of information beyond the line of
813
his own business? He does not read?”
814
815
“Oh yes!--that is, no--I do not know--but I believe he has read a
816
good deal--but not what you would think any thing of. He reads the
817
Agricultural Reports, and some other books that lay in one of the window
818
seats--but he reads all _them_ to himself. But sometimes of an evening,
819
before we went to cards, he would read something aloud out of the
820
Elegant Extracts, very entertaining. And I know he has read the Vicar of
821
Wakefield. He never read the Romance of the Forest, nor The Children of
822
the Abbey. He had never heard of such books before I mentioned them, but
823
he is determined to get them now as soon as ever he can.”
824
825
The next question was--
826
827
“What sort of looking man is Mr. Martin?”
828
829
“Oh! not handsome--not at all handsome. I thought him very plain at
830
first, but I do not think him so plain now. One does not, you know,
831
after a time. But did you never see him? He is in Highbury every now and
832
then, and he is sure to ride through every week in his way to Kingston.
833
He has passed you very often.”
834
835
“That may be, and I may have seen him fifty times, but without having
836
any idea of his name. A young farmer, whether on horseback or on foot,
837
is the very last sort of person to raise my curiosity. The yeomanry are
838
precisely the order of people with whom I feel I can have nothing to do.
839
A degree or two lower, and a creditable appearance might interest me;
840
I might hope to be useful to their families in some way or other. But
841
a farmer can need none of my help, and is, therefore, in one sense, as
842
much above my notice as in every other he is below it.”
843
844
“To be sure. Oh yes! It is not likely you should ever have observed him;
845
but he knows you very well indeed--I mean by sight.”
846
847
“I have no doubt of his being a very respectable young man. I know,
848
indeed, that he is so, and, as such, wish him well. What do you imagine
849
his age to be?”
850
851
“He was four-and-twenty the 8th of last June, and my birthday is the
852
23rd just a fortnight and a day's difference--which is very odd.”
853
854
“Only four-and-twenty. That is too young to settle. His mother is
855
perfectly right not to be in a hurry. They seem very comfortable as they
856
are, and if she were to take any pains to marry him, she would probably
857
repent it. Six years hence, if he could meet with a good sort of young
858
woman in the same rank as his own, with a little money, it might be very
859
desirable.”
860
861
“Six years hence! Dear Miss Woodhouse, he would be thirty years old!”
862
863
“Well, and that is as early as most men can afford to marry, who are not
864
born to an independence. Mr. Martin, I imagine, has his fortune entirely
865
to make--cannot be at all beforehand with the world. Whatever money he
866
might come into when his father died, whatever his share of the family
867
property, it is, I dare say, all afloat, all employed in his stock, and
868
so forth; and though, with diligence and good luck, he may be rich in
869
time, it is next to impossible that he should have realised any thing
870
yet.”
871
872
“To be sure, so it is. But they live very comfortably. They have no
873
indoors man, else they do not want for any thing; and Mrs. Martin talks
874
of taking a boy another year.”
875
876
“I wish you may not get into a scrape, Harriet, whenever he does
877
marry;--I mean, as to being acquainted with his wife--for though his
878
sisters, from a superior education, are not to be altogether objected
879
to, it does not follow that he might marry any body at all fit for you
880
to notice. The misfortune of your birth ought to make you particularly
881
careful as to your associates. There can be no doubt of your being a
882
gentleman's daughter, and you must support your claim to that station by
883
every thing within your own power, or there will be plenty of people who
884
would take pleasure in degrading you.”
885
886
“Yes, to be sure, I suppose there are. But while I visit at Hartfield,
887
and you are so kind to me, Miss Woodhouse, I am not afraid of what any
888
body can do.”
889
890
“You understand the force of influence pretty well, Harriet; but I would
891
have you so firmly established in good society, as to be independent
892
even of Hartfield and Miss Woodhouse. I want to see you permanently
893
well connected, and to that end it will be advisable to have as few odd
894
acquaintance as may be; and, therefore, I say that if you should still
895
be in this country when Mr. Martin marries, I wish you may not be drawn
896
in by your intimacy with the sisters, to be acquainted with the wife,
897
who will probably be some mere farmer's daughter, without education.”
898
899
“To be sure. Yes. Not that I think Mr. Martin would ever marry any body
900
but what had had some education--and been very well brought up. However,
901
I do not mean to set up my opinion against yours--and I am sure I shall
902
not wish for the acquaintance of his wife. I shall always have a great
903
regard for the Miss Martins, especially Elizabeth, and should be very
904
sorry to give them up, for they are quite as well educated as me. But
905
if he marries a very ignorant, vulgar woman, certainly I had better not
906
visit her, if I can help it.”
907
908
Emma watched her through the fluctuations of this speech, and saw no
909
alarming symptoms of love. The young man had been the first admirer, but
910
she trusted there was no other hold, and that there would be no serious
911
difficulty, on Harriet's side, to oppose any friendly arrangement of her
912
own.
913
914
They met Mr. Martin the very next day, as they were walking on the
915
Donwell road. He was on foot, and after looking very respectfully at
916
her, looked with most unfeigned satisfaction at her companion. Emma was
917
not sorry to have such an opportunity of survey; and walking a few
918
yards forward, while they talked together, soon made her quick eye
919
sufficiently acquainted with Mr. Robert Martin. His appearance was very
920
neat, and he looked like a sensible young man, but his person had no
921
other advantage; and when he came to be contrasted with gentlemen,
922
she thought he must lose all the ground he had gained in Harriet's
923
inclination. Harriet was not insensible of manner; she had voluntarily
924
noticed her father's gentleness with admiration as well as wonder. Mr.
925
Martin looked as if he did not know what manner was.
926
927
They remained but a few minutes together, as Miss Woodhouse must not be
928
kept waiting; and Harriet then came running to her with a smiling face,
929
and in a flutter of spirits, which Miss Woodhouse hoped very soon to
930
compose.
931
932
“Only think of our happening to meet him!--How very odd! It was quite
933
a chance, he said, that he had not gone round by Randalls. He did not
934
think we ever walked this road. He thought we walked towards Randalls
935
most days. He has not been able to get the Romance of the Forest yet.
936
He was so busy the last time he was at Kingston that he quite forgot it,
937
but he goes again to-morrow. So very odd we should happen to meet! Well,
938
Miss Woodhouse, is he like what you expected? What do you think of him?
939
Do you think him so very plain?”
940
941
“He is very plain, undoubtedly--remarkably plain:--but that is nothing
942
compared with his entire want of gentility. I had no right to expect
943
much, and I did not expect much; but I had no idea that he could be so
944
very clownish, so totally without air. I had imagined him, I confess, a
945
degree or two nearer gentility.”
946
947
“To be sure,” said Harriet, in a mortified voice, “he is not so genteel
948
as real gentlemen.”
949
950
“I think, Harriet, since your acquaintance with us, you have been
951
repeatedly in the company of some such very real gentlemen, that you
952
must yourself be struck with the difference in Mr. Martin. At Hartfield,
953
you have had very good specimens of well educated, well bred men. I
954
should be surprized if, after seeing them, you could be in company
955
with Mr. Martin again without perceiving him to be a very inferior
956
creature--and rather wondering at yourself for having ever thought him
957
at all agreeable before. Do not you begin to feel that now? Were not
958
you struck? I am sure you must have been struck by his awkward look and
959
abrupt manner, and the uncouthness of a voice which I heard to be wholly
960
unmodulated as I stood here.”
961
962
“Certainly, he is not like Mr. Knightley. He has not such a fine air and
963
way of walking as Mr. Knightley. I see the difference plain enough. But
964
Mr. Knightley is so very fine a man!”
965
966
“Mr. Knightley's air is so remarkably good that it is not fair to
967
compare Mr. Martin with _him_. You might not see one in a hundred with
968
_gentleman_ so plainly written as in Mr. Knightley. But he is not the
969
only gentleman you have been lately used to. What say you to Mr. Weston
970
and Mr. Elton? Compare Mr. Martin with either of _them_. Compare their
971
manner of carrying themselves; of walking; of speaking; of being silent.
972
You must see the difference.”
973
974
“Oh yes!--there is a great difference. But Mr. Weston is almost an old
975
man. Mr. Weston must be between forty and fifty.”
976
977
“Which makes his good manners the more valuable. The older a person
978
grows, Harriet, the more important it is that their manners should not
979
be bad; the more glaring and disgusting any loudness, or coarseness, or
980
awkwardness becomes. What is passable in youth is detestable in later
981
age. Mr. Martin is now awkward and abrupt; what will he be at Mr.
982
Weston's time of life?”
983
984
“There is no saying, indeed,” replied Harriet rather solemnly.
985
986
“But there may be pretty good guessing. He will be a completely gross,
987
vulgar farmer, totally inattentive to appearances, and thinking of
988
nothing but profit and loss.”
989
990
“Will he, indeed? That will be very bad.”
991
992
“How much his business engrosses him already is very plain from the
993
circumstance of his forgetting to inquire for the book you recommended.
994
He was a great deal too full of the market to think of any thing
995
else--which is just as it should be, for a thriving man. What has he to
996
do with books? And I have no doubt that he _will_ thrive, and be a very
997
rich man in time--and his being illiterate and coarse need not disturb
998
_us_.”
999
1000
“I wonder he did not remember the book”--was all Harriet's answer, and
1001
spoken with a degree of grave displeasure which Emma thought might be
1002
safely left to itself. She, therefore, said no more for some time. Her
1003
next beginning was,
1004
1005
“In one respect, perhaps, Mr. Elton's manners are superior to Mr.
1006
Knightley's or Mr. Weston's. They have more gentleness. They might be
1007
more safely held up as a pattern. There is an openness, a quickness,
1008
almost a bluntness in Mr. Weston, which every body likes in _him_,
1009
because there is so much good-humour with it--but that would not do to
1010
be copied. Neither would Mr. Knightley's downright, decided, commanding
1011
sort of manner, though it suits _him_ very well; his figure, and look,
1012
and situation in life seem to allow it; but if any young man were to set
1013
about copying him, he would not be sufferable. On the contrary, I think
1014
a young man might be very safely recommended to take Mr. Elton as a
1015
model. Mr. Elton is good-humoured, cheerful, obliging, and gentle.
1016
He seems to me to be grown particularly gentle of late. I do not know
1017
whether he has any design of ingratiating himself with either of us,
1018
Harriet, by additional softness, but it strikes me that his manners are
1019
softer than they used to be. If he means any thing, it must be to please
1020
you. Did not I tell you what he said of you the other day?”
1021
1022
She then repeated some warm personal praise which she had drawn from Mr.
1023
Elton, and now did full justice to; and Harriet blushed and smiled, and
1024
said she had always thought Mr. Elton very agreeable.
1025
1026
Mr. Elton was the very person fixed on by Emma for driving the young
1027
farmer out of Harriet's head. She thought it would be an excellent
1028
match; and only too palpably desirable, natural, and probable, for her
1029
to have much merit in planning it. She feared it was what every body
1030
else must think of and predict. It was not likely, however, that any
1031
body should have equalled her in the date of the plan, as it had
1032
entered her brain during the very first evening of Harriet's coming to
1033
Hartfield. The longer she considered it, the greater was her sense
1034
of its expediency. Mr. Elton's situation was most suitable, quite the
1035
gentleman himself, and without low connexions; at the same time, not of
1036
any family that could fairly object to the doubtful birth of Harriet.
1037
He had a comfortable home for her, and Emma imagined a very sufficient
1038
income; for though the vicarage of Highbury was not large, he was known
1039
to have some independent property; and she thought very highly of him
1040
as a good-humoured, well-meaning, respectable young man, without any
1041
deficiency of useful understanding or knowledge of the world.
1042
1043
She had already satisfied herself that he thought Harriet a beautiful
1044
girl, which she trusted, with such frequent meetings at Hartfield, was
1045
foundation enough on his side; and on Harriet's there could be little
1046
doubt that the idea of being preferred by him would have all the usual
1047
weight and efficacy. And he was really a very pleasing young man, a
1048
young man whom any woman not fastidious might like. He was reckoned very
1049
handsome; his person much admired in general, though not by her,
1050
there being a want of elegance of feature which she could not dispense
1051
with:--but the girl who could be gratified by a Robert Martin's riding
1052
about the country to get walnuts for her might very well be conquered by
1053
Mr. Elton's admiration.
1054
1055
1056
1057
CHAPTER V
1058
1059
1060
“I do not know what your opinion may be, Mrs. Weston,” said Mr.
1061
Knightley, “of this great intimacy between Emma and Harriet Smith, but I
1062
think it a bad thing.”
1063
1064
“A bad thing! Do you really think it a bad thing?--why so?”
1065
1066
“I think they will neither of them do the other any good.”
1067
1068
“You surprize me! Emma must do Harriet good: and by supplying her with a
1069
new object of interest, Harriet may be said to do Emma good. I have been
1070
seeing their intimacy with the greatest pleasure. How very differently
1071
we feel!--Not think they will do each other any good! This will
1072
certainly be the beginning of one of our quarrels about Emma, Mr.
1073
Knightley.”
1074
1075
“Perhaps you think I am come on purpose to quarrel with you, knowing
1076
Weston to be out, and that you must still fight your own battle.”
1077
1078
“Mr. Weston would undoubtedly support me, if he were here, for he thinks
1079
exactly as I do on the subject. We were speaking of it only yesterday,
1080
and agreeing how fortunate it was for Emma, that there should be such a
1081
girl in Highbury for her to associate with. Mr. Knightley, I shall not
1082
allow you to be a fair judge in this case. You are so much used to live
1083
alone, that you do not know the value of a companion; and, perhaps no
1084
man can be a good judge of the comfort a woman feels in the society of
1085
one of her own sex, after being used to it all her life. I can imagine
1086
your objection to Harriet Smith. She is not the superior young woman
1087
which Emma's friend ought to be. But on the other hand, as Emma wants
1088
to see her better informed, it will be an inducement to her to read more
1089
herself. They will read together. She means it, I know.”
1090
1091
“Emma has been meaning to read more ever since she was twelve years old.
1092
I have seen a great many lists of her drawing-up at various times of
1093
books that she meant to read regularly through--and very good lists
1094
they were--very well chosen, and very neatly arranged--sometimes
1095
alphabetically, and sometimes by some other rule. The list she drew
1096
up when only fourteen--I remember thinking it did her judgment so much
1097
credit, that I preserved it some time; and I dare say she may have made
1098
out a very good list now. But I have done with expecting any course of
1099
steady reading from Emma. She will never submit to any thing
1100
requiring industry and patience, and a subjection of the fancy to the
1101
understanding. Where Miss Taylor failed to stimulate, I may safely
1102
affirm that Harriet Smith will do nothing.--You never could persuade her
1103
to read half so much as you wished.--You know you could not.”
1104
1105
“I dare say,” replied Mrs. Weston, smiling, “that I thought so
1106
_then_;--but since we have parted, I can never remember Emma's omitting
1107
to do any thing I wished.”
1108
1109
“There is hardly any desiring to refresh such a memory as _that_,”--said
1110
Mr. Knightley, feelingly; and for a moment or two he had done. “But I,”
1111
he soon added, “who have had no such charm thrown over my senses, must
1112
still see, hear, and remember. Emma is spoiled by being the cleverest
1113
of her family. At ten years old, she had the misfortune of being able to
1114
answer questions which puzzled her sister at seventeen. She was always
1115
quick and assured: Isabella slow and diffident. And ever since she
1116
was twelve, Emma has been mistress of the house and of you all. In her
1117
mother she lost the only person able to cope with her. She inherits her
1118
mother's talents, and must have been under subjection to her.”
1119
1120
“I should have been sorry, Mr. Knightley, to be dependent on _your_
1121
recommendation, had I quitted Mr. Woodhouse's family and wanted another
1122
situation; I do not think you would have spoken a good word for me to
1123
any body. I am sure you always thought me unfit for the office I held.”
1124
1125
“Yes,” said he, smiling. “You are better placed _here_; very fit for a
1126
wife, but not at all for a governess. But you were preparing yourself to
1127
be an excellent wife all the time you were at Hartfield. You might
1128
not give Emma such a complete education as your powers would seem to
1129
promise; but you were receiving a very good education from _her_, on the
1130
very material matrimonial point of submitting your own will, and doing
1131
as you were bid; and if Weston had asked me to recommend him a wife, I
1132
should certainly have named Miss Taylor.”
1133
1134
“Thank you. There will be very little merit in making a good wife to
1135
such a man as Mr. Weston.”
1136
1137
“Why, to own the truth, I am afraid you are rather thrown away, and that
1138
with every disposition to bear, there will be nothing to be borne. We
1139
will not despair, however. Weston may grow cross from the wantonness of
1140
comfort, or his son may plague him.”
1141
1142
“I hope not _that_.--It is not likely. No, Mr. Knightley, do not
1143
foretell vexation from that quarter.”
1144
1145
“Not I, indeed. I only name possibilities. I do not pretend to Emma's
1146
genius for foretelling and guessing. I hope, with all my heart, the
1147
young man may be a Weston in merit, and a Churchill in fortune.--But
1148
Harriet Smith--I have not half done about Harriet Smith. I think her the
1149
very worst sort of companion that Emma could possibly have. She knows
1150
nothing herself, and looks upon Emma as knowing every thing. She is a
1151
flatterer in all her ways; and so much the worse, because undesigned.
1152
Her ignorance is hourly flattery. How can Emma imagine she has any
1153
thing to learn herself, while Harriet is presenting such a delightful
1154
inferiority? And as for Harriet, I will venture to say that _she_ cannot
1155
gain by the acquaintance. Hartfield will only put her out of conceit
1156
with all the other places she belongs to. She will grow just refined
1157
enough to be uncomfortable with those among whom birth and circumstances
1158
have placed her home. I am much mistaken if Emma's doctrines give any
1159
strength of mind, or tend at all to make a girl adapt herself rationally
1160
to the varieties of her situation in life.--They only give a little
1161
polish.”
1162
1163
“I either depend more upon Emma's good sense than you do, or am more
1164
anxious for her present comfort; for I cannot lament the acquaintance.
1165
How well she looked last night!”
1166
1167
“Oh! you would rather talk of her person than her mind, would you? Very
1168
well; I shall not attempt to deny Emma's being pretty.”
1169
1170
“Pretty! say beautiful rather. Can you imagine any thing nearer perfect
1171
beauty than Emma altogether--face and figure?”
1172
1173
“I do not know what I could imagine, but I confess that I have seldom
1174
seen a face or figure more pleasing to me than hers. But I am a partial
1175
old friend.”
1176
1177
“Such an eye!--the true hazle eye--and so brilliant! regular features,
1178
open countenance, with a complexion! oh! what a bloom of full health,
1179
and such a pretty height and size; such a firm and upright figure!
1180
There is health, not merely in her bloom, but in her air, her head, her
1181
glance. One hears sometimes of a child being 'the picture of health;'
1182
now, Emma always gives me the idea of being the complete picture of
1183
grown-up health. She is loveliness itself. Mr. Knightley, is not she?”
1184
1185
“I have not a fault to find with her person,” he replied. “I think her
1186
all you describe. I love to look at her; and I will add this praise,
1187
that I do not think her personally vain. Considering how very handsome
1188
she is, she appears to be little occupied with it; her vanity lies
1189
another way. Mrs. Weston, I am not to be talked out of my dislike of
1190
Harriet Smith, or my dread of its doing them both harm.”
1191
1192
“And I, Mr. Knightley, am equally stout in my confidence of its not
1193
doing them any harm. With all dear Emma's little faults, she is an
1194
excellent creature. Where shall we see a better daughter, or a kinder
1195
sister, or a truer friend? No, no; she has qualities which may be
1196
trusted; she will never lead any one really wrong; she will make no
1197
lasting blunder; where Emma errs once, she is in the right a hundred
1198
times.”
1199
1200
“Very well; I will not plague you any more. Emma shall be an angel, and
1201
I will keep my spleen to myself till Christmas brings John and Isabella.
1202
John loves Emma with a reasonable and therefore not a blind affection,
1203
and Isabella always thinks as he does; except when he is not quite
1204
frightened enough about the children. I am sure of having their opinions
1205
with me.”
1206
1207
“I know that you all love her really too well to be unjust or unkind;
1208
but excuse me, Mr. Knightley, if I take the liberty (I consider myself,
1209
you know, as having somewhat of the privilege of speech that Emma's
1210
mother might have had) the liberty of hinting that I do not think any
1211
possible good can arise from Harriet Smith's intimacy being made a
1212
matter of much discussion among you. Pray excuse me; but supposing any
1213
little inconvenience may be apprehended from the intimacy, it cannot be
1214
expected that Emma, accountable to nobody but her father, who perfectly
1215
approves the acquaintance, should put an end to it, so long as it is a
1216
source of pleasure to herself. It has been so many years my province to
1217
give advice, that you cannot be surprized, Mr. Knightley, at this little
1218
remains of office.”
1219
1220
“Not at all,” cried he; “I am much obliged to you for it. It is very
1221
good advice, and it shall have a better fate than your advice has often
1222
found; for it shall be attended to.”
1223
1224
“Mrs. John Knightley is easily alarmed, and might be made unhappy about
1225
her sister.”
1226
1227
“Be satisfied,” said he, “I will not raise any outcry. I will keep my
1228
ill-humour to myself. I have a very sincere interest in Emma. Isabella
1229
does not seem more my sister; has never excited a greater interest;
1230
perhaps hardly so great. There is an anxiety, a curiosity in what one
1231
feels for Emma. I wonder what will become of her!”
1232
1233
“So do I,” said Mrs. Weston gently, “very much.”
1234
1235
“She always declares she will never marry, which, of course, means just
1236
nothing at all. But I have no idea that she has yet ever seen a man she
1237
cared for. It would not be a bad thing for her to be very much in love
1238
with a proper object. I should like to see Emma in love, and in some
1239
doubt of a return; it would do her good. But there is nobody hereabouts
1240
to attach her; and she goes so seldom from home.”
1241
1242
“There does, indeed, seem as little to tempt her to break her resolution
1243
at present,” said Mrs. Weston, “as can well be; and while she is so
1244
happy at Hartfield, I cannot wish her to be forming any attachment which
1245
would be creating such difficulties on poor Mr. Woodhouse's account. I
1246
do not recommend matrimony at present to Emma, though I mean no slight
1247
to the state, I assure you.”
1248
1249
Part of her meaning was to conceal some favourite thoughts of her own
1250
and Mr. Weston's on the subject, as much as possible. There were wishes
1251
at Randalls respecting Emma's destiny, but it was not desirable to
1252
have them suspected; and the quiet transition which Mr. Knightley soon
1253
afterwards made to “What does Weston think of the weather; shall we have
1254
rain?” convinced her that he had nothing more to say or surmise about
1255
Hartfield.
1256
1257
1258
1259
CHAPTER VI
1260
1261
1262
Emma could not feel a doubt of having given Harriet's fancy a proper
1263
direction and raised the gratitude of her young vanity to a very good
1264
purpose, for she found her decidedly more sensible than before of Mr.
1265
Elton's being a remarkably handsome man, with most agreeable manners;
1266
and as she had no hesitation in following up the assurance of his
1267
admiration by agreeable hints, she was soon pretty confident of creating
1268
as much liking on Harriet's side, as there could be any occasion for.
1269
She was quite convinced of Mr. Elton's being in the fairest way of
1270
falling in love, if not in love already. She had no scruple with regard
1271
to him. He talked of Harriet, and praised her so warmly, that she could
1272
not suppose any thing wanting which a little time would not add. His
1273
perception of the striking improvement of Harriet's manner, since her
1274
introduction at Hartfield, was not one of the least agreeable proofs of
1275
his growing attachment.
1276
1277
“You have given Miss Smith all that she required,” said he; “you have
1278
made her graceful and easy. She was a beautiful creature when she
1279
came to you, but, in my opinion, the attractions you have added are
1280
infinitely superior to what she received from nature.”
1281
1282
“I am glad you think I have been useful to her; but Harriet only wanted
1283
drawing out, and receiving a few, very few hints. She had all the
1284
natural grace of sweetness of temper and artlessness in herself. I have
1285
done very little.”
1286
1287
“If it were admissible to contradict a lady,” said the gallant Mr.
1288
Elton--
1289
1290
“I have perhaps given her a little more decision of character, have
1291
taught her to think on points which had not fallen in her way before.”
1292
1293
“Exactly so; that is what principally strikes me. So much superadded
1294
decision of character! Skilful has been the hand!”
1295
1296
“Great has been the pleasure, I am sure. I never met with a disposition
1297
more truly amiable.”
1298
1299
“I have no doubt of it.” And it was spoken with a sort of sighing
1300
animation, which had a vast deal of the lover. She was not less pleased
1301
another day with the manner in which he seconded a sudden wish of hers,
1302
to have Harriet's picture.
1303
1304
“Did you ever have your likeness taken, Harriet?” said she: “did you
1305
ever sit for your picture?”
1306
1307
Harriet was on the point of leaving the room, and only stopt to say,
1308
with a very interesting naivete,
1309
1310
“Oh! dear, no, never.”
1311
1312
No sooner was she out of sight, than Emma exclaimed,
1313
1314
“What an exquisite possession a good picture of her would be! I would
1315
give any money for it. I almost long to attempt her likeness myself.
1316
You do not know it I dare say, but two or three years ago I had a great
1317
passion for taking likenesses, and attempted several of my friends, and
1318
was thought to have a tolerable eye in general. But from one cause or
1319
another, I gave it up in disgust. But really, I could almost venture,
1320
if Harriet would sit to me. It would be such a delight to have her
1321
picture!”
1322
1323
“Let me entreat you,” cried Mr. Elton; “it would indeed be a delight!
1324
Let me entreat you, Miss Woodhouse, to exercise so charming a talent
1325
in favour of your friend. I know what your drawings are. How could
1326
you suppose me ignorant? Is not this room rich in specimens of your
1327
landscapes and flowers; and has not Mrs. Weston some inimitable
1328
figure-pieces in her drawing-room, at Randalls?”
1329
1330
Yes, good man!--thought Emma--but what has all that to do with taking
1331
likenesses? You know nothing of drawing. Don't pretend to be in raptures
1332
about mine. Keep your raptures for Harriet's face. “Well, if you give me
1333
such kind encouragement, Mr. Elton, I believe I shall try what I can do.
1334
Harriet's features are very delicate, which makes a likeness difficult;
1335
and yet there is a peculiarity in the shape of the eye and the lines
1336
about the mouth which one ought to catch.”
1337
1338
“Exactly so--The shape of the eye and the lines about the mouth--I have
1339
not a doubt of your success. Pray, pray attempt it. As you will do it,
1340
it will indeed, to use your own words, be an exquisite possession.”
1341
1342
“But I am afraid, Mr. Elton, Harriet will not like to sit. She thinks
1343
so little of her own beauty. Did not you observe her manner of answering
1344
me? How completely it meant, 'why should my picture be drawn?'”
1345
1346
“Oh! yes, I observed it, I assure you. It was not lost on me. But still
1347
I cannot imagine she would not be persuaded.”
1348
1349
Harriet was soon back again, and the proposal almost immediately made;
1350
and she had no scruples which could stand many minutes against the
1351
earnest pressing of both the others. Emma wished to go to work directly,
1352
and therefore produced the portfolio containing her various attempts at
1353
portraits, for not one of them had ever been finished, that they might
1354
decide together on the best size for Harriet. Her many beginnings were
1355
displayed. Miniatures, half-lengths, whole-lengths, pencil, crayon, and
1356
water-colours had been all tried in turn. She had always wanted to do
1357
every thing, and had made more progress both in drawing and music than
1358
many might have done with so little labour as she would ever submit to.
1359
She played and sang;--and drew in almost every style; but steadiness
1360
had always been wanting; and in nothing had she approached the degree of
1361
excellence which she would have been glad to command, and ought not to
1362
have failed of. She was not much deceived as to her own skill either
1363
as an artist or a musician, but she was not unwilling to have others
1364
deceived, or sorry to know her reputation for accomplishment often
1365
higher than it deserved.
1366
1367
There was merit in every drawing--in the least finished, perhaps the
1368
most; her style was spirited; but had there been much less, or had there
1369
been ten times more, the delight and admiration of her two companions
1370
would have been the same. They were both in ecstasies. A likeness
1371
pleases every body; and Miss Woodhouse's performances must be capital.
1372
1373
“No great variety of faces for you,” said Emma. “I had only my own
1374
family to study from. There is my father--another of my father--but the
1375
idea of sitting for his picture made him so nervous, that I could only
1376
take him by stealth; neither of them very like therefore. Mrs. Weston
1377
again, and again, and again, you see. Dear Mrs. Weston! always my
1378
kindest friend on every occasion. She would sit whenever I asked her.
1379
There is my sister; and really quite her own little elegant figure!--and
1380
the face not unlike. I should have made a good likeness of her, if she
1381
would have sat longer, but she was in such a hurry to have me draw
1382
her four children that she would not be quiet. Then, here come all my
1383
attempts at three of those four children;--there they are, Henry and
1384
John and Bella, from one end of the sheet to the other, and any one of
1385
them might do for any one of the rest. She was so eager to have them
1386
drawn that I could not refuse; but there is no making children of three
1387
or four years old stand still you know; nor can it be very easy to take
1388
any likeness of them, beyond the air and complexion, unless they are
1389
coarser featured than any of mama's children ever were. Here is my
1390
sketch of the fourth, who was a baby. I took him as he was sleeping on
1391
the sofa, and it is as strong a likeness of his cockade as you would
1392
wish to see. He had nestled down his head most conveniently. That's very
1393
like. I am rather proud of little George. The corner of the sofa is very
1394
good. Then here is my last,”--unclosing a pretty sketch of a gentleman
1395
in small size, whole-length--“my last and my best--my brother, Mr. John
1396
Knightley.--This did not want much of being finished, when I put it away
1397
in a pet, and vowed I would never take another likeness. I could not
1398
help being provoked; for after all my pains, and when I had really made
1399
a very good likeness of it--(Mrs. Weston and I were quite agreed in
1400
thinking it _very_ like)--only too handsome--too flattering--but
1401
that was a fault on the right side”--after all this, came poor dear
1402
Isabella's cold approbation of--“Yes, it was a little like--but to be
1403
sure it did not do him justice. We had had a great deal of trouble
1404
in persuading him to sit at all. It was made a great favour of; and
1405
altogether it was more than I could bear; and so I never would finish
1406
it, to have it apologised over as an unfavourable likeness, to every
1407
morning visitor in Brunswick Square;--and, as I said, I did then
1408
forswear ever drawing any body again. But for Harriet's sake, or rather
1409
for my own, and as there are no husbands and wives in the case _at_
1410
_present_, I will break my resolution now.”
1411
1412
Mr. Elton seemed very properly struck and delighted by the idea, and was
1413
repeating, “No husbands and wives in the case at present indeed, as
1414
you observe. Exactly so. No husbands and wives,” with so interesting a
1415
consciousness, that Emma began to consider whether she had not better
1416
leave them together at once. But as she wanted to be drawing, the
1417
declaration must wait a little longer.
1418
1419
She had soon fixed on the size and sort of portrait. It was to be
1420
a whole-length in water-colours, like Mr. John Knightley's, and was
1421
destined, if she could please herself, to hold a very honourable station
1422
over the mantelpiece.
1423
1424
The sitting began; and Harriet, smiling and blushing, and afraid of not
1425
keeping her attitude and countenance, presented a very sweet mixture of
1426
youthful expression to the steady eyes of the artist. But there was no
1427
doing any thing, with Mr. Elton fidgeting behind her and watching every
1428
touch. She gave him credit for stationing himself where he might gaze
1429
and gaze again without offence; but was really obliged to put an end to
1430
it, and request him to place himself elsewhere. It then occurred to her
1431
to employ him in reading.
1432
1433
“If he would be so good as to read to them, it would be a kindness
1434
indeed! It would amuse away the difficulties of her part, and lessen the
1435
irksomeness of Miss Smith's.”
1436
1437
Mr. Elton was only too happy. Harriet listened, and Emma drew in peace.
1438
She must allow him to be still frequently coming to look; any thing less
1439
would certainly have been too little in a lover; and he was ready at the
1440
smallest intermission of the pencil, to jump up and see the progress,
1441
and be charmed.--There was no being displeased with such an encourager,
1442
for his admiration made him discern a likeness almost before it
1443
was possible. She could not respect his eye, but his love and his
1444
complaisance were unexceptionable.
1445
1446
The sitting was altogether very satisfactory; she was quite enough
1447
pleased with the first day's sketch to wish to go on. There was no want
1448
of likeness, she had been fortunate in the attitude, and as she meant
1449
to throw in a little improvement to the figure, to give a little more
1450
height, and considerably more elegance, she had great confidence of
1451
its being in every way a pretty drawing at last, and of its filling
1452
its destined place with credit to them both--a standing memorial of the
1453
beauty of one, the skill of the other, and the friendship of both;
1454
with as many other agreeable associations as Mr. Elton's very promising
1455
attachment was likely to add.
1456
1457
Harriet was to sit again the next day; and Mr. Elton, just as he ought,
1458
entreated for the permission of attending and reading to them again.
1459
1460
“By all means. We shall be most happy to consider you as one of the
1461
party.”
1462
1463
The same civilities and courtesies, the same success and satisfaction,
1464
took place on the morrow, and accompanied the whole progress of the
1465
picture, which was rapid and happy. Every body who saw it was pleased,
1466
but Mr. Elton was in continual raptures, and defended it through every
1467
criticism.
1468
1469
“Miss Woodhouse has given her friend the only beauty she
1470
wanted,”--observed Mrs. Weston to him--not in the least suspecting that
1471
she was addressing a lover.--“The expression of the eye is most correct,
1472
but Miss Smith has not those eyebrows and eyelashes. It is the fault of
1473
her face that she has them not.”
1474
1475
“Do you think so?” replied he. “I cannot agree with you. It appears
1476
to me a most perfect resemblance in every feature. I never saw such a
1477
likeness in my life. We must allow for the effect of shade, you know.”
1478
1479
“You have made her too tall, Emma,” said Mr. Knightley.
1480
1481
Emma knew that she had, but would not own it; and Mr. Elton warmly
1482
added,
1483
1484
“Oh no! certainly not too tall; not in the least too tall. Consider, she
1485
is sitting down--which naturally presents a different--which in short
1486
gives exactly the idea--and the proportions must be preserved, you know.
1487
Proportions, fore-shortening.--Oh no! it gives one exactly the idea of
1488
such a height as Miss Smith's. Exactly so indeed!”
1489
1490
“It is very pretty,” said Mr. Woodhouse. “So prettily done! Just as your
1491
drawings always are, my dear. I do not know any body who draws so well
1492
as you do. The only thing I do not thoroughly like is, that she seems
1493
to be sitting out of doors, with only a little shawl over her
1494
shoulders--and it makes one think she must catch cold.”
1495
1496
“But, my dear papa, it is supposed to be summer; a warm day in summer.
1497
Look at the tree.”
1498
1499
“But it is never safe to sit out of doors, my dear.”
1500
1501
“You, sir, may say any thing,” cried Mr. Elton, “but I must confess that
1502
I regard it as a most happy thought, the placing of Miss Smith out of
1503
doors; and the tree is touched with such inimitable spirit! Any other
1504
situation would have been much less in character. The naivete of Miss
1505
Smith's manners--and altogether--Oh, it is most admirable! I cannot keep
1506
my eyes from it. I never saw such a likeness.”
1507
1508
The next thing wanted was to get the picture framed; and here were a few
1509
difficulties. It must be done directly; it must be done in London; the
1510
order must go through the hands of some intelligent person whose taste
1511
could be depended on; and Isabella, the usual doer of all commissions,
1512
must not be applied to, because it was December, and Mr. Woodhouse
1513
could not bear the idea of her stirring out of her house in the fogs of
1514
December. But no sooner was the distress known to Mr. Elton, than it
1515
was removed. His gallantry was always on the alert. “Might he be trusted
1516
with the commission, what infinite pleasure should he have in executing
1517
it! he could ride to London at any time. It was impossible to say how
1518
much he should be gratified by being employed on such an errand.”
1519
1520
“He was too good!--she could not endure the thought!--she would not give
1521
him such a troublesome office for the world,”--brought on the desired
1522
repetition of entreaties and assurances,--and a very few minutes settled
1523
the business.
1524
1525
Mr. Elton was to take the drawing to London, chuse the frame, and give
1526
the directions; and Emma thought she could so pack it as to ensure its
1527
safety without much incommoding him, while he seemed mostly fearful of
1528
not being incommoded enough.
1529
1530
“What a precious deposit!” said he with a tender sigh, as he received
1531
it.
1532
1533
“This man is almost too gallant to be in love,” thought Emma. “I should
1534
say so, but that I suppose there may be a hundred different ways of
1535
being in love. He is an excellent young man, and will suit Harriet
1536
exactly; it will be an 'Exactly so,' as he says himself; but he does
1537
sigh and languish, and study for compliments rather more than I could
1538
endure as a principal. I come in for a pretty good share as a second.
1539
But it is his gratitude on Harriet's account.”
1540
1541
1542
1543
CHAPTER VII
1544
1545
1546
The very day of Mr. Elton's going to London produced a fresh occasion
1547
for Emma's services towards her friend. Harriet had been at Hartfield,
1548
as usual, soon after breakfast; and, after a time, had gone home to
1549
return again to dinner: she returned, and sooner than had been
1550
talked of, and with an agitated, hurried look, announcing something
1551
extraordinary to have happened which she was longing to tell. Half a
1552
minute brought it all out. She had heard, as soon as she got back to
1553
Mrs. Goddard's, that Mr. Martin had been there an hour before, and
1554
finding she was not at home, nor particularly expected, had left a
1555
little parcel for her from one of his sisters, and gone away; and on
1556
opening this parcel, she had actually found, besides the two songs which
1557
she had lent Elizabeth to copy, a letter to herself; and this letter was
1558
from him, from Mr. Martin, and contained a direct proposal of marriage.
1559
“Who could have thought it? She was so surprized she did not know what
1560
to do. Yes, quite a proposal of marriage; and a very good letter,
1561
at least she thought so. And he wrote as if he really loved her very
1562
much--but she did not know--and so, she was come as fast as she could to
1563
ask Miss Woodhouse what she should do.--” Emma was half-ashamed of her
1564
friend for seeming so pleased and so doubtful.
1565
1566
“Upon my word,” she cried, “the young man is determined not to lose any
1567
thing for want of asking. He will connect himself well if he can.”
1568
1569
“Will you read the letter?” cried Harriet. “Pray do. I'd rather you
1570
would.”
1571
1572
Emma was not sorry to be pressed. She read, and was surprized. The style
1573
of the letter was much above her expectation. There were not merely no
1574
grammatical errors, but as a composition it would not have disgraced a
1575
gentleman; the language, though plain, was strong and unaffected, and
1576
the sentiments it conveyed very much to the credit of the writer. It was
1577
short, but expressed good sense, warm attachment, liberality, propriety,
1578
even delicacy of feeling. She paused over it, while Harriet stood
1579
anxiously watching for her opinion, with a “Well, well,” and was at last
1580
forced to add, “Is it a good letter? or is it too short?”
1581
1582
“Yes, indeed, a very good letter,” replied Emma rather slowly--“so
1583
good a letter, Harriet, that every thing considered, I think one of his
1584
sisters must have helped him. I can hardly imagine the young man whom
1585
I saw talking with you the other day could express himself so well, if
1586
left quite to his own powers, and yet it is not the style of a woman;
1587
no, certainly, it is too strong and concise; not diffuse enough for a
1588
woman. No doubt he is a sensible man, and I suppose may have a natural
1589
talent for--thinks strongly and clearly--and when he takes a pen in
1590
hand, his thoughts naturally find proper words. It is so with some men.
1591
Yes, I understand the sort of mind. Vigorous, decided, with sentiments
1592
to a certain point, not coarse. A better written letter, Harriet
1593
(returning it,) than I had expected.”
1594
1595
“Well,” said the still waiting Harriet;--“well--and--and what shall I
1596
do?”
1597
1598
“What shall you do! In what respect? Do you mean with regard to this
1599
letter?”
1600
1601
“Yes.”
1602
1603
“But what are you in doubt of? You must answer it of course--and
1604
speedily.”
1605
1606
“Yes. But what shall I say? Dear Miss Woodhouse, do advise me.”
1607
1608
“Oh no, no! the letter had much better be all your own. You will express
1609
yourself very properly, I am sure. There is no danger of your not
1610
being intelligible, which is the first thing. Your meaning must be
1611
unequivocal; no doubts or demurs: and such expressions of gratitude
1612
and concern for the pain you are inflicting as propriety requires, will
1613
present themselves unbidden to _your_ mind, I am persuaded. You need
1614
not be prompted to write with the appearance of sorrow for his
1615
disappointment.”
1616
1617
“You think I ought to refuse him then,” said Harriet, looking down.
1618
1619
“Ought to refuse him! My dear Harriet, what do you mean? Are you in any
1620
doubt as to that? I thought--but I beg your pardon, perhaps I have been
1621
under a mistake. I certainly have been misunderstanding you, if you feel
1622
in doubt as to the _purport_ of your answer. I had imagined you were
1623
consulting me only as to the wording of it.”
1624
1625
Harriet was silent. With a little reserve of manner, Emma continued:
1626
1627
“You mean to return a favourable answer, I collect.”
1628
1629
“No, I do not; that is, I do not mean--What shall I do? What would you
1630
advise me to do? Pray, dear Miss Woodhouse, tell me what I ought to do.”
1631
1632
“I shall not give you any advice, Harriet. I will have nothing to do
1633
with it. This is a point which you must settle with your feelings.”
1634
1635
“I had no notion that he liked me so very much,” said Harriet,
1636
contemplating the letter. For a little while Emma persevered in her
1637
silence; but beginning to apprehend the bewitching flattery of that
1638
letter might be too powerful, she thought it best to say,
1639
1640
“I lay it down as a general rule, Harriet, that if a woman _doubts_ as
1641
to whether she should accept a man or not, she certainly ought to refuse
1642
him. If she can hesitate as to 'Yes,' she ought to say 'No' directly.
1643
It is not a state to be safely entered into with doubtful feelings, with
1644
half a heart. I thought it my duty as a friend, and older than yourself,
1645
to say thus much to you. But do not imagine that I want to influence
1646
you.”
1647
1648
“Oh! no, I am sure you are a great deal too kind to--but if you would
1649
just advise me what I had best do--No, no, I do not mean that--As
1650
you say, one's mind ought to be quite made up--One should not be
1651
hesitating--It is a very serious thing.--It will be safer to say 'No,'
1652
perhaps.--Do you think I had better say 'No?'”
1653
1654
“Not for the world,” said Emma, smiling graciously, “would I advise you
1655
either way. You must be the best judge of your own happiness. If you
1656
prefer Mr. Martin to every other person; if you think him the most
1657
agreeable man you have ever been in company with, why should you
1658
hesitate? You blush, Harriet.--Does any body else occur to you at
1659
this moment under such a definition? Harriet, Harriet, do not deceive
1660
yourself; do not be run away with by gratitude and compassion. At this
1661
moment whom are you thinking of?”
1662
1663
The symptoms were favourable.--Instead of answering, Harriet turned away
1664
confused, and stood thoughtfully by the fire; and though the letter was
1665
still in her hand, it was now mechanically twisted about without regard.
1666
Emma waited the result with impatience, but not without strong hopes. At
1667
last, with some hesitation, Harriet said--
1668
1669
“Miss Woodhouse, as you will not give me your opinion, I must do as well
1670
as I can by myself; and I have now quite determined, and really almost
1671
made up my mind--to refuse Mr. Martin. Do you think I am right?”
1672
1673
“Perfectly, perfectly right, my dearest Harriet; you are doing just
1674
what you ought. While you were at all in suspense I kept my feelings to
1675
myself, but now that you are so completely decided I have no hesitation
1676
in approving. Dear Harriet, I give myself joy of this. It would
1677
have grieved me to lose your acquaintance, which must have been the
1678
consequence of your marrying Mr. Martin. While you were in the smallest
1679
degree wavering, I said nothing about it, because I would not influence;
1680
but it would have been the loss of a friend to me. I could not have
1681
visited Mrs. Robert Martin, of Abbey-Mill Farm. Now I am secure of you
1682
for ever.”
1683
1684
Harriet had not surmised her own danger, but the idea of it struck her
1685
forcibly.
1686
1687
“You could not have visited me!” she cried, looking aghast. “No, to be
1688
sure you could not; but I never thought of that before. That would have
1689
been too dreadful!--What an escape!--Dear Miss Woodhouse, I would not
1690
give up the pleasure and honour of being intimate with you for any thing
1691
in the world.”
1692
1693
“Indeed, Harriet, it would have been a severe pang to lose you; but it
1694
must have been. You would have thrown yourself out of all good society.
1695
I must have given you up.”
1696
1697
“Dear me!--How should I ever have borne it! It would have killed me
1698
never to come to Hartfield any more!”
1699
1700
“Dear affectionate creature!--_You_ banished to Abbey-Mill Farm!--_You_
1701
confined to the society of the illiterate and vulgar all your life! I
1702
wonder how the young man could have the assurance to ask it. He must
1703
have a pretty good opinion of himself.”
1704
1705
“I do not think he is conceited either, in general,” said Harriet, her
1706
conscience opposing such censure; “at least, he is very good natured,
1707
and I shall always feel much obliged to him, and have a great regard
1708
for--but that is quite a different thing from--and you know, though
1709
he may like me, it does not follow that I should--and certainly I must
1710
confess that since my visiting here I have seen people--and if one comes
1711
to compare them, person and manners, there is no comparison at all,
1712
_one_ is so very handsome and agreeable. However, I do really think Mr.
1713
Martin a very amiable young man, and have a great opinion of him; and
1714
his being so much attached to me--and his writing such a letter--but as
1715
to leaving you, it is what I would not do upon any consideration.”
1716
1717
“Thank you, thank you, my own sweet little friend. We will not be
1718
parted. A woman is not to marry a man merely because she is asked, or
1719
because he is attached to her, and can write a tolerable letter.”
1720
1721
“Oh no;--and it is but a short letter too.”
1722
1723
Emma felt the bad taste of her friend, but let it pass with a “very
1724
true; and it would be a small consolation to her, for the clownish
1725
manner which might be offending her every hour of the day, to know that
1726
her husband could write a good letter.”
1727
1728
“Oh! yes, very. Nobody cares for a letter; the thing is, to be always
1729
happy with pleasant companions. I am quite determined to refuse him. But
1730
how shall I do? What shall I say?”
1731
1732
Emma assured her there would be no difficulty in the answer, and advised
1733
its being written directly, which was agreed to, in the hope of her
1734
assistance; and though Emma continued to protest against any assistance
1735
being wanted, it was in fact given in the formation of every sentence.
1736
The looking over his letter again, in replying to it, had such a
1737
softening tendency, that it was particularly necessary to brace her up
1738
with a few decisive expressions; and she was so very much concerned at
1739
the idea of making him unhappy, and thought so much of what his mother
1740
and sisters would think and say, and was so anxious that they should not
1741
fancy her ungrateful, that Emma believed if the young man had come in
1742
her way at that moment, he would have been accepted after all.
1743
1744
This letter, however, was written, and sealed, and sent. The business
1745
was finished, and Harriet safe. She was rather low all the evening, but
1746
Emma could allow for her amiable regrets, and sometimes relieved them by
1747
speaking of her own affection, sometimes by bringing forward the idea of
1748
Mr. Elton.
1749
1750
“I shall never be invited to Abbey-Mill again,” was said in rather a
1751
sorrowful tone.
1752
1753
“Nor, if you were, could I ever bear to part with you, my Harriet. You
1754
are a great deal too necessary at Hartfield to be spared to Abbey-Mill.”
1755
1756
“And I am sure I should never want to go there; for I am never happy but
1757
at Hartfield.”
1758
1759
Some time afterwards it was, “I think Mrs. Goddard would be very much
1760
surprized if she knew what had happened. I am sure Miss Nash would--for
1761
Miss Nash thinks her own sister very well married, and it is only a
1762
linen-draper.”
1763
1764
“One should be sorry to see greater pride or refinement in the teacher
1765
of a school, Harriet. I dare say Miss Nash would envy you such an
1766
opportunity as this of being married. Even this conquest would appear
1767
valuable in her eyes. As to any thing superior for you, I suppose she
1768
is quite in the dark. The attentions of a certain person can hardly be
1769
among the tittle-tattle of Highbury yet. Hitherto I fancy you and I
1770
are the only people to whom his looks and manners have explained
1771
themselves.”
1772
1773
Harriet blushed and smiled, and said something about wondering that
1774
people should like her so much. The idea of Mr. Elton was certainly
1775
cheering; but still, after a time, she was tender-hearted again towards
1776
the rejected Mr. Martin.
1777
1778
“Now he has got my letter,” said she softly. “I wonder what they are all
1779
doing--whether his sisters know--if he is unhappy, they will be unhappy
1780
too. I hope he will not mind it so very much.”
1781
1782
“Let us think of those among our absent friends who are more cheerfully
1783
employed,” cried Emma. “At this moment, perhaps, Mr. Elton is shewing
1784
your picture to his mother and sisters, telling how much more beautiful
1785
is the original, and after being asked for it five or six times,
1786
allowing them to hear your name, your own dear name.”
1787
1788
“My picture!--But he has left my picture in Bond-street.”
1789
1790
“Has he so!--Then I know nothing of Mr. Elton. No, my dear little modest
1791
Harriet, depend upon it the picture will not be in Bond-street till
1792
just before he mounts his horse to-morrow. It is his companion all this
1793
evening, his solace, his delight. It opens his designs to his family,
1794
it introduces you among them, it diffuses through the party those
1795
pleasantest feelings of our nature, eager curiosity and warm
1796
prepossession. How cheerful, how animated, how suspicious, how busy
1797
their imaginations all are!”
1798
1799
Harriet smiled again, and her smiles grew stronger.
1800
1801
1802
1803
CHAPTER VIII
1804
1805
1806
Harriet slept at Hartfield that night. For some weeks past she had been
1807
spending more than half her time there, and gradually getting to have
1808
a bed-room appropriated to herself; and Emma judged it best in every
1809
respect, safest and kindest, to keep her with them as much as possible
1810
just at present. She was obliged to go the next morning for an hour or
1811
two to Mrs. Goddard's, but it was then to be settled that she should
1812
return to Hartfield, to make a regular visit of some days.
1813
1814
While she was gone, Mr. Knightley called, and sat some time with Mr.
1815
Woodhouse and Emma, till Mr. Woodhouse, who had previously made up his
1816
mind to walk out, was persuaded by his daughter not to defer it, and was
1817
induced by the entreaties of both, though against the scruples of his
1818
own civility, to leave Mr. Knightley for that purpose. Mr. Knightley,
1819
who had nothing of ceremony about him, was offering by his short,
1820
decided answers, an amusing contrast to the protracted apologies and
1821
civil hesitations of the other.
1822
1823
“Well, I believe, if you will excuse me, Mr. Knightley, if you will not
1824
consider me as doing a very rude thing, I shall take Emma's advice and
1825
go out for a quarter of an hour. As the sun is out, I believe I had
1826
better take my three turns while I can. I treat you without ceremony,
1827
Mr. Knightley. We invalids think we are privileged people.”
1828
1829
“My dear sir, do not make a stranger of me.”
1830
1831
“I leave an excellent substitute in my daughter. Emma will be happy to
1832
entertain you. And therefore I think I will beg your excuse and take my
1833
three turns--my winter walk.”
1834
1835
“You cannot do better, sir.”
1836
1837
“I would ask for the pleasure of your company, Mr. Knightley, but I am a
1838
very slow walker, and my pace would be tedious to you; and, besides, you
1839
have another long walk before you, to Donwell Abbey.”
1840
1841
“Thank you, sir, thank you; I am going this moment myself; and I think
1842
the sooner _you_ go the better. I will fetch your greatcoat and open the
1843
garden door for you.”
1844
1845
Mr. Woodhouse at last was off; but Mr. Knightley, instead of being
1846
immediately off likewise, sat down again, seemingly inclined for more
1847
chat. He began speaking of Harriet, and speaking of her with more
1848
voluntary praise than Emma had ever heard before.
1849
1850
“I cannot rate her beauty as you do,” said he; “but she is a
1851
pretty little creature, and I am inclined to think very well of her
1852
disposition. Her character depends upon those she is with; but in good
1853
hands she will turn out a valuable woman.”
1854
1855
“I am glad you think so; and the good hands, I hope, may not be
1856
wanting.”
1857
1858
“Come,” said he, “you are anxious for a compliment, so I will tell you
1859
that you have improved her. You have cured her of her school-girl's
1860
giggle; she really does you credit.”
1861
1862
“Thank you. I should be mortified indeed if I did not believe I had been
1863
of some use; but it is not every body who will bestow praise where they
1864
may. _You_ do not often overpower me with it.”
1865
1866
“You are expecting her again, you say, this morning?”
1867
1868
“Almost every moment. She has been gone longer already than she
1869
intended.”
1870
1871
“Something has happened to delay her; some visitors perhaps.”
1872
1873
“Highbury gossips!--Tiresome wretches!”
1874
1875
“Harriet may not consider every body tiresome that you would.”
1876
1877
Emma knew this was too true for contradiction, and therefore said
1878
nothing. He presently added, with a smile,
1879
1880
“I do not pretend to fix on times or places, but I must tell you that
1881
I have good reason to believe your little friend will soon hear of
1882
something to her advantage.”
1883
1884
“Indeed! how so? of what sort?”
1885
1886
“A very serious sort, I assure you;” still smiling.
1887
1888
“Very serious! I can think of but one thing--Who is in love with her?
1889
Who makes you their confidant?”
1890
1891
Emma was more than half in hopes of Mr. Elton's having dropt a hint.
1892
Mr. Knightley was a sort of general friend and adviser, and she knew Mr.
1893
Elton looked up to him.
1894
1895
“I have reason to think,” he replied, “that Harriet Smith will soon have
1896
an offer of marriage, and from a most unexceptionable quarter:--Robert
1897
Martin is the man. Her visit to Abbey-Mill, this summer, seems to have
1898
done his business. He is desperately in love and means to marry her.”
1899
1900
“He is very obliging,” said Emma; “but is he sure that Harriet means to
1901
marry him?”
1902
1903
“Well, well, means to make her an offer then. Will that do? He came to
1904
the Abbey two evenings ago, on purpose to consult me about it. He knows
1905
I have a thorough regard for him and all his family, and, I believe,
1906
considers me as one of his best friends. He came to ask me whether
1907
I thought it would be imprudent in him to settle so early; whether
1908
I thought her too young: in short, whether I approved his choice
1909
altogether; having some apprehension perhaps of her being considered
1910
(especially since _your_ making so much of her) as in a line of society
1911
above him. I was very much pleased with all that he said. I never hear
1912
better sense from any one than Robert Martin. He always speaks to the
1913
purpose; open, straightforward, and very well judging. He told me every
1914
thing; his circumstances and plans, and what they all proposed doing in
1915
the event of his marriage. He is an excellent young man, both as son and
1916
brother. I had no hesitation in advising him to marry. He proved to me
1917
that he could afford it; and that being the case, I was convinced he
1918
could not do better. I praised the fair lady too, and altogether sent
1919
him away very happy. If he had never esteemed my opinion before, he
1920
would have thought highly of me then; and, I dare say, left the house
1921
thinking me the best friend and counsellor man ever had. This happened
1922
the night before last. Now, as we may fairly suppose, he would not allow
1923
much time to pass before he spoke to the lady, and as he does not appear
1924
to have spoken yesterday, it is not unlikely that he should be at Mrs.
1925
Goddard's to-day; and she may be detained by a visitor, without thinking
1926
him at all a tiresome wretch.”
1927
1928
“Pray, Mr. Knightley,” said Emma, who had been smiling to herself
1929
through a great part of this speech, “how do you know that Mr. Martin
1930
did not speak yesterday?”
1931
1932
“Certainly,” replied he, surprized, “I do not absolutely know it; but it
1933
may be inferred. Was not she the whole day with you?”
1934
1935
“Come,” said she, “I will tell you something, in return for what
1936
you have told me. He did speak yesterday--that is, he wrote, and was
1937
refused.”
1938
1939
This was obliged to be repeated before it could be believed; and Mr.
1940
Knightley actually looked red with surprize and displeasure, as he stood
1941
up, in tall indignation, and said,
1942
1943
“Then she is a greater simpleton than I ever believed her. What is the
1944
foolish girl about?”
1945
1946
“Oh! to be sure,” cried Emma, “it is always incomprehensible to a man
1947
that a woman should ever refuse an offer of marriage. A man always
1948
imagines a woman to be ready for any body who asks her.”
1949
1950
“Nonsense! a man does not imagine any such thing. But what is the
1951
meaning of this? Harriet Smith refuse Robert Martin? madness, if it is
1952
so; but I hope you are mistaken.”
1953
1954
“I saw her answer!--nothing could be clearer.”
1955
1956
“You saw her answer!--you wrote her answer too. Emma, this is your
1957
doing. You persuaded her to refuse him.”
1958
1959
“And if I did, (which, however, I am far from allowing) I should not
1960
feel that I had done wrong. Mr. Martin is a very respectable young man,
1961
but I cannot admit him to be Harriet's equal; and am rather surprized
1962
indeed that he should have ventured to address her. By your account, he
1963
does seem to have had some scruples. It is a pity that they were ever
1964
got over.”
1965
1966
“Not Harriet's equal!” exclaimed Mr. Knightley loudly and warmly; and
1967
with calmer asperity, added, a few moments afterwards, “No, he is
1968
not her equal indeed, for he is as much her superior in sense as in
1969
situation. Emma, your infatuation about that girl blinds you. What are
1970
Harriet Smith's claims, either of birth, nature or education, to any
1971
connexion higher than Robert Martin? She is the natural daughter of
1972
nobody knows whom, with probably no settled provision at all, and
1973
certainly no respectable relations. She is known only as parlour-boarder
1974
at a common school. She is not a sensible girl, nor a girl of any
1975
information. She has been taught nothing useful, and is too young and
1976
too simple to have acquired any thing herself. At her age she can have
1977
no experience, and with her little wit, is not very likely ever to have
1978
any that can avail her. She is pretty, and she is good tempered, and
1979
that is all. My only scruple in advising the match was on his account,
1980
as being beneath his deserts, and a bad connexion for him. I felt that,
1981
as to fortune, in all probability he might do much better; and that as
1982
to a rational companion or useful helpmate, he could not do worse. But I
1983
could not reason so to a man in love, and was willing to trust to there
1984
being no harm in her, to her having that sort of disposition, which, in
1985
good hands, like his, might be easily led aright and turn out very well.
1986
The advantage of the match I felt to be all on her side; and had not the
1987
smallest doubt (nor have I now) that there would be a general cry-out
1988
upon her extreme good luck. Even _your_ satisfaction I made sure of.
1989
It crossed my mind immediately that you would not regret your friend's
1990
leaving Highbury, for the sake of her being settled so well. I remember
1991
saying to myself, 'Even Emma, with all her partiality for Harriet, will
1992
think this a good match.'”
1993
1994
“I cannot help wondering at your knowing so little of Emma as to say any
1995
such thing. What! think a farmer, (and with all his sense and all his
1996
merit Mr. Martin is nothing more,) a good match for my intimate friend!
1997
Not regret her leaving Highbury for the sake of marrying a man whom
1998
I could never admit as an acquaintance of my own! I wonder you should
1999
think it possible for me to have such feelings. I assure you mine are
2000
very different. I must think your statement by no means fair. You are
2001
not just to Harriet's claims. They would be estimated very differently
2002
by others as well as myself; Mr. Martin may be the richest of the two,
2003
but he is undoubtedly her inferior as to rank in society.--The sphere in
2004
which she moves is much above his.--It would be a degradation.”
2005
2006
“A degradation to illegitimacy and ignorance, to be married to a
2007
respectable, intelligent gentleman-farmer!”
2008
2009
“As to the circumstances of her birth, though in a legal sense she may
2010
be called Nobody, it will not hold in common sense. She is not to pay
2011
for the offence of others, by being held below the level of those with
2012
whom she is brought up.--There can scarcely be a doubt that her father
2013
is a gentleman--and a gentleman of fortune.--Her allowance is
2014
very liberal; nothing has ever been grudged for her improvement or
2015
comfort.--That she is a gentleman's daughter, is indubitable to me; that
2016
she associates with gentlemen's daughters, no one, I apprehend, will
2017
deny.--She is superior to Mr. Robert Martin.”
2018
2019
“Whoever might be her parents,” said Mr. Knightley, “whoever may have
2020
had the charge of her, it does not appear to have been any part of
2021
their plan to introduce her into what you would call good society. After
2022
receiving a very indifferent education she is left in Mrs. Goddard's
2023
hands to shift as she can;--to move, in short, in Mrs. Goddard's line,
2024
to have Mrs. Goddard's acquaintance. Her friends evidently thought
2025
this good enough for her; and it _was_ good enough. She desired nothing
2026
better herself. Till you chose to turn her into a friend, her mind had
2027
no distaste for her own set, nor any ambition beyond it. She was as
2028
happy as possible with the Martins in the summer. She had no sense of
2029
superiority then. If she has it now, you have given it. You have been no
2030
friend to Harriet Smith, Emma. Robert Martin would never have proceeded
2031
so far, if he had not felt persuaded of her not being disinclined to
2032
him. I know him well. He has too much real feeling to address any
2033
woman on the haphazard of selfish passion. And as to conceit, he is
2034
the farthest from it of any man I know. Depend upon it he had
2035
encouragement.”
2036
2037
It was most convenient to Emma not to make a direct reply to this
2038
assertion; she chose rather to take up her own line of the subject
2039
again.
2040
2041
“You are a very warm friend to Mr. Martin; but, as I said before,
2042
are unjust to Harriet. Harriet's claims to marry well are not so
2043
contemptible as you represent them. She is not a clever girl, but she
2044
has better sense than you are aware of, and does not deserve to have her
2045
understanding spoken of so slightingly. Waiving that point, however, and
2046
supposing her to be, as you describe her, only pretty and good-natured,
2047
let me tell you, that in the degree she possesses them, they are not
2048
trivial recommendations to the world in general, for she is, in fact, a
2049
beautiful girl, and must be thought so by ninety-nine people out of an
2050
hundred; and till it appears that men are much more philosophic on the
2051
subject of beauty than they are generally supposed; till they do fall
2052
in love with well-informed minds instead of handsome faces, a girl, with
2053
such loveliness as Harriet, has a certainty of being admired and sought
2054
after, of having the power of chusing from among many, consequently a
2055
claim to be nice. Her good-nature, too, is not so very slight a claim,
2056
comprehending, as it does, real, thorough sweetness of temper and
2057
manner, a very humble opinion of herself, and a great readiness to
2058
be pleased with other people. I am very much mistaken if your sex in
2059
general would not think such beauty, and such temper, the highest claims
2060
a woman could possess.”
2061
2062
“Upon my word, Emma, to hear you abusing the reason you have, is almost
2063
enough to make me think so too. Better be without sense, than misapply
2064
it as you do.”
2065
2066
“To be sure!” cried she playfully. “I know _that_ is the feeling of
2067
you all. I know that such a girl as Harriet is exactly what every
2068
man delights in--what at once bewitches his senses and satisfies his
2069
judgment. Oh! Harriet may pick and chuse. Were you, yourself, ever to
2070
marry, she is the very woman for you. And is she, at seventeen, just
2071
entering into life, just beginning to be known, to be wondered at
2072
because she does not accept the first offer she receives? No--pray let
2073
her have time to look about her.”
2074
2075
“I have always thought it a very foolish intimacy,” said Mr. Knightley
2076
presently, “though I have kept my thoughts to myself; but I now perceive
2077
that it will be a very unfortunate one for Harriet. You will puff her up
2078
with such ideas of her own beauty, and of what she has a claim to, that,
2079
in a little while, nobody within her reach will be good enough for her.
2080
Vanity working on a weak head, produces every sort of mischief. Nothing
2081
so easy as for a young lady to raise her expectations too high. Miss
2082
Harriet Smith may not find offers of marriage flow in so fast, though
2083
she is a very pretty girl. Men of sense, whatever you may chuse to
2084
say, do not want silly wives. Men of family would not be very fond of
2085
connecting themselves with a girl of such obscurity--and most prudent
2086
men would be afraid of the inconvenience and disgrace they might be
2087
involved in, when the mystery of her parentage came to be revealed. Let
2088
her marry Robert Martin, and she is safe, respectable, and happy for
2089
ever; but if you encourage her to expect to marry greatly, and teach her
2090
to be satisfied with nothing less than a man of consequence and large
2091
fortune, she may be a parlour-boarder at Mrs. Goddard's all the rest
2092
of her life--or, at least, (for Harriet Smith is a girl who will marry
2093
somebody or other,) till she grow desperate, and is glad to catch at the
2094
old writing-master's son.”
2095
2096
“We think so very differently on this point, Mr. Knightley, that there
2097
can be no use in canvassing it. We shall only be making each other more
2098
angry. But as to my _letting_ her marry Robert Martin, it is impossible;
2099
she has refused him, and so decidedly, I think, as must prevent any
2100
second application. She must abide by the evil of having refused him,
2101
whatever it may be; and as to the refusal itself, I will not pretend to
2102
say that I might not influence her a little; but I assure you there
2103
was very little for me or for any body to do. His appearance is so much
2104
against him, and his manner so bad, that if she ever were disposed to
2105
favour him, she is not now. I can imagine, that before she had seen
2106
any body superior, she might tolerate him. He was the brother of her
2107
friends, and he took pains to please her; and altogether, having seen
2108
nobody better (that must have been his great assistant) she might not,
2109
while she was at Abbey-Mill, find him disagreeable. But the case
2110
is altered now. She knows now what gentlemen are; and nothing but a
2111
gentleman in education and manner has any chance with Harriet.”
2112
2113
“Nonsense, errant nonsense, as ever was talked!” cried Mr.
2114
Knightley.--“Robert Martin's manners have sense, sincerity, and
2115
good-humour to recommend them; and his mind has more true gentility than
2116
Harriet Smith could understand.”
2117
2118
Emma made no answer, and tried to look cheerfully unconcerned, but was
2119
really feeling uncomfortable and wanting him very much to be gone. She
2120
did not repent what she had done; she still thought herself a better
2121
judge of such a point of female right and refinement than he could be;
2122
but yet she had a sort of habitual respect for his judgment in general,
2123
which made her dislike having it so loudly against her; and to have him
2124
sitting just opposite to her in angry state, was very disagreeable.
2125
Some minutes passed in this unpleasant silence, with only one attempt
2126
on Emma's side to talk of the weather, but he made no answer. He was
2127
thinking. The result of his thoughts appeared at last in these words.
2128
2129
“Robert Martin has no great loss--if he can but think so; and I hope it
2130
will not be long before he does. Your views for Harriet are best known
2131
to yourself; but as you make no secret of your love of match-making, it
2132
is fair to suppose that views, and plans, and projects you have;--and as
2133
a friend I shall just hint to you that if Elton is the man, I think it
2134
will be all labour in vain.”
2135
2136
Emma laughed and disclaimed. He continued,
2137
2138
“Depend upon it, Elton will not do. Elton is a very good sort of man,
2139
and a very respectable vicar of Highbury, but not at all likely to make
2140
an imprudent match. He knows the value of a good income as well as any
2141
body. Elton may talk sentimentally, but he will act rationally. He is
2142
as well acquainted with his own claims, as you can be with Harriet's.
2143
He knows that he is a very handsome young man, and a great favourite
2144
wherever he goes; and from his general way of talking in unreserved
2145
moments, when there are only men present, I am convinced that he does
2146
not mean to throw himself away. I have heard him speak with great
2147
animation of a large family of young ladies that his sisters are
2148
intimate with, who have all twenty thousand pounds apiece.”
2149
2150
“I am very much obliged to you,” said Emma, laughing again. “If I had
2151
set my heart on Mr. Elton's marrying Harriet, it would have been very
2152
kind to open my eyes; but at present I only want to keep Harriet to
2153
myself. I have done with match-making indeed. I could never hope to
2154
equal my own doings at Randalls. I shall leave off while I am well.”
2155
2156
“Good morning to you,”--said he, rising and walking off abruptly. He was
2157
very much vexed. He felt the disappointment of the young man, and was
2158
mortified to have been the means of promoting it, by the sanction he had
2159
given; and the part which he was persuaded Emma had taken in the affair,
2160
was provoking him exceedingly.
2161
2162
Emma remained in a state of vexation too; but there was more
2163
indistinctness in the causes of her's, than in his. She did not always
2164
feel so absolutely satisfied with herself, so entirely convinced that
2165
her opinions were right and her adversary's wrong, as Mr. Knightley. He
2166
walked off in more complete self-approbation than he left for her. She
2167
was not so materially cast down, however, but that a little time and
2168
the return of Harriet were very adequate restoratives. Harriet's staying
2169
away so long was beginning to make her uneasy. The possibility of the
2170
young man's coming to Mrs. Goddard's that morning, and meeting with
2171
Harriet and pleading his own cause, gave alarming ideas. The dread
2172
of such a failure after all became the prominent uneasiness; and when
2173
Harriet appeared, and in very good spirits, and without having any
2174
such reason to give for her long absence, she felt a satisfaction which
2175
settled her with her own mind, and convinced her, that let Mr.
2176
Knightley think or say what he would, she had done nothing which woman's
2177
friendship and woman's feelings would not justify.
2178
2179
He had frightened her a little about Mr. Elton; but when she considered
2180
that Mr. Knightley could not have observed him as she had done, neither
2181
with the interest, nor (she must be allowed to tell herself, in spite of
2182
Mr. Knightley's pretensions) with the skill of such an observer on such
2183
a question as herself, that he had spoken it hastily and in anger, she
2184
was able to believe, that he had rather said what he wished resentfully
2185
to be true, than what he knew any thing about. He certainly might have
2186
heard Mr. Elton speak with more unreserve than she had ever done, and
2187
Mr. Elton might not be of an imprudent, inconsiderate disposition as to
2188
money matters; he might naturally be rather attentive than otherwise
2189
to them; but then, Mr. Knightley did not make due allowance for the
2190
influence of a strong passion at war with all interested motives. Mr.
2191
Knightley saw no such passion, and of course thought nothing of its
2192
effects; but she saw too much of it to feel a doubt of its overcoming
2193
any hesitations that a reasonable prudence might originally suggest; and
2194
more than a reasonable, becoming degree of prudence, she was very sure
2195
did not belong to Mr. Elton.
2196
2197
Harriet's cheerful look and manner established hers: she came back, not
2198
to think of Mr. Martin, but to talk of Mr. Elton. Miss Nash had been
2199
telling her something, which she repeated immediately with great
2200
delight. Mr. Perry had been to Mrs. Goddard's to attend a sick child,
2201
and Miss Nash had seen him, and he had told Miss Nash, that as he was
2202
coming back yesterday from Clayton Park, he had met Mr. Elton, and
2203
found to his great surprize, that Mr. Elton was actually on his road
2204
to London, and not meaning to return till the morrow, though it was the
2205
whist-club night, which he had been never known to miss before; and Mr.
2206
Perry had remonstrated with him about it, and told him how shabby it
2207
was in him, their best player, to absent himself, and tried very much to
2208
persuade him to put off his journey only one day; but it would not
2209
do; Mr. Elton had been determined to go on, and had said in a _very_
2210
_particular_ way indeed, that he was going on business which he would
2211
not put off for any inducement in the world; and something about a
2212
very enviable commission, and being the bearer of something exceedingly
2213
precious. Mr. Perry could not quite understand him, but he was very sure
2214
there must be a _lady_ in the case, and he told him so; and Mr. Elton
2215
only looked very conscious and smiling, and rode off in great spirits.
2216
Miss Nash had told her all this, and had talked a great deal more about
2217
Mr. Elton; and said, looking so very significantly at her, “that she did
2218
not pretend to understand what his business might be, but she only
2219
knew that any woman whom Mr. Elton could prefer, she should think the
2220
luckiest woman in the world; for, beyond a doubt, Mr. Elton had not his
2221
equal for beauty or agreeableness.”
2222
2223
2224
2225
CHAPTER IX
2226
2227
2228
Mr. Knightley might quarrel with her, but Emma could not quarrel with
2229
herself. He was so much displeased, that it was longer than usual before
2230
he came to Hartfield again; and when they did meet, his grave looks
2231
shewed that she was not forgiven. She was sorry, but could not repent.
2232
On the contrary, her plans and proceedings were more and more justified
2233
and endeared to her by the general appearances of the next few days.
2234
2235
The Picture, elegantly framed, came safely to hand soon after Mr.
2236
Elton's return, and being hung over the mantelpiece of the common
2237
sitting-room, he got up to look at it, and sighed out his half sentences
2238
of admiration just as he ought; and as for Harriet's feelings, they were
2239
visibly forming themselves into as strong and steady an attachment as
2240
her youth and sort of mind admitted. Emma was soon perfectly satisfied
2241
of Mr. Martin's being no otherwise remembered, than as he furnished a
2242
contrast with Mr. Elton, of the utmost advantage to the latter.
2243
2244
Her views of improving her little friend's mind, by a great deal of
2245
useful reading and conversation, had never yet led to more than a few
2246
first chapters, and the intention of going on to-morrow. It was much
2247
easier to chat than to study; much pleasanter to let her imagination
2248
range and work at Harriet's fortune, than to be labouring to enlarge
2249
her comprehension or exercise it on sober facts; and the only literary
2250
pursuit which engaged Harriet at present, the only mental provision she
2251
was making for the evening of life, was the collecting and transcribing
2252
all the riddles of every sort that she could meet with, into a thin
2253
quarto of hot-pressed paper, made up by her friend, and ornamented with
2254
ciphers and trophies.
2255
2256
In this age of literature, such collections on a very grand scale are
2257
not uncommon. Miss Nash, head-teacher at Mrs. Goddard's, had written out
2258
at least three hundred; and Harriet, who had taken the first hint of it
2259
from her, hoped, with Miss Woodhouse's help, to get a great many more.
2260
Emma assisted with her invention, memory and taste; and as Harriet wrote
2261
a very pretty hand, it was likely to be an arrangement of the first
2262
order, in form as well as quantity.
2263
2264
Mr. Woodhouse was almost as much interested in the business as the
2265
girls, and tried very often to recollect something worth their putting
2266
in. “So many clever riddles as there used to be when he was young--he
2267
wondered he could not remember them! but he hoped he should in time.”
2268
And it always ended in “Kitty, a fair but frozen maid.”
2269
2270
His good friend Perry, too, whom he had spoken to on the subject,
2271
did not at present recollect any thing of the riddle kind; but he
2272
had desired Perry to be upon the watch, and as he went about so much,
2273
something, he thought, might come from that quarter.
2274
2275
It was by no means his daughter's wish that the intellects of Highbury
2276
in general should be put under requisition. Mr. Elton was the only one
2277
whose assistance she asked. He was invited to contribute any really good
2278
enigmas, charades, or conundrums that he might recollect; and she had
2279
the pleasure of seeing him most intently at work with his recollections;
2280
and at the same time, as she could perceive, most earnestly careful that
2281
nothing ungallant, nothing that did not breathe a compliment to the
2282
sex should pass his lips. They owed to him their two or three politest
2283
puzzles; and the joy and exultation with which at last he recalled, and
2284
rather sentimentally recited, that well-known charade,
2285
2286
My first doth affliction denote,
2287
Which my second is destin'd to feel
2288
And my whole is the best antidote
2289
That affliction to soften and heal.--
2290
2291
made her quite sorry to acknowledge that they had transcribed it some
2292
pages ago already.
2293
2294
“Why will not you write one yourself for us, Mr. Elton?” said she; “that
2295
is the only security for its freshness; and nothing could be easier to
2296
you.”
2297
2298
“Oh no! he had never written, hardly ever, any thing of the kind in his
2299
life. The stupidest fellow! He was afraid not even Miss Woodhouse”--he
2300
stopt a moment--“or Miss Smith could inspire him.”
2301
2302
The very next day however produced some proof of inspiration. He
2303
called for a few moments, just to leave a piece of paper on the table
2304
containing, as he said, a charade, which a friend of his had addressed
2305
to a young lady, the object of his admiration, but which, from his
2306
manner, Emma was immediately convinced must be his own.
2307
2308
“I do not offer it for Miss Smith's collection,” said he. “Being my
2309
friend's, I have no right to expose it in any degree to the public eye,
2310
but perhaps you may not dislike looking at it.”
2311
2312
The speech was more to Emma than to Harriet, which Emma could
2313
understand. There was deep consciousness about him, and he found
2314
it easier to meet her eye than her friend's. He was gone the next
2315
moment:--after another moment's pause,
2316
2317
“Take it,” said Emma, smiling, and pushing the paper towards
2318
Harriet--“it is for you. Take your own.”
2319
2320
But Harriet was in a tremor, and could not touch it; and Emma, never
2321
loth to be first, was obliged to examine it herself.
2322
2323
To Miss--
2324
2325
CHARADE.
2326
2327
My first displays the wealth and pomp of kings,
2328
Lords of the earth! their luxury and ease.
2329
Another view of man, my second brings,
2330
Behold him there, the monarch of the seas!
2331
2332
But ah! united, what reverse we have!
2333
Man's boasted power and freedom, all are flown;
2334
Lord of the earth and sea, he bends a slave,
2335
And woman, lovely woman, reigns alone.
2336
2337
Thy ready wit the word will soon supply,
2338
May its approval beam in that soft eye!
2339
2340
She cast her eye over it, pondered, caught the meaning, read it through
2341
again to be quite certain, and quite mistress of the lines, and then
2342
passing it to Harriet, sat happily smiling, and saying to herself, while
2343
Harriet was puzzling over the paper in all the confusion of hope and
2344
dulness, “Very well, Mr. Elton, very well indeed. I have read worse
2345
charades. _Courtship_--a very good hint. I give you credit for it. This
2346
is feeling your way. This is saying very plainly--'Pray, Miss Smith,
2347
give me leave to pay my addresses to you. Approve my charade and my
2348
intentions in the same glance.'
2349
2350
May its approval beam in that soft eye!
2351
2352
Harriet exactly. Soft is the very word for her eye--of all epithets, the
2353
justest that could be given.
2354
2355
Thy ready wit the word will soon supply.
2356
2357
Humph--Harriet's ready wit! All the better. A man must be very much in
2358
love, indeed, to describe her so. Ah! Mr. Knightley, I wish you had the
2359
benefit of this; I think this would convince you. For once in your life
2360
you would be obliged to own yourself mistaken. An excellent charade
2361
indeed! and very much to the purpose. Things must come to a crisis soon
2362
now.”
2363
2364
She was obliged to break off from these very pleasant observations,
2365
which were otherwise of a sort to run into great length, by the
2366
eagerness of Harriet's wondering questions.
2367
2368
“What can it be, Miss Woodhouse?--what can it be? I have not an idea--I
2369
cannot guess it in the least. What can it possibly be? Do try to find
2370
it out, Miss Woodhouse. Do help me. I never saw any thing so hard. Is it
2371
kingdom? I wonder who the friend was--and who could be the young lady.
2372
Do you think it is a good one? Can it be woman?
2373
2374
And woman, lovely woman, reigns alone.
2375
2376
Can it be Neptune?
2377
2378
Behold him there, the monarch of the seas!
2379
2380
Or a trident? or a mermaid? or a shark? Oh, no! shark is only one
2381
syllable. It must be very clever, or he would not have brought it. Oh!
2382
Miss Woodhouse, do you think we shall ever find it out?”
2383
2384
“Mermaids and sharks! Nonsense! My dear Harriet, what are you thinking
2385
of? Where would be the use of his bringing us a charade made by a friend
2386
upon a mermaid or a shark? Give me the paper and listen.
2387
2388
For Miss ------, read Miss Smith.
2389
2390
My first displays the wealth and pomp of kings,
2391
Lords of the earth! their luxury and ease.
2392
2393
That is _court_.
2394
2395
Another view of man, my second brings;
2396
Behold him there, the monarch of the seas!
2397
2398
That is _ship_;--plain as it can be.--Now for the cream.
2399
2400
But ah! united, (_courtship_, you know,) what reverse we have!
2401
Man's boasted power and freedom, all are flown.
2402
Lord of the earth and sea, he bends a slave,
2403
And woman, lovely woman, reigns alone.
2404
2405
A very proper compliment!--and then follows the application, which
2406
I think, my dear Harriet, you cannot find much difficulty in
2407
comprehending. Read it in comfort to yourself. There can be no doubt of
2408
its being written for you and to you.”
2409
2410
Harriet could not long resist so delightful a persuasion. She read
2411
the concluding lines, and was all flutter and happiness. She could not
2412
speak. But she was not wanted to speak. It was enough for her to feel.
2413
Emma spoke for her.
2414
2415
“There is so pointed, and so particular a meaning in this compliment,”
2416
said she, “that I cannot have a doubt as to Mr. Elton's intentions. You
2417
are his object--and you will soon receive the completest proof of it. I
2418
thought it must be so. I thought I could not be so deceived; but now, it
2419
is clear; the state of his mind is as clear and decided, as my wishes on
2420
the subject have been ever since I knew you. Yes, Harriet, just so long
2421
have I been wanting the very circumstance to happen that has happened.
2422
I could never tell whether an attachment between you and Mr. Elton were
2423
most desirable or most natural. Its probability and its eligibility have
2424
really so equalled each other! I am very happy. I congratulate you, my
2425
dear Harriet, with all my heart. This is an attachment which a woman may
2426
well feel pride in creating. This is a connexion which offers nothing
2427
but good. It will give you every thing that you want--consideration,
2428
independence, a proper home--it will fix you in the centre of all your
2429
real friends, close to Hartfield and to me, and confirm our intimacy
2430
for ever. This, Harriet, is an alliance which can never raise a blush in
2431
either of us.”
2432
2433
“Dear Miss Woodhouse!”--and “Dear Miss Woodhouse,” was all that Harriet,
2434
with many tender embraces could articulate at first; but when they did
2435
arrive at something more like conversation, it was sufficiently clear to
2436
her friend that she saw, felt, anticipated, and remembered just as she
2437
ought. Mr. Elton's superiority had very ample acknowledgment.
2438
2439
“Whatever you say is always right,” cried Harriet, “and therefore I
2440
suppose, and believe, and hope it must be so; but otherwise I could not
2441
have imagined it. It is so much beyond any thing I deserve. Mr. Elton,
2442
who might marry any body! There cannot be two opinions about _him_. He
2443
is so very superior. Only think of those sweet verses--'To Miss ------.'
2444
Dear me, how clever!--Could it really be meant for me?”
2445
2446
“I cannot make a question, or listen to a question about that. It is a
2447
certainty. Receive it on my judgment. It is a sort of prologue to
2448
the play, a motto to the chapter; and will be soon followed by
2449
matter-of-fact prose.”
2450
2451
“It is a sort of thing which nobody could have expected. I am sure,
2452
a month ago, I had no more idea myself!--The strangest things do take
2453
place!”
2454
2455
“When Miss Smiths and Mr. Eltons get acquainted--they do indeed--and
2456
really it is strange; it is out of the common course that what is so
2457
evidently, so palpably desirable--what courts the pre-arrangement of
2458
other people, should so immediately shape itself into the proper form.
2459
You and Mr. Elton are by situation called together; you belong to one
2460
another by every circumstance of your respective homes. Your marrying
2461
will be equal to the match at Randalls. There does seem to be a
2462
something in the air of Hartfield which gives love exactly the right
2463
direction, and sends it into the very channel where it ought to flow.
2464
2465
The course of true love never did run smooth--
2466
2467
A Hartfield edition of Shakespeare would have a long note on that
2468
passage.”
2469
2470
“That Mr. Elton should really be in love with me,--me, of all people,
2471
who did not know him, to speak to him, at Michaelmas! And he, the very
2472
handsomest man that ever was, and a man that every body looks up to,
2473
quite like Mr. Knightley! His company so sought after, that every body
2474
says he need not eat a single meal by himself if he does not chuse it;
2475
that he has more invitations than there are days in the week. And so
2476
excellent in the Church! Miss Nash has put down all the texts he has
2477
ever preached from since he came to Highbury. Dear me! When I look back
2478
to the first time I saw him! How little did I think!--The two Abbots and
2479
I ran into the front room and peeped through the blind when we heard he
2480
was going by, and Miss Nash came and scolded us away, and staid to look
2481
through herself; however, she called me back presently, and let me
2482
look too, which was very good-natured. And how beautiful we thought he
2483
looked! He was arm-in-arm with Mr. Cole.”
2484
2485
“This is an alliance which, whoever--whatever your friends may be, must
2486
be agreeable to them, provided at least they have common sense; and we
2487
are not to be addressing our conduct to fools. If they are anxious to
2488
see you _happily_ married, here is a man whose amiable character gives
2489
every assurance of it;--if they wish to have you settled in the same
2490
country and circle which they have chosen to place you in, here it will
2491
be accomplished; and if their only object is that you should, in the
2492
common phrase, be _well_ married, here is the comfortable fortune, the
2493
respectable establishment, the rise in the world which must satisfy
2494
them.”
2495
2496
“Yes, very true. How nicely you talk; I love to hear you. You understand
2497
every thing. You and Mr. Elton are one as clever as the other. This
2498
charade!--If I had studied a twelvemonth, I could never have made any
2499
thing like it.”
2500
2501
“I thought he meant to try his skill, by his manner of declining it
2502
yesterday.”
2503
2504
“I do think it is, without exception, the best charade I ever read.”
2505
2506
“I never read one more to the purpose, certainly.”
2507
2508
“It is as long again as almost all we have had before.”
2509
2510
“I do not consider its length as particularly in its favour. Such things
2511
in general cannot be too short.”
2512
2513
Harriet was too intent on the lines to hear. The most satisfactory
2514
comparisons were rising in her mind.
2515
2516
“It is one thing,” said she, presently--her cheeks in a glow--“to have
2517
very good sense in a common way, like every body else, and if there is
2518
any thing to say, to sit down and write a letter, and say just what you
2519
must, in a short way; and another, to write verses and charades like
2520
this.”
2521
2522
Emma could not have desired a more spirited rejection of Mr. Martin's
2523
prose.
2524
2525
“Such sweet lines!” continued Harriet--“these two last!--But how shall I
2526
ever be able to return the paper, or say I have found it out?--Oh! Miss
2527
Woodhouse, what can we do about that?”
2528
2529
“Leave it to me. You do nothing. He will be here this evening, I dare
2530
say, and then I will give it him back, and some nonsense or other will
2531
pass between us, and you shall not be committed.--Your soft eyes shall
2532
chuse their own time for beaming. Trust to me.”
2533
2534
“Oh! Miss Woodhouse, what a pity that I must not write this beautiful
2535
charade into my book! I am sure I have not got one half so good.”
2536
2537
“Leave out the two last lines, and there is no reason why you should not
2538
write it into your book.”
2539
2540
“Oh! but those two lines are”--
2541
2542
--“The best of all. Granted;--for private enjoyment; and for private
2543
enjoyment keep them. They are not at all the less written you know,
2544
because you divide them. The couplet does not cease to be, nor does its
2545
meaning change. But take it away, and all _appropriation_ ceases, and a
2546
very pretty gallant charade remains, fit for any collection. Depend upon
2547
it, he would not like to have his charade slighted, much better than his
2548
passion. A poet in love must be encouraged in both capacities, or
2549
neither. Give me the book, I will write it down, and then there can be
2550
no possible reflection on you.”
2551
2552
Harriet submitted, though her mind could hardly separate the parts,
2553
so as to feel quite sure that her friend were not writing down a
2554
declaration of love. It seemed too precious an offering for any degree
2555
of publicity.
2556
2557
“I shall never let that book go out of my own hands,” said she.
2558
2559
“Very well,” replied Emma; “a most natural feeling; and the longer it
2560
lasts, the better I shall be pleased. But here is my father coming: you
2561
will not object to my reading the charade to him. It will be giving him
2562
so much pleasure! He loves any thing of the sort, and especially any
2563
thing that pays woman a compliment. He has the tenderest spirit of
2564
gallantry towards us all!--You must let me read it to him.”
2565
2566
Harriet looked grave.
2567
2568
“My dear Harriet, you must not refine too much upon this charade.--You
2569
will betray your feelings improperly, if you are too conscious and too
2570
quick, and appear to affix more meaning, or even quite all the meaning
2571
which may be affixed to it. Do not be overpowered by such a little
2572
tribute of admiration. If he had been anxious for secrecy, he would not
2573
have left the paper while I was by; but he rather pushed it towards me
2574
than towards you. Do not let us be too solemn on the business. He has
2575
encouragement enough to proceed, without our sighing out our souls over
2576
this charade.”
2577
2578
“Oh! no--I hope I shall not be ridiculous about it. Do as you please.”
2579
2580
Mr. Woodhouse came in, and very soon led to the subject again, by the
2581
recurrence of his very frequent inquiry of “Well, my dears, how does
2582
your book go on?--Have you got any thing fresh?”
2583
2584
“Yes, papa; we have something to read you, something quite fresh. A
2585
piece of paper was found on the table this morning--(dropt, we suppose,
2586
by a fairy)--containing a very pretty charade, and we have just copied
2587
it in.”
2588
2589
She read it to him, just as he liked to have any thing read, slowly and
2590
distinctly, and two or three times over, with explanations of every
2591
part as she proceeded--and he was very much pleased, and, as she had
2592
foreseen, especially struck with the complimentary conclusion.
2593
2594
“Aye, that's very just, indeed, that's very properly said. Very true.
2595
'Woman, lovely woman.' It is such a pretty charade, my dear, that I
2596
can easily guess what fairy brought it.--Nobody could have written so
2597
prettily, but you, Emma.”
2598
2599
Emma only nodded, and smiled.--After a little thinking, and a very
2600
tender sigh, he added,
2601
2602
“Ah! it is no difficulty to see who you take after! Your dear mother
2603
was so clever at all those things! If I had but her memory! But I can
2604
remember nothing;--not even that particular riddle which you have
2605
heard me mention; I can only recollect the first stanza; and there are
2606
several.
2607
2608
Kitty, a fair but frozen maid,
2609
Kindled a flame I yet deplore,
2610
The hood-wink'd boy I called to aid,
2611
Though of his near approach afraid,
2612
So fatal to my suit before.
2613
2614
And that is all that I can recollect of it--but it is very clever all
2615
the way through. But I think, my dear, you said you had got it.”
2616
2617
“Yes, papa, it is written out in our second page. We copied it from the
2618
Elegant Extracts. It was Garrick's, you know.”
2619
2620
“Aye, very true.--I wish I could recollect more of it.
2621
2622
Kitty, a fair but frozen maid.
2623
2624
The name makes me think of poor Isabella; for she was very near being
2625
christened Catherine after her grandmama. I hope we shall have her here
2626
next week. Have you thought, my dear, where you shall put her--and what
2627
room there will be for the children?”
2628
2629
“Oh! yes--she will have her own room, of course; the room she always
2630
has;--and there is the nursery for the children,--just as usual, you
2631
know. Why should there be any change?”
2632
2633
“I do not know, my dear--but it is so long since she was here!--not
2634
since last Easter, and then only for a few days.--Mr. John Knightley's
2635
being a lawyer is very inconvenient.--Poor Isabella!--she is sadly taken
2636
away from us all!--and how sorry she will be when she comes, not to see
2637
Miss Taylor here!”
2638
2639
“She will not be surprized, papa, at least.”
2640
2641
“I do not know, my dear. I am sure I was very much surprized when I
2642
first heard she was going to be married.”
2643
2644
“We must ask Mr. and Mrs. Weston to dine with us, while Isabella is
2645
here.”
2646
2647
“Yes, my dear, if there is time.--But--(in a very depressed tone)--she
2648
is coming for only one week. There will not be time for any thing.”
2649
2650
“It is unfortunate that they cannot stay longer--but it seems a case of
2651
necessity. Mr. John Knightley must be in town again on the 28th, and we
2652
ought to be thankful, papa, that we are to have the whole of the time
2653
they can give to the country, that two or three days are not to be taken
2654
out for the Abbey. Mr. Knightley promises to give up his claim this
2655
Christmas--though you know it is longer since they were with him, than
2656
with us.”
2657
2658
“It would be very hard, indeed, my dear, if poor Isabella were to be
2659
anywhere but at Hartfield.”
2660
2661
Mr. Woodhouse could never allow for Mr. Knightley's claims on his
2662
brother, or any body's claims on Isabella, except his own. He sat musing
2663
a little while, and then said,
2664
2665
“But I do not see why poor Isabella should be obliged to go back so
2666
soon, though he does. I think, Emma, I shall try and persuade her to
2667
stay longer with us. She and the children might stay very well.”
2668
2669
“Ah! papa--that is what you never have been able to accomplish, and I
2670
do not think you ever will. Isabella cannot bear to stay behind her
2671
husband.”
2672
2673
This was too true for contradiction. Unwelcome as it was, Mr. Woodhouse
2674
could only give a submissive sigh; and as Emma saw his spirits affected
2675
by the idea of his daughter's attachment to her husband, she immediately
2676
led to such a branch of the subject as must raise them.
2677
2678
“Harriet must give us as much of her company as she can while my brother
2679
and sister are here. I am sure she will be pleased with the children.
2680
We are very proud of the children, are not we, papa? I wonder which she
2681
will think the handsomest, Henry or John?”
2682
2683
“Aye, I wonder which she will. Poor little dears, how glad they will be
2684
to come. They are very fond of being at Hartfield, Harriet.”
2685
2686
“I dare say they are, sir. I am sure I do not know who is not.”
2687
2688
“Henry is a fine boy, but John is very like his mama. Henry is the
2689
eldest, he was named after me, not after his father. John, the second,
2690
is named after his father. Some people are surprized, I believe, that
2691
the eldest was not, but Isabella would have him called Henry, which I
2692
thought very pretty of her. And he is a very clever boy, indeed. They
2693
are all remarkably clever; and they have so many pretty ways. They will
2694
come and stand by my chair, and say, 'Grandpapa, can you give me a bit
2695
of string?' and once Henry asked me for a knife, but I told him knives
2696
were only made for grandpapas. I think their father is too rough with
2697
them very often.”
2698
2699
“He appears rough to you,” said Emma, “because you are so very gentle
2700
yourself; but if you could compare him with other papas, you would not
2701
think him rough. He wishes his boys to be active and hardy; and if
2702
they misbehave, can give them a sharp word now and then; but he is an
2703
affectionate father--certainly Mr. John Knightley is an affectionate
2704
father. The children are all fond of him.”
2705
2706
“And then their uncle comes in, and tosses them up to the ceiling in a
2707
very frightful way!”
2708
2709
“But they like it, papa; there is nothing they like so much. It is such
2710
enjoyment to them, that if their uncle did not lay down the rule of
2711
their taking turns, whichever began would never give way to the other.”
2712
2713
“Well, I cannot understand it.”
2714
2715
“That is the case with us all, papa. One half of the world cannot
2716
understand the pleasures of the other.”
2717
2718
Later in the morning, and just as the girls were going to separate
2719
in preparation for the regular four o'clock dinner, the hero of this
2720
inimitable charade walked in again. Harriet turned away; but Emma could
2721
receive him with the usual smile, and her quick eye soon discerned in
2722
his the consciousness of having made a push--of having thrown a die;
2723
and she imagined he was come to see how it might turn up. His ostensible
2724
reason, however, was to ask whether Mr. Woodhouse's party could be made
2725
up in the evening without him, or whether he should be in the smallest
2726
degree necessary at Hartfield. If he were, every thing else must give
2727
way; but otherwise his friend Cole had been saying so much about his
2728
dining with him--had made such a point of it, that he had promised him
2729
conditionally to come.
2730
2731
Emma thanked him, but could not allow of his disappointing his friend
2732
on their account; her father was sure of his rubber. He re-urged--she
2733
re-declined; and he seemed then about to make his bow, when taking the
2734
paper from the table, she returned it--
2735
2736
“Oh! here is the charade you were so obliging as to leave with us; thank
2737
you for the sight of it. We admired it so much, that I have ventured
2738
to write it into Miss Smith's collection. Your friend will not take it
2739
amiss I hope. Of course I have not transcribed beyond the first eight
2740
lines.”
2741
2742
Mr. Elton certainly did not very well know what to say. He looked rather
2743
doubtingly--rather confused; said something about “honour,”--glanced at
2744
Emma and at Harriet, and then seeing the book open on the table, took
2745
it up, and examined it very attentively. With the view of passing off an
2746
awkward moment, Emma smilingly said,
2747
2748
“You must make my apologies to your friend; but so good a charade
2749
must not be confined to one or two. He may be sure of every woman's
2750
approbation while he writes with such gallantry.”
2751
2752
“I have no hesitation in saying,” replied Mr. Elton, though hesitating
2753
a good deal while he spoke; “I have no hesitation in saying--at least
2754
if my friend feels at all as _I_ do--I have not the smallest doubt that,
2755
could he see his little effusion honoured as _I_ see it, (looking at the
2756
book again, and replacing it on the table), he would consider it as the
2757
proudest moment of his life.”
2758
2759
After this speech he was gone as soon as possible. Emma could not think
2760
it too soon; for with all his good and agreeable qualities, there was
2761
a sort of parade in his speeches which was very apt to incline her to
2762
laugh. She ran away to indulge the inclination, leaving the tender and
2763
the sublime of pleasure to Harriet's share.
2764
2765
2766
2767
CHAPTER X
2768
2769
2770
Though now the middle of December, there had yet been no weather to
2771
prevent the young ladies from tolerably regular exercise; and on the
2772
morrow, Emma had a charitable visit to pay to a poor sick family, who
2773
lived a little way out of Highbury.
2774
2775
Their road to this detached cottage was down Vicarage Lane, a lane
2776
leading at right angles from the broad, though irregular, main street of
2777
the place; and, as may be inferred, containing the blessed abode of Mr.
2778
Elton. A few inferior dwellings were first to be passed, and then, about
2779
a quarter of a mile down the lane rose the Vicarage, an old and not
2780
very good house, almost as close to the road as it could be. It had
2781
no advantage of situation; but had been very much smartened up by the
2782
present proprietor; and, such as it was, there could be no possibility
2783
of the two friends passing it without a slackened pace and observing
2784
eyes.--Emma's remark was--
2785
2786
“There it is. There go you and your riddle-book one of these
2787
days.”--Harriet's was--
2788
2789
“Oh, what a sweet house!--How very beautiful!--There are the yellow
2790
curtains that Miss Nash admires so much.”
2791
2792
“I do not often walk this way _now_,” said Emma, as they proceeded, “but
2793
_then_ there will be an inducement, and I shall gradually get intimately
2794
acquainted with all the hedges, gates, pools and pollards of this part
2795
of Highbury.”
2796
2797
Harriet, she found, had never in her life been inside the Vicarage,
2798
and her curiosity to see it was so extreme, that, considering exteriors
2799
and probabilities, Emma could only class it, as a proof of love, with
2800
Mr. Elton's seeing ready wit in her.
2801
2802
“I wish we could contrive it,” said she; “but I cannot think of any
2803
tolerable pretence for going in;--no servant that I want to inquire
2804
about of his housekeeper--no message from my father.”
2805
2806
She pondered, but could think of nothing. After a mutual silence of some
2807
minutes, Harriet thus began again--
2808
2809
“I do so wonder, Miss Woodhouse, that you should not be married, or
2810
going to be married! so charming as you are!”--
2811
2812
Emma laughed, and replied,
2813
2814
“My being charming, Harriet, is not quite enough to induce me to marry;
2815
I must find other people charming--one other person at least. And I
2816
am not only, not going to be married, at present, but have very little
2817
intention of ever marrying at all.”
2818
2819
“Ah!--so you say; but I cannot believe it.”
2820
2821
“I must see somebody very superior to any one I have seen yet, to be
2822
tempted; Mr. Elton, you know, (recollecting herself,) is out of the
2823
question: and I do _not_ wish to see any such person. I would rather not
2824
be tempted. I cannot really change for the better. If I were to marry, I
2825
must expect to repent it.”
2826
2827
“Dear me!--it is so odd to hear a woman talk so!”--
2828
2829
“I have none of the usual inducements of women to marry. Were I to fall
2830
in love, indeed, it would be a different thing! but I never have been in
2831
love; it is not my way, or my nature; and I do not think I ever shall.
2832
And, without love, I am sure I should be a fool to change such a
2833
situation as mine. Fortune I do not want; employment I do not want;
2834
consequence I do not want: I believe few married women are half as much
2835
mistress of their husband's house as I am of Hartfield; and never, never
2836
could I expect to be so truly beloved and important; so always first and
2837
always right in any man's eyes as I am in my father's.”
2838
2839
“But then, to be an old maid at last, like Miss Bates!”
2840
2841
“That is as formidable an image as you could present, Harriet; and if
2842
I thought I should ever be like Miss Bates! so silly--so satisfied--so
2843
smiling--so prosing--so undistinguishing and unfastidious--and so apt
2844
to tell every thing relative to every body about me, I would marry
2845
to-morrow. But between _us_, I am convinced there never can be any
2846
likeness, except in being unmarried.”
2847
2848
“But still, you will be an old maid! and that's so dreadful!”
2849
2850
“Never mind, Harriet, I shall not be a poor old maid; and it is poverty
2851
only which makes celibacy contemptible to a generous public! A single
2852
woman, with a very narrow income, must be a ridiculous, disagreeable old
2853
maid! the proper sport of boys and girls, but a single woman, of good
2854
fortune, is always respectable, and may be as sensible and pleasant
2855
as any body else. And the distinction is not quite so much against the
2856
candour and common sense of the world as appears at first; for a very
2857
narrow income has a tendency to contract the mind, and sour the temper.
2858
Those who can barely live, and who live perforce in a very small, and
2859
generally very inferior, society, may well be illiberal and cross. This
2860
does not apply, however, to Miss Bates; she is only too good natured and
2861
too silly to suit me; but, in general, she is very much to the taste
2862
of every body, though single and though poor. Poverty certainly has not
2863
contracted her mind: I really believe, if she had only a shilling in the
2864
world, she would be very likely to give away sixpence of it; and nobody
2865
is afraid of her: that is a great charm.”
2866
2867
“Dear me! but what shall you do? how shall you employ yourself when you
2868
grow old?”
2869
2870
“If I know myself, Harriet, mine is an active, busy mind, with a great
2871
many independent resources; and I do not perceive why I should be more
2872
in want of employment at forty or fifty than one-and-twenty. Woman's
2873
usual occupations of hand and mind will be as open to me then as they
2874
are now; or with no important variation. If I draw less, I shall read
2875
more; if I give up music, I shall take to carpet-work. And as for
2876
objects of interest, objects for the affections, which is in truth the
2877
great point of inferiority, the want of which is really the great evil
2878
to be avoided in _not_ marrying, I shall be very well off, with all the
2879
children of a sister I love so much, to care about. There will be enough
2880
of them, in all probability, to supply every sort of sensation that
2881
declining life can need. There will be enough for every hope and every
2882
fear; and though my attachment to none can equal that of a parent, it
2883
suits my ideas of comfort better than what is warmer and blinder. My
2884
nephews and nieces!--I shall often have a niece with me.”
2885
2886
“Do you know Miss Bates's niece? That is, I know you must have seen her
2887
a hundred times--but are you acquainted?”
2888
2889
“Oh! yes; we are always forced to be acquainted whenever she comes to
2890
Highbury. By the bye, _that_ is almost enough to put one out of conceit
2891
with a niece. Heaven forbid! at least, that I should ever bore people
2892
half so much about all the Knightleys together, as she does about Jane
2893
Fairfax. One is sick of the very name of Jane Fairfax. Every letter from
2894
her is read forty times over; her compliments to all friends go round
2895
and round again; and if she does but send her aunt the pattern of a
2896
stomacher, or knit a pair of garters for her grandmother, one hears of
2897
nothing else for a month. I wish Jane Fairfax very well; but she tires
2898
me to death.”
2899
2900
They were now approaching the cottage, and all idle topics were
2901
superseded. Emma was very compassionate; and the distresses of the poor
2902
were as sure of relief from her personal attention and kindness, her
2903
counsel and her patience, as from her purse. She understood their ways,
2904
could allow for their ignorance and their temptations, had no romantic
2905
expectations of extraordinary virtue from those for whom education had
2906
done so little; entered into their troubles with ready sympathy, and
2907
always gave her assistance with as much intelligence as good-will. In
2908
the present instance, it was sickness and poverty together which she
2909
came to visit; and after remaining there as long as she could give
2910
comfort or advice, she quitted the cottage with such an impression of
2911
the scene as made her say to Harriet, as they walked away,
2912
2913
“These are the sights, Harriet, to do one good. How trifling they make
2914
every thing else appear!--I feel now as if I could think of nothing but
2915
these poor creatures all the rest of the day; and yet, who can say how
2916
soon it may all vanish from my mind?”
2917
2918
“Very true,” said Harriet. “Poor creatures! one can think of nothing
2919
else.”
2920
2921
“And really, I do not think the impression will soon be over,” said
2922
Emma, as she crossed the low hedge, and tottering footstep which ended
2923
the narrow, slippery path through the cottage garden, and brought them
2924
into the lane again. “I do not think it will,” stopping to look once
2925
more at all the outward wretchedness of the place, and recall the still
2926
greater within.
2927
2928
“Oh! dear, no,” said her companion.
2929
2930
They walked on. The lane made a slight bend; and when that bend was
2931
passed, Mr. Elton was immediately in sight; and so near as to give Emma
2932
time only to say farther,
2933
2934
“Ah! Harriet, here comes a very sudden trial of our stability in good
2935
thoughts. Well, (smiling,) I hope it may be allowed that if compassion
2936
has produced exertion and relief to the sufferers, it has done all that
2937
is truly important. If we feel for the wretched, enough to do all we can
2938
for them, the rest is empty sympathy, only distressing to ourselves.”
2939
2940
Harriet could just answer, “Oh! dear, yes,” before the gentleman joined
2941
them. The wants and sufferings of the poor family, however, were the
2942
first subject on meeting. He had been going to call on them. His visit
2943
he would now defer; but they had a very interesting parley about
2944
what could be done and should be done. Mr. Elton then turned back to
2945
accompany them.
2946
2947
“To fall in with each other on such an errand as this,” thought Emma;
2948
“to meet in a charitable scheme; this will bring a great increase
2949
of love on each side. I should not wonder if it were to bring on the
2950
declaration. It must, if I were not here. I wish I were anywhere else.”
2951
2952
Anxious to separate herself from them as far as she could, she soon
2953
afterwards took possession of a narrow footpath, a little raised on one
2954
side of the lane, leaving them together in the main road. But she had
2955
not been there two minutes when she found that Harriet's habits of
2956
dependence and imitation were bringing her up too, and that, in short,
2957
they would both be soon after her. This would not do; she immediately
2958
stopped, under pretence of having some alteration to make in the lacing
2959
of her half-boot, and stooping down in complete occupation of the
2960
footpath, begged them to have the goodness to walk on, and she would
2961
follow in half a minute. They did as they were desired; and by the time
2962
she judged it reasonable to have done with her boot, she had the comfort
2963
of farther delay in her power, being overtaken by a child from the
2964
cottage, setting out, according to orders, with her pitcher, to fetch
2965
broth from Hartfield. To walk by the side of this child, and talk to
2966
and question her, was the most natural thing in the world, or would have
2967
been the most natural, had she been acting just then without design;
2968
and by this means the others were still able to keep ahead, without
2969
any obligation of waiting for her. She gained on them, however,
2970
involuntarily: the child's pace was quick, and theirs rather slow;
2971
and she was the more concerned at it, from their being evidently in
2972
a conversation which interested them. Mr. Elton was speaking with
2973
animation, Harriet listening with a very pleased attention; and Emma,
2974
having sent the child on, was beginning to think how she might draw back
2975
a little more, when they both looked around, and she was obliged to join
2976
them.
2977
2978
Mr. Elton was still talking, still engaged in some interesting detail;
2979
and Emma experienced some disappointment when she found that he was only
2980
giving his fair companion an account of the yesterday's party at his
2981
friend Cole's, and that she was come in herself for the Stilton cheese,
2982
the north Wiltshire, the butter, the celery, the beet-root, and all the
2983
dessert.
2984
2985
“This would soon have led to something better, of course,” was her
2986
consoling reflection; “any thing interests between those who love; and
2987
any thing will serve as introduction to what is near the heart. If I
2988
could but have kept longer away!”
2989
2990
They now walked on together quietly, till within view of the vicarage
2991
pales, when a sudden resolution, of at least getting Harriet into the
2992
house, made her again find something very much amiss about her boot, and
2993
fall behind to arrange it once more. She then broke the lace off short,
2994
and dexterously throwing it into a ditch, was presently obliged to
2995
entreat them to stop, and acknowledged her inability to put herself to
2996
rights so as to be able to walk home in tolerable comfort.
2997
2998
“Part of my lace is gone,” said she, “and I do not know how I am to
2999
contrive. I really am a most troublesome companion to you both, but I
3000
hope I am not often so ill-equipped. Mr. Elton, I must beg leave to stop
3001
at your house, and ask your housekeeper for a bit of ribband or string,
3002
or any thing just to keep my boot on.”
3003
3004
Mr. Elton looked all happiness at this proposition; and nothing could
3005
exceed his alertness and attention in conducting them into his house and
3006
endeavouring to make every thing appear to advantage. The room they were
3007
taken into was the one he chiefly occupied, and looking forwards; behind
3008
it was another with which it immediately communicated; the door between
3009
them was open, and Emma passed into it with the housekeeper to receive
3010
her assistance in the most comfortable manner. She was obliged to leave
3011
the door ajar as she found it; but she fully intended that Mr. Elton
3012
should close it. It was not closed, however, it still remained ajar; but
3013
by engaging the housekeeper in incessant conversation, she hoped to make
3014
it practicable for him to chuse his own subject in the adjoining
3015
room. For ten minutes she could hear nothing but herself. It could be
3016
protracted no longer. She was then obliged to be finished, and make her
3017
appearance.
3018
3019
The lovers were standing together at one of the windows. It had a most
3020
favourable aspect; and, for half a minute, Emma felt the glory of having
3021
schemed successfully. But it would not do; he had not come to the point.
3022
He had been most agreeable, most delightful; he had told Harriet that
3023
he had seen them go by, and had purposely followed them; other little
3024
gallantries and allusions had been dropt, but nothing serious.
3025
3026
“Cautious, very cautious,” thought Emma; “he advances inch by inch, and
3027
will hazard nothing till he believes himself secure.”
3028
3029
Still, however, though every thing had not been accomplished by her
3030
ingenious device, she could not but flatter herself that it had been
3031
the occasion of much present enjoyment to both, and must be leading them
3032
forward to the great event.
3033
3034
3035
3036
CHAPTER XI
3037
3038
3039
Mr. Elton must now be left to himself. It was no longer in Emma's power
3040
to superintend his happiness or quicken his measures. The coming of her
3041
sister's family was so very near at hand, that first in anticipation,
3042
and then in reality, it became henceforth her prime object of interest;
3043
and during the ten days of their stay at Hartfield it was not to be
3044
expected--she did not herself expect--that any thing beyond occasional,
3045
fortuitous assistance could be afforded by her to the lovers. They might
3046
advance rapidly if they would, however; they must advance somehow or
3047
other whether they would or no. She hardly wished to have more leisure
3048
for them. There are people, who the more you do for them, the less they
3049
will do for themselves.
3050
3051
Mr. and Mrs. John Knightley, from having been longer than usual absent
3052
from Surry, were exciting of course rather more than the usual interest.
3053
Till this year, every long vacation since their marriage had been
3054
divided between Hartfield and Donwell Abbey; but all the holidays of
3055
this autumn had been given to sea-bathing for the children, and it was
3056
therefore many months since they had been seen in a regular way by their
3057
Surry connexions, or seen at all by Mr. Woodhouse, who could not be
3058
induced to get so far as London, even for poor Isabella's sake; and
3059
who consequently was now most nervously and apprehensively happy in
3060
forestalling this too short visit.
3061
3062
He thought much of the evils of the journey for her, and not a little
3063
of the fatigues of his own horses and coachman who were to bring some
3064
of the party the last half of the way; but his alarms were needless;
3065
the sixteen miles being happily accomplished, and Mr. and Mrs. John
3066
Knightley, their five children, and a competent number of nursery-maids,
3067
all reaching Hartfield in safety. The bustle and joy of such an arrival,
3068
the many to be talked to, welcomed, encouraged, and variously dispersed
3069
and disposed of, produced a noise and confusion which his nerves could
3070
not have borne under any other cause, nor have endured much longer even
3071
for this; but the ways of Hartfield and the feelings of her father
3072
were so respected by Mrs. John Knightley, that in spite of maternal
3073
solicitude for the immediate enjoyment of her little ones, and for their
3074
having instantly all the liberty and attendance, all the eating and
3075
drinking, and sleeping and playing, which they could possibly wish for,
3076
without the smallest delay, the children were never allowed to be long
3077
a disturbance to him, either in themselves or in any restless attendance
3078
on them.
3079
3080
Mrs. John Knightley was a pretty, elegant little woman, of gentle, quiet
3081
manners, and a disposition remarkably amiable and affectionate; wrapt
3082
up in her family; a devoted wife, a doating mother, and so tenderly
3083
attached to her father and sister that, but for these higher ties, a
3084
warmer love might have seemed impossible. She could never see a fault
3085
in any of them. She was not a woman of strong understanding or any
3086
quickness; and with this resemblance of her father, she inherited also
3087
much of his constitution; was delicate in her own health, over-careful
3088
of that of her children, had many fears and many nerves, and was as fond
3089
of her own Mr. Wingfield in town as her father could be of Mr. Perry.
3090
They were alike too, in a general benevolence of temper, and a strong
3091
habit of regard for every old acquaintance.
3092
3093
Mr. John Knightley was a tall, gentleman-like, and very clever man;
3094
rising in his profession, domestic, and respectable in his private
3095
character; but with reserved manners which prevented his being generally
3096
pleasing; and capable of being sometimes out of humour. He was not an
3097
ill-tempered man, not so often unreasonably cross as to deserve such a
3098
reproach; but his temper was not his great perfection; and, indeed, with
3099
such a worshipping wife, it was hardly possible that any natural defects
3100
in it should not be increased. The extreme sweetness of her temper
3101
must hurt his. He had all the clearness and quickness of mind which she
3102
wanted, and he could sometimes act an ungracious, or say a severe thing.
3103
3104
He was not a great favourite with his fair sister-in-law. Nothing wrong
3105
in him escaped her. She was quick in feeling the little injuries to
3106
Isabella, which Isabella never felt herself. Perhaps she might have
3107
passed over more had his manners been flattering to Isabella's sister,
3108
but they were only those of a calmly kind brother and friend, without
3109
praise and without blindness; but hardly any degree of personal
3110
compliment could have made her regardless of that greatest fault of
3111
all in her eyes which he sometimes fell into, the want of respectful
3112
forbearance towards her father. There he had not always the patience
3113
that could have been wished. Mr. Woodhouse's peculiarities and
3114
fidgetiness were sometimes provoking him to a rational remonstrance or
3115
sharp retort equally ill-bestowed. It did not often happen; for Mr. John
3116
Knightley had really a great regard for his father-in-law, and generally
3117
a strong sense of what was due to him; but it was too often for Emma's
3118
charity, especially as there was all the pain of apprehension frequently
3119
to be endured, though the offence came not. The beginning, however, of
3120
every visit displayed none but the properest feelings, and this being of
3121
necessity so short might be hoped to pass away in unsullied cordiality.
3122
They had not been long seated and composed when Mr. Woodhouse, with a
3123
melancholy shake of the head and a sigh, called his daughter's attention
3124
to the sad change at Hartfield since she had been there last.
3125
3126
“Ah, my dear,” said he, “poor Miss Taylor--It is a grievous business.”
3127
3128
“Oh yes, sir,” cried she with ready sympathy, “how you must miss her!
3129
And dear Emma, too!--What a dreadful loss to you both!--I have been so
3130
grieved for you.--I could not imagine how you could possibly do without
3131
her.--It is a sad change indeed.--But I hope she is pretty well, sir.”
3132
3133
“Pretty well, my dear--I hope--pretty well.--I do not know but that the
3134
place agrees with her tolerably.”
3135
3136
Mr. John Knightley here asked Emma quietly whether there were any doubts
3137
of the air of Randalls.
3138
3139
“Oh! no--none in the least. I never saw Mrs. Weston better in my
3140
life--never looking so well. Papa is only speaking his own regret.”
3141
3142
“Very much to the honour of both,” was the handsome reply.
3143
3144
“And do you see her, sir, tolerably often?” asked Isabella in the
3145
plaintive tone which just suited her father.
3146
3147
Mr. Woodhouse hesitated.--“Not near so often, my dear, as I could wish.”
3148
3149
“Oh! papa, we have missed seeing them but one entire day since they
3150
married. Either in the morning or evening of every day, excepting one,
3151
have we seen either Mr. Weston or Mrs. Weston, and generally both,
3152
either at Randalls or here--and as you may suppose, Isabella, most
3153
frequently here. They are very, very kind in their visits. Mr. Weston
3154
is really as kind as herself. Papa, if you speak in that melancholy way,
3155
you will be giving Isabella a false idea of us all. Every body must be
3156
aware that Miss Taylor must be missed, but every body ought also to be
3157
assured that Mr. and Mrs. Weston do really prevent our missing her by
3158
any means to the extent we ourselves anticipated--which is the exact
3159
truth.”
3160
3161
“Just as it should be,” said Mr. John Knightley, “and just as I hoped
3162
it was from your letters. Her wish of shewing you attention could not be
3163
doubted, and his being a disengaged and social man makes it all easy. I
3164
have been always telling you, my love, that I had no idea of the change
3165
being so very material to Hartfield as you apprehended; and now you have
3166
Emma's account, I hope you will be satisfied.”
3167
3168
“Why, to be sure,” said Mr. Woodhouse--“yes, certainly--I cannot
3169
deny that Mrs. Weston, poor Mrs. Weston, does come and see us pretty
3170
often--but then--she is always obliged to go away again.”
3171
3172
“It would be very hard upon Mr. Weston if she did not, papa.--You quite
3173
forget poor Mr. Weston.”
3174
3175
“I think, indeed,” said John Knightley pleasantly, “that Mr. Weston has
3176
some little claim. You and I, Emma, will venture to take the part of the
3177
poor husband. I, being a husband, and you not being a wife, the claims
3178
of the man may very likely strike us with equal force. As for Isabella,
3179
she has been married long enough to see the convenience of putting all
3180
the Mr. Westons aside as much as she can.”
3181
3182
“Me, my love,” cried his wife, hearing and understanding only in part.--
3183
“Are you talking about me?--I am sure nobody ought to be, or can be, a
3184
greater advocate for matrimony than I am; and if it had not been for
3185
the misery of her leaving Hartfield, I should never have thought of Miss
3186
Taylor but as the most fortunate woman in the world; and as to slighting
3187
Mr. Weston, that excellent Mr. Weston, I think there is nothing he does
3188
not deserve. I believe he is one of the very best-tempered men that ever
3189
existed. Excepting yourself and your brother, I do not know his equal
3190
for temper. I shall never forget his flying Henry's kite for him that
3191
very windy day last Easter--and ever since his particular kindness last
3192
September twelvemonth in writing that note, at twelve o'clock at night,
3193
on purpose to assure me that there was no scarlet fever at Cobham, I
3194
have been convinced there could not be a more feeling heart nor a better
3195
man in existence.--If any body can deserve him, it must be Miss Taylor.”
3196
3197
“Where is the young man?” said John Knightley. “Has he been here on this
3198
occasion--or has he not?”
3199
3200
“He has not been here yet,” replied Emma. “There was a strong
3201
expectation of his coming soon after the marriage, but it ended in
3202
nothing; and I have not heard him mentioned lately.”
3203
3204
“But you should tell them of the letter, my dear,” said her father.
3205
“He wrote a letter to poor Mrs. Weston, to congratulate her, and a very
3206
proper, handsome letter it was. She shewed it to me. I thought it very
3207
well done of him indeed. Whether it was his own idea you know, one
3208
cannot tell. He is but young, and his uncle, perhaps--”
3209
3210
“My dear papa, he is three-and-twenty. You forget how time passes.”
3211
3212
“Three-and-twenty!--is he indeed?--Well, I could not have thought
3213
it--and he was but two years old when he lost his poor mother! Well,
3214
time does fly indeed!--and my memory is very bad. However, it was an
3215
exceeding good, pretty letter, and gave Mr. and Mrs. Weston a great deal
3216
of pleasure. I remember it was written from Weymouth, and dated Sept.
3217
28th--and began, 'My dear Madam,' but I forget how it went on; and it
3218
was signed 'F. C. Weston Churchill.'--I remember that perfectly.”
3219
3220
“How very pleasing and proper of him!” cried the good-hearted Mrs. John
3221
Knightley. “I have no doubt of his being a most amiable young man. But
3222
how sad it is that he should not live at home with his father! There is
3223
something so shocking in a child's being taken away from his parents and
3224
natural home! I never could comprehend how Mr. Weston could part with
3225
him. To give up one's child! I really never could think well of any body
3226
who proposed such a thing to any body else.”
3227
3228
“Nobody ever did think well of the Churchills, I fancy,” observed Mr.
3229
John Knightley coolly. “But you need not imagine Mr. Weston to have felt
3230
what you would feel in giving up Henry or John. Mr. Weston is rather
3231
an easy, cheerful-tempered man, than a man of strong feelings; he takes
3232
things as he finds them, and makes enjoyment of them somehow or other,
3233
depending, I suspect, much more upon what is called society for his
3234
comforts, that is, upon the power of eating and drinking, and playing
3235
whist with his neighbours five times a week, than upon family affection,
3236
or any thing that home affords.”
3237
3238
Emma could not like what bordered on a reflection on Mr. Weston, and had
3239
half a mind to take it up; but she struggled, and let it pass. She
3240
would keep the peace if possible; and there was something honourable and
3241
valuable in the strong domestic habits, the all-sufficiency of home to
3242
himself, whence resulted her brother's disposition to look down on
3243
the common rate of social intercourse, and those to whom it was
3244
important.--It had a high claim to forbearance.
3245
3246
3247
3248
CHAPTER XII
3249
3250
3251
Mr. Knightley was to dine with them--rather against the inclination of
3252
Mr. Woodhouse, who did not like that any one should share with him in
3253
Isabella's first day. Emma's sense of right however had decided it;
3254
and besides the consideration of what was due to each brother, she had
3255
particular pleasure, from the circumstance of the late disagreement
3256
between Mr. Knightley and herself, in procuring him the proper
3257
invitation.
3258
3259
She hoped they might now become friends again. She thought it was time
3260
to make up. Making-up indeed would not do. _She_ certainly had not been
3261
in the wrong, and _he_ would never own that he had. Concession must be
3262
out of the question; but it was time to appear to forget that they had
3263
ever quarrelled; and she hoped it might rather assist the restoration of
3264
friendship, that when he came into the room she had one of the children
3265
with her--the youngest, a nice little girl about eight months old, who
3266
was now making her first visit to Hartfield, and very happy to be danced
3267
about in her aunt's arms. It did assist; for though he began with grave
3268
looks and short questions, he was soon led on to talk of them all in
3269
the usual way, and to take the child out of her arms with all the
3270
unceremoniousness of perfect amity. Emma felt they were friends again;
3271
and the conviction giving her at first great satisfaction, and then
3272
a little sauciness, she could not help saying, as he was admiring the
3273
baby,
3274
3275
“What a comfort it is, that we think alike about our nephews and nieces.
3276
As to men and women, our opinions are sometimes very different; but with
3277
regard to these children, I observe we never disagree.”
3278
3279
“If you were as much guided by nature in your estimate of men and women,
3280
and as little under the power of fancy and whim in your dealings with
3281
them, as you are where these children are concerned, we might always
3282
think alike.”
3283
3284
“To be sure--our discordancies must always arise from my being in the
3285
wrong.”
3286
3287
“Yes,” said he, smiling--“and reason good. I was sixteen years old when
3288
you were born.”
3289
3290
“A material difference then,” she replied--“and no doubt you were much
3291
my superior in judgment at that period of our lives; but does not the
3292
lapse of one-and-twenty years bring our understandings a good deal
3293
nearer?”
3294
3295
“Yes--a good deal _nearer_.”
3296
3297
“But still, not near enough to give me a chance of being right, if we
3298
think differently.”
3299
3300
“I have still the advantage of you by sixteen years' experience, and by
3301
not being a pretty young woman and a spoiled child. Come, my dear Emma,
3302
let us be friends, and say no more about it. Tell your aunt, little
3303
Emma, that she ought to set you a better example than to be renewing old
3304
grievances, and that if she were not wrong before, she is now.”
3305
3306
“That's true,” she cried--“very true. Little Emma, grow up a better
3307
woman than your aunt. Be infinitely cleverer and not half so conceited.
3308
Now, Mr. Knightley, a word or two more, and I have done. As far as good
3309
intentions went, we were _both_ right, and I must say that no effects on
3310
my side of the argument have yet proved wrong. I only want to know that
3311
Mr. Martin is not very, very bitterly disappointed.”
3312
3313
“A man cannot be more so,” was his short, full answer.
3314
3315
“Ah!--Indeed I am very sorry.--Come, shake hands with me.”
3316
3317
This had just taken place and with great cordiality, when John Knightley
3318
made his appearance, and “How d'ye do, George?” and “John, how are
3319
you?” succeeded in the true English style, burying under a calmness that
3320
seemed all but indifference, the real attachment which would have led
3321
either of them, if requisite, to do every thing for the good of the
3322
other.
3323
3324
The evening was quiet and conversable, as Mr. Woodhouse declined cards
3325
entirely for the sake of comfortable talk with his dear Isabella, and
3326
the little party made two natural divisions; on one side he and his
3327
daughter; on the other the two Mr. Knightleys; their subjects totally
3328
distinct, or very rarely mixing--and Emma only occasionally joining in
3329
one or the other.
3330
3331
The brothers talked of their own concerns and pursuits, but principally
3332
of those of the elder, whose temper was by much the most communicative,
3333
and who was always the greater talker. As a magistrate, he had generally
3334
some point of law to consult John about, or, at least, some curious
3335
anecdote to give; and as a farmer, as keeping in hand the home-farm at
3336
Donwell, he had to tell what every field was to bear next year, and to
3337
give all such local information as could not fail of being interesting
3338
to a brother whose home it had equally been the longest part of his
3339
life, and whose attachments were strong. The plan of a drain, the change
3340
of a fence, the felling of a tree, and the destination of every acre for
3341
wheat, turnips, or spring corn, was entered into with as much equality
3342
of interest by John, as his cooler manners rendered possible; and if his
3343
willing brother ever left him any thing to inquire about, his inquiries
3344
even approached a tone of eagerness.
3345
3346
While they were thus comfortably occupied, Mr. Woodhouse was enjoying a
3347
full flow of happy regrets and fearful affection with his daughter.
3348
3349
“My poor dear Isabella,” said he, fondly taking her hand, and
3350
interrupting, for a few moments, her busy labours for some one of her
3351
five children--“How long it is, how terribly long since you were here!
3352
And how tired you must be after your journey! You must go to bed early,
3353
my dear--and I recommend a little gruel to you before you go.--You and
3354
I will have a nice basin of gruel together. My dear Emma, suppose we all
3355
have a little gruel.”
3356
3357
Emma could not suppose any such thing, knowing as she did, that both the
3358
Mr. Knightleys were as unpersuadable on that article as herself;--and
3359
two basins only were ordered. After a little more discourse in praise of
3360
gruel, with some wondering at its not being taken every evening by every
3361
body, he proceeded to say, with an air of grave reflection,
3362
3363
“It was an awkward business, my dear, your spending the autumn at South
3364
End instead of coming here. I never had much opinion of the sea air.”
3365
3366
“Mr. Wingfield most strenuously recommended it, sir--or we should not
3367
have gone. He recommended it for all the children, but particularly for
3368
the weakness in little Bella's throat,--both sea air and bathing.”
3369
3370
“Ah! my dear, but Perry had many doubts about the sea doing her any
3371
good; and as to myself, I have been long perfectly convinced, though
3372
perhaps I never told you so before, that the sea is very rarely of use
3373
to any body. I am sure it almost killed me once.”
3374
3375
“Come, come,” cried Emma, feeling this to be an unsafe subject, “I must
3376
beg you not to talk of the sea. It makes me envious and miserable;--I
3377
who have never seen it! South End is prohibited, if you please. My dear
3378
Isabella, I have not heard you make one inquiry about Mr. Perry yet; and
3379
he never forgets you.”
3380
3381
“Oh! good Mr. Perry--how is he, sir?”
3382
3383
“Why, pretty well; but not quite well. Poor Perry is bilious, and he has
3384
not time to take care of himself--he tells me he has not time to take
3385
care of himself--which is very sad--but he is always wanted all round
3386
the country. I suppose there is not a man in such practice anywhere. But
3387
then there is not so clever a man any where.”
3388
3389
“And Mrs. Perry and the children, how are they? do the children grow?
3390
I have a great regard for Mr. Perry. I hope he will be calling soon. He
3391
will be so pleased to see my little ones.”
3392
3393
“I hope he will be here to-morrow, for I have a question or two to ask
3394
him about myself of some consequence. And, my dear, whenever he comes,
3395
you had better let him look at little Bella's throat.”
3396
3397
“Oh! my dear sir, her throat is so much better that I have hardly any
3398
uneasiness about it. Either bathing has been of the greatest service to
3399
her, or else it is to be attributed to an excellent embrocation of Mr.
3400
Wingfield's, which we have been applying at times ever since August.”
3401
3402
“It is not very likely, my dear, that bathing should have been of use
3403
to her--and if I had known you were wanting an embrocation, I would have
3404
spoken to--
3405
3406
“You seem to me to have forgotten Mrs. and Miss Bates,” said Emma, “I
3407
have not heard one inquiry after them.”
3408
3409
“Oh! the good Bateses--I am quite ashamed of myself--but you mention
3410
them in most of your letters. I hope they are quite well. Good old Mrs.
3411
Bates--I will call upon her to-morrow, and take my children.--They
3412
are always so pleased to see my children.--And that excellent Miss
3413
Bates!--such thorough worthy people!--How are they, sir?”
3414
3415
“Why, pretty well, my dear, upon the whole. But poor Mrs. Bates had a
3416
bad cold about a month ago.”
3417
3418
“How sorry I am! But colds were never so prevalent as they have been
3419
this autumn. Mr. Wingfield told me that he has never known them more
3420
general or heavy--except when it has been quite an influenza.”
3421
3422
“That has been a good deal the case, my dear; but not to the degree you
3423
mention. Perry says that colds have been very general, but not so heavy
3424
as he has very often known them in November. Perry does not call it
3425
altogether a sickly season.”
3426
3427
“No, I do not know that Mr. Wingfield considers it _very_ sickly
3428
except--
3429
3430
“Ah! my poor dear child, the truth is, that in London it is always
3431
a sickly season. Nobody is healthy in London, nobody can be. It is a
3432
dreadful thing to have you forced to live there! so far off!--and the
3433
air so bad!”
3434
3435
“No, indeed--_we_ are not at all in a bad air. Our part of London is
3436
very superior to most others!--You must not confound us with London
3437
in general, my dear sir. The neighbourhood of Brunswick Square is very
3438
different from almost all the rest. We are so very airy! I should be
3439
unwilling, I own, to live in any other part of the town;--there is
3440
hardly any other that I could be satisfied to have my children in:
3441
but _we_ are so remarkably airy!--Mr. Wingfield thinks the vicinity of
3442
Brunswick Square decidedly the most favourable as to air.”
3443
3444
“Ah! my dear, it is not like Hartfield. You make the best of it--but
3445
after you have been a week at Hartfield, you are all of you different
3446
creatures; you do not look like the same. Now I cannot say, that I think
3447
you are any of you looking well at present.”
3448
3449
“I am sorry to hear you say so, sir; but I assure you, excepting those
3450
little nervous head-aches and palpitations which I am never entirely
3451
free from anywhere, I am quite well myself; and if the children were
3452
rather pale before they went to bed, it was only because they were a
3453
little more tired than usual, from their journey and the happiness of
3454
coming. I hope you will think better of their looks to-morrow; for I
3455
assure you Mr. Wingfield told me, that he did not believe he had ever
3456
sent us off altogether, in such good case. I trust, at least, that
3457
you do not think Mr. Knightley looking ill,” turning her eyes with
3458
affectionate anxiety towards her husband.
3459
3460
“Middling, my dear; I cannot compliment you. I think Mr. John Knightley
3461
very far from looking well.”
3462
3463
“What is the matter, sir?--Did you speak to me?” cried Mr. John
3464
Knightley, hearing his own name.
3465
3466
“I am sorry to find, my love, that my father does not think you looking
3467
well--but I hope it is only from being a little fatigued. I could have
3468
wished, however, as you know, that you had seen Mr. Wingfield before you
3469
left home.”
3470
3471
“My dear Isabella,”--exclaimed he hastily--“pray do not concern yourself
3472
about my looks. Be satisfied with doctoring and coddling yourself and
3473
the children, and let me look as I chuse.”
3474
3475
“I did not thoroughly understand what you were telling your brother,”
3476
cried Emma, “about your friend Mr. Graham's intending to have a bailiff
3477
from Scotland, to look after his new estate. What will it answer? Will
3478
not the old prejudice be too strong?”
3479
3480
And she talked in this way so long and successfully that, when forced to
3481
give her attention again to her father and sister, she had nothing
3482
worse to hear than Isabella's kind inquiry after Jane Fairfax; and Jane
3483
Fairfax, though no great favourite with her in general, she was at that
3484
moment very happy to assist in praising.
3485
3486
“That sweet, amiable Jane Fairfax!” said Mrs. John Knightley.--“It
3487
is so long since I have seen her, except now and then for a moment
3488
accidentally in town! What happiness it must be to her good old
3489
grandmother and excellent aunt, when she comes to visit them! I always
3490
regret excessively on dear Emma's account that she cannot be more at
3491
Highbury; but now their daughter is married, I suppose Colonel and Mrs.
3492
Campbell will not be able to part with her at all. She would be such a
3493
delightful companion for Emma.”
3494
3495
Mr. Woodhouse agreed to it all, but added,
3496
3497
“Our little friend Harriet Smith, however, is just such another pretty
3498
kind of young person. You will like Harriet. Emma could not have a
3499
better companion than Harriet.”
3500
3501
“I am most happy to hear it--but only Jane Fairfax one knows to be so
3502
very accomplished and superior!--and exactly Emma's age.”
3503
3504
This topic was discussed very happily, and others succeeded of similar
3505
moment, and passed away with similar harmony; but the evening did not
3506
close without a little return of agitation. The gruel came and supplied
3507
a great deal to be said--much praise and many comments--undoubting
3508
decision of its wholesomeness for every constitution, and pretty
3509
severe Philippics upon the many houses where it was never met with
3510
tolerably;--but, unfortunately, among the failures which the daughter
3511
had to instance, the most recent, and therefore most prominent, was in
3512
her own cook at South End, a young woman hired for the time, who never
3513
had been able to understand what she meant by a basin of nice smooth
3514
gruel, thin, but not too thin. Often as she had wished for and ordered
3515
it, she had never been able to get any thing tolerable. Here was a
3516
dangerous opening.
3517
3518
“Ah!” said Mr. Woodhouse, shaking his head and fixing his eyes on her
3519
with tender concern.--The ejaculation in Emma's ear expressed, “Ah!
3520
there is no end of the sad consequences of your going to South End. It
3521
does not bear talking of.” And for a little while she hoped he would not
3522
talk of it, and that a silent rumination might suffice to restore him to
3523
the relish of his own smooth gruel. After an interval of some minutes,
3524
however, he began with,
3525
3526
“I shall always be very sorry that you went to the sea this autumn,
3527
instead of coming here.”
3528
3529
“But why should you be sorry, sir?--I assure you, it did the children a
3530
great deal of good.”
3531
3532
“And, moreover, if you must go to the sea, it had better not have been
3533
to South End. South End is an unhealthy place. Perry was surprized to
3534
hear you had fixed upon South End.”
3535
3536
“I know there is such an idea with many people, but indeed it is quite
3537
a mistake, sir.--We all had our health perfectly well there, never
3538
found the least inconvenience from the mud; and Mr. Wingfield says it is
3539
entirely a mistake to suppose the place unhealthy; and I am sure he may
3540
be depended on, for he thoroughly understands the nature of the air, and
3541
his own brother and family have been there repeatedly.”
3542
3543
“You should have gone to Cromer, my dear, if you went anywhere.--Perry
3544
was a week at Cromer once, and he holds it to be the best of all the
3545
sea-bathing places. A fine open sea, he says, and very pure air. And, by
3546
what I understand, you might have had lodgings there quite away from
3547
the sea--a quarter of a mile off--very comfortable. You should have
3548
consulted Perry.”
3549
3550
“But, my dear sir, the difference of the journey;--only consider how
3551
great it would have been.--An hundred miles, perhaps, instead of forty.”
3552
3553
“Ah! my dear, as Perry says, where health is at stake, nothing else
3554
should be considered; and if one is to travel, there is not much to
3555
chuse between forty miles and an hundred.--Better not move at all,
3556
better stay in London altogether than travel forty miles to get into
3557
a worse air. This is just what Perry said. It seemed to him a very
3558
ill-judged measure.”
3559
3560
Emma's attempts to stop her father had been vain; and when he
3561
had reached such a point as this, she could not wonder at her
3562
brother-in-law's breaking out.
3563
3564
“Mr. Perry,” said he, in a voice of very strong displeasure, “would do
3565
as well to keep his opinion till it is asked for. Why does he make it
3566
any business of his, to wonder at what I do?--at my taking my family to
3567
one part of the coast or another?--I may be allowed, I hope, the use of
3568
my judgment as well as Mr. Perry.--I want his directions no more than
3569
his drugs.” He paused--and growing cooler in a moment, added, with only
3570
sarcastic dryness, “If Mr. Perry can tell me how to convey a wife and
3571
five children a distance of an hundred and thirty miles with no greater
3572
expense or inconvenience than a distance of forty, I should be as
3573
willing to prefer Cromer to South End as he could himself.”
3574
3575
“True, true,” cried Mr. Knightley, with most ready interposition--“very
3576
true. That's a consideration indeed.--But John, as to what I was telling
3577
you of my idea of moving the path to Langham, of turning it more to the
3578
right that it may not cut through the home meadows, I cannot conceive
3579
any difficulty. I should not attempt it, if it were to be the means of
3580
inconvenience to the Highbury people, but if you call to mind exactly
3581
the present line of the path.... The only way of proving it, however,
3582
will be to turn to our maps. I shall see you at the Abbey to-morrow
3583
morning I hope, and then we will look them over, and you shall give me
3584
your opinion.”
3585
3586
Mr. Woodhouse was rather agitated by such harsh reflections on his
3587
friend Perry, to whom he had, in fact, though unconsciously, been
3588
attributing many of his own feelings and expressions;--but the soothing
3589
attentions of his daughters gradually removed the present evil, and
3590
the immediate alertness of one brother, and better recollections of the
3591
other, prevented any renewal of it.
3592
3593
3594
3595
CHAPTER XIII
3596
3597
3598
There could hardly be a happier creature in the world than Mrs. John
3599
Knightley, in this short visit to Hartfield, going about every morning
3600
among her old acquaintance with her five children, and talking over what
3601
she had done every evening with her father and sister. She had nothing
3602
to wish otherwise, but that the days did not pass so swiftly. It was a
3603
delightful visit;--perfect, in being much too short.
3604
3605
In general their evenings were less engaged with friends than their
3606
mornings; but one complete dinner engagement, and out of the house too,
3607
there was no avoiding, though at Christmas. Mr. Weston would take no
3608
denial; they must all dine at Randalls one day;--even Mr. Woodhouse was
3609
persuaded to think it a possible thing in preference to a division of
3610
the party.
3611
3612
How they were all to be conveyed, he would have made a difficulty if he
3613
could, but as his son and daughter's carriage and horses were actually
3614
at Hartfield, he was not able to make more than a simple question on
3615
that head; it hardly amounted to a doubt; nor did it occupy Emma long
3616
to convince him that they might in one of the carriages find room for
3617
Harriet also.
3618
3619
Harriet, Mr. Elton, and Mr. Knightley, their own especial set, were the
3620
only persons invited to meet them;--the hours were to be early, as
3621
well as the numbers few; Mr. Woodhouse's habits and inclination being
3622
consulted in every thing.
3623
3624
The evening before this great event (for it was a very great event that
3625
Mr. Woodhouse should dine out, on the 24th of December) had been spent
3626
by Harriet at Hartfield, and she had gone home so much indisposed with
3627
a cold, that, but for her own earnest wish of being nursed by Mrs.
3628
Goddard, Emma could not have allowed her to leave the house. Emma called
3629
on her the next day, and found her doom already signed with regard to
3630
Randalls. She was very feverish and had a bad sore throat: Mrs. Goddard
3631
was full of care and affection, Mr. Perry was talked of, and Harriet
3632
herself was too ill and low to resist the authority which excluded her
3633
from this delightful engagement, though she could not speak of her loss
3634
without many tears.
3635
3636
Emma sat with her as long as she could, to attend her in Mrs. Goddard's
3637
unavoidable absences, and raise her spirits by representing how much Mr.
3638
Elton's would be depressed when he knew her state; and left her at last
3639
tolerably comfortable, in the sweet dependence of his having a most
3640
comfortless visit, and of their all missing her very much. She had not
3641
advanced many yards from Mrs. Goddard's door, when she was met by Mr.
3642
Elton himself, evidently coming towards it, and as they walked on slowly
3643
together in conversation about the invalid--of whom he, on the rumour
3644
of considerable illness, had been going to inquire, that he might
3645
carry some report of her to Hartfield--they were overtaken by Mr. John
3646
Knightley returning from the daily visit to Donwell, with his two eldest
3647
boys, whose healthy, glowing faces shewed all the benefit of a country
3648
run, and seemed to ensure a quick despatch of the roast mutton and rice
3649
pudding they were hastening home for. They joined company and
3650
proceeded together. Emma was just describing the nature of her friend's
3651
complaint;--“a throat very much inflamed, with a great deal of heat
3652
about her, a quick, low pulse, &c. and she was sorry to find from Mrs.
3653
Goddard that Harriet was liable to very bad sore-throats, and had often
3654
alarmed her with them.” Mr. Elton looked all alarm on the occasion, as
3655
he exclaimed,
3656
3657
“A sore-throat!--I hope not infectious. I hope not of a putrid
3658
infectious sort. Has Perry seen her? Indeed you should take care of
3659
yourself as well as of your friend. Let me entreat you to run no risks.
3660
Why does not Perry see her?”
3661
3662
Emma, who was not really at all frightened herself, tranquillised this
3663
excess of apprehension by assurances of Mrs. Goddard's experience and
3664
care; but as there must still remain a degree of uneasiness which she
3665
could not wish to reason away, which she would rather feed and assist
3666
than not, she added soon afterwards--as if quite another subject,
3667
3668
“It is so cold, so very cold--and looks and feels so very much like
3669
snow, that if it were to any other place or with any other party, I
3670
should really try not to go out to-day--and dissuade my father from
3671
venturing; but as he has made up his mind, and does not seem to feel the
3672
cold himself, I do not like to interfere, as I know it would be so great
3673
a disappointment to Mr. and Mrs. Weston. But, upon my word, Mr. Elton,
3674
in your case, I should certainly excuse myself. You appear to me a
3675
little hoarse already, and when you consider what demand of voice and
3676
what fatigues to-morrow will bring, I think it would be no more than
3677
common prudence to stay at home and take care of yourself to-night.”
3678
3679
Mr. Elton looked as if he did not very well know what answer to make;
3680
which was exactly the case; for though very much gratified by the kind
3681
care of such a fair lady, and not liking to resist any advice of her's,
3682
he had not really the least inclination to give up the visit;--but Emma,
3683
too eager and busy in her own previous conceptions and views to hear him
3684
impartially, or see him with clear vision, was very well satisfied with
3685
his muttering acknowledgment of its being “very cold, certainly very
3686
cold,” and walked on, rejoicing in having extricated him from Randalls,
3687
and secured him the power of sending to inquire after Harriet every hour
3688
of the evening.
3689
3690
“You do quite right,” said she;--“we will make your apologies to Mr. and
3691
Mrs. Weston.”
3692
3693
But hardly had she so spoken, when she found her brother was civilly
3694
offering a seat in his carriage, if the weather were Mr. Elton's only
3695
objection, and Mr. Elton actually accepting the offer with much prompt
3696
satisfaction. It was a done thing; Mr. Elton was to go, and never had
3697
his broad handsome face expressed more pleasure than at this moment;
3698
never had his smile been stronger, nor his eyes more exulting than when
3699
he next looked at her.
3700
3701
“Well,” said she to herself, “this is most strange!--After I had got
3702
him off so well, to chuse to go into company, and leave Harriet ill
3703
behind!--Most strange indeed!--But there is, I believe, in many men,
3704
especially single men, such an inclination--such a passion for dining
3705
out--a dinner engagement is so high in the class of their pleasures,
3706
their employments, their dignities, almost their duties, that any
3707
thing gives way to it--and this must be the case with Mr. Elton; a most
3708
valuable, amiable, pleasing young man undoubtedly, and very much in love
3709
with Harriet; but still, he cannot refuse an invitation, he must dine
3710
out wherever he is asked. What a strange thing love is! he can see ready
3711
wit in Harriet, but will not dine alone for her.”
3712
3713
Soon afterwards Mr. Elton quitted them, and she could not but do him
3714
the justice of feeling that there was a great deal of sentiment in his
3715
manner of naming Harriet at parting; in the tone of his voice while
3716
assuring her that he should call at Mrs. Goddard's for news of her fair
3717
friend, the last thing before he prepared for the happiness of meeting
3718
her again, when he hoped to be able to give a better report; and
3719
he sighed and smiled himself off in a way that left the balance of
3720
approbation much in his favour.
3721
3722
After a few minutes of entire silence between them, John Knightley began
3723
with--
3724
3725
“I never in my life saw a man more intent on being agreeable than Mr.
3726
Elton. It is downright labour to him where ladies are concerned. With
3727
men he can be rational and unaffected, but when he has ladies to please,
3728
every feature works.”
3729
3730
“Mr. Elton's manners are not perfect,” replied Emma; “but where there is
3731
a wish to please, one ought to overlook, and one does overlook a great
3732
deal. Where a man does his best with only moderate powers, he will
3733
have the advantage over negligent superiority. There is such perfect
3734
good-temper and good-will in Mr. Elton as one cannot but value.”
3735
3736
“Yes,” said Mr. John Knightley presently, with some slyness, “he seems
3737
to have a great deal of good-will towards you.”
3738
3739
“Me!” she replied with a smile of astonishment, “are you imagining me to
3740
be Mr. Elton's object?”
3741
3742
“Such an imagination has crossed me, I own, Emma; and if it never
3743
occurred to you before, you may as well take it into consideration now.”
3744
3745
“Mr. Elton in love with me!--What an idea!”
3746
3747
“I do not say it is so; but you will do well to consider whether it
3748
is so or not, and to regulate your behaviour accordingly. I think your
3749
manners to him encouraging. I speak as a friend, Emma. You had better
3750
look about you, and ascertain what you do, and what you mean to do.”
3751
3752
“I thank you; but I assure you you are quite mistaken. Mr. Elton and
3753
I are very good friends, and nothing more;” and she walked on, amusing
3754
herself in the consideration of the blunders which often arise from a
3755
partial knowledge of circumstances, of the mistakes which people of high
3756
pretensions to judgment are for ever falling into; and not very well
3757
pleased with her brother for imagining her blind and ignorant, and in
3758
want of counsel. He said no more.
3759
3760
Mr. Woodhouse had so completely made up his mind to the visit, that in
3761
spite of the increasing coldness, he seemed to have no idea of shrinking
3762
from it, and set forward at last most punctually with his eldest
3763
daughter in his own carriage, with less apparent consciousness of the
3764
weather than either of the others; too full of the wonder of his own
3765
going, and the pleasure it was to afford at Randalls to see that it was
3766
cold, and too well wrapt up to feel it. The cold, however, was severe;
3767
and by the time the second carriage was in motion, a few flakes of snow
3768
were finding their way down, and the sky had the appearance of being so
3769
overcharged as to want only a milder air to produce a very white world
3770
in a very short time.
3771
3772
Emma soon saw that her companion was not in the happiest humour. The
3773
preparing and the going abroad in such weather, with the sacrifice of
3774
his children after dinner, were evils, were disagreeables at least,
3775
which Mr. John Knightley did not by any means like; he anticipated
3776
nothing in the visit that could be at all worth the purchase; and the
3777
whole of their drive to the vicarage was spent by him in expressing his
3778
discontent.
3779
3780
“A man,” said he, “must have a very good opinion of himself when he asks
3781
people to leave their own fireside, and encounter such a day as
3782
this, for the sake of coming to see him. He must think himself a most
3783
agreeable fellow; I could not do such a thing. It is the greatest
3784
absurdity--Actually snowing at this moment!--The folly of not allowing
3785
people to be comfortable at home--and the folly of people's not staying
3786
comfortably at home when they can! If we were obliged to go out such
3787
an evening as this, by any call of duty or business, what a hardship we
3788
should deem it;--and here are we, probably with rather thinner clothing
3789
than usual, setting forward voluntarily, without excuse, in defiance of
3790
the voice of nature, which tells man, in every thing given to his view
3791
or his feelings, to stay at home himself, and keep all under shelter
3792
that he can;--here are we setting forward to spend five dull hours in
3793
another man's house, with nothing to say or to hear that was not said
3794
and heard yesterday, and may not be said and heard again to-morrow.
3795
Going in dismal weather, to return probably in worse;--four horses and
3796
four servants taken out for nothing but to convey five idle, shivering
3797
creatures into colder rooms and worse company than they might have had
3798
at home.”
3799
3800
Emma did not find herself equal to give the pleased assent, which no
3801
doubt he was in the habit of receiving, to emulate the “Very true,
3802
my love,” which must have been usually administered by his travelling
3803
companion; but she had resolution enough to refrain from making
3804
any answer at all. She could not be complying, she dreaded being
3805
quarrelsome; her heroism reached only to silence. She allowed him to
3806
talk, and arranged the glasses, and wrapped herself up, without opening
3807
her lips.
3808
3809
They arrived, the carriage turned, the step was let down, and Mr. Elton,
3810
spruce, black, and smiling, was with them instantly. Emma thought with
3811
pleasure of some change of subject. Mr. Elton was all obligation and
3812
cheerfulness; he was so very cheerful in his civilities indeed, that she
3813
began to think he must have received a different account of Harriet from
3814
what had reached her. She had sent while dressing, and the answer had
3815
been, “Much the same--not better.”
3816
3817
“_My_ report from Mrs. Goddard's,” said she presently, “was not so
3818
pleasant as I had hoped--'Not better' was _my_ answer.”
3819
3820
His face lengthened immediately; and his voice was the voice of
3821
sentiment as he answered.
3822
3823
“Oh! no--I am grieved to find--I was on the point of telling you that
3824
when I called at Mrs. Goddard's door, which I did the very last thing
3825
before I returned to dress, I was told that Miss Smith was not better,
3826
by no means better, rather worse. Very much grieved and concerned--I
3827
had flattered myself that she must be better after such a cordial as I
3828
knew had been given her in the morning.”
3829
3830
Emma smiled and answered--“My visit was of use to the nervous part of
3831
her complaint, I hope; but not even I can charm away a sore throat;
3832
it is a most severe cold indeed. Mr. Perry has been with her, as you
3833
probably heard.”
3834
3835
“Yes--I imagined--that is--I did not--”
3836
3837
“He has been used to her in these complaints, and I hope to-morrow
3838
morning will bring us both a more comfortable report. But it is
3839
impossible not to feel uneasiness. Such a sad loss to our party to-day!”
3840
3841
“Dreadful!--Exactly so, indeed.--She will be missed every moment.”
3842
3843
This was very proper; the sigh which accompanied it was really
3844
estimable; but it should have lasted longer. Emma was rather in dismay
3845
when only half a minute afterwards he began to speak of other things,
3846
and in a voice of the greatest alacrity and enjoyment.
3847
3848
“What an excellent device,” said he, “the use of a sheepskin for
3849
carriages. How very comfortable they make it;--impossible to feel cold
3850
with such precautions. The contrivances of modern days indeed have
3851
rendered a gentleman's carriage perfectly complete. One is so fenced
3852
and guarded from the weather, that not a breath of air can find its way
3853
unpermitted. Weather becomes absolutely of no consequence. It is a very
3854
cold afternoon--but in this carriage we know nothing of the matter.--Ha!
3855
snows a little I see.”
3856
3857
“Yes,” said John Knightley, “and I think we shall have a good deal of
3858
it.”
3859
3860
“Christmas weather,” observed Mr. Elton. “Quite seasonable; and
3861
extremely fortunate we may think ourselves that it did not begin
3862
yesterday, and prevent this day's party, which it might very possibly
3863
have done, for Mr. Woodhouse would hardly have ventured had there been
3864
much snow on the ground; but now it is of no consequence. This is quite
3865
the season indeed for friendly meetings. At Christmas every body invites
3866
their friends about them, and people think little of even the worst
3867
weather. I was snowed up at a friend's house once for a week. Nothing
3868
could be pleasanter. I went for only one night, and could not get away
3869
till that very day se'nnight.”
3870
3871
Mr. John Knightley looked as if he did not comprehend the pleasure, but
3872
said only, coolly,
3873
3874
“I cannot wish to be snowed up a week at Randalls.”
3875
3876
At another time Emma might have been amused, but she was too much
3877
astonished now at Mr. Elton's spirits for other feelings. Harriet seemed
3878
quite forgotten in the expectation of a pleasant party.
3879
3880
“We are sure of excellent fires,” continued he, “and every thing in the
3881
greatest comfort. Charming people, Mr. and Mrs. Weston;--Mrs. Weston
3882
indeed is much beyond praise, and he is exactly what one values, so
3883
hospitable, and so fond of society;--it will be a small party, but where
3884
small parties are select, they are perhaps the most agreeable of any.
3885
Mr. Weston's dining-room does not accommodate more than ten comfortably;
3886
and for my part, I would rather, under such circumstances, fall short by
3887
two than exceed by two. I think you will agree with me, (turning with
3888
a soft air to Emma,) I think I shall certainly have your approbation,
3889
though Mr. Knightley perhaps, from being used to the large parties of
3890
London, may not quite enter into our feelings.”
3891
3892
“I know nothing of the large parties of London, sir--I never dine with
3893
any body.”
3894
3895
“Indeed! (in a tone of wonder and pity,) I had no idea that the law had
3896
been so great a slavery. Well, sir, the time must come when you will
3897
be paid for all this, when you will have little labour and great
3898
enjoyment.”
3899
3900
“My first enjoyment,” replied John Knightley, as they passed through the
3901
sweep-gate, “will be to find myself safe at Hartfield again.”
3902
3903
3904
3905
CHAPTER XIV
3906
3907
3908
Some change of countenance was necessary for each gentleman as they
3909
walked into Mrs. Weston's drawing-room;--Mr. Elton must compose his
3910
joyous looks, and Mr. John Knightley disperse his ill-humour. Mr.
3911
Elton must smile less, and Mr. John Knightley more, to fit them for the
3912
place.--Emma only might be as nature prompted, and shew herself just as
3913
happy as she was. To her it was real enjoyment to be with the Westons.
3914
Mr. Weston was a great favourite, and there was not a creature in the
3915
world to whom she spoke with such unreserve, as to his wife; not any
3916
one, to whom she related with such conviction of being listened to and
3917
understood, of being always interesting and always intelligible, the
3918
little affairs, arrangements, perplexities, and pleasures of her father
3919
and herself. She could tell nothing of Hartfield, in which Mrs. Weston
3920
had not a lively concern; and half an hour's uninterrupted communication
3921
of all those little matters on which the daily happiness of private life
3922
depends, was one of the first gratifications of each.
3923
3924
This was a pleasure which perhaps the whole day's visit might not
3925
afford, which certainly did not belong to the present half-hour; but the
3926
very sight of Mrs. Weston, her smile, her touch, her voice was grateful
3927
to Emma, and she determined to think as little as possible of Mr.
3928
Elton's oddities, or of any thing else unpleasant, and enjoy all that
3929
was enjoyable to the utmost.
3930
3931
The misfortune of Harriet's cold had been pretty well gone through
3932
before her arrival. Mr. Woodhouse had been safely seated long enough
3933
to give the history of it, besides all the history of his own and
3934
Isabella's coming, and of Emma's being to follow, and had indeed just
3935
got to the end of his satisfaction that James should come and see his
3936
daughter, when the others appeared, and Mrs. Weston, who had been almost
3937
wholly engrossed by her attentions to him, was able to turn away and
3938
welcome her dear Emma.
3939
3940
Emma's project of forgetting Mr. Elton for a while made her rather sorry
3941
to find, when they had all taken their places, that he was close to her.
3942
The difficulty was great of driving his strange insensibility towards
3943
Harriet, from her mind, while he not only sat at her elbow, but
3944
was continually obtruding his happy countenance on her notice, and
3945
solicitously addressing her upon every occasion. Instead of forgetting
3946
him, his behaviour was such that she could not avoid the internal
3947
suggestion of “Can it really be as my brother imagined? can it be
3948
possible for this man to be beginning to transfer his affections from
3949
Harriet to me?--Absurd and insufferable!”--Yet he would be so anxious
3950
for her being perfectly warm, would be so interested about her father,
3951
and so delighted with Mrs. Weston; and at last would begin admiring her
3952
drawings with so much zeal and so little knowledge as seemed terribly
3953
like a would-be lover, and made it some effort with her to preserve her
3954
good manners. For her own sake she could not be rude; and for Harriet's,
3955
in the hope that all would yet turn out right, she was even positively
3956
civil; but it was an effort; especially as something was going on
3957
amongst the others, in the most overpowering period of Mr. Elton's
3958
nonsense, which she particularly wished to listen to. She heard enough
3959
to know that Mr. Weston was giving some information about his son; she
3960
heard the words “my son,” and “Frank,” and “my son,” repeated several
3961
times over; and, from a few other half-syllables very much suspected
3962
that he was announcing an early visit from his son; but before she could
3963
quiet Mr. Elton, the subject was so completely past that any reviving
3964
question from her would have been awkward.
3965
3966
Now, it so happened that in spite of Emma's resolution of never
3967
marrying, there was something in the name, in the idea of Mr.
3968
Frank Churchill, which always interested her. She had frequently
3969
thought--especially since his father's marriage with Miss Taylor--that
3970
if she _were_ to marry, he was the very person to suit her in age,
3971
character and condition. He seemed by this connexion between the
3972
families, quite to belong to her. She could not but suppose it to be
3973
a match that every body who knew them must think of. That Mr. and Mrs.
3974
Weston did think of it, she was very strongly persuaded; and though
3975
not meaning to be induced by him, or by any body else, to give up a
3976
situation which she believed more replete with good than any she could
3977
change it for, she had a great curiosity to see him, a decided intention
3978
of finding him pleasant, of being liked by him to a certain degree, and
3979
a sort of pleasure in the idea of their being coupled in their friends'
3980
imaginations.
3981
3982
With such sensations, Mr. Elton's civilities were dreadfully ill-timed;
3983
but she had the comfort of appearing very polite, while feeling very
3984
cross--and of thinking that the rest of the visit could not possibly
3985
pass without bringing forward the same information again, or the
3986
substance of it, from the open-hearted Mr. Weston.--So it proved;--for
3987
when happily released from Mr. Elton, and seated by Mr. Weston,
3988
at dinner, he made use of the very first interval in the cares of
3989
hospitality, the very first leisure from the saddle of mutton, to say to
3990
her,
3991
3992
“We want only two more to be just the right number. I should like to see
3993
two more here,--your pretty little friend, Miss Smith, and my son--and
3994
then I should say we were quite complete. I believe you did not hear me
3995
telling the others in the drawing-room that we are expecting Frank.
3996
I had a letter from him this morning, and he will be with us within a
3997
fortnight.”
3998
3999
Emma spoke with a very proper degree of pleasure; and fully assented to
4000
his proposition of Mr. Frank Churchill and Miss Smith making their party
4001
quite complete.
4002
4003
“He has been wanting to come to us,” continued Mr. Weston, “ever since
4004
September: every letter has been full of it; but he cannot command his
4005
own time. He has those to please who must be pleased, and who (between
4006
ourselves) are sometimes to be pleased only by a good many sacrifices.
4007
But now I have no doubt of seeing him here about the second week in
4008
January.”
4009
4010
“What a very great pleasure it will be to you! and Mrs. Weston is so
4011
anxious to be acquainted with him, that she must be almost as happy as
4012
yourself.”
4013
4014
“Yes, she would be, but that she thinks there will be another put-off.
4015
She does not depend upon his coming so much as I do: but she does not
4016
know the parties so well as I do. The case, you see, is--(but this is
4017
quite between ourselves: I did not mention a syllable of it in the other
4018
room. There are secrets in all families, you know)--The case is, that a
4019
party of friends are invited to pay a visit at Enscombe in January; and
4020
that Frank's coming depends upon their being put off. If they are not
4021
put off, he cannot stir. But I know they will, because it is a family
4022
that a certain lady, of some consequence, at Enscombe, has a particular
4023
dislike to: and though it is thought necessary to invite them once in
4024
two or three years, they always are put off when it comes to the point.
4025
I have not the smallest doubt of the issue. I am as confident of seeing
4026
Frank here before the middle of January, as I am of being here myself:
4027
but your good friend there (nodding towards the upper end of the table)
4028
has so few vagaries herself, and has been so little used to them at
4029
Hartfield, that she cannot calculate on their effects, as I have been
4030
long in the practice of doing.”
4031
4032
“I am sorry there should be any thing like doubt in the case,” replied
4033
Emma; “but am disposed to side with you, Mr. Weston. If you think he
4034
will come, I shall think so too; for you know Enscombe.”
4035
4036
“Yes--I have some right to that knowledge; though I have never been at
4037
the place in my life.--She is an odd woman!--But I never allow myself
4038
to speak ill of her, on Frank's account; for I do believe her to be very
4039
fond of him. I used to think she was not capable of being fond of
4040
any body, except herself: but she has always been kind to him (in her
4041
way--allowing for little whims and caprices, and expecting every thing
4042
to be as she likes). And it is no small credit, in my opinion, to him,
4043
that he should excite such an affection; for, though I would not say
4044
it to any body else, she has no more heart than a stone to people in
4045
general; and the devil of a temper.”
4046
4047
Emma liked the subject so well, that she began upon it, to Mrs. Weston,
4048
very soon after their moving into the drawing-room: wishing her joy--yet
4049
observing, that she knew the first meeting must be rather alarming.--
4050
Mrs. Weston agreed to it; but added, that she should be very glad to be
4051
secure of undergoing the anxiety of a first meeting at the time talked
4052
of: “for I cannot depend upon his coming. I cannot be so sanguine as
4053
Mr. Weston. I am very much afraid that it will all end in nothing. Mr.
4054
Weston, I dare say, has been telling you exactly how the matter stands?”
4055
4056
“Yes--it seems to depend upon nothing but the ill-humour of Mrs.
4057
Churchill, which I imagine to be the most certain thing in the world.”
4058
4059
“My Emma!” replied Mrs. Weston, smiling, “what is the certainty
4060
of caprice?” Then turning to Isabella, who had not been attending
4061
before--“You must know, my dear Mrs. Knightley, that we are by no means
4062
so sure of seeing Mr. Frank Churchill, in my opinion, as his father
4063
thinks. It depends entirely upon his aunt's spirits and pleasure; in
4064
short, upon her temper. To you--to my two daughters--I may venture on
4065
the truth. Mrs. Churchill rules at Enscombe, and is a very odd-tempered
4066
woman; and his coming now, depends upon her being willing to spare him.”
4067
4068
“Oh, Mrs. Churchill; every body knows Mrs. Churchill,” replied Isabella:
4069
“and I am sure I never think of that poor young man without the greatest
4070
compassion. To be constantly living with an ill-tempered person, must
4071
be dreadful. It is what we happily have never known any thing of; but
4072
it must be a life of misery. What a blessing, that she never had any
4073
children! Poor little creatures, how unhappy she would have made them!”
4074
4075
Emma wished she had been alone with Mrs. Weston. She should then have
4076
heard more: Mrs. Weston would speak to her, with a degree of unreserve
4077
which she would not hazard with Isabella; and, she really believed,
4078
would scarcely try to conceal any thing relative to the Churchills
4079
from her, excepting those views on the young man, of which her own
4080
imagination had already given her such instinctive knowledge. But at
4081
present there was nothing more to be said. Mr. Woodhouse very soon
4082
followed them into the drawing-room. To be sitting long after
4083
dinner, was a confinement that he could not endure. Neither wine nor
4084
conversation was any thing to him; and gladly did he move to those with
4085
whom he was always comfortable.
4086
4087
While he talked to Isabella, however, Emma found an opportunity of
4088
saying,
4089
4090
“And so you do not consider this visit from your son as by any means
4091
certain. I am sorry for it. The introduction must be unpleasant,
4092
whenever it takes place; and the sooner it could be over, the better.”
4093
4094
“Yes; and every delay makes one more apprehensive of other delays. Even
4095
if this family, the Braithwaites, are put off, I am still afraid that
4096
some excuse may be found for disappointing us. I cannot bear to imagine
4097
any reluctance on his side; but I am sure there is a great wish on
4098
the Churchills' to keep him to themselves. There is jealousy. They
4099
are jealous even of his regard for his father. In short, I can feel no
4100
dependence on his coming, and I wish Mr. Weston were less sanguine.”
4101
4102
“He ought to come,” said Emma. “If he could stay only a couple of days,
4103
he ought to come; and one can hardly conceive a young man's not having
4104
it in his power to do as much as that. A young _woman_, if she fall into
4105
bad hands, may be teased, and kept at a distance from those she wants
4106
to be with; but one cannot comprehend a young _man_'s being under such
4107
restraint, as not to be able to spend a week with his father, if he
4108
likes it.”
4109
4110
“One ought to be at Enscombe, and know the ways of the family, before
4111
one decides upon what he can do,” replied Mrs. Weston. “One ought to
4112
use the same caution, perhaps, in judging of the conduct of any one
4113
individual of any one family; but Enscombe, I believe, certainly must
4114
not be judged by general rules: _she_ is so very unreasonable; and every
4115
thing gives way to her.”
4116
4117
“But she is so fond of the nephew: he is so very great a favourite. Now,
4118
according to my idea of Mrs. Churchill, it would be most natural, that
4119
while she makes no sacrifice for the comfort of the husband, to whom she
4120
owes every thing, while she exercises incessant caprice towards _him_,
4121
she should frequently be governed by the nephew, to whom she owes
4122
nothing at all.”
4123
4124
“My dearest Emma, do not pretend, with your sweet temper, to understand
4125
a bad one, or to lay down rules for it: you must let it go its own way.
4126
I have no doubt of his having, at times, considerable influence; but it
4127
may be perfectly impossible for him to know beforehand _when_ it will
4128
be.”
4129
4130
Emma listened, and then coolly said, “I shall not be satisfied, unless
4131
he comes.”
4132
4133
“He may have a great deal of influence on some points,” continued Mrs.
4134
Weston, “and on others, very little: and among those, on which she is
4135
beyond his reach, it is but too likely, may be this very circumstance of
4136
his coming away from them to visit us.”
4137
4138
4139
4140
CHAPTER XV
4141
4142
4143
Mr. Woodhouse was soon ready for his tea; and when he had drank his
4144
tea he was quite ready to go home; and it was as much as his three
4145
companions could do, to entertain away his notice of the lateness of
4146
the hour, before the other gentlemen appeared. Mr. Weston was chatty and
4147
convivial, and no friend to early separations of any sort; but at last
4148
the drawing-room party did receive an augmentation. Mr. Elton, in very
4149
good spirits, was one of the first to walk in. Mrs. Weston and Emma
4150
were sitting together on a sofa. He joined them immediately, and, with
4151
scarcely an invitation, seated himself between them.
4152
4153
Emma, in good spirits too, from the amusement afforded her mind by
4154
the expectation of Mr. Frank Churchill, was willing to forget his late
4155
improprieties, and be as well satisfied with him as before, and on his
4156
making Harriet his very first subject, was ready to listen with most
4157
friendly smiles.
4158
4159
He professed himself extremely anxious about her fair friend--her fair,
4160
lovely, amiable friend. “Did she know?--had she heard any thing about
4161
her, since their being at Randalls?--he felt much anxiety--he must
4162
confess that the nature of her complaint alarmed him considerably.”
4163
And in this style he talked on for some time very properly, not much
4164
attending to any answer, but altogether sufficiently awake to the terror
4165
of a bad sore throat; and Emma was quite in charity with him.
4166
4167
But at last there seemed a perverse turn; it seemed all at once as if he
4168
were more afraid of its being a bad sore throat on her account, than on
4169
Harriet's--more anxious that she should escape the infection, than
4170
that there should be no infection in the complaint. He began with great
4171
earnestness to entreat her to refrain from visiting the sick-chamber
4172
again, for the present--to entreat her to _promise_ _him_ not to venture
4173
into such hazard till he had seen Mr. Perry and learnt his opinion; and
4174
though she tried to laugh it off and bring the subject back into its
4175
proper course, there was no putting an end to his extreme solicitude
4176
about her. She was vexed. It did appear--there was no concealing
4177
it--exactly like the pretence of being in love with her, instead of
4178
Harriet; an inconstancy, if real, the most contemptible and abominable!
4179
and she had difficulty in behaving with temper. He turned to Mrs. Weston
4180
to implore her assistance, “Would not she give him her support?--would
4181
not she add her persuasions to his, to induce Miss Woodhouse not to go
4182
to Mrs. Goddard's till it were certain that Miss Smith's disorder had
4183
no infection? He could not be satisfied without a promise--would not she
4184
give him her influence in procuring it?”
4185
4186
“So scrupulous for others,” he continued, “and yet so careless for
4187
herself! She wanted me to nurse my cold by staying at home to-day, and
4188
yet will not promise to avoid the danger of catching an ulcerated sore
4189
throat herself. Is this fair, Mrs. Weston?--Judge between us. Have not I
4190
some right to complain? I am sure of your kind support and aid.”
4191
4192
Emma saw Mrs. Weston's surprize, and felt that it must be great, at an
4193
address which, in words and manner, was assuming to himself the right of
4194
first interest in her; and as for herself, she was too much provoked and
4195
offended to have the power of directly saying any thing to the purpose.
4196
She could only give him a look; but it was such a look as she thought
4197
must restore him to his senses, and then left the sofa, removing to a
4198
seat by her sister, and giving her all her attention.
4199
4200
She had not time to know how Mr. Elton took the reproof, so rapidly did
4201
another subject succeed; for Mr. John Knightley now came into the room
4202
from examining the weather, and opened on them all with the information
4203
of the ground being covered with snow, and of its still snowing
4204
fast, with a strong drifting wind; concluding with these words to Mr.
4205
Woodhouse:
4206
4207
“This will prove a spirited beginning of your winter engagements,
4208
sir. Something new for your coachman and horses to be making their way
4209
through a storm of snow.”
4210
4211
Poor Mr. Woodhouse was silent from consternation; but every body else
4212
had something to say; every body was either surprized or not surprized,
4213
and had some question to ask, or some comfort to offer. Mrs. Weston
4214
and Emma tried earnestly to cheer him and turn his attention from his
4215
son-in-law, who was pursuing his triumph rather unfeelingly.
4216
4217
“I admired your resolution very much, sir,” said he, “in venturing out
4218
in such weather, for of course you saw there would be snow very soon.
4219
Every body must have seen the snow coming on. I admired your spirit; and
4220
I dare say we shall get home very well. Another hour or two's snow can
4221
hardly make the road impassable; and we are two carriages; if one is
4222
blown over in the bleak part of the common field there will be the other
4223
at hand. I dare say we shall be all safe at Hartfield before midnight.”
4224
4225
Mr. Weston, with triumph of a different sort, was confessing that he
4226
had known it to be snowing some time, but had not said a word, lest
4227
it should make Mr. Woodhouse uncomfortable, and be an excuse for his
4228
hurrying away. As to there being any quantity of snow fallen or likely
4229
to fall to impede their return, that was a mere joke; he was afraid they
4230
would find no difficulty. He wished the road might be impassable, that
4231
he might be able to keep them all at Randalls; and with the utmost
4232
good-will was sure that accommodation might be found for every body,
4233
calling on his wife to agree with him, that with a little contrivance,
4234
every body might be lodged, which she hardly knew how to do, from the
4235
consciousness of there being but two spare rooms in the house.
4236
4237
“What is to be done, my dear Emma?--what is to be done?” was Mr.
4238
Woodhouse's first exclamation, and all that he could say for some
4239
time. To her he looked for comfort; and her assurances of safety, her
4240
representation of the excellence of the horses, and of James, and of
4241
their having so many friends about them, revived him a little.
4242
4243
His eldest daughter's alarm was equal to his own. The horror of being
4244
blocked up at Randalls, while her children were at Hartfield, was full
4245
in her imagination; and fancying the road to be now just passable for
4246
adventurous people, but in a state that admitted no delay, she was eager
4247
to have it settled, that her father and Emma should remain at Randalls,
4248
while she and her husband set forward instantly through all the possible
4249
accumulations of drifted snow that might impede them.
4250
4251
“You had better order the carriage directly, my love,” said she; “I dare
4252
say we shall be able to get along, if we set off directly; and if we
4253
do come to any thing very bad, I can get out and walk. I am not at all
4254
afraid. I should not mind walking half the way. I could change my shoes,
4255
you know, the moment I got home; and it is not the sort of thing that
4256
gives me cold.”
4257
4258
“Indeed!” replied he. “Then, my dear Isabella, it is the most
4259
extraordinary sort of thing in the world, for in general every thing
4260
does give you cold. Walk home!--you are prettily shod for walking home,
4261
I dare say. It will be bad enough for the horses.”
4262
4263
Isabella turned to Mrs. Weston for her approbation of the plan. Mrs.
4264
Weston could only approve. Isabella then went to Emma; but Emma could
4265
not so entirely give up the hope of their being all able to get away;
4266
and they were still discussing the point, when Mr. Knightley, who had
4267
left the room immediately after his brother's first report of the snow,
4268
came back again, and told them that he had been out of doors to examine,
4269
and could answer for there not being the smallest difficulty in their
4270
getting home, whenever they liked it, either now or an hour hence. He
4271
had gone beyond the sweep--some way along the Highbury road--the snow
4272
was nowhere above half an inch deep--in many places hardly enough to
4273
whiten the ground; a very few flakes were falling at present, but the
4274
clouds were parting, and there was every appearance of its being soon
4275
over. He had seen the coachmen, and they both agreed with him in there
4276
being nothing to apprehend.
4277
4278
To Isabella, the relief of such tidings was very great, and they were
4279
scarcely less acceptable to Emma on her father's account, who
4280
was immediately set as much at ease on the subject as his nervous
4281
constitution allowed; but the alarm that had been raised could not be
4282
appeased so as to admit of any comfort for him while he continued at
4283
Randalls. He was satisfied of there being no present danger in returning
4284
home, but no assurances could convince him that it was safe to stay; and
4285
while the others were variously urging and recommending, Mr. Knightley
4286
and Emma settled it in a few brief sentences: thus--
4287
4288
“Your father will not be easy; why do not you go?”
4289
4290
“I am ready, if the others are.”
4291
4292
“Shall I ring the bell?”
4293
4294
“Yes, do.”
4295
4296
And the bell was rung, and the carriages spoken for. A few minutes more,
4297
and Emma hoped to see one troublesome companion deposited in his own
4298
house, to get sober and cool, and the other recover his temper and
4299
happiness when this visit of hardship were over.
4300
4301
The carriage came: and Mr. Woodhouse, always the first object on such
4302
occasions, was carefully attended to his own by Mr. Knightley and Mr.
4303
Weston; but not all that either could say could prevent some renewal
4304
of alarm at the sight of the snow which had actually fallen, and the
4305
discovery of a much darker night than he had been prepared for. “He was
4306
afraid they should have a very bad drive. He was afraid poor Isabella
4307
would not like it. And there would be poor Emma in the carriage behind.
4308
He did not know what they had best do. They must keep as much together
4309
as they could;” and James was talked to, and given a charge to go very
4310
slow and wait for the other carriage.
4311
4312
Isabella stept in after her father; John Knightley, forgetting that he
4313
did not belong to their party, stept in after his wife very naturally;
4314
so that Emma found, on being escorted and followed into the second
4315
carriage by Mr. Elton, that the door was to be lawfully shut on them,
4316
and that they were to have a tete-a-tete drive. It would not have been
4317
the awkwardness of a moment, it would have been rather a pleasure,
4318
previous to the suspicions of this very day; she could have talked to
4319
him of Harriet, and the three-quarters of a mile would have seemed but
4320
one. But now, she would rather it had not happened. She believed he had
4321
been drinking too much of Mr. Weston's good wine, and felt sure that he
4322
would want to be talking nonsense.
4323
4324
To restrain him as much as might be, by her own manners, she was
4325
immediately preparing to speak with exquisite calmness and gravity of
4326
the weather and the night; but scarcely had she begun, scarcely had they
4327
passed the sweep-gate and joined the other carriage, than she found her
4328
subject cut up--her hand seized--her attention demanded, and Mr. Elton
4329
actually making violent love to her: availing himself of the precious
4330
opportunity, declaring sentiments which must be already well known,
4331
hoping--fearing--adoring--ready to die if she refused him; but
4332
flattering himself that his ardent attachment and unequalled love and
4333
unexampled passion could not fail of having some effect, and in short,
4334
very much resolved on being seriously accepted as soon as possible. It
4335
really was so. Without scruple--without apology--without much apparent
4336
diffidence, Mr. Elton, the lover of Harriet, was professing himself
4337
_her_ lover. She tried to stop him; but vainly; he would go on, and say
4338
it all. Angry as she was, the thought of the moment made her resolve to
4339
restrain herself when she did speak. She felt that half this folly must
4340
be drunkenness, and therefore could hope that it might belong only to
4341
the passing hour. Accordingly, with a mixture of the serious and the
4342
playful, which she hoped would best suit his half and half state, she
4343
replied,
4344
4345
“I am very much astonished, Mr. Elton. This to _me_! you forget
4346
yourself--you take me for my friend--any message to Miss Smith I shall
4347
be happy to deliver; but no more of this to _me_, if you please.”
4348
4349
“Miss Smith!--message to Miss Smith!--What could she possibly
4350
mean!”--And he repeated her words with such assurance of accent, such
4351
boastful pretence of amazement, that she could not help replying with
4352
quickness,
4353
4354
“Mr. Elton, this is the most extraordinary conduct! and I can account
4355
for it only in one way; you are not yourself, or you could not speak
4356
either to me, or of Harriet, in such a manner. Command yourself enough
4357
to say no more, and I will endeavour to forget it.”
4358
4359
But Mr. Elton had only drunk wine enough to elevate his spirits, not at
4360
all to confuse his intellects. He perfectly knew his own meaning; and
4361
having warmly protested against her suspicion as most injurious, and
4362
slightly touched upon his respect for Miss Smith as her friend,--but
4363
acknowledging his wonder that Miss Smith should be mentioned at all,--he
4364
resumed the subject of his own passion, and was very urgent for a
4365
favourable answer.
4366
4367
As she thought less of his inebriety, she thought more of his
4368
inconstancy and presumption; and with fewer struggles for politeness,
4369
replied,
4370
4371
“It is impossible for me to doubt any longer. You have made yourself
4372
too clear. Mr. Elton, my astonishment is much beyond any thing I can
4373
express. After such behaviour, as I have witnessed during the last
4374
month, to Miss Smith--such attentions as I have been in the daily
4375
habit of observing--to be addressing me in this manner--this is an
4376
unsteadiness of character, indeed, which I had not supposed possible!
4377
Believe me, sir, I am far, very far, from gratified in being the object
4378
of such professions.”
4379
4380
“Good Heaven!” cried Mr. Elton, “what can be the meaning of this?--Miss
4381
Smith!--I never thought of Miss Smith in the whole course of my
4382
existence--never paid her any attentions, but as your friend: never
4383
cared whether she were dead or alive, but as your friend. If she
4384
has fancied otherwise, her own wishes have misled her, and I am very
4385
sorry--extremely sorry--But, Miss Smith, indeed!--Oh! Miss Woodhouse!
4386
who can think of Miss Smith, when Miss Woodhouse is near! No, upon my
4387
honour, there is no unsteadiness of character. I have thought only of
4388
you. I protest against having paid the smallest attention to any one
4389
else. Every thing that I have said or done, for many weeks past, has
4390
been with the sole view of marking my adoration of yourself. You
4391
cannot really, seriously, doubt it. No!--(in an accent meant to be
4392
insinuating)--I am sure you have seen and understood me.”
4393
4394
It would be impossible to say what Emma felt, on hearing this--which
4395
of all her unpleasant sensations was uppermost. She was too completely
4396
overpowered to be immediately able to reply: and two moments of silence
4397
being ample encouragement for Mr. Elton's sanguine state of mind, he
4398
tried to take her hand again, as he joyously exclaimed--
4399
4400
“Charming Miss Woodhouse! allow me to interpret this interesting
4401
silence. It confesses that you have long understood me.”
4402
4403
“No, sir,” cried Emma, “it confesses no such thing. So far from having
4404
long understood you, I have been in a most complete error with respect
4405
to your views, till this moment. As to myself, I am very sorry that you
4406
should have been giving way to any feelings--Nothing could be farther
4407
from my wishes--your attachment to my friend Harriet--your pursuit of
4408
her, (pursuit, it appeared,) gave me great pleasure, and I have been
4409
very earnestly wishing you success: but had I supposed that she were not
4410
your attraction to Hartfield, I should certainly have thought you judged
4411
ill in making your visits so frequent. Am I to believe that you have
4412
never sought to recommend yourself particularly to Miss Smith?--that you
4413
have never thought seriously of her?”
4414
4415
“Never, madam,” cried he, affronted in his turn: “never, I assure you.
4416
_I_ think seriously of Miss Smith!--Miss Smith is a very good sort of
4417
girl; and I should be happy to see her respectably settled. I wish
4418
her extremely well: and, no doubt, there are men who might not object
4419
to--Every body has their level: but as for myself, I am not, I think,
4420
quite so much at a loss. I need not so totally despair of an equal
4421
alliance, as to be addressing myself to Miss Smith!--No, madam, my
4422
visits to Hartfield have been for yourself only; and the encouragement I
4423
received--”
4424
4425
“Encouragement!--I give you encouragement!--Sir, you have been entirely
4426
mistaken in supposing it. I have seen you only as the admirer of my
4427
friend. In no other light could you have been more to me than a common
4428
acquaintance. I am exceedingly sorry: but it is well that the mistake
4429
ends where it does. Had the same behaviour continued, Miss Smith might
4430
have been led into a misconception of your views; not being aware,
4431
probably, any more than myself, of the very great inequality which you
4432
are so sensible of. But, as it is, the disappointment is single, and, I
4433
trust, will not be lasting. I have no thoughts of matrimony at present.”
4434
4435
He was too angry to say another word; her manner too decided to invite
4436
supplication; and in this state of swelling resentment, and mutually
4437
deep mortification, they had to continue together a few minutes longer,
4438
for the fears of Mr. Woodhouse had confined them to a foot-pace. If
4439
there had not been so much anger, there would have been desperate
4440
awkwardness; but their straightforward emotions left no room for the
4441
little zigzags of embarrassment. Without knowing when the carriage
4442
turned into Vicarage Lane, or when it stopped, they found themselves,
4443
all at once, at the door of his house; and he was out before another
4444
syllable passed.--Emma then felt it indispensable to wish him a good
4445
night. The compliment was just returned, coldly and proudly; and, under
4446
indescribable irritation of spirits, she was then conveyed to Hartfield.
4447
4448
There she was welcomed, with the utmost delight, by her father, who
4449
had been trembling for the dangers of a solitary drive from Vicarage
4450
Lane--turning a corner which he could never bear to think of--and in
4451
strange hands--a mere common coachman--no James; and there it seemed as
4452
if her return only were wanted to make every thing go well: for Mr.
4453
John Knightley, ashamed of his ill-humour, was now all kindness and
4454
attention; and so particularly solicitous for the comfort of her
4455
father, as to seem--if not quite ready to join him in a basin of
4456
gruel--perfectly sensible of its being exceedingly wholesome; and the
4457
day was concluding in peace and comfort to all their little party,
4458
except herself.--But her mind had never been in such perturbation; and
4459
it needed a very strong effort to appear attentive and cheerful till the
4460
usual hour of separating allowed her the relief of quiet reflection.
4461
4462
4463
4464
CHAPTER XVI
4465
4466
4467
The hair was curled, and the maid sent away, and Emma sat down to think
4468
and be miserable.--It was a wretched business indeed!--Such an overthrow
4469
of every thing she had been wishing for!--Such a development of every
4470
thing most unwelcome!--Such a blow for Harriet!--that was the worst
4471
of all. Every part of it brought pain and humiliation, of some sort or
4472
other; but, compared with the evil to Harriet, all was light; and
4473
she would gladly have submitted to feel yet more mistaken--more in
4474
error--more disgraced by mis-judgment, than she actually was, could the
4475
effects of her blunders have been confined to herself.
4476
4477
“If I had not persuaded Harriet into liking the man, I could have
4478
borne any thing. He might have doubled his presumption to me--but poor
4479
Harriet!”
4480
4481
How she could have been so deceived!--He protested that he had never
4482
thought seriously of Harriet--never! She looked back as well as
4483
she could; but it was all confusion. She had taken up the idea, she
4484
supposed, and made every thing bend to it. His manners, however, must
4485
have been unmarked, wavering, dubious, or she could not have been so
4486
misled.
4487
4488
The picture!--How eager he had been about the picture!--and the
4489
charade!--and an hundred other circumstances;--how clearly they had
4490
seemed to point at Harriet. To be sure, the charade, with its “ready
4491
wit”--but then the “soft eyes”--in fact it suited neither; it was
4492
a jumble without taste or truth. Who could have seen through such
4493
thick-headed nonsense?
4494
4495
Certainly she had often, especially of late, thought his manners to
4496
herself unnecessarily gallant; but it had passed as his way, as a mere
4497
error of judgment, of knowledge, of taste, as one proof among others
4498
that he had not always lived in the best society, that with all the
4499
gentleness of his address, true elegance was sometimes wanting; but,
4500
till this very day, she had never, for an instant, suspected it to mean
4501
any thing but grateful respect to her as Harriet's friend.
4502
4503
To Mr. John Knightley was she indebted for her first idea on the
4504
subject, for the first start of its possibility. There was no denying
4505
that those brothers had penetration. She remembered what Mr. Knightley
4506
had once said to her about Mr. Elton, the caution he had given,
4507
the conviction he had professed that Mr. Elton would never marry
4508
indiscreetly; and blushed to think how much truer a knowledge of his
4509
character had been there shewn than any she had reached herself. It
4510
was dreadfully mortifying; but Mr. Elton was proving himself, in many
4511
respects, the very reverse of what she had meant and believed him;
4512
proud, assuming, conceited; very full of his own claims, and little
4513
concerned about the feelings of others.
4514
4515
Contrary to the usual course of things, Mr. Elton's wanting to pay his
4516
addresses to her had sunk him in her opinion. His professions and his
4517
proposals did him no service. She thought nothing of his attachment,
4518
and was insulted by his hopes. He wanted to marry well, and having the
4519
arrogance to raise his eyes to her, pretended to be in love; but she was
4520
perfectly easy as to his not suffering any disappointment that need be
4521
cared for. There had been no real affection either in his language or
4522
manners. Sighs and fine words had been given in abundance; but she could
4523
hardly devise any set of expressions, or fancy any tone of voice, less
4524
allied with real love. She need not trouble herself to pity him. He
4525
only wanted to aggrandise and enrich himself; and if Miss Woodhouse
4526
of Hartfield, the heiress of thirty thousand pounds, were not quite so
4527
easily obtained as he had fancied, he would soon try for Miss Somebody
4528
else with twenty, or with ten.
4529
4530
But--that he should talk of encouragement, should consider her as aware
4531
of his views, accepting his attentions, meaning (in short), to marry
4532
him!--should suppose himself her equal in connexion or mind!--look down
4533
upon her friend, so well understanding the gradations of rank below
4534
him, and be so blind to what rose above, as to fancy himself shewing no
4535
presumption in addressing her!--It was most provoking.
4536
4537
Perhaps it was not fair to expect him to feel how very much he was her
4538
inferior in talent, and all the elegancies of mind. The very want of
4539
such equality might prevent his perception of it; but he must know that
4540
in fortune and consequence she was greatly his superior. He must
4541
know that the Woodhouses had been settled for several generations at
4542
Hartfield, the younger branch of a very ancient family--and that the
4543
Eltons were nobody. The landed property of Hartfield certainly was
4544
inconsiderable, being but a sort of notch in the Donwell Abbey estate,
4545
to which all the rest of Highbury belonged; but their fortune, from
4546
other sources, was such as to make them scarcely secondary to Donwell
4547
Abbey itself, in every other kind of consequence; and the Woodhouses had
4548
long held a high place in the consideration of the neighbourhood which
4549
Mr. Elton had first entered not two years ago, to make his way as he
4550
could, without any alliances but in trade, or any thing to recommend him
4551
to notice but his situation and his civility.--But he had fancied her
4552
in love with him; that evidently must have been his dependence; and
4553
after raving a little about the seeming incongruity of gentle manners
4554
and a conceited head, Emma was obliged in common honesty to stop
4555
and admit that her own behaviour to him had been so complaisant and
4556
obliging, so full of courtesy and attention, as (supposing her real
4557
motive unperceived) might warrant a man of ordinary observation and
4558
delicacy, like Mr. Elton, in fancying himself a very decided favourite.
4559
If _she_ had so misinterpreted his feelings, she had little right to
4560
wonder that _he_, with self-interest to blind him, should have mistaken
4561
hers.
4562
4563
The first error and the worst lay at her door. It was foolish, it was
4564
wrong, to take so active a part in bringing any two people together. It
4565
was adventuring too far, assuming too much, making light of what
4566
ought to be serious, a trick of what ought to be simple. She was quite
4567
concerned and ashamed, and resolved to do such things no more.
4568
4569
“Here have I,” said she, “actually talked poor Harriet into being very
4570
much attached to this man. She might never have thought of him but for
4571
me; and certainly never would have thought of him with hope, if I had
4572
not assured her of his attachment, for she is as modest and humble as I
4573
used to think him. Oh! that I had been satisfied with persuading her not
4574
to accept young Martin. There I was quite right. That was well done
4575
of me; but there I should have stopped, and left the rest to time and
4576
chance. I was introducing her into good company, and giving her the
4577
opportunity of pleasing some one worth having; I ought not to have
4578
attempted more. But now, poor girl, her peace is cut up for some time.
4579
I have been but half a friend to her; and if she were _not_ to feel this
4580
disappointment so very much, I am sure I have not an idea of any body
4581
else who would be at all desirable for her;--William Coxe--Oh! no, I
4582
could not endure William Coxe--a pert young lawyer.”
4583
4584
She stopt to blush and laugh at her own relapse, and then resumed a more
4585
serious, more dispiriting cogitation upon what had been, and might be,
4586
and must be. The distressing explanation she had to make to Harriet, and
4587
all that poor Harriet would be suffering, with the awkwardness of
4588
future meetings, the difficulties of continuing or discontinuing the
4589
acquaintance, of subduing feelings, concealing resentment, and avoiding
4590
eclat, were enough to occupy her in most unmirthful reflections some
4591
time longer, and she went to bed at last with nothing settled but the
4592
conviction of her having blundered most dreadfully.
4593
4594
To youth and natural cheerfulness like Emma's, though under temporary
4595
gloom at night, the return of day will hardly fail to bring return of
4596
spirits. The youth and cheerfulness of morning are in happy analogy,
4597
and of powerful operation; and if the distress be not poignant enough
4598
to keep the eyes unclosed, they will be sure to open to sensations of
4599
softened pain and brighter hope.
4600
4601
Emma got up on the morrow more disposed for comfort than she had gone
4602
to bed, more ready to see alleviations of the evil before her, and to
4603
depend on getting tolerably out of it.
4604
4605
It was a great consolation that Mr. Elton should not be really in
4606
love with her, or so particularly amiable as to make it shocking to
4607
disappoint him--that Harriet's nature should not be of that superior
4608
sort in which the feelings are most acute and retentive--and that there
4609
could be no necessity for any body's knowing what had passed except the
4610
three principals, and especially for her father's being given a moment's
4611
uneasiness about it.
4612
4613
These were very cheering thoughts; and the sight of a great deal of snow
4614
on the ground did her further service, for any thing was welcome that
4615
might justify their all three being quite asunder at present.
4616
4617
The weather was most favourable for her; though Christmas Day, she
4618
could not go to church. Mr. Woodhouse would have been miserable had his
4619
daughter attempted it, and she was therefore safe from either exciting
4620
or receiving unpleasant and most unsuitable ideas. The ground covered
4621
with snow, and the atmosphere in that unsettled state between frost and
4622
thaw, which is of all others the most unfriendly for exercise, every
4623
morning beginning in rain or snow, and every evening setting in to
4624
freeze, she was for many days a most honourable prisoner. No intercourse
4625
with Harriet possible but by note; no church for her on Sunday any
4626
more than on Christmas Day; and no need to find excuses for Mr. Elton's
4627
absenting himself.
4628
4629
It was weather which might fairly confine every body at home; and though
4630
she hoped and believed him to be really taking comfort in some society
4631
or other, it was very pleasant to have her father so well satisfied with
4632
his being all alone in his own house, too wise to stir out; and to
4633
hear him say to Mr. Knightley, whom no weather could keep entirely from
4634
them,--
4635
4636
“Ah! Mr. Knightley, why do not you stay at home like poor Mr. Elton?”
4637
4638
These days of confinement would have been, but for her private
4639
perplexities, remarkably comfortable, as such seclusion exactly suited
4640
her brother, whose feelings must always be of great importance to
4641
his companions; and he had, besides, so thoroughly cleared off his
4642
ill-humour at Randalls, that his amiableness never failed him during the
4643
rest of his stay at Hartfield. He was always agreeable and obliging,
4644
and speaking pleasantly of every body. But with all the hopes of
4645
cheerfulness, and all the present comfort of delay, there was still such
4646
an evil hanging over her in the hour of explanation with Harriet, as
4647
made it impossible for Emma to be ever perfectly at ease.
4648
4649
4650
4651
CHAPTER XVII
4652
4653
4654
Mr. and Mrs. John Knightley were not detained long at Hartfield. The
4655
weather soon improved enough for those to move who must move; and Mr.
4656
Woodhouse having, as usual, tried to persuade his daughter to stay
4657
behind with all her children, was obliged to see the whole party
4658
set off, and return to his lamentations over the destiny of poor
4659
Isabella;--which poor Isabella, passing her life with those she doated
4660
on, full of their merits, blind to their faults, and always innocently
4661
busy, might have been a model of right feminine happiness.
4662
4663
The evening of the very day on which they went brought a note from Mr.
4664
Elton to Mr. Woodhouse, a long, civil, ceremonious note, to say, with
4665
Mr. Elton's best compliments, “that he was proposing to leave Highbury
4666
the following morning in his way to Bath; where, in compliance with
4667
the pressing entreaties of some friends, he had engaged to spend a few
4668
weeks, and very much regretted the impossibility he was under, from
4669
various circumstances of weather and business, of taking a personal
4670
leave of Mr. Woodhouse, of whose friendly civilities he should ever
4671
retain a grateful sense--and had Mr. Woodhouse any commands, should be
4672
happy to attend to them.”
4673
4674
Emma was most agreeably surprized.--Mr. Elton's absence just at this
4675
time was the very thing to be desired. She admired him for contriving
4676
it, though not able to give him much credit for the manner in which it
4677
was announced. Resentment could not have been more plainly spoken than
4678
in a civility to her father, from which she was so pointedly excluded.
4679
She had not even a share in his opening compliments.--Her name was not
4680
mentioned;--and there was so striking a change in all this, and such an
4681
ill-judged solemnity of leave-taking in his graceful acknowledgments, as
4682
she thought, at first, could not escape her father's suspicion.
4683
4684
It did, however.--Her father was quite taken up with the surprize of so
4685
sudden a journey, and his fears that Mr. Elton might never get safely to
4686
the end of it, and saw nothing extraordinary in his language. It was a
4687
very useful note, for it supplied them with fresh matter for thought
4688
and conversation during the rest of their lonely evening. Mr. Woodhouse
4689
talked over his alarms, and Emma was in spirits to persuade them away
4690
with all her usual promptitude.
4691
4692
She now resolved to keep Harriet no longer in the dark. She had reason
4693
to believe her nearly recovered from her cold, and it was desirable that
4694
she should have as much time as possible for getting the better of
4695
her other complaint before the gentleman's return. She went to Mrs.
4696
Goddard's accordingly the very next day, to undergo the necessary
4697
penance of communication; and a severe one it was.--She had to destroy
4698
all the hopes which she had been so industriously feeding--to appear in
4699
the ungracious character of the one preferred--and acknowledge herself
4700
grossly mistaken and mis-judging in all her ideas on one subject, all
4701
her observations, all her convictions, all her prophecies for the last
4702
six weeks.
4703
4704
The confession completely renewed her first shame--and the sight of
4705
Harriet's tears made her think that she should never be in charity with
4706
herself again.
4707
4708
Harriet bore the intelligence very well--blaming nobody--and in every
4709
thing testifying such an ingenuousness of disposition and lowly opinion
4710
of herself, as must appear with particular advantage at that moment to
4711
her friend.
4712
4713
Emma was in the humour to value simplicity and modesty to the utmost;
4714
and all that was amiable, all that ought to be attaching, seemed on
4715
Harriet's side, not her own. Harriet did not consider herself as having
4716
any thing to complain of. The affection of such a man as Mr. Elton
4717
would have been too great a distinction.--She never could have deserved
4718
him--and nobody but so partial and kind a friend as Miss Woodhouse would
4719
have thought it possible.
4720
4721
Her tears fell abundantly--but her grief was so truly artless, that
4722
no dignity could have made it more respectable in Emma's eyes--and
4723
she listened to her and tried to console her with all her heart and
4724
understanding--really for the time convinced that Harriet was the
4725
superior creature of the two--and that to resemble her would be more for
4726
her own welfare and happiness than all that genius or intelligence could
4727
do.
4728
4729
It was rather too late in the day to set about being simple-minded and
4730
ignorant; but she left her with every previous resolution confirmed of
4731
being humble and discreet, and repressing imagination all the rest of
4732
her life. Her second duty now, inferior only to her father's claims, was
4733
to promote Harriet's comfort, and endeavour to prove her own affection
4734
in some better method than by match-making. She got her to Hartfield,
4735
and shewed her the most unvarying kindness, striving to occupy and
4736
amuse her, and by books and conversation, to drive Mr. Elton from her
4737
thoughts.
4738
4739
Time, she knew, must be allowed for this being thoroughly done; and
4740
she could suppose herself but an indifferent judge of such matters in
4741
general, and very inadequate to sympathise in an attachment to Mr. Elton
4742
in particular; but it seemed to her reasonable that at Harriet's age,
4743
and with the entire extinction of all hope, such a progress might be
4744
made towards a state of composure by the time of Mr. Elton's return, as
4745
to allow them all to meet again in the common routine of acquaintance,
4746
without any danger of betraying sentiments or increasing them.
4747
4748
Harriet did think him all perfection, and maintained the non-existence
4749
of any body equal to him in person or goodness--and did, in truth,
4750
prove herself more resolutely in love than Emma had foreseen; but yet
4751
it appeared to her so natural, so inevitable to strive against an
4752
inclination of that sort _unrequited_, that she could not comprehend its
4753
continuing very long in equal force.
4754
4755
If Mr. Elton, on his return, made his own indifference as evident and
4756
indubitable as she could not doubt he would anxiously do, she could not
4757
imagine Harriet's persisting to place her happiness in the sight or the
4758
recollection of him.
4759
4760
Their being fixed, so absolutely fixed, in the same place, was bad for
4761
each, for all three. Not one of them had the power of removal, or of
4762
effecting any material change of society. They must encounter each
4763
other, and make the best of it.
4764
4765
Harriet was farther unfortunate in the tone of her companions at Mrs.
4766
Goddard's; Mr. Elton being the adoration of all the teachers and great
4767
girls in the school; and it must be at Hartfield only that she could
4768
have any chance of hearing him spoken of with cooling moderation or
4769
repellent truth. Where the wound had been given, there must the cure be
4770
found if anywhere; and Emma felt that, till she saw her in the way of
4771
cure, there could be no true peace for herself.
4772
4773
4774
4775
CHAPTER XVIII
4776
4777
4778
Mr. Frank Churchill did not come. When the time proposed drew near, Mrs.
4779
Weston's fears were justified in the arrival of a letter of excuse. For
4780
the present, he could not be spared, to his “very great mortification
4781
and regret; but still he looked forward with the hope of coming to
4782
Randalls at no distant period.”
4783
4784
Mrs. Weston was exceedingly disappointed--much more disappointed, in
4785
fact, than her husband, though her dependence on seeing the young man
4786
had been so much more sober: but a sanguine temper, though for ever
4787
expecting more good than occurs, does not always pay for its hopes by
4788
any proportionate depression. It soon flies over the present failure,
4789
and begins to hope again. For half an hour Mr. Weston was surprized and
4790
sorry; but then he began to perceive that Frank's coming two or three
4791
months later would be a much better plan; better time of year;
4792
better weather; and that he would be able, without any doubt, to stay
4793
considerably longer with them than if he had come sooner.
4794
4795
These feelings rapidly restored his comfort, while Mrs. Weston, of
4796
a more apprehensive disposition, foresaw nothing but a repetition of
4797
excuses and delays; and after all her concern for what her husband was
4798
to suffer, suffered a great deal more herself.
4799
4800
Emma was not at this time in a state of spirits to care really about Mr.
4801
Frank Churchill's not coming, except as a disappointment at Randalls.
4802
The acquaintance at present had no charm for her. She wanted, rather, to
4803
be quiet, and out of temptation; but still, as it was desirable that she
4804
should appear, in general, like her usual self, she took care to express
4805
as much interest in the circumstance, and enter as warmly into Mr.
4806
and Mrs. Weston's disappointment, as might naturally belong to their
4807
friendship.
4808
4809
She was the first to announce it to Mr. Knightley; and exclaimed quite
4810
as much as was necessary, (or, being acting a part, perhaps rather
4811
more,) at the conduct of the Churchills, in keeping him away. She then
4812
proceeded to say a good deal more than she felt, of the advantage of
4813
such an addition to their confined society in Surry; the pleasure of
4814
looking at somebody new; the gala-day to Highbury entire, which the
4815
sight of him would have made; and ending with reflections on the
4816
Churchills again, found herself directly involved in a disagreement
4817
with Mr. Knightley; and, to her great amusement, perceived that she was
4818
taking the other side of the question from her real opinion, and making
4819
use of Mrs. Weston's arguments against herself.
4820
4821
“The Churchills are very likely in fault,” said Mr. Knightley, coolly;
4822
“but I dare say he might come if he would.”
4823
4824
“I do not know why you should say so. He wishes exceedingly to come; but
4825
his uncle and aunt will not spare him.”
4826
4827
“I cannot believe that he has not the power of coming, if he made a
4828
point of it. It is too unlikely, for me to believe it without proof.”
4829
4830
“How odd you are! What has Mr. Frank Churchill done, to make you suppose
4831
him such an unnatural creature?”
4832
4833
“I am not supposing him at all an unnatural creature, in suspecting that
4834
he may have learnt to be above his connexions, and to care very little
4835
for any thing but his own pleasure, from living with those who have
4836
always set him the example of it. It is a great deal more natural than
4837
one could wish, that a young man, brought up by those who are proud,
4838
luxurious, and selfish, should be proud, luxurious, and selfish too. If
4839
Frank Churchill had wanted to see his father, he would have contrived it
4840
between September and January. A man at his age--what is he?--three or
4841
four-and-twenty--cannot be without the means of doing as much as that.
4842
It is impossible.”
4843
4844
“That's easily said, and easily felt by you, who have always been your
4845
own master. You are the worst judge in the world, Mr. Knightley, of the
4846
difficulties of dependence. You do not know what it is to have tempers
4847
to manage.”
4848
4849
“It is not to be conceived that a man of three or four-and-twenty
4850
should not have liberty of mind or limb to that amount. He cannot want
4851
money--he cannot want leisure. We know, on the contrary, that he has so
4852
much of both, that he is glad to get rid of them at the idlest haunts in
4853
the kingdom. We hear of him for ever at some watering-place or other. A
4854
little while ago, he was at Weymouth. This proves that he can leave the
4855
Churchills.”
4856
4857
“Yes, sometimes he can.”
4858
4859
“And those times are whenever he thinks it worth his while; whenever
4860
there is any temptation of pleasure.”
4861
4862
“It is very unfair to judge of any body's conduct, without an intimate
4863
knowledge of their situation. Nobody, who has not been in the interior
4864
of a family, can say what the difficulties of any individual of that
4865
family may be. We ought to be acquainted with Enscombe, and with Mrs.
4866
Churchill's temper, before we pretend to decide upon what her nephew
4867
can do. He may, at times, be able to do a great deal more than he can at
4868
others.”
4869
4870
“There is one thing, Emma, which a man can always do, if he chuses, and
4871
that is, his duty; not by manoeuvring and finessing, but by vigour and
4872
resolution. It is Frank Churchill's duty to pay this attention to his
4873
father. He knows it to be so, by his promises and messages; but if he
4874
wished to do it, it might be done. A man who felt rightly would say at
4875
once, simply and resolutely, to Mrs. Churchill--'Every sacrifice of
4876
mere pleasure you will always find me ready to make to your convenience;
4877
but I must go and see my father immediately. I know he would be hurt by
4878
my failing in such a mark of respect to him on the present occasion.
4879
I shall, therefore, set off to-morrow.'--If he would say so to her
4880
at once, in the tone of decision becoming a man, there would be no
4881
opposition made to his going.”
4882
4883
“No,” said Emma, laughing; “but perhaps there might be some made to his
4884
coming back again. Such language for a young man entirely dependent, to
4885
use!--Nobody but you, Mr. Knightley, would imagine it possible. But you
4886
have not an idea of what is requisite in situations directly opposite to
4887
your own. Mr. Frank Churchill to be making such a speech as that to
4888
the uncle and aunt, who have brought him up, and are to provide for
4889
him!--Standing up in the middle of the room, I suppose, and speaking as
4890
loud as he could!--How can you imagine such conduct practicable?”
4891
4892
“Depend upon it, Emma, a sensible man would find no difficulty in it. He
4893
would feel himself in the right; and the declaration--made, of course,
4894
as a man of sense would make it, in a proper manner--would do him more
4895
good, raise him higher, fix his interest stronger with the people he
4896
depended on, than all that a line of shifts and expedients can ever do.
4897
Respect would be added to affection. They would feel that they could
4898
trust him; that the nephew who had done rightly by his father, would do
4899
rightly by them; for they know, as well as he does, as well as all the
4900
world must know, that he ought to pay this visit to his father; and
4901
while meanly exerting their power to delay it, are in their hearts not
4902
thinking the better of him for submitting to their whims. Respect for
4903
right conduct is felt by every body. If he would act in this sort of
4904
manner, on principle, consistently, regularly, their little minds would
4905
bend to his.”
4906
4907
“I rather doubt that. You are very fond of bending little minds; but
4908
where little minds belong to rich people in authority, I think they have
4909
a knack of swelling out, till they are quite as unmanageable as great
4910
ones. I can imagine, that if you, as you are, Mr. Knightley, were to be
4911
transported and placed all at once in Mr. Frank Churchill's situation,
4912
you would be able to say and do just what you have been recommending for
4913
him; and it might have a very good effect. The Churchills might not have
4914
a word to say in return; but then, you would have no habits of early
4915
obedience and long observance to break through. To him who has, it might
4916
not be so easy to burst forth at once into perfect independence, and set
4917
all their claims on his gratitude and regard at nought. He may have as
4918
strong a sense of what would be right, as you can have, without being so
4919
equal, under particular circumstances, to act up to it.”
4920
4921
“Then it would not be so strong a sense. If it failed to produce equal
4922
exertion, it could not be an equal conviction.”
4923
4924
“Oh, the difference of situation and habit! I wish you would try to
4925
understand what an amiable young man may be likely to feel in directly
4926
opposing those, whom as child and boy he has been looking up to all his
4927
life.”
4928
4929
“Our amiable young man is a very weak young man, if this be the first
4930
occasion of his carrying through a resolution to do right against the
4931
will of others. It ought to have been a habit with him by this time, of
4932
following his duty, instead of consulting expediency. I can allow for
4933
the fears of the child, but not of the man. As he became rational, he
4934
ought to have roused himself and shaken off all that was unworthy in
4935
their authority. He ought to have opposed the first attempt on their
4936
side to make him slight his father. Had he begun as he ought, there
4937
would have been no difficulty now.”
4938
4939
“We shall never agree about him,” cried Emma; “but that is nothing
4940
extraordinary. I have not the least idea of his being a weak young man:
4941
I feel sure that he is not. Mr. Weston would not be blind to folly,
4942
though in his own son; but he is very likely to have a more yielding,
4943
complying, mild disposition than would suit your notions of man's
4944
perfection. I dare say he has; and though it may cut him off from some
4945
advantages, it will secure him many others.”
4946
4947
“Yes; all the advantages of sitting still when he ought to move, and
4948
of leading a life of mere idle pleasure, and fancying himself extremely
4949
expert in finding excuses for it. He can sit down and write a fine
4950
flourishing letter, full of professions and falsehoods, and persuade
4951
himself that he has hit upon the very best method in the world of
4952
preserving peace at home and preventing his father's having any right to
4953
complain. His letters disgust me.”
4954
4955
“Your feelings are singular. They seem to satisfy every body else.”
4956
4957
“I suspect they do not satisfy Mrs. Weston. They hardly can satisfy
4958
a woman of her good sense and quick feelings: standing in a mother's
4959
place, but without a mother's affection to blind her. It is on her
4960
account that attention to Randalls is doubly due, and she must doubly
4961
feel the omission. Had she been a person of consequence herself, he
4962
would have come I dare say; and it would not have signified whether
4963
he did or no. Can you think your friend behindhand in these sort of
4964
considerations? Do you suppose she does not often say all this to
4965
herself? No, Emma, your amiable young man can be amiable only in French,
4966
not in English. He may be very 'amiable,' have very good manners, and be
4967
very agreeable; but he can have no English delicacy towards the feelings
4968
of other people: nothing really amiable about him.”
4969
4970
“You seem determined to think ill of him.”
4971
4972
“Me!--not at all,” replied Mr. Knightley, rather displeased; “I do not
4973
want to think ill of him. I should be as ready to acknowledge his merits
4974
as any other man; but I hear of none, except what are merely personal;
4975
that he is well-grown and good-looking, with smooth, plausible manners.”
4976
4977
“Well, if he have nothing else to recommend him, he will be a treasure
4978
at Highbury. We do not often look upon fine young men, well-bred and
4979
agreeable. We must not be nice and ask for all the virtues into the
4980
bargain. Cannot you imagine, Mr. Knightley, what a _sensation_ his
4981
coming will produce? There will be but one subject throughout the
4982
parishes of Donwell and Highbury; but one interest--one object of
4983
curiosity; it will be all Mr. Frank Churchill; we shall think and speak
4984
of nobody else.”
4985
4986
“You will excuse my being so much over-powered. If I find him
4987
conversable, I shall be glad of his acquaintance; but if he is only a
4988
chattering coxcomb, he will not occupy much of my time or thoughts.”
4989
4990
“My idea of him is, that he can adapt his conversation to the taste of
4991
every body, and has the power as well as the wish of being universally
4992
agreeable. To you, he will talk of farming; to me, of drawing or music;
4993
and so on to every body, having that general information on all subjects
4994
which will enable him to follow the lead, or take the lead, just as
4995
propriety may require, and to speak extremely well on each; that is my
4996
idea of him.”
4997
4998
“And mine,” said Mr. Knightley warmly, “is, that if he turn out any
4999
thing like it, he will be the most insufferable fellow breathing! What!
5000
at three-and-twenty to be the king of his company--the great man--the
5001
practised politician, who is to read every body's character, and make
5002
every body's talents conduce to the display of his own superiority; to
5003
be dispensing his flatteries around, that he may make all appear like
5004
fools compared with himself! My dear Emma, your own good sense could not
5005
endure such a puppy when it came to the point.”
5006
5007
“I will say no more about him,” cried Emma, “you turn every thing to
5008
evil. We are both prejudiced; you against, I for him; and we have no
5009
chance of agreeing till he is really here.”
5010
5011
“Prejudiced! I am not prejudiced.”
5012
5013
“But I am very much, and without being at all ashamed of it. My love for
5014
Mr. and Mrs. Weston gives me a decided prejudice in his favour.”
5015
5016
“He is a person I never think of from one month's end to another,” said
5017
Mr. Knightley, with a degree of vexation, which made Emma immediately
5018
talk of something else, though she could not comprehend why he should be
5019
angry.
5020
5021
To take a dislike to a young man, only because he appeared to be of a
5022
different disposition from himself, was unworthy the real liberality of
5023
mind which she was always used to acknowledge in him; for with all the
5024
high opinion of himself, which she had often laid to his charge, she had
5025
never before for a moment supposed it could make him unjust to the merit
5026
of another.
5027
5028
5029
5030
5031
VOLUME II
5032
5033
5034
5035
CHAPTER I
5036
5037
5038
Emma and Harriet had been walking together one morning, and, in Emma's
5039
opinion, had been talking enough of Mr. Elton for that day. She could
5040
not think that Harriet's solace or her own sins required more; and
5041
she was therefore industriously getting rid of the subject as they
5042
returned;--but it burst out again when she thought she had succeeded,
5043
and after speaking some time of what the poor must suffer in winter, and
5044
receiving no other answer than a very plaintive--“Mr. Elton is so good
5045
to the poor!” she found something else must be done.
5046
5047
They were just approaching the house where lived Mrs. and Miss Bates.
5048
She determined to call upon them and seek safety in numbers. There was
5049
always sufficient reason for such an attention; Mrs. and Miss Bates
5050
loved to be called on, and she knew she was considered by the very few
5051
who presumed ever to see imperfection in her, as rather negligent in
5052
that respect, and as not contributing what she ought to the stock of
5053
their scanty comforts.
5054
5055
She had had many a hint from Mr. Knightley and some from her own heart,
5056
as to her deficiency--but none were equal to counteract the persuasion
5057
of its being very disagreeable,--a waste of time--tiresome women--and
5058
all the horror of being in danger of falling in with the second-rate and
5059
third-rate of Highbury, who were calling on them for ever, and therefore
5060
she seldom went near them. But now she made the sudden resolution of not
5061
passing their door without going in--observing, as she proposed it to
5062
Harriet, that, as well as she could calculate, they were just now quite
5063
safe from any letter from Jane Fairfax.
5064
5065
The house belonged to people in business. Mrs. and Miss Bates occupied
5066
the drawing-room floor; and there, in the very moderate-sized apartment,
5067
which was every thing to them, the visitors were most cordially and even
5068
gratefully welcomed; the quiet neat old lady, who with her knitting was
5069
seated in the warmest corner, wanting even to give up her place to
5070
Miss Woodhouse, and her more active, talking daughter, almost ready
5071
to overpower them with care and kindness, thanks for their visit,
5072
solicitude for their shoes, anxious inquiries after Mr. Woodhouse's
5073
health, cheerful communications about her mother's, and sweet-cake from
5074
the beaufet--“Mrs. Cole had just been there, just called in for ten
5075
minutes, and had been so good as to sit an hour with them, and _she_ had
5076
taken a piece of cake and been so kind as to say she liked it very much;
5077
and, therefore, she hoped Miss Woodhouse and Miss Smith would do them
5078
the favour to eat a piece too.”
5079
5080
The mention of the Coles was sure to be followed by that of Mr. Elton.
5081
There was intimacy between them, and Mr. Cole had heard from Mr. Elton
5082
since his going away. Emma knew what was coming; they must have the
5083
letter over again, and settle how long he had been gone, and how much
5084
he was engaged in company, and what a favourite he was wherever he went,
5085
and how full the Master of the Ceremonies' ball had been; and she went
5086
through it very well, with all the interest and all the commendation
5087
that could be requisite, and always putting forward to prevent Harriet's
5088
being obliged to say a word.
5089
5090
This she had been prepared for when she entered the house; but meant,
5091
having once talked him handsomely over, to be no farther incommoded by
5092
any troublesome topic, and to wander at large amongst all the Mistresses
5093
and Misses of Highbury, and their card-parties. She had not been
5094
prepared to have Jane Fairfax succeed Mr. Elton; but he was actually
5095
hurried off by Miss Bates, she jumped away from him at last abruptly to
5096
the Coles, to usher in a letter from her niece.
5097
5098
“Oh! yes--Mr. Elton, I understand--certainly as to dancing--Mrs. Cole
5099
was telling me that dancing at the rooms at Bath was--Mrs. Cole was so
5100
kind as to sit some time with us, talking of Jane; for as soon as
5101
she came in, she began inquiring after her, Jane is so very great a
5102
favourite there. Whenever she is with us, Mrs. Cole does not know how to
5103
shew her kindness enough; and I must say that Jane deserves it as much
5104
as any body can. And so she began inquiring after her directly, saying,
5105
'I know you cannot have heard from Jane lately, because it is not her
5106
time for writing;' and when I immediately said, 'But indeed we have, we
5107
had a letter this very morning,' I do not know that I ever saw any body
5108
more surprized. 'Have you, upon your honour?' said she; 'well, that is
5109
quite unexpected. Do let me hear what she says.'”
5110
5111
Emma's politeness was at hand directly, to say, with smiling interest--
5112
5113
“Have you heard from Miss Fairfax so lately? I am extremely happy. I
5114
hope she is well?”
5115
5116
“Thank you. You are so kind!” replied the happily deceived aunt, while
5117
eagerly hunting for the letter.--“Oh! here it is. I was sure it could
5118
not be far off; but I had put my huswife upon it, you see, without being
5119
aware, and so it was quite hid, but I had it in my hand so very lately
5120
that I was almost sure it must be on the table. I was reading it to Mrs.
5121
Cole, and since she went away, I was reading it again to my mother, for
5122
it is such a pleasure to her--a letter from Jane--that she can never
5123
hear it often enough; so I knew it could not be far off, and here it is,
5124
only just under my huswife--and since you are so kind as to wish to hear
5125
what she says;--but, first of all, I really must, in justice to
5126
Jane, apologise for her writing so short a letter--only two pages you
5127
see--hardly two--and in general she fills the whole paper and crosses
5128
half. My mother often wonders that I can make it out so well. She often
5129
says, when the letter is first opened, 'Well, Hetty, now I think
5130
you will be put to it to make out all that checker-work'--don't you,
5131
ma'am?--And then I tell her, I am sure she would contrive to make it out
5132
herself, if she had nobody to do it for her--every word of it--I am sure
5133
she would pore over it till she had made out every word. And, indeed,
5134
though my mother's eyes are not so good as they were, she can see
5135
amazingly well still, thank God! with the help of spectacles. It is such
5136
a blessing! My mother's are really very good indeed. Jane often says,
5137
when she is here, 'I am sure, grandmama, you must have had very strong
5138
eyes to see as you do--and so much fine work as you have done too!--I
5139
only wish my eyes may last me as well.'”
5140
5141
All this spoken extremely fast obliged Miss Bates to stop for breath;
5142
and Emma said something very civil about the excellence of Miss
5143
Fairfax's handwriting.
5144
5145
“You are extremely kind,” replied Miss Bates, highly gratified; “you who
5146
are such a judge, and write so beautifully yourself. I am sure there is
5147
nobody's praise that could give us so much pleasure as Miss Woodhouse's.
5148
My mother does not hear; she is a little deaf you know. Ma'am,”
5149
addressing her, “do you hear what Miss Woodhouse is so obliging to say
5150
about Jane's handwriting?”
5151
5152
And Emma had the advantage of hearing her own silly compliment repeated
5153
twice over before the good old lady could comprehend it. She was
5154
pondering, in the meanwhile, upon the possibility, without seeming very
5155
rude, of making her escape from Jane Fairfax's letter, and had almost
5156
resolved on hurrying away directly under some slight excuse, when Miss
5157
Bates turned to her again and seized her attention.
5158
5159
“My mother's deafness is very trifling you see--just nothing at all. By
5160
only raising my voice, and saying any thing two or three times over,
5161
she is sure to hear; but then she is used to my voice. But it is very
5162
remarkable that she should always hear Jane better than she does me.
5163
Jane speaks so distinct! However, she will not find her grandmama at all
5164
deafer than she was two years ago; which is saying a great deal at my
5165
mother's time of life--and it really is full two years, you know, since
5166
she was here. We never were so long without seeing her before, and as
5167
I was telling Mrs. Cole, we shall hardly know how to make enough of her
5168
now.”
5169
5170
“Are you expecting Miss Fairfax here soon?”
5171
5172
“Oh yes; next week.”
5173
5174
“Indeed!--that must be a very great pleasure.”
5175
5176
“Thank you. You are very kind. Yes, next week. Every body is so
5177
surprized; and every body says the same obliging things. I am sure she
5178
will be as happy to see her friends at Highbury, as they can be to see
5179
her. Yes, Friday or Saturday; she cannot say which, because Colonel
5180
Campbell will be wanting the carriage himself one of those days. So very
5181
good of them to send her the whole way! But they always do, you know. Oh
5182
yes, Friday or Saturday next. That is what she writes about. That is
5183
the reason of her writing out of rule, as we call it; for, in the
5184
common course, we should not have heard from her before next Tuesday or
5185
Wednesday.”
5186
5187
“Yes, so I imagined. I was afraid there could be little chance of my
5188
hearing any thing of Miss Fairfax to-day.”
5189
5190
“So obliging of you! No, we should not have heard, if it had not been
5191
for this particular circumstance, of her being to come here so soon. My
5192
mother is so delighted!--for she is to be three months with us at
5193
least. Three months, she says so, positively, as I am going to have the
5194
pleasure of reading to you. The case is, you see, that the Campbells are
5195
going to Ireland. Mrs. Dixon has persuaded her father and mother to come
5196
over and see her directly. They had not intended to go over till the
5197
summer, but she is so impatient to see them again--for till she married,
5198
last October, she was never away from them so much as a week, which must
5199
make it very strange to be in different kingdoms, I was going to say,
5200
but however different countries, and so she wrote a very urgent letter
5201
to her mother--or her father, I declare I do not know which it was, but
5202
we shall see presently in Jane's letter--wrote in Mr. Dixon's name as
5203
well as her own, to press their coming over directly, and they would
5204
give them the meeting in Dublin, and take them back to their country
5205
seat, Baly-craig, a beautiful place, I fancy. Jane has heard a great
5206
deal of its beauty; from Mr. Dixon, I mean--I do not know that she ever
5207
heard about it from any body else; but it was very natural, you know,
5208
that he should like to speak of his own place while he was paying his
5209
addresses--and as Jane used to be very often walking out with them--for
5210
Colonel and Mrs. Campbell were very particular about their daughter's
5211
not walking out often with only Mr. Dixon, for which I do not at all
5212
blame them; of course she heard every thing he might be telling Miss
5213
Campbell about his own home in Ireland; and I think she wrote us word
5214
that he had shewn them some drawings of the place, views that he had
5215
taken himself. He is a most amiable, charming young man, I believe. Jane
5216
was quite longing to go to Ireland, from his account of things.”
5217
5218
At this moment, an ingenious and animating suspicion entering Emma's
5219
brain with regard to Jane Fairfax, this charming Mr. Dixon, and the
5220
not going to Ireland, she said, with the insidious design of farther
5221
discovery,
5222
5223
“You must feel it very fortunate that Miss Fairfax should be allowed to
5224
come to you at such a time. Considering the very particular friendship
5225
between her and Mrs. Dixon, you could hardly have expected her to be
5226
excused from accompanying Colonel and Mrs. Campbell.”
5227
5228
“Very true, very true, indeed. The very thing that we have always been
5229
rather afraid of; for we should not have liked to have her at such a
5230
distance from us, for months together--not able to come if any thing was
5231
to happen. But you see, every thing turns out for the best. They want
5232
her (Mr. and Mrs. Dixon) excessively to come over with Colonel and Mrs.
5233
Campbell; quite depend upon it; nothing can be more kind or pressing
5234
than their _joint_ invitation, Jane says, as you will hear presently;
5235
Mr. Dixon does not seem in the least backward in any attention. He is
5236
a most charming young man. Ever since the service he rendered Jane at
5237
Weymouth, when they were out in that party on the water, and she, by the
5238
sudden whirling round of something or other among the sails, would have
5239
been dashed into the sea at once, and actually was all but gone, if he
5240
had not, with the greatest presence of mind, caught hold of her habit--
5241
(I can never think of it without trembling!)--But ever since we had the
5242
history of that day, I have been so fond of Mr. Dixon!”
5243
5244
“But, in spite of all her friends' urgency, and her own wish of seeing
5245
Ireland, Miss Fairfax prefers devoting the time to you and Mrs. Bates?”
5246
5247
“Yes--entirely her own doing, entirely her own choice; and Colonel
5248
and Mrs. Campbell think she does quite right, just what they should
5249
recommend; and indeed they particularly _wish_ her to try her native
5250
air, as she has not been quite so well as usual lately.”
5251
5252
“I am concerned to hear of it. I think they judge wisely. But Mrs.
5253
Dixon must be very much disappointed. Mrs. Dixon, I understand, has
5254
no remarkable degree of personal beauty; is not, by any means, to be
5255
compared with Miss Fairfax.”
5256
5257
“Oh! no. You are very obliging to say such things--but certainly not.
5258
There is no comparison between them. Miss Campbell always was absolutely
5259
plain--but extremely elegant and amiable.”
5260
5261
“Yes, that of course.”
5262
5263
“Jane caught a bad cold, poor thing! so long ago as the 7th of November,
5264
(as I am going to read to you,) and has never been well since. A long
5265
time, is not it, for a cold to hang upon her? She never mentioned
5266
it before, because she would not alarm us. Just like her! so
5267
considerate!--But however, she is so far from well, that her kind
5268
friends the Campbells think she had better come home, and try an air
5269
that always agrees with her; and they have no doubt that three or four
5270
months at Highbury will entirely cure her--and it is certainly a great
5271
deal better that she should come here, than go to Ireland, if she is
5272
unwell. Nobody could nurse her, as we should do.”
5273
5274
“It appears to me the most desirable arrangement in the world.”
5275
5276
“And so she is to come to us next Friday or Saturday, and the Campbells
5277
leave town in their way to Holyhead the Monday following--as you will
5278
find from Jane's letter. So sudden!--You may guess, dear Miss Woodhouse,
5279
what a flurry it has thrown me in! If it was not for the drawback of
5280
her illness--but I am afraid we must expect to see her grown thin, and
5281
looking very poorly. I must tell you what an unlucky thing happened to
5282
me, as to that. I always make a point of reading Jane's letters through
5283
to myself first, before I read them aloud to my mother, you know, for
5284
fear of there being any thing in them to distress her. Jane desired me
5285
to do it, so I always do: and so I began to-day with my usual caution;
5286
but no sooner did I come to the mention of her being unwell, than I
5287
burst out, quite frightened, with 'Bless me! poor Jane is ill!'--which
5288
my mother, being on the watch, heard distinctly, and was sadly alarmed
5289
at. However, when I read on, I found it was not near so bad as I had
5290
fancied at first; and I make so light of it now to her, that she does
5291
not think much about it. But I cannot imagine how I could be so off my
5292
guard. If Jane does not get well soon, we will call in Mr. Perry. The
5293
expense shall not be thought of; and though he is so liberal, and so
5294
fond of Jane that I dare say he would not mean to charge any thing for
5295
attendance, we could not suffer it to be so, you know. He has a wife and
5296
family to maintain, and is not to be giving away his time. Well, now I
5297
have just given you a hint of what Jane writes about, we will turn to
5298
her letter, and I am sure she tells her own story a great deal better
5299
than I can tell it for her.”
5300
5301
“I am afraid we must be running away,” said Emma, glancing at Harriet,
5302
and beginning to rise--“My father will be expecting us. I had no
5303
intention, I thought I had no power of staying more than five minutes,
5304
when I first entered the house. I merely called, because I would not
5305
pass the door without inquiring after Mrs. Bates; but I have been so
5306
pleasantly detained! Now, however, we must wish you and Mrs. Bates good
5307
morning.”
5308
5309
And not all that could be urged to detain her succeeded. She regained
5310
the street--happy in this, that though much had been forced on her
5311
against her will, though she had in fact heard the whole substance of
5312
Jane Fairfax's letter, she had been able to escape the letter itself.
5313
5314
5315
5316
CHAPTER II
5317
5318
5319
Jane Fairfax was an orphan, the only child of Mrs. Bates's youngest
5320
daughter.
5321
5322
The marriage of Lieut. Fairfax of the ----regiment of infantry,
5323
and Miss Jane Bates, had had its day of fame and pleasure, hope
5324
and interest; but nothing now remained of it, save the melancholy
5325
remembrance of him dying in action abroad--of his widow sinking under
5326
consumption and grief soon afterwards--and this girl.
5327
5328
By birth she belonged to Highbury: and when at three years old, on
5329
losing her mother, she became the property, the charge, the consolation,
5330
the foundling of her grandmother and aunt, there had seemed every
5331
probability of her being permanently fixed there; of her being taught
5332
only what very limited means could command, and growing up with no
5333
advantages of connexion or improvement, to be engrafted on what
5334
nature had given her in a pleasing person, good understanding, and
5335
warm-hearted, well-meaning relations.
5336
5337
But the compassionate feelings of a friend of her father gave a change
5338
to her destiny. This was Colonel Campbell, who had very highly regarded
5339
Fairfax, as an excellent officer and most deserving young man; and
5340
farther, had been indebted to him for such attentions, during a severe
5341
camp-fever, as he believed had saved his life. These were claims which
5342
he did not learn to overlook, though some years passed away from the
5343
death of poor Fairfax, before his own return to England put any thing in
5344
his power. When he did return, he sought out the child and took notice
5345
of her. He was a married man, with only one living child, a girl, about
5346
Jane's age: and Jane became their guest, paying them long visits and
5347
growing a favourite with all; and before she was nine years old, his
5348
daughter's great fondness for her, and his own wish of being a real
5349
friend, united to produce an offer from Colonel Campbell of undertaking
5350
the whole charge of her education. It was accepted; and from that period
5351
Jane had belonged to Colonel Campbell's family, and had lived with them
5352
entirely, only visiting her grandmother from time to time.
5353
5354
The plan was that she should be brought up for educating others; the
5355
very few hundred pounds which she inherited from her father making
5356
independence impossible. To provide for her otherwise was out of Colonel
5357
Campbell's power; for though his income, by pay and appointments, was
5358
handsome, his fortune was moderate and must be all his daughter's;
5359
but, by giving her an education, he hoped to be supplying the means of
5360
respectable subsistence hereafter.
5361
5362
Such was Jane Fairfax's history. She had fallen into good hands, known
5363
nothing but kindness from the Campbells, and been given an excellent
5364
education. Living constantly with right-minded and well-informed people,
5365
her heart and understanding had received every advantage of discipline
5366
and culture; and Colonel Campbell's residence being in London, every
5367
lighter talent had been done full justice to, by the attendance of
5368
first-rate masters. Her disposition and abilities were equally worthy
5369
of all that friendship could do; and at eighteen or nineteen she was,
5370
as far as such an early age can be qualified for the care of children,
5371
fully competent to the office of instruction herself; but she was too
5372
much beloved to be parted with. Neither father nor mother could promote,
5373
and the daughter could not endure it. The evil day was put off. It was
5374
easy to decide that she was still too young; and Jane remained with
5375
them, sharing, as another daughter, in all the rational pleasures of
5376
an elegant society, and a judicious mixture of home and amusement, with
5377
only the drawback of the future, the sobering suggestions of her own
5378
good understanding to remind her that all this might soon be over.
5379
5380
The affection of the whole family, the warm attachment of Miss
5381
Campbell in particular, was the more honourable to each party from
5382
the circumstance of Jane's decided superiority both in beauty and
5383
acquirements. That nature had given it in feature could not be unseen
5384
by the young woman, nor could her higher powers of mind be unfelt by the
5385
parents. They continued together with unabated regard however, till the
5386
marriage of Miss Campbell, who by that chance, that luck which so often
5387
defies anticipation in matrimonial affairs, giving attraction to what is
5388
moderate rather than to what is superior, engaged the affections of
5389
Mr. Dixon, a young man, rich and agreeable, almost as soon as they were
5390
acquainted; and was eligibly and happily settled, while Jane Fairfax had
5391
yet her bread to earn.
5392
5393
This event had very lately taken place; too lately for any thing to be
5394
yet attempted by her less fortunate friend towards entering on her path
5395
of duty; though she had now reached the age which her own judgment had
5396
fixed on for beginning. She had long resolved that one-and-twenty
5397
should be the period. With the fortitude of a devoted novitiate, she had
5398
resolved at one-and-twenty to complete the sacrifice, and retire from
5399
all the pleasures of life, of rational intercourse, equal society, peace
5400
and hope, to penance and mortification for ever.
5401
5402
The good sense of Colonel and Mrs. Campbell could not oppose such
5403
a resolution, though their feelings did. As long as they lived, no
5404
exertions would be necessary, their home might be hers for ever; and for
5405
their own comfort they would have retained her wholly; but this would
5406
be selfishness:--what must be at last, had better be soon. Perhaps they
5407
began to feel it might have been kinder and wiser to have resisted the
5408
temptation of any delay, and spared her from a taste of such enjoyments
5409
of ease and leisure as must now be relinquished. Still, however,
5410
affection was glad to catch at any reasonable excuse for not hurrying
5411
on the wretched moment. She had never been quite well since the time of
5412
their daughter's marriage; and till she should have completely recovered
5413
her usual strength, they must forbid her engaging in duties, which, so
5414
far from being compatible with a weakened frame and varying spirits,
5415
seemed, under the most favourable circumstances, to require something
5416
more than human perfection of body and mind to be discharged with
5417
tolerable comfort.
5418
5419
With regard to her not accompanying them to Ireland, her account to her
5420
aunt contained nothing but truth, though there might be some truths
5421
not told. It was her own choice to give the time of their absence to
5422
Highbury; to spend, perhaps, her last months of perfect liberty with
5423
those kind relations to whom she was so very dear: and the Campbells,
5424
whatever might be their motive or motives, whether single, or double, or
5425
treble, gave the arrangement their ready sanction, and said, that they
5426
depended more on a few months spent in her native air, for the recovery
5427
of her health, than on any thing else. Certain it was that she was to
5428
come; and that Highbury, instead of welcoming that perfect novelty which
5429
had been so long promised it--Mr. Frank Churchill--must put up for the
5430
present with Jane Fairfax, who could bring only the freshness of a two
5431
years' absence.
5432
5433
Emma was sorry;--to have to pay civilities to a person she did not like
5434
through three long months!--to be always doing more than she wished,
5435
and less than she ought! Why she did not like Jane Fairfax might be a
5436
difficult question to answer; Mr. Knightley had once told her it was
5437
because she saw in her the really accomplished young woman, which she
5438
wanted to be thought herself; and though the accusation had been eagerly
5439
refuted at the time, there were moments of self-examination in which
5440
her conscience could not quite acquit her. But “she could never get
5441
acquainted with her: she did not know how it was, but there was such
5442
coldness and reserve--such apparent indifference whether she pleased or
5443
not--and then, her aunt was such an eternal talker!--and she was made
5444
such a fuss with by every body!--and it had been always imagined that
5445
they were to be so intimate--because their ages were the same, every
5446
body had supposed they must be so fond of each other.” These were her
5447
reasons--she had no better.
5448
5449
It was a dislike so little just--every imputed fault was so magnified
5450
by fancy, that she never saw Jane Fairfax the first time after any
5451
considerable absence, without feeling that she had injured her; and
5452
now, when the due visit was paid, on her arrival, after a two years'
5453
interval, she was particularly struck with the very appearance and
5454
manners, which for those two whole years she had been depreciating. Jane
5455
Fairfax was very elegant, remarkably elegant; and she had herself the
5456
highest value for elegance. Her height was pretty, just such as almost
5457
every body would think tall, and nobody could think very tall; her
5458
figure particularly graceful; her size a most becoming medium, between
5459
fat and thin, though a slight appearance of ill-health seemed to point
5460
out the likeliest evil of the two. Emma could not but feel all this; and
5461
then, her face--her features--there was more beauty in them altogether
5462
than she had remembered; it was not regular, but it was very pleasing
5463
beauty. Her eyes, a deep grey, with dark eye-lashes and eyebrows, had
5464
never been denied their praise; but the skin, which she had been used to
5465
cavil at, as wanting colour, had a clearness and delicacy which really
5466
needed no fuller bloom. It was a style of beauty, of which elegance was
5467
the reigning character, and as such, she must, in honour, by all her
5468
principles, admire it:--elegance, which, whether of person or of mind,
5469
she saw so little in Highbury. There, not to be vulgar, was distinction,
5470
and merit.
5471
5472
In short, she sat, during the first visit, looking at Jane Fairfax with
5473
twofold complacency; the sense of pleasure and the sense of rendering
5474
justice, and was determining that she would dislike her no longer. When
5475
she took in her history, indeed, her situation, as well as her beauty;
5476
when she considered what all this elegance was destined to, what she was
5477
going to sink from, how she was going to live, it seemed impossible
5478
to feel any thing but compassion and respect; especially, if to every
5479
well-known particular entitling her to interest, were added the highly
5480
probable circumstance of an attachment to Mr. Dixon, which she had
5481
so naturally started to herself. In that case, nothing could be more
5482
pitiable or more honourable than the sacrifices she had resolved on.
5483
Emma was very willing now to acquit her of having seduced Mr. Dixon's
5484
actions from his wife, or of any thing mischievous which her imagination
5485
had suggested at first. If it were love, it might be simple, single,
5486
successless love on her side alone. She might have been unconsciously
5487
sucking in the sad poison, while a sharer of his conversation with her
5488
friend; and from the best, the purest of motives, might now be
5489
denying herself this visit to Ireland, and resolving to divide herself
5490
effectually from him and his connexions by soon beginning her career of
5491
laborious duty.
5492
5493
Upon the whole, Emma left her with such softened, charitable feelings,
5494
as made her look around in walking home, and lament that Highbury
5495
afforded no young man worthy of giving her independence; nobody that she
5496
could wish to scheme about for her.
5497
5498
These were charming feelings--but not lasting. Before she had committed
5499
herself by any public profession of eternal friendship for Jane Fairfax,
5500
or done more towards a recantation of past prejudices and errors, than
5501
saying to Mr. Knightley, “She certainly is handsome; she is better than
5502
handsome!” Jane had spent an evening at Hartfield with her grandmother
5503
and aunt, and every thing was relapsing much into its usual state.
5504
Former provocations reappeared. The aunt was as tiresome as ever; more
5505
tiresome, because anxiety for her health was now added to admiration
5506
of her powers; and they had to listen to the description of exactly how
5507
little bread and butter she ate for breakfast, and how small a slice
5508
of mutton for dinner, as well as to see exhibitions of new caps and new
5509
workbags for her mother and herself; and Jane's offences rose again.
5510
They had music; Emma was obliged to play; and the thanks and praise
5511
which necessarily followed appeared to her an affectation of candour, an
5512
air of greatness, meaning only to shew off in higher style her own very
5513
superior performance. She was, besides, which was the worst of all, so
5514
cold, so cautious! There was no getting at her real opinion. Wrapt up in
5515
a cloak of politeness, she seemed determined to hazard nothing. She was
5516
disgustingly, was suspiciously reserved.
5517
5518
If any thing could be more, where all was most, she was more reserved on
5519
the subject of Weymouth and the Dixons than any thing. She seemed bent
5520
on giving no real insight into Mr. Dixon's character, or her own value
5521
for his company, or opinion of the suitableness of the match. It was all
5522
general approbation and smoothness; nothing delineated or distinguished.
5523
It did her no service however. Her caution was thrown away. Emma saw
5524
its artifice, and returned to her first surmises. There probably _was_
5525
something more to conceal than her own preference; Mr. Dixon, perhaps,
5526
had been very near changing one friend for the other, or been fixed only
5527
to Miss Campbell, for the sake of the future twelve thousand pounds.
5528
5529
The like reserve prevailed on other topics. She and Mr. Frank Churchill
5530
had been at Weymouth at the same time. It was known that they were a
5531
little acquainted; but not a syllable of real information could Emma
5532
procure as to what he truly was. “Was he handsome?”--“She believed
5533
he was reckoned a very fine young man.” “Was he agreeable?”--“He was
5534
generally thought so.” “Did he appear a sensible young man; a young
5535
man of information?”--“At a watering-place, or in a common London
5536
acquaintance, it was difficult to decide on such points. Manners were
5537
all that could be safely judged of, under a much longer knowledge than
5538
they had yet had of Mr. Churchill. She believed every body found his
5539
manners pleasing.” Emma could not forgive her.
5540
5541
5542
5543
CHAPTER III
5544
5545
5546
Emma could not forgive her;--but as neither provocation nor resentment
5547
were discerned by Mr. Knightley, who had been of the party, and had
5548
seen only proper attention and pleasing behaviour on each side, he was
5549
expressing the next morning, being at Hartfield again on business with
5550
Mr. Woodhouse, his approbation of the whole; not so openly as he might
5551
have done had her father been out of the room, but speaking plain enough
5552
to be very intelligible to Emma. He had been used to think her unjust to
5553
Jane, and had now great pleasure in marking an improvement.
5554
5555
“A very pleasant evening,” he began, as soon as Mr. Woodhouse had been
5556
talked into what was necessary, told that he understood, and the papers
5557
swept away;--“particularly pleasant. You and Miss Fairfax gave us some
5558
very good music. I do not know a more luxurious state, sir, than sitting
5559
at one's ease to be entertained a whole evening by two such young women;
5560
sometimes with music and sometimes with conversation. I am sure Miss
5561
Fairfax must have found the evening pleasant, Emma. You left nothing
5562
undone. I was glad you made her play so much, for having no instrument
5563
at her grandmother's, it must have been a real indulgence.”
5564
5565
“I am happy you approved,” said Emma, smiling; “but I hope I am not
5566
often deficient in what is due to guests at Hartfield.”
5567
5568
“No, my dear,” said her father instantly; “_that_ I am sure you are not.
5569
There is nobody half so attentive and civil as you are. If any thing,
5570
you are too attentive. The muffin last night--if it had been handed
5571
round once, I think it would have been enough.”
5572
5573
“No,” said Mr. Knightley, nearly at the same time; “you are not often
5574
deficient; not often deficient either in manner or comprehension. I
5575
think you understand me, therefore.”
5576
5577
An arch look expressed--“I understand you well enough;” but she said
5578
only, “Miss Fairfax is reserved.”
5579
5580
“I always told you she was--a little; but you will soon overcome all
5581
that part of her reserve which ought to be overcome, all that has its
5582
foundation in diffidence. What arises from discretion must be honoured.”
5583
5584
“You think her diffident. I do not see it.”
5585
5586
“My dear Emma,” said he, moving from his chair into one close by her,
5587
“you are not going to tell me, I hope, that you had not a pleasant
5588
evening.”
5589
5590
“Oh! no; I was pleased with my own perseverance in asking questions; and
5591
amused to think how little information I obtained.”
5592
5593
“I am disappointed,” was his only answer.
5594
5595
“I hope every body had a pleasant evening,” said Mr. Woodhouse, in his
5596
quiet way. “I had. Once, I felt the fire rather too much; but then I
5597
moved back my chair a little, a very little, and it did not disturb me.
5598
Miss Bates was very chatty and good-humoured, as she always is, though
5599
she speaks rather too quick. However, she is very agreeable, and Mrs.
5600
Bates too, in a different way. I like old friends; and Miss Jane
5601
Fairfax is a very pretty sort of young lady, a very pretty and a
5602
very well-behaved young lady indeed. She must have found the evening
5603
agreeable, Mr. Knightley, because she had Emma.”
5604
5605
“True, sir; and Emma, because she had Miss Fairfax.”
5606
5607
Emma saw his anxiety, and wishing to appease it, at least for the
5608
present, said, and with a sincerity which no one could question--
5609
5610
“She is a sort of elegant creature that one cannot keep one's eyes from.
5611
I am always watching her to admire; and I do pity her from my heart.”
5612
5613
Mr. Knightley looked as if he were more gratified than he cared to
5614
express; and before he could make any reply, Mr. Woodhouse, whose
5615
thoughts were on the Bates's, said--
5616
5617
“It is a great pity that their circumstances should be so confined! a
5618
great pity indeed! and I have often wished--but it is so little one can
5619
venture to do--small, trifling presents, of any thing uncommon--Now we
5620
have killed a porker, and Emma thinks of sending them a loin or a leg;
5621
it is very small and delicate--Hartfield pork is not like any other
5622
pork--but still it is pork--and, my dear Emma, unless one could be sure
5623
of their making it into steaks, nicely fried, as ours are fried, without
5624
the smallest grease, and not roast it, for no stomach can bear roast
5625
pork--I think we had better send the leg--do not you think so, my dear?”
5626
5627
“My dear papa, I sent the whole hind-quarter. I knew you would wish it.
5628
There will be the leg to be salted, you know, which is so very nice, and
5629
the loin to be dressed directly in any manner they like.”
5630
5631
“That's right, my dear, very right. I had not thought of it before, but
5632
that is the best way. They must not over-salt the leg; and then, if it
5633
is not over-salted, and if it is very thoroughly boiled, just as Serle
5634
boils ours, and eaten very moderately of, with a boiled turnip, and a
5635
little carrot or parsnip, I do not consider it unwholesome.”
5636
5637
“Emma,” said Mr. Knightley presently, “I have a piece of news for you.
5638
You like news--and I heard an article in my way hither that I think will
5639
interest you.”
5640
5641
“News! Oh! yes, I always like news. What is it?--why do you smile
5642
so?--where did you hear it?--at Randalls?”
5643
5644
He had time only to say,
5645
5646
“No, not at Randalls; I have not been near Randalls,” when the door was
5647
thrown open, and Miss Bates and Miss Fairfax walked into the room. Full
5648
of thanks, and full of news, Miss Bates knew not which to give quickest.
5649
Mr. Knightley soon saw that he had lost his moment, and that not another
5650
syllable of communication could rest with him.
5651
5652
“Oh! my dear sir, how are you this morning? My dear Miss Woodhouse--I
5653
come quite over-powered. Such a beautiful hind-quarter of pork! You
5654
are too bountiful! Have you heard the news? Mr. Elton is going to be
5655
married.”
5656
5657
Emma had not had time even to think of Mr. Elton, and she was so
5658
completely surprized that she could not avoid a little start, and a
5659
little blush, at the sound.
5660
5661
“There is my news:--I thought it would interest you,” said Mr.
5662
Knightley, with a smile which implied a conviction of some part of what
5663
had passed between them.
5664
5665
“But where could _you_ hear it?” cried Miss Bates. “Where could you
5666
possibly hear it, Mr. Knightley? For it is not five minutes since I
5667
received Mrs. Cole's note--no, it cannot be more than five--or at least
5668
ten--for I had got my bonnet and spencer on, just ready to come out--I
5669
was only gone down to speak to Patty again about the pork--Jane was
5670
standing in the passage--were not you, Jane?--for my mother was so
5671
afraid that we had not any salting-pan large enough. So I said I would
5672
go down and see, and Jane said, 'Shall I go down instead? for I think
5673
you have a little cold, and Patty has been washing the kitchen.'--'Oh!
5674
my dear,' said I--well, and just then came the note. A Miss
5675
Hawkins--that's all I know. A Miss Hawkins of Bath. But, Mr. Knightley,
5676
how could you possibly have heard it? for the very moment Mr. Cole told
5677
Mrs. Cole of it, she sat down and wrote to me. A Miss Hawkins--”
5678
5679
“I was with Mr. Cole on business an hour and a half ago. He had just
5680
read Elton's letter as I was shewn in, and handed it to me directly.”
5681
5682
“Well! that is quite--I suppose there never was a piece of news more
5683
generally interesting. My dear sir, you really are too bountiful. My
5684
mother desires her very best compliments and regards, and a thousand
5685
thanks, and says you really quite oppress her.”
5686
5687
“We consider our Hartfield pork,” replied Mr. Woodhouse--“indeed it
5688
certainly is, so very superior to all other pork, that Emma and I cannot
5689
have a greater pleasure than--”
5690
5691
“Oh! my dear sir, as my mother says, our friends are only too good
5692
to us. If ever there were people who, without having great wealth
5693
themselves, had every thing they could wish for, I am sure it is us.
5694
We may well say that 'our lot is cast in a goodly heritage.' Well, Mr.
5695
Knightley, and so you actually saw the letter; well--”
5696
5697
“It was short--merely to announce--but cheerful, exulting, of course.”--
5698
Here was a sly glance at Emma. “He had been so fortunate as to--I forget
5699
the precise words--one has no business to remember them. The information
5700
was, as you state, that he was going to be married to a Miss Hawkins. By
5701
his style, I should imagine it just settled.”
5702
5703
“Mr. Elton going to be married!” said Emma, as soon as she could speak.
5704
“He will have every body's wishes for his happiness.”
5705
5706
“He is very young to settle,” was Mr. Woodhouse's observation. “He had
5707
better not be in a hurry. He seemed to me very well off as he was. We
5708
were always glad to see him at Hartfield.”
5709
5710
“A new neighbour for us all, Miss Woodhouse!” said Miss Bates, joyfully;
5711
“my mother is so pleased!--she says she cannot bear to have the poor old
5712
Vicarage without a mistress. This is great news, indeed. Jane, you have
5713
never seen Mr. Elton!--no wonder that you have such a curiosity to see
5714
him.”
5715
5716
Jane's curiosity did not appear of that absorbing nature as wholly to
5717
occupy her.
5718
5719
“No--I have never seen Mr. Elton,” she replied, starting on this appeal;
5720
“is he--is he a tall man?”
5721
5722
“Who shall answer that question?” cried Emma. “My father would say
5723
'yes,' Mr. Knightley 'no;' and Miss Bates and I that he is just the
5724
happy medium. When you have been here a little longer, Miss Fairfax,
5725
you will understand that Mr. Elton is the standard of perfection in
5726
Highbury, both in person and mind.”
5727
5728
“Very true, Miss Woodhouse, so she will. He is the very best young
5729
man--But, my dear Jane, if you remember, I told you yesterday he
5730
was precisely the height of Mr. Perry. Miss Hawkins,--I dare say, an
5731
excellent young woman. His extreme attention to my mother--wanting
5732
her to sit in the vicarage pew, that she might hear the better, for my
5733
mother is a little deaf, you know--it is not much, but she does not
5734
hear quite quick. Jane says that Colonel Campbell is a little deaf. He
5735
fancied bathing might be good for it--the warm bath--but she says it did
5736
him no lasting benefit. Colonel Campbell, you know, is quite our angel.
5737
And Mr. Dixon seems a very charming young man, quite worthy of him. It
5738
is such a happiness when good people get together--and they always do.
5739
Now, here will be Mr. Elton and Miss Hawkins; and there are the Coles,
5740
such very good people; and the Perrys--I suppose there never was a
5741
happier or a better couple than Mr. and Mrs. Perry. I say, sir,” turning
5742
to Mr. Woodhouse, “I think there are few places with such society as
5743
Highbury. I always say, we are quite blessed in our neighbours.--My dear
5744
sir, if there is one thing my mother loves better than another, it is
5745
pork--a roast loin of pork--”
5746
5747
“As to who, or what Miss Hawkins is, or how long he has been acquainted
5748
with her,” said Emma, “nothing I suppose can be known. One feels that it
5749
cannot be a very long acquaintance. He has been gone only four weeks.”
5750
5751
Nobody had any information to give; and, after a few more wonderings,
5752
Emma said,
5753
5754
“You are silent, Miss Fairfax--but I hope you mean to take an interest
5755
in this news. You, who have been hearing and seeing so much of late
5756
on these subjects, who must have been so deep in the business on Miss
5757
Campbell's account--we shall not excuse your being indifferent about Mr.
5758
Elton and Miss Hawkins.”
5759
5760
“When I have seen Mr. Elton,” replied Jane, “I dare say I shall be
5761
interested--but I believe it requires _that_ with me. And as it is some
5762
months since Miss Campbell married, the impression may be a little worn
5763
off.”
5764
5765
“Yes, he has been gone just four weeks, as you observe, Miss Woodhouse,”
5766
said Miss Bates, “four weeks yesterday.--A Miss Hawkins!--Well, I had
5767
always rather fancied it would be some young lady hereabouts; not that
5768
I ever--Mrs. Cole once whispered to me--but I immediately said, 'No, Mr.
5769
Elton is a most worthy young man--but'--In short, I do not think I am
5770
particularly quick at those sort of discoveries. I do not pretend to it.
5771
What is before me, I see. At the same time, nobody could wonder if
5772
Mr. Elton should have aspired--Miss Woodhouse lets me chatter on, so
5773
good-humouredly. She knows I would not offend for the world. How does
5774
Miss Smith do? She seems quite recovered now. Have you heard from Mrs.
5775
John Knightley lately? Oh! those dear little children. Jane, do you
5776
know I always fancy Mr. Dixon like Mr. John Knightley. I mean in
5777
person--tall, and with that sort of look--and not very talkative.”
5778
5779
“Quite wrong, my dear aunt; there is no likeness at all.”
5780
5781
“Very odd! but one never does form a just idea of any body beforehand.
5782
One takes up a notion, and runs away with it. Mr. Dixon, you say, is
5783
not, strictly speaking, handsome?”
5784
5785
“Handsome! Oh! no--far from it--certainly plain. I told you he was
5786
plain.”
5787
5788
“My dear, you said that Miss Campbell would not allow him to be plain,
5789
and that you yourself--”
5790
5791
“Oh! as for me, my judgment is worth nothing. Where I have a regard,
5792
I always think a person well-looking. But I gave what I believed the
5793
general opinion, when I called him plain.”
5794
5795
“Well, my dear Jane, I believe we must be running away. The weather does
5796
not look well, and grandmama will be uneasy. You are too obliging, my
5797
dear Miss Woodhouse; but we really must take leave. This has been a most
5798
agreeable piece of news indeed. I shall just go round by Mrs. Cole's;
5799
but I shall not stop three minutes: and, Jane, you had better go home
5800
directly--I would not have you out in a shower!--We think she is the
5801
better for Highbury already. Thank you, we do indeed. I shall not
5802
attempt calling on Mrs. Goddard, for I really do not think she cares for
5803
any thing but _boiled_ pork: when we dress the leg it will be another
5804
thing. Good morning to you, my dear sir. Oh! Mr. Knightley is coming
5805
too. Well, that is so very!--I am sure if Jane is tired, you will be
5806
so kind as to give her your arm.--Mr. Elton, and Miss Hawkins!--Good
5807
morning to you.”
5808
5809
Emma, alone with her father, had half her attention wanted by him while
5810
he lamented that young people would be in such a hurry to marry--and to
5811
marry strangers too--and the other half she could give to her own view
5812
of the subject. It was to herself an amusing and a very welcome piece
5813
of news, as proving that Mr. Elton could not have suffered long; but she
5814
was sorry for Harriet: Harriet must feel it--and all that she could hope
5815
was, by giving the first information herself, to save her from hearing
5816
it abruptly from others. It was now about the time that she was likely
5817
to call. If she were to meet Miss Bates in her way!--and upon its
5818
beginning to rain, Emma was obliged to expect that the weather would
5819
be detaining her at Mrs. Goddard's, and that the intelligence would
5820
undoubtedly rush upon her without preparation.
5821
5822
The shower was heavy, but short; and it had not been over five minutes,
5823
when in came Harriet, with just the heated, agitated look which
5824
hurrying thither with a full heart was likely to give; and the “Oh! Miss
5825
Woodhouse, what do you think has happened!” which instantly burst forth,
5826
had all the evidence of corresponding perturbation. As the blow was
5827
given, Emma felt that she could not now shew greater kindness than in
5828
listening; and Harriet, unchecked, ran eagerly through what she had to
5829
tell. “She had set out from Mrs. Goddard's half an hour ago--she had
5830
been afraid it would rain--she had been afraid it would pour down
5831
every moment--but she thought she might get to Hartfield first--she
5832
had hurried on as fast as possible; but then, as she was passing by the
5833
house where a young woman was making up a gown for her, she thought she
5834
would just step in and see how it went on; and though she did not seem
5835
to stay half a moment there, soon after she came out it began to rain,
5836
and she did not know what to do; so she ran on directly, as fast as
5837
she could, and took shelter at Ford's.”--Ford's was the principal
5838
woollen-draper, linen-draper, and haberdasher's shop united; the shop
5839
first in size and fashion in the place.--“And so, there she had
5840
set, without an idea of any thing in the world, full ten minutes,
5841
perhaps--when, all of a sudden, who should come in--to be sure it was
5842
so very odd!--but they always dealt at Ford's--who should come in, but
5843
Elizabeth Martin and her brother!--Dear Miss Woodhouse! only think. I
5844
thought I should have fainted. I did not know what to do. I was sitting
5845
near the door--Elizabeth saw me directly; but he did not; he was busy
5846
with the umbrella. I am sure she saw me, but she looked away directly,
5847
and took no notice; and they both went to quite the farther end of the
5848
shop; and I kept sitting near the door!--Oh! dear; I was so miserable!
5849
I am sure I must have been as white as my gown. I could not go away
5850
you know, because of the rain; but I did so wish myself anywhere in the
5851
world but there.--Oh! dear, Miss Woodhouse--well, at last, I fancy, he
5852
looked round and saw me; for instead of going on with her buyings, they
5853
began whispering to one another. I am sure they were talking of me; and
5854
I could not help thinking that he was persuading her to speak to me--(do
5855
you think he was, Miss Woodhouse?)--for presently she came forward--came
5856
quite up to me, and asked me how I did, and seemed ready to shake hands,
5857
if I would. She did not do any of it in the same way that she used; I
5858
could see she was altered; but, however, she seemed to _try_ to be very
5859
friendly, and we shook hands, and stood talking some time; but I know no
5860
more what I said--I was in such a tremble!--I remember she said she
5861
was sorry we never met now; which I thought almost too kind! Dear, Miss
5862
Woodhouse, I was absolutely miserable! By that time, it was beginning to
5863
hold up, and I was determined that nothing should stop me from getting
5864
away--and then--only think!--I found he was coming up towards me
5865
too--slowly you know, and as if he did not quite know what to do; and
5866
so he came and spoke, and I answered--and I stood for a minute, feeling
5867
dreadfully, you know, one can't tell how; and then I took courage, and
5868
said it did not rain, and I must go; and so off I set; and I had not got
5869
three yards from the door, when he came after me, only to say, if I was
5870
going to Hartfield, he thought I had much better go round by Mr. Cole's
5871
stables, for I should find the near way quite floated by this rain. Oh!
5872
dear, I thought it would have been the death of me! So I said, I was
5873
very much obliged to him: you know I could not do less; and then he went
5874
back to Elizabeth, and I came round by the stables--I believe I did--but
5875
I hardly knew where I was, or any thing about it. Oh! Miss Woodhouse,
5876
I would rather done any thing than have it happen: and yet, you know,
5877
there was a sort of satisfaction in seeing him behave so pleasantly and
5878
so kindly. And Elizabeth, too. Oh! Miss Woodhouse, do talk to me and
5879
make me comfortable again.”
5880
5881
Very sincerely did Emma wish to do so; but it was not immediately in
5882
her power. She was obliged to stop and think. She was not thoroughly
5883
comfortable herself. The young man's conduct, and his sister's, seemed
5884
the result of real feeling, and she could not but pity them. As Harriet
5885
described it, there had been an interesting mixture of wounded affection
5886
and genuine delicacy in their behaviour. But she had believed them to be
5887
well-meaning, worthy people before; and what difference did this make
5888
in the evils of the connexion? It was folly to be disturbed by it. Of
5889
course, he must be sorry to lose her--they must be all sorry. Ambition,
5890
as well as love, had probably been mortified. They might all have hoped
5891
to rise by Harriet's acquaintance: and besides, what was the value of
5892
Harriet's description?--So easily pleased--so little discerning;--what
5893
signified her praise?
5894
5895
She exerted herself, and did try to make her comfortable, by considering
5896
all that had passed as a mere trifle, and quite unworthy of being dwelt
5897
on,
5898
5899
“It might be distressing, for the moment,” said she; “but you seem to
5900
have behaved extremely well; and it is over--and may never--can never,
5901
as a first meeting, occur again, and therefore you need not think about
5902
it.”
5903
5904
Harriet said, “very true,” and she “would not think about it;” but still
5905
she talked of it--still she could talk of nothing else; and Emma, at
5906
last, in order to put the Martins out of her head, was obliged to hurry
5907
on the news, which she had meant to give with so much tender caution;
5908
hardly knowing herself whether to rejoice or be angry, ashamed or only
5909
amused, at such a state of mind in poor Harriet--such a conclusion of
5910
Mr. Elton's importance with her!
5911
5912
Mr. Elton's rights, however, gradually revived. Though she did not feel
5913
the first intelligence as she might have done the day before, or an hour
5914
before, its interest soon increased; and before their first conversation
5915
was over, she had talked herself into all the sensations of curiosity,
5916
wonder and regret, pain and pleasure, as to this fortunate Miss Hawkins,
5917
which could conduce to place the Martins under proper subordination in
5918
her fancy.
5919
5920
Emma learned to be rather glad that there had been such a meeting. It
5921
had been serviceable in deadening the first shock, without retaining any
5922
influence to alarm. As Harriet now lived, the Martins could not get
5923
at her, without seeking her, where hitherto they had wanted either the
5924
courage or the condescension to seek her; for since her refusal of the
5925
brother, the sisters never had been at Mrs. Goddard's; and a twelvemonth
5926
might pass without their being thrown together again, with any
5927
necessity, or even any power of speech.
5928
5929
5930
5931
CHAPTER IV
5932
5933
5934
Human nature is so well disposed towards those who are in interesting
5935
situations, that a young person, who either marries or dies, is sure of
5936
being kindly spoken of.
5937
5938
A week had not passed since Miss Hawkins's name was first mentioned in
5939
Highbury, before she was, by some means or other, discovered to have
5940
every recommendation of person and mind; to be handsome, elegant, highly
5941
accomplished, and perfectly amiable: and when Mr. Elton himself arrived
5942
to triumph in his happy prospects, and circulate the fame of her merits,
5943
there was very little more for him to do, than to tell her Christian
5944
name, and say whose music she principally played.
5945
5946
Mr. Elton returned, a very happy man. He had gone away rejected and
5947
mortified--disappointed in a very sanguine hope, after a series of what
5948
appeared to him strong encouragement; and not only losing the right
5949
lady, but finding himself debased to the level of a very wrong one. He
5950
had gone away deeply offended--he came back engaged to another--and
5951
to another as superior, of course, to the first, as under such
5952
circumstances what is gained always is to what is lost. He came back gay
5953
and self-satisfied, eager and busy, caring nothing for Miss Woodhouse,
5954
and defying Miss Smith.
5955
5956
The charming Augusta Hawkins, in addition to all the usual advantages of
5957
perfect beauty and merit, was in possession of an independent fortune,
5958
of so many thousands as would always be called ten; a point of some
5959
dignity, as well as some convenience: the story told well; he had not
5960
thrown himself away--he had gained a woman of 10,000 l. or thereabouts;
5961
and he had gained her with such delightful rapidity--the first hour of
5962
introduction had been so very soon followed by distinguishing notice;
5963
the history which he had to give Mrs. Cole of the rise and progress
5964
of the affair was so glorious--the steps so quick, from the accidental
5965
rencontre, to the dinner at Mr. Green's, and the party at Mrs.
5966
Brown's--smiles and blushes rising in importance--with consciousness and
5967
agitation richly scattered--the lady had been so easily impressed--so
5968
sweetly disposed--had in short, to use a most intelligible phrase,
5969
been so very ready to have him, that vanity and prudence were equally
5970
contented.
5971
5972
He had caught both substance and shadow--both fortune and affection, and
5973
was just the happy man he ought to be; talking only of himself and
5974
his own concerns--expecting to be congratulated--ready to be laughed
5975
at--and, with cordial, fearless smiles, now addressing all the young
5976
ladies of the place, to whom, a few weeks ago, he would have been more
5977
cautiously gallant.
5978
5979
The wedding was no distant event, as the parties had only themselves to
5980
please, and nothing but the necessary preparations to wait for; and
5981
when he set out for Bath again, there was a general expectation, which
5982
a certain glance of Mrs. Cole's did not seem to contradict, that when he
5983
next entered Highbury he would bring his bride.
5984
5985
During his present short stay, Emma had barely seen him; but just enough
5986
to feel that the first meeting was over, and to give her the impression
5987
of his not being improved by the mixture of pique and pretension, now
5988
spread over his air. She was, in fact, beginning very much to wonder
5989
that she had ever thought him pleasing at all; and his sight was so
5990
inseparably connected with some very disagreeable feelings, that,
5991
except in a moral light, as a penance, a lesson, a source of profitable
5992
humiliation to her own mind, she would have been thankful to be assured
5993
of never seeing him again. She wished him very well; but he gave
5994
her pain, and his welfare twenty miles off would administer most
5995
satisfaction.
5996
5997
The pain of his continued residence in Highbury, however, must
5998
certainly be lessened by his marriage. Many vain solicitudes would be
5999
prevented--many awkwardnesses smoothed by it. A _Mrs._ _Elton_ would
6000
be an excuse for any change of intercourse; former intimacy might sink
6001
without remark. It would be almost beginning their life of civility
6002
again.
6003
6004
Of the lady, individually, Emma thought very little. She was good enough
6005
for Mr. Elton, no doubt; accomplished enough for Highbury--handsome
6006
enough--to look plain, probably, by Harriet's side. As to connexion,
6007
there Emma was perfectly easy; persuaded, that after all his own vaunted
6008
claims and disdain of Harriet, he had done nothing. On that article,
6009
truth seemed attainable. _What_ she was, must be uncertain; but _who_
6010
she was, might be found out; and setting aside the 10,000 l., it did not
6011
appear that she was at all Harriet's superior. She brought no name, no
6012
blood, no alliance. Miss Hawkins was the youngest of the two daughters
6013
of a Bristol--merchant, of course, he must be called; but, as the whole
6014
of the profits of his mercantile life appeared so very moderate, it
6015
was not unfair to guess the dignity of his line of trade had been very
6016
moderate also. Part of every winter she had been used to spend in Bath;
6017
but Bristol was her home, the very heart of Bristol; for though the
6018
father and mother had died some years ago, an uncle remained--in the law
6019
line--nothing more distinctly honourable was hazarded of him, than
6020
that he was in the law line; and with him the daughter had lived. Emma
6021
guessed him to be the drudge of some attorney, and too stupid to rise.
6022
And all the grandeur of the connexion seemed dependent on the elder
6023
sister, who was _very_ _well_ _married_, to a gentleman in a _great_
6024
_way_, near Bristol, who kept two carriages! That was the wind-up of the
6025
history; that was the glory of Miss Hawkins.
6026
6027
Could she but have given Harriet her feelings about it all! She had
6028
talked her into love; but, alas! she was not so easily to be talked out
6029
of it. The charm of an object to occupy the many vacancies of Harriet's
6030
mind was not to be talked away. He might be superseded by another; he
6031
certainly would indeed; nothing could be clearer; even a Robert Martin
6032
would have been sufficient; but nothing else, she feared, would cure
6033
her. Harriet was one of those, who, having once begun, would be always
6034
in love. And now, poor girl! she was considerably worse from this
6035
reappearance of Mr. Elton. She was always having a glimpse of him
6036
somewhere or other. Emma saw him only once; but two or three times every
6037
day Harriet was sure _just_ to meet with him, or _just_ to miss him,
6038
_just_ to hear his voice, or see his shoulder, _just_ to have something
6039
occur to preserve him in her fancy, in all the favouring warmth of
6040
surprize and conjecture. She was, moreover, perpetually hearing about
6041
him; for, excepting when at Hartfield, she was always among those who
6042
saw no fault in Mr. Elton, and found nothing so interesting as
6043
the discussion of his concerns; and every report, therefore, every
6044
guess--all that had already occurred, all that might occur in the
6045
arrangement of his affairs, comprehending income, servants, and
6046
furniture, was continually in agitation around her. Her regard was
6047
receiving strength by invariable praise of him, and her regrets kept
6048
alive, and feelings irritated by ceaseless repetitions of Miss
6049
Hawkins's happiness, and continual observation of, how much he seemed
6050
attached!--his air as he walked by the house--the very sitting of his
6051
hat, being all in proof of how much he was in love!
6052
6053
Had it been allowable entertainment, had there been no pain to her
6054
friend, or reproach to herself, in the waverings of Harriet's mind,
6055
Emma would have been amused by its variations. Sometimes Mr. Elton
6056
predominated, sometimes the Martins; and each was occasionally useful
6057
as a check to the other. Mr. Elton's engagement had been the cure of
6058
the agitation of meeting Mr. Martin. The unhappiness produced by the
6059
knowledge of that engagement had been a little put aside by Elizabeth
6060
Martin's calling at Mrs. Goddard's a few days afterwards. Harriet had
6061
not been at home; but a note had been prepared and left for her, written
6062
in the very style to touch; a small mixture of reproach, with a great
6063
deal of kindness; and till Mr. Elton himself appeared, she had been much
6064
occupied by it, continually pondering over what could be done in return,
6065
and wishing to do more than she dared to confess. But Mr. Elton, in
6066
person, had driven away all such cares. While he staid, the Martins were
6067
forgotten; and on the very morning of his setting off for Bath again,
6068
Emma, to dissipate some of the distress it occasioned, judged it best
6069
for her to return Elizabeth Martin's visit.
6070
6071
How that visit was to be acknowledged--what would be necessary--and
6072
what might be safest, had been a point of some doubtful consideration.
6073
Absolute neglect of the mother and sisters, when invited to come, would
6074
be ingratitude. It must not be: and yet the danger of a renewal of the
6075
acquaintance--!
6076
6077
After much thinking, she could determine on nothing better, than
6078
Harriet's returning the visit; but in a way that, if they had
6079
understanding, should convince them that it was to be only a formal
6080
acquaintance. She meant to take her in the carriage, leave her at the
6081
Abbey Mill, while she drove a little farther, and call for her again
6082
so soon, as to allow no time for insidious applications or dangerous
6083
recurrences to the past, and give the most decided proof of what degree
6084
of intimacy was chosen for the future.
6085
6086
She could think of nothing better: and though there was something in it
6087
which her own heart could not approve--something of ingratitude, merely
6088
glossed over--it must be done, or what would become of Harriet?
6089
6090
6091
6092
CHAPTER V
6093
6094
6095
Small heart had Harriet for visiting. Only half an hour before her
6096
friend called for her at Mrs. Goddard's, her evil stars had led her
6097
to the very spot where, at that moment, a trunk, directed to _The Rev.
6098
Philip Elton, White-Hart, Bath_, was to be seen under the operation of
6099
being lifted into the butcher's cart, which was to convey it to where
6100
the coaches past; and every thing in this world, excepting that trunk
6101
and the direction, was consequently a blank.
6102
6103
She went, however; and when they reached the farm, and she was to be
6104
put down, at the end of the broad, neat gravel walk, which led between
6105
espalier apple-trees to the front door, the sight of every thing which
6106
had given her so much pleasure the autumn before, was beginning to
6107
revive a little local agitation; and when they parted, Emma observed her
6108
to be looking around with a sort of fearful curiosity, which determined
6109
her not to allow the visit to exceed the proposed quarter of an hour.
6110
She went on herself, to give that portion of time to an old servant who
6111
was married, and settled in Donwell.
6112
6113
The quarter of an hour brought her punctually to the white gate again;
6114
and Miss Smith receiving her summons, was with her without delay, and
6115
unattended by any alarming young man. She came solitarily down the
6116
gravel walk--a Miss Martin just appearing at the door, and parting with
6117
her seemingly with ceremonious civility.
6118
6119
Harriet could not very soon give an intelligible account. She was
6120
feeling too much; but at last Emma collected from her enough to
6121
understand the sort of meeting, and the sort of pain it was creating.
6122
She had seen only Mrs. Martin and the two girls. They had received her
6123
doubtingly, if not coolly; and nothing beyond the merest commonplace had
6124
been talked almost all the time--till just at last, when Mrs. Martin's
6125
saying, all of a sudden, that she thought Miss Smith was grown, had
6126
brought on a more interesting subject, and a warmer manner. In that very
6127
room she had been measured last September, with her two friends. There
6128
were the pencilled marks and memorandums on the wainscot by the window.
6129
_He_ had done it. They all seemed to remember the day, the hour,
6130
the party, the occasion--to feel the same consciousness, the same
6131
regrets--to be ready to return to the same good understanding; and they
6132
were just growing again like themselves, (Harriet, as Emma must suspect,
6133
as ready as the best of them to be cordial and happy,) when the carriage
6134
reappeared, and all was over. The style of the visit, and the shortness
6135
of it, were then felt to be decisive. Fourteen minutes to be given
6136
to those with whom she had thankfully passed six weeks not six months
6137
ago!--Emma could not but picture it all, and feel how justly they might
6138
resent, how naturally Harriet must suffer. It was a bad business. She
6139
would have given a great deal, or endured a great deal, to have had
6140
the Martins in a higher rank of life. They were so deserving, that a
6141
_little_ higher should have been enough: but as it was, how could she
6142
have done otherwise?--Impossible!--She could not repent. They must be
6143
separated; but there was a great deal of pain in the process--so much
6144
to herself at this time, that she soon felt the necessity of a little
6145
consolation, and resolved on going home by way of Randalls to
6146
procure it. Her mind was quite sick of Mr. Elton and the Martins. The
6147
refreshment of Randalls was absolutely necessary.
6148
6149
It was a good scheme; but on driving to the door they heard that neither
6150
“master nor mistress was at home;” they had both been out some time; the
6151
man believed they were gone to Hartfield.
6152
6153
“This is too bad,” cried Emma, as they turned away. “And now we shall
6154
just miss them; too provoking!--I do not know when I have been so
6155
disappointed.” And she leaned back in the corner, to indulge her
6156
murmurs, or to reason them away; probably a little of both--such being
6157
the commonest process of a not ill-disposed mind. Presently the carriage
6158
stopt; she looked up; it was stopt by Mr. and Mrs. Weston, who were
6159
standing to speak to her. There was instant pleasure in the sight of
6160
them, and still greater pleasure was conveyed in sound--for Mr. Weston
6161
immediately accosted her with,
6162
6163
“How d'ye do?--how d'ye do?--We have been sitting with your father--glad
6164
to see him so well. Frank comes to-morrow--I had a letter this
6165
morning--we see him to-morrow by dinner-time to a certainty--he is at
6166
Oxford to-day, and he comes for a whole fortnight; I knew it would be
6167
so. If he had come at Christmas he could not have staid three days; I
6168
was always glad he did not come at Christmas; now we are going to have
6169
just the right weather for him, fine, dry, settled weather. We shall
6170
enjoy him completely; every thing has turned out exactly as we could
6171
wish.”
6172
6173
There was no resisting such news, no possibility of avoiding the
6174
influence of such a happy face as Mr. Weston's, confirmed as it all was
6175
by the words and the countenance of his wife, fewer and quieter, but not
6176
less to the purpose. To know that _she_ thought his coming certain was
6177
enough to make Emma consider it so, and sincerely did she rejoice in
6178
their joy. It was a most delightful reanimation of exhausted spirits.
6179
The worn-out past was sunk in the freshness of what was coming; and in
6180
the rapidity of half a moment's thought, she hoped Mr. Elton would now
6181
be talked of no more.
6182
6183
Mr. Weston gave her the history of the engagements at Enscombe, which
6184
allowed his son to answer for having an entire fortnight at his command,
6185
as well as the route and the method of his journey; and she listened,
6186
and smiled, and congratulated.
6187
6188
“I shall soon bring him over to Hartfield,” said he, at the conclusion.
6189
6190
Emma could imagine she saw a touch of the arm at this speech, from his
6191
wife.
6192
6193
“We had better move on, Mr. Weston,” said she, “we are detaining the
6194
girls.”
6195
6196
“Well, well, I am ready;”--and turning again to Emma, “but you must
6197
not be expecting such a _very_ fine young man; you have only
6198
had _my_ account you know; I dare say he is really nothing
6199
extraordinary:”--though his own sparkling eyes at the moment were
6200
speaking a very different conviction.
6201
6202
Emma could look perfectly unconscious and innocent, and answer in a
6203
manner that appropriated nothing.
6204
6205
“Think of me to-morrow, my dear Emma, about four o'clock,” was Mrs.
6206
Weston's parting injunction; spoken with some anxiety, and meant only
6207
for her.
6208
6209
“Four o'clock!--depend upon it he will be here by three,” was Mr.
6210
Weston's quick amendment; and so ended a most satisfactory meeting.
6211
Emma's spirits were mounted quite up to happiness; every thing wore
6212
a different air; James and his horses seemed not half so sluggish as
6213
before. When she looked at the hedges, she thought the elder at least
6214
must soon be coming out; and when she turned round to Harriet, she saw
6215
something like a look of spring, a tender smile even there.
6216
6217
“Will Mr. Frank Churchill pass through Bath as well as Oxford?”--was a
6218
question, however, which did not augur much.
6219
6220
But neither geography nor tranquillity could come all at once, and Emma
6221
was now in a humour to resolve that they should both come in time.
6222
6223
The morning of the interesting day arrived, and Mrs. Weston's faithful
6224
pupil did not forget either at ten, or eleven, or twelve o'clock, that
6225
she was to think of her at four.
6226
6227
“My dear, dear anxious friend,”--said she, in mental soliloquy, while
6228
walking downstairs from her own room, “always overcareful for every
6229
body's comfort but your own; I see you now in all your little fidgets,
6230
going again and again into his room, to be sure that all is right.”
6231
The clock struck twelve as she passed through the hall. “'Tis twelve;
6232
I shall not forget to think of you four hours hence; and by this
6233
time to-morrow, perhaps, or a little later, I may be thinking of the
6234
possibility of their all calling here. I am sure they will bring him
6235
soon.”
6236
6237
She opened the parlour door, and saw two gentlemen sitting with her
6238
father--Mr. Weston and his son. They had been arrived only a few
6239
minutes, and Mr. Weston had scarcely finished his explanation of Frank's
6240
being a day before his time, and her father was yet in the midst of his
6241
very civil welcome and congratulations, when she appeared, to have her
6242
share of surprize, introduction, and pleasure.
6243
6244
The Frank Churchill so long talked of, so high in interest, was actually
6245
before her--he was presented to her, and she did not think too much had
6246
been said in his praise; he was a _very_ good looking young man; height,
6247
air, address, all were unexceptionable, and his countenance had a great
6248
deal of the spirit and liveliness of his father's; he looked quick and
6249
sensible. She felt immediately that she should like him; and there was
6250
a well-bred ease of manner, and a readiness to talk, which convinced her
6251
that he came intending to be acquainted with her, and that acquainted
6252
they soon must be.
6253
6254
He had reached Randalls the evening before. She was pleased with the
6255
eagerness to arrive which had made him alter his plan, and travel
6256
earlier, later, and quicker, that he might gain half a day.
6257
6258
“I told you yesterday,” cried Mr. Weston with exultation, “I told you
6259
all that he would be here before the time named. I remembered what I
6260
used to do myself. One cannot creep upon a journey; one cannot help
6261
getting on faster than one has planned; and the pleasure of coming in
6262
upon one's friends before the look-out begins, is worth a great deal
6263
more than any little exertion it needs.”
6264
6265
“It is a great pleasure where one can indulge in it,” said the young
6266
man, “though there are not many houses that I should presume on so far;
6267
but in coming _home_ I felt I might do any thing.”
6268
6269
The word _home_ made his father look on him with fresh complacency.
6270
Emma was directly sure that he knew how to make himself agreeable; the
6271
conviction was strengthened by what followed. He was very much pleased
6272
with Randalls, thought it a most admirably arranged house, would hardly
6273
allow it even to be very small, admired the situation, the walk to
6274
Highbury, Highbury itself, Hartfield still more, and professed himself
6275
to have always felt the sort of interest in the country which none but
6276
one's _own_ country gives, and the greatest curiosity to visit it. That
6277
he should never have been able to indulge so amiable a feeling before,
6278
passed suspiciously through Emma's brain; but still, if it were a
6279
falsehood, it was a pleasant one, and pleasantly handled. His manner had
6280
no air of study or exaggeration. He did really look and speak as if in a
6281
state of no common enjoyment.
6282
6283
Their subjects in general were such as belong to an opening
6284
acquaintance. On his side were the inquiries,--“Was she a
6285
horsewoman?--Pleasant rides?--Pleasant walks?--Had they a large
6286
neighbourhood?--Highbury, perhaps, afforded society enough?--There were
6287
several very pretty houses in and about it.--Balls--had they balls?--Was
6288
it a musical society?”
6289
6290
But when satisfied on all these points, and their acquaintance
6291
proportionably advanced, he contrived to find an opportunity, while
6292
their two fathers were engaged with each other, of introducing his
6293
mother-in-law, and speaking of her with so much handsome praise, so much
6294
warm admiration, so much gratitude for the happiness she secured to his
6295
father, and her very kind reception of himself, as was an additional
6296
proof of his knowing how to please--and of his certainly thinking it
6297
worth while to try to please her. He did not advance a word of praise
6298
beyond what she knew to be thoroughly deserved by Mrs. Weston; but,
6299
undoubtedly he could know very little of the matter. He understood
6300
what would be welcome; he could be sure of little else. “His father's
6301
marriage,” he said, “had been the wisest measure, every friend must
6302
rejoice in it; and the family from whom he had received such a blessing
6303
must be ever considered as having conferred the highest obligation on
6304
him.”
6305
6306
He got as near as he could to thanking her for Miss Taylor's merits,
6307
without seeming quite to forget that in the common course of things it
6308
was to be rather supposed that Miss Taylor had formed Miss Woodhouse's
6309
character, than Miss Woodhouse Miss Taylor's. And at last, as if
6310
resolved to qualify his opinion completely for travelling round to its
6311
object, he wound it all up with astonishment at the youth and beauty of
6312
her person.
6313
6314
“Elegant, agreeable manners, I was prepared for,” said he; “but I
6315
confess that, considering every thing, I had not expected more than a
6316
very tolerably well-looking woman of a certain age; I did not know that
6317
I was to find a pretty young woman in Mrs. Weston.”
6318
6319
“You cannot see too much perfection in Mrs. Weston for my feelings,”
6320
said Emma; “were you to guess her to be _eighteen_, I should listen with
6321
pleasure; but _she_ would be ready to quarrel with you for using such
6322
words. Don't let her imagine that you have spoken of her as a pretty
6323
young woman.”
6324
6325
“I hope I should know better,” he replied; “no, depend upon it, (with a
6326
gallant bow,) that in addressing Mrs. Weston I should understand whom
6327
I might praise without any danger of being thought extravagant in my
6328
terms.”
6329
6330
Emma wondered whether the same suspicion of what might be expected from
6331
their knowing each other, which had taken strong possession of her mind,
6332
had ever crossed his; and whether his compliments were to be considered
6333
as marks of acquiescence, or proofs of defiance. She must see more
6334
of him to understand his ways; at present she only felt they were
6335
agreeable.
6336
6337
She had no doubt of what Mr. Weston was often thinking about. His quick
6338
eye she detected again and again glancing towards them with a happy
6339
expression; and even, when he might have determined not to look, she was
6340
confident that he was often listening.
6341
6342
Her own father's perfect exemption from any thought of the kind, the
6343
entire deficiency in him of all such sort of penetration or suspicion,
6344
was a most comfortable circumstance. Happily he was not farther from
6345
approving matrimony than from foreseeing it.--Though always objecting
6346
to every marriage that was arranged, he never suffered beforehand from
6347
the apprehension of any; it seemed as if he could not think so ill of
6348
any two persons' understanding as to suppose they meant to marry till it
6349
were proved against them. She blessed the favouring blindness. He could
6350
now, without the drawback of a single unpleasant surmise, without a
6351
glance forward at any possible treachery in his guest, give way to all
6352
his natural kind-hearted civility in solicitous inquiries after Mr.
6353
Frank Churchill's accommodation on his journey, through the sad evils
6354
of sleeping two nights on the road, and express very genuine unmixed
6355
anxiety to know that he had certainly escaped catching cold--which,
6356
however, he could not allow him to feel quite assured of himself till
6357
after another night.
6358
6359
A reasonable visit paid, Mr. Weston began to move.--“He must be going.
6360
He had business at the Crown about his hay, and a great many errands for
6361
Mrs. Weston at Ford's, but he need not hurry any body else.” His son,
6362
too well bred to hear the hint, rose immediately also, saying,
6363
6364
“As you are going farther on business, sir, I will take the opportunity
6365
of paying a visit, which must be paid some day or other, and therefore
6366
may as well be paid now. I have the honour of being acquainted with
6367
a neighbour of yours, (turning to Emma,) a lady residing in or near
6368
Highbury; a family of the name of Fairfax. I shall have no difficulty,
6369
I suppose, in finding the house; though Fairfax, I believe, is not
6370
the proper name--I should rather say Barnes, or Bates. Do you know any
6371
family of that name?”
6372
6373
“To be sure we do,” cried his father; “Mrs. Bates--we passed her
6374
house--I saw Miss Bates at the window. True, true, you are acquainted
6375
with Miss Fairfax; I remember you knew her at Weymouth, and a fine girl
6376
she is. Call upon her, by all means.”
6377
6378
“There is no necessity for my calling this morning,” said the young man;
6379
“another day would do as well; but there was that degree of acquaintance
6380
at Weymouth which--”
6381
6382
“Oh! go to-day, go to-day. Do not defer it. What is right to be done
6383
cannot be done too soon. And, besides, I must give you a hint, Frank;
6384
any want of attention to her _here_ should be carefully avoided. You saw
6385
her with the Campbells, when she was the equal of every body she mixed
6386
with, but here she is with a poor old grandmother, who has barely enough
6387
to live on. If you do not call early it will be a slight.”
6388
6389
The son looked convinced.
6390
6391
“I have heard her speak of the acquaintance,” said Emma; “she is a very
6392
elegant young woman.”
6393
6394
He agreed to it, but with so quiet a “Yes,” as inclined her almost to
6395
doubt his real concurrence; and yet there must be a very distinct sort
6396
of elegance for the fashionable world, if Jane Fairfax could be thought
6397
only ordinarily gifted with it.
6398
6399
“If you were never particularly struck by her manners before,” said she,
6400
“I think you will to-day. You will see her to advantage; see her and
6401
hear her--no, I am afraid you will not hear her at all, for she has an
6402
aunt who never holds her tongue.”
6403
6404
“You are acquainted with Miss Jane Fairfax, sir, are you?” said Mr.
6405
Woodhouse, always the last to make his way in conversation; “then give
6406
me leave to assure you that you will find her a very agreeable young
6407
lady. She is staying here on a visit to her grandmama and aunt, very
6408
worthy people; I have known them all my life. They will be extremely
6409
glad to see you, I am sure; and one of my servants shall go with you to
6410
shew you the way.”
6411
6412
“My dear sir, upon no account in the world; my father can direct me.”
6413
6414
“But your father is not going so far; he is only going to the Crown,
6415
quite on the other side of the street, and there are a great many
6416
houses; you might be very much at a loss, and it is a very dirty walk,
6417
unless you keep on the footpath; but my coachman can tell you where you
6418
had best cross the street.”
6419
6420
Mr. Frank Churchill still declined it, looking as serious as he could,
6421
and his father gave his hearty support by calling out, “My good friend,
6422
this is quite unnecessary; Frank knows a puddle of water when he sees
6423
it, and as to Mrs. Bates's, he may get there from the Crown in a hop,
6424
step, and jump.”
6425
6426
They were permitted to go alone; and with a cordial nod from one, and a
6427
graceful bow from the other, the two gentlemen took leave. Emma remained
6428
very well pleased with this beginning of the acquaintance, and could now
6429
engage to think of them all at Randalls any hour of the day, with full
6430
confidence in their comfort.
6431
6432
6433
6434
CHAPTER VI
6435
6436
6437
The next morning brought Mr. Frank Churchill again. He came with Mrs.
6438
Weston, to whom and to Highbury he seemed to take very cordially. He had
6439
been sitting with her, it appeared, most companionably at home, till
6440
her usual hour of exercise; and on being desired to chuse their walk,
6441
immediately fixed on Highbury.--“He did not doubt there being very
6442
pleasant walks in every direction, but if left to him, he should always
6443
chuse the same. Highbury, that airy, cheerful, happy-looking Highbury,
6444
would be his constant attraction.”--Highbury, with Mrs. Weston, stood
6445
for Hartfield; and she trusted to its bearing the same construction with
6446
him. They walked thither directly.
6447
6448
Emma had hardly expected them: for Mr. Weston, who had called in for
6449
half a minute, in order to hear that his son was very handsome, knew
6450
nothing of their plans; and it was an agreeable surprize to her,
6451
therefore, to perceive them walking up to the house together, arm in
6452
arm. She was wanting to see him again, and especially to see him in
6453
company with Mrs. Weston, upon his behaviour to whom her opinion of him
6454
was to depend. If he were deficient there, nothing should make amends
6455
for it. But on seeing them together, she became perfectly satisfied. It
6456
was not merely in fine words or hyperbolical compliment that he paid his
6457
duty; nothing could be more proper or pleasing than his whole manner to
6458
her--nothing could more agreeably denote his wish of considering her as
6459
a friend and securing her affection. And there was time enough for Emma
6460
to form a reasonable judgment, as their visit included all the rest of
6461
the morning. They were all three walking about together for an hour
6462
or two--first round the shrubberies of Hartfield, and afterwards
6463
in Highbury. He was delighted with every thing; admired Hartfield
6464
sufficiently for Mr. Woodhouse's ear; and when their going farther was
6465
resolved on, confessed his wish to be made acquainted with the whole
6466
village, and found matter of commendation and interest much oftener than
6467
Emma could have supposed.
6468
6469
Some of the objects of his curiosity spoke very amiable feelings. He
6470
begged to be shewn the house which his father had lived in so long, and
6471
which had been the home of his father's father; and on recollecting that
6472
an old woman who had nursed him was still living, walked in quest of
6473
her cottage from one end of the street to the other; and though in
6474
some points of pursuit or observation there was no positive merit, they
6475
shewed, altogether, a good-will towards Highbury in general, which must
6476
be very like a merit to those he was with.
6477
6478
Emma watched and decided, that with such feelings as were now shewn, it
6479
could not be fairly supposed that he had been ever voluntarily absenting
6480
himself; that he had not been acting a part, or making a parade of
6481
insincere professions; and that Mr. Knightley certainly had not done him
6482
justice.
6483
6484
Their first pause was at the Crown Inn, an inconsiderable house, though
6485
the principal one of the sort, where a couple of pair of post-horses
6486
were kept, more for the convenience of the neighbourhood than from any
6487
run on the road; and his companions had not expected to be detained by
6488
any interest excited there; but in passing it they gave the history of
6489
the large room visibly added; it had been built many years ago for
6490
a ball-room, and while the neighbourhood had been in a particularly
6491
populous, dancing state, had been occasionally used as such;--but such
6492
brilliant days had long passed away, and now the highest purpose for
6493
which it was ever wanted was to accommodate a whist club established
6494
among the gentlemen and half-gentlemen of the place. He was immediately
6495
interested. Its character as a ball-room caught him; and instead of
6496
passing on, he stopt for several minutes at the two superior sashed
6497
windows which were open, to look in and contemplate its capabilities,
6498
and lament that its original purpose should have ceased. He saw no fault
6499
in the room, he would acknowledge none which they suggested. No, it
6500
was long enough, broad enough, handsome enough. It would hold the
6501
very number for comfort. They ought to have balls there at least every
6502
fortnight through the winter. Why had not Miss Woodhouse revived
6503
the former good old days of the room?--She who could do any thing in
6504
Highbury! The want of proper families in the place, and the conviction
6505
that none beyond the place and its immediate environs could be tempted
6506
to attend, were mentioned; but he was not satisfied. He could not be
6507
persuaded that so many good-looking houses as he saw around him, could
6508
not furnish numbers enough for such a meeting; and even when particulars
6509
were given and families described, he was still unwilling to admit that
6510
the inconvenience of such a mixture would be any thing, or that there
6511
would be the smallest difficulty in every body's returning into their
6512
proper place the next morning. He argued like a young man very much bent
6513
on dancing; and Emma was rather surprized to see the constitution of
6514
the Weston prevail so decidedly against the habits of the Churchills.
6515
He seemed to have all the life and spirit, cheerful feelings, and social
6516
inclinations of his father, and nothing of the pride or reserve of
6517
Enscombe. Of pride, indeed, there was, perhaps, scarcely enough; his
6518
indifference to a confusion of rank, bordered too much on inelegance of
6519
mind. He could be no judge, however, of the evil he was holding cheap.
6520
It was but an effusion of lively spirits.
6521
6522
At last he was persuaded to move on from the front of the Crown;
6523
and being now almost facing the house where the Bateses lodged, Emma
6524
recollected his intended visit the day before, and asked him if he had
6525
paid it.
6526
6527
“Yes, oh! yes”--he replied; “I was just going to mention it. A very
6528
successful visit:--I saw all the three ladies; and felt very much
6529
obliged to you for your preparatory hint. If the talking aunt had taken
6530
me quite by surprize, it must have been the death of me. As it was, I
6531
was only betrayed into paying a most unreasonable visit. Ten minutes
6532
would have been all that was necessary, perhaps all that was proper; and
6533
I had told my father I should certainly be at home before him--but there
6534
was no getting away, no pause; and, to my utter astonishment, I found,
6535
when he (finding me nowhere else) joined me there at last, that I had
6536
been actually sitting with them very nearly three-quarters of an hour.
6537
The good lady had not given me the possibility of escape before.”
6538
6539
“And how did you think Miss Fairfax looking?”
6540
6541
“Ill, very ill--that is, if a young lady can ever be allowed to look
6542
ill. But the expression is hardly admissible, Mrs. Weston, is it? Ladies
6543
can never look ill. And, seriously, Miss Fairfax is naturally so
6544
pale, as almost always to give the appearance of ill health.--A most
6545
deplorable want of complexion.”
6546
6547
Emma would not agree to this, and began a warm defence of Miss Fairfax's
6548
complexion. “It was certainly never brilliant, but she would not
6549
allow it to have a sickly hue in general; and there was a softness and
6550
delicacy in her skin which gave peculiar elegance to the character of
6551
her face.” He listened with all due deference; acknowledged that he had
6552
heard many people say the same--but yet he must confess, that to him
6553
nothing could make amends for the want of the fine glow of health. Where
6554
features were indifferent, a fine complexion gave beauty to them all;
6555
and where they were good, the effect was--fortunately he need not
6556
attempt to describe what the effect was.
6557
6558
“Well,” said Emma, “there is no disputing about taste.--At least you
6559
admire her except her complexion.”
6560
6561
He shook his head and laughed.--“I cannot separate Miss Fairfax and her
6562
complexion.”
6563
6564
“Did you see her often at Weymouth? Were you often in the same society?”
6565
6566
At this moment they were approaching Ford's, and he hastily exclaimed,
6567
“Ha! this must be the very shop that every body attends every day of
6568
their lives, as my father informs me. He comes to Highbury himself, he
6569
says, six days out of the seven, and has always business at Ford's.
6570
If it be not inconvenient to you, pray let us go in, that I may prove
6571
myself to belong to the place, to be a true citizen of Highbury. I must
6572
buy something at Ford's. It will be taking out my freedom.--I dare say
6573
they sell gloves.”
6574
6575
“Oh! yes, gloves and every thing. I do admire your patriotism. You will
6576
be adored in Highbury. You were very popular before you came, because
6577
you were Mr. Weston's son--but lay out half a guinea at Ford's, and your
6578
popularity will stand upon your own virtues.”
6579
6580
They went in; and while the sleek, well-tied parcels of “Men's Beavers”
6581
and “York Tan” were bringing down and displaying on the counter, he
6582
said--“But I beg your pardon, Miss Woodhouse, you were speaking to me,
6583
you were saying something at the very moment of this burst of my _amor_
6584
_patriae_. Do not let me lose it. I assure you the utmost stretch of
6585
public fame would not make me amends for the loss of any happiness in
6586
private life.”
6587
6588
“I merely asked, whether you had known much of Miss Fairfax and her
6589
party at Weymouth.”
6590
6591
“And now that I understand your question, I must pronounce it to be a
6592
very unfair one. It is always the lady's right to decide on the degree
6593
of acquaintance. Miss Fairfax must already have given her account.--I
6594
shall not commit myself by claiming more than she may chuse to allow.”
6595
6596
“Upon my word! you answer as discreetly as she could do herself. But
6597
her account of every thing leaves so much to be guessed, she is so very
6598
reserved, so very unwilling to give the least information about any
6599
body, that I really think you may say what you like of your acquaintance
6600
with her.”
6601
6602
“May I, indeed?--Then I will speak the truth, and nothing suits me so
6603
well. I met her frequently at Weymouth. I had known the Campbells a
6604
little in town; and at Weymouth we were very much in the same set.
6605
Colonel Campbell is a very agreeable man, and Mrs. Campbell a friendly,
6606
warm-hearted woman. I like them all.”
6607
6608
“You know Miss Fairfax's situation in life, I conclude; what she is
6609
destined to be?”
6610
6611
“Yes--(rather hesitatingly)--I believe I do.”
6612
6613
“You get upon delicate subjects, Emma,” said Mrs. Weston smiling;
6614
“remember that I am here.--Mr. Frank Churchill hardly knows what to say
6615
when you speak of Miss Fairfax's situation in life. I will move a little
6616
farther off.”
6617
6618
“I certainly do forget to think of _her_,” said Emma, “as having ever
6619
been any thing but my friend and my dearest friend.”
6620
6621
He looked as if he fully understood and honoured such a sentiment.
6622
6623
When the gloves were bought, and they had quitted the shop again, “Did
6624
you ever hear the young lady we were speaking of, play?” said Frank
6625
Churchill.
6626
6627
“Ever hear her!” repeated Emma. “You forget how much she belongs to
6628
Highbury. I have heard her every year of our lives since we both began.
6629
She plays charmingly.”
6630
6631
“You think so, do you?--I wanted the opinion of some one who
6632
could really judge. She appeared to me to play well, that is, with
6633
considerable taste, but I know nothing of the matter myself.--I am
6634
excessively fond of music, but without the smallest skill or right
6635
of judging of any body's performance.--I have been used to hear her's
6636
admired; and I remember one proof of her being thought to play well:--a
6637
man, a very musical man, and in love with another woman--engaged to
6638
her--on the point of marriage--would yet never ask that other woman
6639
to sit down to the instrument, if the lady in question could sit down
6640
instead--never seemed to like to hear one if he could hear the other.
6641
That, I thought, in a man of known musical talent, was some proof.”
6642
6643
“Proof indeed!” said Emma, highly amused.--“Mr. Dixon is very musical,
6644
is he? We shall know more about them all, in half an hour, from you,
6645
than Miss Fairfax would have vouchsafed in half a year.”
6646
6647
“Yes, Mr. Dixon and Miss Campbell were the persons; and I thought it a
6648
very strong proof.”
6649
6650
“Certainly--very strong it was; to own the truth, a great deal stronger
6651
than, if _I_ had been Miss Campbell, would have been at all agreeable
6652
to me. I could not excuse a man's having more music than love--more ear
6653
than eye--a more acute sensibility to fine sounds than to my feelings.
6654
How did Miss Campbell appear to like it?”
6655
6656
“It was her very particular friend, you know.”
6657
6658
“Poor comfort!” said Emma, laughing. “One would rather have a stranger
6659
preferred than one's very particular friend--with a stranger it might
6660
not recur again--but the misery of having a very particular friend
6661
always at hand, to do every thing better than one does oneself!--Poor
6662
Mrs. Dixon! Well, I am glad she is gone to settle in Ireland.”
6663
6664
“You are right. It was not very flattering to Miss Campbell; but she
6665
really did not seem to feel it.”
6666
6667
“So much the better--or so much the worse:--I do not know which. But
6668
be it sweetness or be it stupidity in her--quickness of friendship, or
6669
dulness of feeling--there was one person, I think, who must have felt
6670
it: Miss Fairfax herself. She must have felt the improper and dangerous
6671
distinction.”
6672
6673
“As to that--I do not--”
6674
6675
“Oh! do not imagine that I expect an account of Miss Fairfax's
6676
sensations from you, or from any body else. They are known to no human
6677
being, I guess, but herself. But if she continued to play whenever she
6678
was asked by Mr. Dixon, one may guess what one chuses.”
6679
6680
“There appeared such a perfectly good understanding among them all--”
6681
he began rather quickly, but checking himself, added, “however, it is
6682
impossible for me to say on what terms they really were--how it might
6683
all be behind the scenes. I can only say that there was smoothness
6684
outwardly. But you, who have known Miss Fairfax from a child, must be
6685
a better judge of her character, and of how she is likely to conduct
6686
herself in critical situations, than I can be.”
6687
6688
“I have known her from a child, undoubtedly; we have been children
6689
and women together; and it is natural to suppose that we should be
6690
intimate,--that we should have taken to each other whenever she visited
6691
her friends. But we never did. I hardly know how it has happened; a
6692
little, perhaps, from that wickedness on my side which was prone to take
6693
disgust towards a girl so idolized and so cried up as she always was,
6694
by her aunt and grandmother, and all their set. And then, her reserve--I
6695
never could attach myself to any one so completely reserved.”
6696
6697
“It is a most repulsive quality, indeed,” said he. “Oftentimes very
6698
convenient, no doubt, but never pleasing. There is safety in reserve,
6699
but no attraction. One cannot love a reserved person.”
6700
6701
“Not till the reserve ceases towards oneself; and then the attraction
6702
may be the greater. But I must be more in want of a friend, or an
6703
agreeable companion, than I have yet been, to take the trouble of
6704
conquering any body's reserve to procure one. Intimacy between Miss
6705
Fairfax and me is quite out of the question. I have no reason to think
6706
ill of her--not the least--except that such extreme and perpetual
6707
cautiousness of word and manner, such a dread of giving a distinct idea
6708
about any body, is apt to suggest suspicions of there being something to
6709
conceal.”
6710
6711
He perfectly agreed with her: and after walking together so long, and
6712
thinking so much alike, Emma felt herself so well acquainted with him,
6713
that she could hardly believe it to be only their second meeting. He was
6714
not exactly what she had expected; less of the man of the world in some
6715
of his notions, less of the spoiled child of fortune, therefore better
6716
than she had expected. His ideas seemed more moderate--his feelings
6717
warmer. She was particularly struck by his manner of considering Mr.
6718
Elton's house, which, as well as the church, he would go and look at,
6719
and would not join them in finding much fault with. No, he could not
6720
believe it a bad house; not such a house as a man was to be pitied for
6721
having. If it were to be shared with the woman he loved, he could not
6722
think any man to be pitied for having that house. There must be ample
6723
room in it for every real comfort. The man must be a blockhead who
6724
wanted more.
6725
6726
Mrs. Weston laughed, and said he did not know what he was talking about.
6727
Used only to a large house himself, and without ever thinking how many
6728
advantages and accommodations were attached to its size, he could be no
6729
judge of the privations inevitably belonging to a small one. But Emma,
6730
in her own mind, determined that he _did_ know what he was talking
6731
about, and that he shewed a very amiable inclination to settle early in
6732
life, and to marry, from worthy motives. He might not be aware of the
6733
inroads on domestic peace to be occasioned by no housekeeper's room, or
6734
a bad butler's pantry, but no doubt he did perfectly feel that Enscombe
6735
could not make him happy, and that whenever he were attached, he would
6736
willingly give up much of wealth to be allowed an early establishment.
6737
6738
6739
6740
CHAPTER VII
6741
6742
6743
Emma's very good opinion of Frank Churchill was a little shaken the
6744
following day, by hearing that he was gone off to London, merely to have
6745
his hair cut. A sudden freak seemed to have seized him at breakfast, and
6746
he had sent for a chaise and set off, intending to return to dinner,
6747
but with no more important view that appeared than having his hair cut.
6748
There was certainly no harm in his travelling sixteen miles twice over
6749
on such an errand; but there was an air of foppery and nonsense in it
6750
which she could not approve. It did not accord with the rationality of
6751
plan, the moderation in expense, or even the unselfish warmth of heart,
6752
which she had believed herself to discern in him yesterday. Vanity,
6753
extravagance, love of change, restlessness of temper, which must be
6754
doing something, good or bad; heedlessness as to the pleasure of his
6755
father and Mrs. Weston, indifferent as to how his conduct might appear
6756
in general; he became liable to all these charges. His father only
6757
called him a coxcomb, and thought it a very good story; but that Mrs.
6758
Weston did not like it, was clear enough, by her passing it over as
6759
quickly as possible, and making no other comment than that “all young
6760
people would have their little whims.”
6761
6762
With the exception of this little blot, Emma found that his visit
6763
hitherto had given her friend only good ideas of him. Mrs. Weston
6764
was very ready to say how attentive and pleasant a companion he made
6765
himself--how much she saw to like in his disposition altogether. He
6766
appeared to have a very open temper--certainly a very cheerful and
6767
lively one; she could observe nothing wrong in his notions, a great deal
6768
decidedly right; he spoke of his uncle with warm regard, was fond of
6769
talking of him--said he would be the best man in the world if he were
6770
left to himself; and though there was no being attached to the aunt, he
6771
acknowledged her kindness with gratitude, and seemed to mean always to
6772
speak of her with respect. This was all very promising; and, but for
6773
such an unfortunate fancy for having his hair cut, there was nothing to
6774
denote him unworthy of the distinguished honour which her imagination
6775
had given him; the honour, if not of being really in love with her,
6776
of being at least very near it, and saved only by her own
6777
indifference--(for still her resolution held of never marrying)--the
6778
honour, in short, of being marked out for her by all their joint
6779
acquaintance.
6780
6781
Mr. Weston, on his side, added a virtue to the account which must
6782
have some weight. He gave her to understand that Frank admired her
6783
extremely--thought her very beautiful and very charming; and with so
6784
much to be said for him altogether, she found she must not judge him
6785
harshly. As Mrs. Weston observed, “all young people would have their
6786
little whims.”
6787
6788
There was one person among his new acquaintance in Surry, not so
6789
leniently disposed. In general he was judged, throughout the parishes of
6790
Donwell and Highbury, with great candour; liberal allowances were made
6791
for the little excesses of such a handsome young man--one who smiled so
6792
often and bowed so well; but there was one spirit among them not to be
6793
softened, from its power of censure, by bows or smiles--Mr. Knightley.
6794
The circumstance was told him at Hartfield; for the moment, he was
6795
silent; but Emma heard him almost immediately afterwards say to himself,
6796
over a newspaper he held in his hand, “Hum! just the trifling, silly
6797
fellow I took him for.” She had half a mind to resent; but an instant's
6798
observation convinced her that it was really said only to relieve his
6799
own feelings, and not meant to provoke; and therefore she let it pass.
6800
6801
Although in one instance the bearers of not good tidings, Mr. and
6802
Mrs. Weston's visit this morning was in another respect particularly
6803
opportune. Something occurred while they were at Hartfield, to make Emma
6804
want their advice; and, which was still more lucky, she wanted exactly
6805
the advice they gave.
6806
6807
This was the occurrence:--The Coles had been settled some years in
6808
Highbury, and were very good sort of people--friendly, liberal, and
6809
unpretending; but, on the other hand, they were of low origin, in trade,
6810
and only moderately genteel. On their first coming into the country,
6811
they had lived in proportion to their income, quietly, keeping little
6812
company, and that little unexpensively; but the last year or two had
6813
brought them a considerable increase of means--the house in town had
6814
yielded greater profits, and fortune in general had smiled on them. With
6815
their wealth, their views increased; their want of a larger house, their
6816
inclination for more company. They added to their house, to their number
6817
of servants, to their expenses of every sort; and by this time were,
6818
in fortune and style of living, second only to the family at Hartfield.
6819
Their love of society, and their new dining-room, prepared every body
6820
for their keeping dinner-company; and a few parties, chiefly among the
6821
single men, had already taken place. The regular and best families Emma
6822
could hardly suppose they would presume to invite--neither Donwell, nor
6823
Hartfield, nor Randalls. Nothing should tempt _her_ to go, if they did;
6824
and she regretted that her father's known habits would be giving
6825
her refusal less meaning than she could wish. The Coles were very
6826
respectable in their way, but they ought to be taught that it was not
6827
for them to arrange the terms on which the superior families would visit
6828
them. This lesson, she very much feared, they would receive only from
6829
herself; she had little hope of Mr. Knightley, none of Mr. Weston.
6830
6831
But she had made up her mind how to meet this presumption so many weeks
6832
before it appeared, that when the insult came at last, it found her
6833
very differently affected. Donwell and Randalls had received their
6834
invitation, and none had come for her father and herself; and Mrs.
6835
Weston's accounting for it with “I suppose they will not take the
6836
liberty with you; they know you do not dine out,” was not quite
6837
sufficient. She felt that she should like to have had the power of
6838
refusal; and afterwards, as the idea of the party to be assembled there,
6839
consisting precisely of those whose society was dearest to her, occurred
6840
again and again, she did not know that she might not have been tempted
6841
to accept. Harriet was to be there in the evening, and the Bateses. They
6842
had been speaking of it as they walked about Highbury the day before,
6843
and Frank Churchill had most earnestly lamented her absence. Might
6844
not the evening end in a dance? had been a question of his. The bare
6845
possibility of it acted as a farther irritation on her spirits; and
6846
her being left in solitary grandeur, even supposing the omission to be
6847
intended as a compliment, was but poor comfort.
6848
6849
It was the arrival of this very invitation while the Westons were at
6850
Hartfield, which made their presence so acceptable; for though her first
6851
remark, on reading it, was that “of course it must be declined,” she so
6852
very soon proceeded to ask them what they advised her to do, that their
6853
advice for her going was most prompt and successful.
6854
6855
She owned that, considering every thing, she was not absolutely
6856
without inclination for the party. The Coles expressed themselves so
6857
properly--there was so much real attention in the manner of it--so much
6858
consideration for her father. “They would have solicited the honour
6859
earlier, but had been waiting the arrival of a folding-screen from
6860
London, which they hoped might keep Mr. Woodhouse from any draught of
6861
air, and therefore induce him the more readily to give them the honour
6862
of his company.” Upon the whole, she was very persuadable; and it being
6863
briefly settled among themselves how it might be done without neglecting
6864
his comfort--how certainly Mrs. Goddard, if not Mrs. Bates, might be
6865
depended on for bearing him company--Mr. Woodhouse was to be talked
6866
into an acquiescence of his daughter's going out to dinner on a day now
6867
near at hand, and spending the whole evening away from him. As for _his_
6868
going, Emma did not wish him to think it possible, the hours would be
6869
too late, and the party too numerous. He was soon pretty well resigned.
6870
6871
“I am not fond of dinner-visiting,” said he--“I never was. No more is
6872
Emma. Late hours do not agree with us. I am sorry Mr. and Mrs. Cole
6873
should have done it. I think it would be much better if they would come
6874
in one afternoon next summer, and take their tea with us--take us
6875
in their afternoon walk; which they might do, as our hours are so
6876
reasonable, and yet get home without being out in the damp of the
6877
evening. The dews of a summer evening are what I would not expose any
6878
body to. However, as they are so very desirous to have dear Emma dine
6879
with them, and as you will both be there, and Mr. Knightley too, to take
6880
care of her, I cannot wish to prevent it, provided the weather be what
6881
it ought, neither damp, nor cold, nor windy.” Then turning to Mrs.
6882
Weston, with a look of gentle reproach--“Ah! Miss Taylor, if you had not
6883
married, you would have staid at home with me.”
6884
6885
“Well, sir,” cried Mr. Weston, “as I took Miss Taylor away, it is
6886
incumbent on me to supply her place, if I can; and I will step to Mrs.
6887
Goddard in a moment, if you wish it.”
6888
6889
But the idea of any thing to be done in a _moment_, was increasing,
6890
not lessening, Mr. Woodhouse's agitation. The ladies knew better how
6891
to allay it. Mr. Weston must be quiet, and every thing deliberately
6892
arranged.
6893
6894
With this treatment, Mr. Woodhouse was soon composed enough for talking
6895
as usual. “He should be happy to see Mrs. Goddard. He had a great regard
6896
for Mrs. Goddard; and Emma should write a line, and invite her. James
6897
could take the note. But first of all, there must be an answer written
6898
to Mrs. Cole.”
6899
6900
“You will make my excuses, my dear, as civilly as possible. You will say
6901
that I am quite an invalid, and go no where, and therefore must decline
6902
their obliging invitation; beginning with my _compliments_, of course.
6903
But you will do every thing right. I need not tell you what is to be
6904
done. We must remember to let James know that the carriage will be
6905
wanted on Tuesday. I shall have no fears for you with him. We have never
6906
been there above once since the new approach was made; but still I have
6907
no doubt that James will take you very safely. And when you get there,
6908
you must tell him at what time you would have him come for you again;
6909
and you had better name an early hour. You will not like staying late.
6910
You will get very tired when tea is over.”
6911
6912
“But you would not wish me to come away before I am tired, papa?”
6913
6914
“Oh! no, my love; but you will soon be tired. There will be a great many
6915
people talking at once. You will not like the noise.”
6916
6917
“But, my dear sir,” cried Mr. Weston, “if Emma comes away early, it will
6918
be breaking up the party.”
6919
6920
“And no great harm if it does,” said Mr. Woodhouse. “The sooner every
6921
party breaks up, the better.”
6922
6923
“But you do not consider how it may appear to the Coles. Emma's going
6924
away directly after tea might be giving offence. They are good-natured
6925
people, and think little of their own claims; but still they must
6926
feel that any body's hurrying away is no great compliment; and Miss
6927
Woodhouse's doing it would be more thought of than any other person's in
6928
the room. You would not wish to disappoint and mortify the Coles, I am
6929
sure, sir; friendly, good sort of people as ever lived, and who have
6930
been your neighbours these _ten_ years.”
6931
6932
“No, upon no account in the world, Mr. Weston; I am much obliged to
6933
you for reminding me. I should be extremely sorry to be giving them any
6934
pain. I know what worthy people they are. Perry tells me that Mr. Cole
6935
never touches malt liquor. You would not think it to look at him, but
6936
he is bilious--Mr. Cole is very bilious. No, I would not be the means
6937
of giving them any pain. My dear Emma, we must consider this. I am sure,
6938
rather than run the risk of hurting Mr. and Mrs. Cole, you would stay a
6939
little longer than you might wish. You will not regard being tired. You
6940
will be perfectly safe, you know, among your friends.”
6941
6942
“Oh yes, papa. I have no fears at all for myself; and I should have no
6943
scruples of staying as late as Mrs. Weston, but on your account. I am
6944
only afraid of your sitting up for me. I am not afraid of your not being
6945
exceedingly comfortable with Mrs. Goddard. She loves piquet, you
6946
know; but when she is gone home, I am afraid you will be sitting up by
6947
yourself, instead of going to bed at your usual time--and the idea of
6948
that would entirely destroy my comfort. You must promise me not to sit
6949
up.”
6950
6951
He did, on the condition of some promises on her side: such as that,
6952
if she came home cold, she would be sure to warm herself thoroughly; if
6953
hungry, that she would take something to eat; that her own maid should
6954
sit up for her; and that Serle and the butler should see that every
6955
thing were safe in the house, as usual.
6956
6957
6958
6959
CHAPTER VIII
6960
6961
6962
Frank Churchill came back again; and if he kept his father's dinner
6963
waiting, it was not known at Hartfield; for Mrs. Weston was too anxious
6964
for his being a favourite with Mr. Woodhouse, to betray any imperfection
6965
which could be concealed.
6966
6967
He came back, had had his hair cut, and laughed at himself with a very
6968
good grace, but without seeming really at all ashamed of what he had
6969
done. He had no reason to wish his hair longer, to conceal any confusion
6970
of face; no reason to wish the money unspent, to improve his spirits.
6971
He was quite as undaunted and as lively as ever; and, after seeing him,
6972
Emma thus moralised to herself:--
6973
6974
“I do not know whether it ought to be so, but certainly silly things
6975
do cease to be silly if they are done by sensible people in an impudent
6976
way. Wickedness is always wickedness, but folly is not always folly.--It
6977
depends upon the character of those who handle it. Mr. Knightley, he is
6978
_not_ a trifling, silly young man. If he were, he would have done this
6979
differently. He would either have gloried in the achievement, or
6980
been ashamed of it. There would have been either the ostentation of
6981
a coxcomb, or the evasions of a mind too weak to defend its own
6982
vanities.--No, I am perfectly sure that he is not trifling or silly.”
6983
6984
With Tuesday came the agreeable prospect of seeing him again, and for
6985
a longer time than hitherto; of judging of his general manners, and by
6986
inference, of the meaning of his manners towards herself; of guessing
6987
how soon it might be necessary for her to throw coldness into her air;
6988
and of fancying what the observations of all those might be, who were
6989
now seeing them together for the first time.
6990
6991
She meant to be very happy, in spite of the scene being laid at Mr.
6992
Cole's; and without being able to forget that among the failings of Mr.
6993
Elton, even in the days of his favour, none had disturbed her more than
6994
his propensity to dine with Mr. Cole.
6995
6996
Her father's comfort was amply secured, Mrs. Bates as well as Mrs.
6997
Goddard being able to come; and her last pleasing duty, before she left
6998
the house, was to pay her respects to them as they sat together after
6999
dinner; and while her father was fondly noticing the beauty of her
7000
dress, to make the two ladies all the amends in her power, by helping
7001
them to large slices of cake and full glasses of wine, for whatever
7002
unwilling self-denial his care of their constitution might have obliged
7003
them to practise during the meal.--She had provided a plentiful dinner
7004
for them; she wished she could know that they had been allowed to eat
7005
it.
7006
7007
She followed another carriage to Mr. Cole's door; and was pleased to see
7008
that it was Mr. Knightley's; for Mr. Knightley keeping no horses,
7009
having little spare money and a great deal of health, activity, and
7010
independence, was too apt, in Emma's opinion, to get about as he could,
7011
and not use his carriage so often as became the owner of Donwell Abbey.
7012
She had an opportunity now of speaking her approbation while warm from
7013
her heart, for he stopped to hand her out.
7014
7015
“This is coming as you should do,” said she; “like a gentleman.--I am
7016
quite glad to see you.”
7017
7018
He thanked her, observing, “How lucky that we should arrive at the same
7019
moment! for, if we had met first in the drawing-room, I doubt whether
7020
you would have discerned me to be more of a gentleman than usual.--You
7021
might not have distinguished how I came, by my look or manner.”
7022
7023
“Yes I should, I am sure I should. There is always a look of
7024
consciousness or bustle when people come in a way which they know to be
7025
beneath them. You think you carry it off very well, I dare say, but
7026
with you it is a sort of bravado, an air of affected unconcern; I always
7027
observe it whenever I meet you under those circumstances. _Now_ you have
7028
nothing to try for. You are not afraid of being supposed ashamed. You
7029
are not striving to look taller than any body else. _Now_ I shall really
7030
be very happy to walk into the same room with you.”
7031
7032
“Nonsensical girl!” was his reply, but not at all in anger.
7033
7034
Emma had as much reason to be satisfied with the rest of the party as
7035
with Mr. Knightley. She was received with a cordial respect which could
7036
not but please, and given all the consequence she could wish for.
7037
When the Westons arrived, the kindest looks of love, the strongest of
7038
admiration were for her, from both husband and wife; the son approached
7039
her with a cheerful eagerness which marked her as his peculiar object,
7040
and at dinner she found him seated by her--and, as she firmly believed,
7041
not without some dexterity on his side.
7042
7043
The party was rather large, as it included one other family, a proper
7044
unobjectionable country family, whom the Coles had the advantage of
7045
naming among their acquaintance, and the male part of Mr. Cox's family,
7046
the lawyer of Highbury. The less worthy females were to come in the
7047
evening, with Miss Bates, Miss Fairfax, and Miss Smith; but already,
7048
at dinner, they were too numerous for any subject of conversation to be
7049
general; and, while politics and Mr. Elton were talked over, Emma could
7050
fairly surrender all her attention to the pleasantness of her neighbour.
7051
The first remote sound to which she felt herself obliged to attend, was
7052
the name of Jane Fairfax. Mrs. Cole seemed to be relating something of
7053
her that was expected to be very interesting. She listened, and found
7054
it well worth listening to. That very dear part of Emma, her fancy,
7055
received an amusing supply. Mrs. Cole was telling that she had been
7056
calling on Miss Bates, and as soon as she entered the room had
7057
been struck by the sight of a pianoforte--a very elegant looking
7058
instrument--not a grand, but a large-sized square pianoforte; and the
7059
substance of the story, the end of all the dialogue which ensued of
7060
surprize, and inquiry, and congratulations on her side, and explanations
7061
on Miss Bates's, was, that this pianoforte had arrived from
7062
Broadwood's the day before, to the great astonishment of both aunt and
7063
niece--entirely unexpected; that at first, by Miss Bates's account,
7064
Jane herself was quite at a loss, quite bewildered to think who could
7065
possibly have ordered it--but now, they were both perfectly satisfied
7066
that it could be from only one quarter;--of course it must be from
7067
Colonel Campbell.
7068
7069
“One can suppose nothing else,” added Mrs. Cole, “and I was only
7070
surprized that there could ever have been a doubt. But Jane, it seems,
7071
had a letter from them very lately, and not a word was said about it.
7072
She knows their ways best; but I should not consider their silence as
7073
any reason for their not meaning to make the present. They might chuse
7074
to surprize her.”
7075
7076
Mrs. Cole had many to agree with her; every body who spoke on the
7077
subject was equally convinced that it must come from Colonel Campbell,
7078
and equally rejoiced that such a present had been made; and there were
7079
enough ready to speak to allow Emma to think her own way, and still
7080
listen to Mrs. Cole.
7081
7082
“I declare, I do not know when I have heard any thing that has given me
7083
more satisfaction!--It always has quite hurt me that Jane Fairfax, who
7084
plays so delightfully, should not have an instrument. It seemed quite
7085
a shame, especially considering how many houses there are where fine
7086
instruments are absolutely thrown away. This is like giving ourselves
7087
a slap, to be sure! and it was but yesterday I was telling Mr. Cole,
7088
I really was ashamed to look at our new grand pianoforte in the
7089
drawing-room, while I do not know one note from another, and our little
7090
girls, who are but just beginning, perhaps may never make any thing of
7091
it; and there is poor Jane Fairfax, who is mistress of music, has not
7092
any thing of the nature of an instrument, not even the pitifullest old
7093
spinet in the world, to amuse herself with.--I was saying this to
7094
Mr. Cole but yesterday, and he quite agreed with me; only he is so
7095
particularly fond of music that he could not help indulging himself
7096
in the purchase, hoping that some of our good neighbours might be so
7097
obliging occasionally to put it to a better use than we can; and that
7098
really is the reason why the instrument was bought--or else I am sure
7099
we ought to be ashamed of it.--We are in great hopes that Miss Woodhouse
7100
may be prevailed with to try it this evening.”
7101
7102
Miss Woodhouse made the proper acquiescence; and finding that nothing
7103
more was to be entrapped from any communication of Mrs. Cole's, turned
7104
to Frank Churchill.
7105
7106
“Why do you smile?” said she.
7107
7108
“Nay, why do you?”
7109
7110
“Me!--I suppose I smile for pleasure at Colonel Campbell's being so rich
7111
and so liberal.--It is a handsome present.”
7112
7113
“Very.”
7114
7115
“I rather wonder that it was never made before.”
7116
7117
“Perhaps Miss Fairfax has never been staying here so long before.”
7118
7119
“Or that he did not give her the use of their own instrument--which must
7120
now be shut up in London, untouched by any body.”
7121
7122
“That is a grand pianoforte, and he might think it too large for Mrs.
7123
Bates's house.”
7124
7125
“You may _say_ what you chuse--but your countenance testifies that your
7126
_thoughts_ on this subject are very much like mine.”
7127
7128
“I do not know. I rather believe you are giving me more credit for
7129
acuteness than I deserve. I smile because you smile, and shall probably
7130
suspect whatever I find you suspect; but at present I do not see what
7131
there is to question. If Colonel Campbell is not the person, who can
7132
be?”
7133
7134
“What do you say to Mrs. Dixon?”
7135
7136
“Mrs. Dixon! very true indeed. I had not thought of Mrs. Dixon. She must
7137
know as well as her father, how acceptable an instrument would be; and
7138
perhaps the mode of it, the mystery, the surprize, is more like a young
7139
woman's scheme than an elderly man's. It is Mrs. Dixon, I dare say. I
7140
told you that your suspicions would guide mine.”
7141
7142
“If so, you must extend your suspicions and comprehend _Mr_. Dixon in
7143
them.”
7144
7145
“Mr. Dixon.--Very well. Yes, I immediately perceive that it must be the
7146
joint present of Mr. and Mrs. Dixon. We were speaking the other day, you
7147
know, of his being so warm an admirer of her performance.”
7148
7149
“Yes, and what you told me on that head, confirmed an idea which I had
7150
entertained before.--I do not mean to reflect upon the good intentions
7151
of either Mr. Dixon or Miss Fairfax, but I cannot help suspecting either
7152
that, after making his proposals to her friend, he had the misfortune
7153
to fall in love with _her_, or that he became conscious of a little
7154
attachment on her side. One might guess twenty things without guessing
7155
exactly the right; but I am sure there must be a particular cause for
7156
her chusing to come to Highbury instead of going with the Campbells
7157
to Ireland. Here, she must be leading a life of privation and penance;
7158
there it would have been all enjoyment. As to the pretence of trying her
7159
native air, I look upon that as a mere excuse.--In the summer it might
7160
have passed; but what can any body's native air do for them in the
7161
months of January, February, and March? Good fires and carriages would
7162
be much more to the purpose in most cases of delicate health, and I dare
7163
say in her's. I do not require you to adopt all my suspicions, though
7164
you make so noble a profession of doing it, but I honestly tell you what
7165
they are.”
7166
7167
“And, upon my word, they have an air of great probability. Mr. Dixon's
7168
preference of her music to her friend's, I can answer for being very
7169
decided.”
7170
7171
“And then, he saved her life. Did you ever hear of that?--A water
7172
party; and by some accident she was falling overboard. He caught her.”
7173
7174
“He did. I was there--one of the party.”
7175
7176
“Were you really?--Well!--But you observed nothing of course, for it
7177
seems to be a new idea to you.--If I had been there, I think I should
7178
have made some discoveries.”
7179
7180
“I dare say you would; but I, simple I, saw nothing but the fact, that
7181
Miss Fairfax was nearly dashed from the vessel and that Mr. Dixon caught
7182
her.--It was the work of a moment. And though the consequent shock and
7183
alarm was very great and much more durable--indeed I believe it was
7184
half an hour before any of us were comfortable again--yet that was too
7185
general a sensation for any thing of peculiar anxiety to be
7186
observable. I do not mean to say, however, that you might not have made
7187
discoveries.”
7188
7189
The conversation was here interrupted. They were called on to share
7190
in the awkwardness of a rather long interval between the courses, and
7191
obliged to be as formal and as orderly as the others; but when the table
7192
was again safely covered, when every corner dish was placed exactly
7193
right, and occupation and ease were generally restored, Emma said,
7194
7195
“The arrival of this pianoforte is decisive with me. I wanted to know
7196
a little more, and this tells me quite enough. Depend upon it, we shall
7197
soon hear that it is a present from Mr. and Mrs. Dixon.”
7198
7199
“And if the Dixons should absolutely deny all knowledge of it we must
7200
conclude it to come from the Campbells.”
7201
7202
“No, I am sure it is not from the Campbells. Miss Fairfax knows it is
7203
not from the Campbells, or they would have been guessed at first. She
7204
would not have been puzzled, had she dared fix on them. I may not have
7205
convinced you perhaps, but I am perfectly convinced myself that Mr.
7206
Dixon is a principal in the business.”
7207
7208
“Indeed you injure me if you suppose me unconvinced. Your reasonings
7209
carry my judgment along with them entirely. At first, while I supposed
7210
you satisfied that Colonel Campbell was the giver, I saw it only as
7211
paternal kindness, and thought it the most natural thing in the world.
7212
But when you mentioned Mrs. Dixon, I felt how much more probable that it
7213
should be the tribute of warm female friendship. And now I can see it in
7214
no other light than as an offering of love.”
7215
7216
There was no occasion to press the matter farther. The conviction seemed
7217
real; he looked as if he felt it. She said no more, other subjects
7218
took their turn; and the rest of the dinner passed away; the dessert
7219
succeeded, the children came in, and were talked to and admired amid the
7220
usual rate of conversation; a few clever things said, a few downright
7221
silly, but by much the larger proportion neither the one nor the
7222
other--nothing worse than everyday remarks, dull repetitions, old news,
7223
and heavy jokes.
7224
7225
The ladies had not been long in the drawing-room, before the other
7226
ladies, in their different divisions, arrived. Emma watched the entree
7227
of her own particular little friend; and if she could not exult in her
7228
dignity and grace, she could not only love the blooming sweetness and
7229
the artless manner, but could most heartily rejoice in that light,
7230
cheerful, unsentimental disposition which allowed her so many
7231
alleviations of pleasure, in the midst of the pangs of disappointed
7232
affection. There she sat--and who would have guessed how many tears she
7233
had been lately shedding? To be in company, nicely dressed herself and
7234
seeing others nicely dressed, to sit and smile and look pretty, and say
7235
nothing, was enough for the happiness of the present hour. Jane Fairfax
7236
did look and move superior; but Emma suspected she might have been
7237
glad to change feelings with Harriet, very glad to have purchased the
7238
mortification of having loved--yes, of having loved even Mr. Elton in
7239
vain--by the surrender of all the dangerous pleasure of knowing herself
7240
beloved by the husband of her friend.
7241
7242
In so large a party it was not necessary that Emma should approach her.
7243
She did not wish to speak of the pianoforte, she felt too much in the
7244
secret herself, to think the appearance of curiosity or interest fair,
7245
and therefore purposely kept at a distance; but by the others, the
7246
subject was almost immediately introduced, and she saw the blush of
7247
consciousness with which congratulations were received, the blush
7248
of guilt which accompanied the name of “my excellent friend Colonel
7249
Campbell.”
7250
7251
Mrs. Weston, kind-hearted and musical, was particularly interested
7252
by the circumstance, and Emma could not help being amused at her
7253
perseverance in dwelling on the subject; and having so much to ask and
7254
to say as to tone, touch, and pedal, totally unsuspicious of that wish
7255
of saying as little about it as possible, which she plainly read in the
7256
fair heroine's countenance.
7257
7258
They were soon joined by some of the gentlemen; and the very first
7259
of the early was Frank Churchill. In he walked, the first and the
7260
handsomest; and after paying his compliments en passant to Miss Bates
7261
and her niece, made his way directly to the opposite side of the circle,
7262
where sat Miss Woodhouse; and till he could find a seat by her, would
7263
not sit at all. Emma divined what every body present must be thinking.
7264
She was his object, and every body must perceive it. She introduced him
7265
to her friend, Miss Smith, and, at convenient moments afterwards, heard
7266
what each thought of the other. “He had never seen so lovely a face, and
7267
was delighted with her naivete.” And she, “Only to be sure it was paying
7268
him too great a compliment, but she did think there were some looks a
7269
little like Mr. Elton.” Emma restrained her indignation, and only turned
7270
from her in silence.
7271
7272
Smiles of intelligence passed between her and the gentleman on first
7273
glancing towards Miss Fairfax; but it was most prudent to avoid speech.
7274
He told her that he had been impatient to leave the dining-room--hated
7275
sitting long--was always the first to move when he could--that his
7276
father, Mr. Knightley, Mr. Cox, and Mr. Cole, were left very busy over
7277
parish business--that as long as he had staid, however, it had been
7278
pleasant enough, as he had found them in general a set of gentlemanlike,
7279
sensible men; and spoke so handsomely of Highbury altogether--thought it
7280
so abundant in agreeable families--that Emma began to feel she had been
7281
used to despise the place rather too much. She questioned him as to the
7282
society in Yorkshire--the extent of the neighbourhood about Enscombe,
7283
and the sort; and could make out from his answers that, as far as
7284
Enscombe was concerned, there was very little going on, that their
7285
visitings were among a range of great families, none very near; and
7286
that even when days were fixed, and invitations accepted, it was an even
7287
chance that Mrs. Churchill were not in health and spirits for going;
7288
that they made a point of visiting no fresh person; and that, though
7289
he had his separate engagements, it was not without difficulty, without
7290
considerable address _at_ _times_, that he could get away, or introduce
7291
an acquaintance for a night.
7292
7293
She saw that Enscombe could not satisfy, and that Highbury, taken at
7294
its best, might reasonably please a young man who had more retirement at
7295
home than he liked. His importance at Enscombe was very evident. He did
7296
not boast, but it naturally betrayed itself, that he had persuaded his
7297
aunt where his uncle could do nothing, and on her laughing and noticing
7298
it, he owned that he believed (excepting one or two points) he could
7299
_with_ _time_ persuade her to any thing. One of those points on which
7300
his influence failed, he then mentioned. He had wanted very much to
7301
go abroad--had been very eager indeed to be allowed to travel--but she
7302
would not hear of it. This had happened the year before. _Now_, he said,
7303
he was beginning to have no longer the same wish.
7304
7305
The unpersuadable point, which he did not mention, Emma guessed to be
7306
good behaviour to his father.
7307
7308
“I have made a most wretched discovery,” said he, after a short pause.--
7309
“I have been here a week to-morrow--half my time. I never knew days fly
7310
so fast. A week to-morrow!--And I have hardly begun to enjoy myself.
7311
But just got acquainted with Mrs. Weston, and others!--I hate the
7312
recollection.”
7313
7314
“Perhaps you may now begin to regret that you spent one whole day, out
7315
of so few, in having your hair cut.”
7316
7317
“No,” said he, smiling, “that is no subject of regret at all. I have
7318
no pleasure in seeing my friends, unless I can believe myself fit to be
7319
seen.”
7320
7321
The rest of the gentlemen being now in the room, Emma found herself
7322
obliged to turn from him for a few minutes, and listen to Mr. Cole. When
7323
Mr. Cole had moved away, and her attention could be restored as before,
7324
she saw Frank Churchill looking intently across the room at Miss
7325
Fairfax, who was sitting exactly opposite.
7326
7327
“What is the matter?” said she.
7328
7329
He started. “Thank you for rousing me,” he replied. “I believe I have
7330
been very rude; but really Miss Fairfax has done her hair in so odd a
7331
way--so very odd a way--that I cannot keep my eyes from her. I never saw
7332
any thing so outree!--Those curls!--This must be a fancy of her own. I
7333
see nobody else looking like her!--I must go and ask her whether it
7334
is an Irish fashion. Shall I?--Yes, I will--I declare I will--and you
7335
shall see how she takes it;--whether she colours.”
7336
7337
He was gone immediately; and Emma soon saw him standing before Miss
7338
Fairfax, and talking to her; but as to its effect on the young lady,
7339
as he had improvidently placed himself exactly between them, exactly in
7340
front of Miss Fairfax, she could absolutely distinguish nothing.
7341
7342
Before he could return to his chair, it was taken by Mrs. Weston.
7343
7344
“This is the luxury of a large party,” said she:--“one can get near
7345
every body, and say every thing. My dear Emma, I am longing to talk
7346
to you. I have been making discoveries and forming plans, just like
7347
yourself, and I must tell them while the idea is fresh. Do you know how
7348
Miss Bates and her niece came here?”
7349
7350
“How?--They were invited, were not they?”
7351
7352
“Oh! yes--but how they were conveyed hither?--the manner of their
7353
coming?”
7354
7355
“They walked, I conclude. How else could they come?”
7356
7357
“Very true.--Well, a little while ago it occurred to me how very sad
7358
it would be to have Jane Fairfax walking home again, late at night, and
7359
cold as the nights are now. And as I looked at her, though I never saw
7360
her appear to more advantage, it struck me that she was heated, and
7361
would therefore be particularly liable to take cold. Poor girl! I could
7362
not bear the idea of it; so, as soon as Mr. Weston came into the room,
7363
and I could get at him, I spoke to him about the carriage. You may guess
7364
how readily he came into my wishes; and having his approbation, I made
7365
my way directly to Miss Bates, to assure her that the carriage would be
7366
at her service before it took us home; for I thought it would be making
7367
her comfortable at once. Good soul! she was as grateful as possible, you
7368
may be sure. 'Nobody was ever so fortunate as herself!'--but with many,
7369
many thanks--'there was no occasion to trouble us, for Mr. Knightley's
7370
carriage had brought, and was to take them home again.' I was quite
7371
surprized;--very glad, I am sure; but really quite surprized. Such a
7372
very kind attention--and so thoughtful an attention!--the sort of thing
7373
that so few men would think of. And, in short, from knowing his
7374
usual ways, I am very much inclined to think that it was for their
7375
accommodation the carriage was used at all. I do suspect he would not
7376
have had a pair of horses for himself, and that it was only as an excuse
7377
for assisting them.”
7378
7379
“Very likely,” said Emma--“nothing more likely. I know no man more
7380
likely than Mr. Knightley to do the sort of thing--to do any thing
7381
really good-natured, useful, considerate, or benevolent. He is not a
7382
gallant man, but he is a very humane one; and this, considering Jane
7383
Fairfax's ill-health, would appear a case of humanity to him;--and for
7384
an act of unostentatious kindness, there is nobody whom I would fix on
7385
more than on Mr. Knightley. I know he had horses to-day--for we arrived
7386
together; and I laughed at him about it, but he said not a word that
7387
could betray.”
7388
7389
“Well,” said Mrs. Weston, smiling, “you give him credit for more simple,
7390
disinterested benevolence in this instance than I do; for while Miss
7391
Bates was speaking, a suspicion darted into my head, and I have never
7392
been able to get it out again. The more I think of it, the more probable
7393
it appears. In short, I have made a match between Mr. Knightley and Jane
7394
Fairfax. See the consequence of keeping you company!--What do you say to
7395
it?”
7396
7397
“Mr. Knightley and Jane Fairfax!” exclaimed Emma. “Dear Mrs. Weston, how
7398
could you think of such a thing?--Mr. Knightley!--Mr. Knightley must not
7399
marry!--You would not have little Henry cut out from Donwell?--Oh! no,
7400
no, Henry must have Donwell. I cannot at all consent to Mr. Knightley's
7401
marrying; and I am sure it is not at all likely. I am amazed that you
7402
should think of such a thing.”
7403
7404
“My dear Emma, I have told you what led me to think of it. I do not want
7405
the match--I do not want to injure dear little Henry--but the idea has
7406
been given me by circumstances; and if Mr. Knightley really wished to
7407
marry, you would not have him refrain on Henry's account, a boy of six
7408
years old, who knows nothing of the matter?”
7409
7410
“Yes, I would. I could not bear to have Henry supplanted.--Mr.
7411
Knightley marry!--No, I have never had such an idea, and I cannot adopt
7412
it now. And Jane Fairfax, too, of all women!”
7413
7414
“Nay, she has always been a first favourite with him, as you very well
7415
know.”
7416
7417
“But the imprudence of such a match!”
7418
7419
“I am not speaking of its prudence; merely its probability.”
7420
7421
“I see no probability in it, unless you have any better foundation than
7422
what you mention. His good-nature, his humanity, as I tell you, would
7423
be quite enough to account for the horses. He has a great regard for the
7424
Bateses, you know, independent of Jane Fairfax--and is always glad to
7425
shew them attention. My dear Mrs. Weston, do not take to match-making.
7426
You do it very ill. Jane Fairfax mistress of the Abbey!--Oh! no,
7427
no;--every feeling revolts. For his own sake, I would not have him do so
7428
mad a thing.”
7429
7430
“Imprudent, if you please--but not mad. Excepting inequality of fortune,
7431
and perhaps a little disparity of age, I can see nothing unsuitable.”
7432
7433
“But Mr. Knightley does not want to marry. I am sure he has not the
7434
least idea of it. Do not put it into his head. Why should he marry?--He
7435
is as happy as possible by himself; with his farm, and his sheep, and
7436
his library, and all the parish to manage; and he is extremely fond of
7437
his brother's children. He has no occasion to marry, either to fill up
7438
his time or his heart.”
7439
7440
“My dear Emma, as long as he thinks so, it is so; but if he really loves
7441
Jane Fairfax--”
7442
7443
“Nonsense! He does not care about Jane Fairfax. In the way of love, I am
7444
sure he does not. He would do any good to her, or her family; but--”
7445
7446
“Well,” said Mrs. Weston, laughing, “perhaps the greatest good he could
7447
do them, would be to give Jane such a respectable home.”
7448
7449
“If it would be good to her, I am sure it would be evil to himself; a
7450
very shameful and degrading connexion. How would he bear to have Miss
7451
Bates belonging to him?--To have her haunting the Abbey, and thanking
7452
him all day long for his great kindness in marrying Jane?--'So very
7453
kind and obliging!--But he always had been such a very kind neighbour!'
7454
And then fly off, through half a sentence, to her mother's old
7455
petticoat. 'Not that it was such a very old petticoat either--for still
7456
it would last a great while--and, indeed, she must thankfully say that
7457
their petticoats were all very strong.'”
7458
7459
“For shame, Emma! Do not mimic her. You divert me against my conscience.
7460
And, upon my word, I do not think Mr. Knightley would be much disturbed
7461
by Miss Bates. Little things do not irritate him. She might talk on; and
7462
if he wanted to say any thing himself, he would only talk louder, and
7463
drown her voice. But the question is not, whether it would be a bad
7464
connexion for him, but whether he wishes it; and I think he does. I have
7465
heard him speak, and so must you, so very highly of Jane Fairfax! The
7466
interest he takes in her--his anxiety about her health--his concern that
7467
she should have no happier prospect! I have heard him express himself
7468
so warmly on those points!--Such an admirer of her performance on the
7469
pianoforte, and of her voice! I have heard him say that he could listen
7470
to her for ever. Oh! and I had almost forgotten one idea that occurred
7471
to me--this pianoforte that has been sent here by somebody--though
7472
we have all been so well satisfied to consider it a present from the
7473
Campbells, may it not be from Mr. Knightley? I cannot help suspecting
7474
him. I think he is just the person to do it, even without being in
7475
love.”
7476
7477
“Then it can be no argument to prove that he is in love. But I do not
7478
think it is at all a likely thing for him to do. Mr. Knightley does
7479
nothing mysteriously.”
7480
7481
“I have heard him lamenting her having no instrument repeatedly; oftener
7482
than I should suppose such a circumstance would, in the common course of
7483
things, occur to him.”
7484
7485
“Very well; and if he had intended to give her one, he would have told
7486
her so.”
7487
7488
“There might be scruples of delicacy, my dear Emma. I have a very strong
7489
notion that it comes from him. I am sure he was particularly silent when
7490
Mrs. Cole told us of it at dinner.”
7491
7492
“You take up an idea, Mrs. Weston, and run away with it; as you have
7493
many a time reproached me with doing. I see no sign of attachment--I
7494
believe nothing of the pianoforte--and proof only shall convince me that
7495
Mr. Knightley has any thought of marrying Jane Fairfax.”
7496
7497
They combated the point some time longer in the same way; Emma rather
7498
gaining ground over the mind of her friend; for Mrs. Weston was the most
7499
used of the two to yield; till a little bustle in the room shewed them
7500
that tea was over, and the instrument in preparation;--and at the same
7501
moment Mr. Cole approaching to entreat Miss Woodhouse would do them the
7502
honour of trying it. Frank Churchill, of whom, in the eagerness of her
7503
conversation with Mrs. Weston, she had been seeing nothing, except that
7504
he had found a seat by Miss Fairfax, followed Mr. Cole, to add his very
7505
pressing entreaties; and as, in every respect, it suited Emma best to
7506
lead, she gave a very proper compliance.
7507
7508
She knew the limitations of her own powers too well to attempt more than
7509
she could perform with credit; she wanted neither taste nor spirit in
7510
the little things which are generally acceptable, and could accompany
7511
her own voice well. One accompaniment to her song took her agreeably by
7512
surprize--a second, slightly but correctly taken by Frank Churchill. Her
7513
pardon was duly begged at the close of the song, and every thing usual
7514
followed. He was accused of having a delightful voice, and a perfect
7515
knowledge of music; which was properly denied; and that he knew nothing
7516
of the matter, and had no voice at all, roundly asserted. They sang
7517
together once more; and Emma would then resign her place to Miss
7518
Fairfax, whose performance, both vocal and instrumental, she never could
7519
attempt to conceal from herself, was infinitely superior to her own.
7520
7521
With mixed feelings, she seated herself at a little distance from the
7522
numbers round the instrument, to listen. Frank Churchill sang again.
7523
They had sung together once or twice, it appeared, at Weymouth. But the
7524
sight of Mr. Knightley among the most attentive, soon drew away half
7525
Emma's mind; and she fell into a train of thinking on the subject of
7526
Mrs. Weston's suspicions, to which the sweet sounds of the united voices
7527
gave only momentary interruptions. Her objections to Mr. Knightley's
7528
marrying did not in the least subside. She could see nothing but evil
7529
in it. It would be a great disappointment to Mr. John Knightley;
7530
consequently to Isabella. A real injury to the children--a most
7531
mortifying change, and material loss to them all;--a very great
7532
deduction from her father's daily comfort--and, as to herself, she could
7533
not at all endure the idea of Jane Fairfax at Donwell Abbey. A Mrs.
7534
Knightley for them all to give way to!--No--Mr. Knightley must never
7535
marry. Little Henry must remain the heir of Donwell.
7536
7537
Presently Mr. Knightley looked back, and came and sat down by her. They
7538
talked at first only of the performance. His admiration was certainly
7539
very warm; yet she thought, but for Mrs. Weston, it would not have
7540
struck her. As a sort of touchstone, however, she began to speak of his
7541
kindness in conveying the aunt and niece; and though his answer was in
7542
the spirit of cutting the matter short, she believed it to indicate only
7543
his disinclination to dwell on any kindness of his own.
7544
7545
“I often feel concern,” said she, “that I dare not make our carriage
7546
more useful on such occasions. It is not that I am without the wish; but
7547
you know how impossible my father would deem it that James should put-to
7548
for such a purpose.”
7549
7550
“Quite out of the question, quite out of the question,” he
7551
replied;--“but you must often wish it, I am sure.” And he smiled with
7552
such seeming pleasure at the conviction, that she must proceed another
7553
step.
7554
7555
“This present from the Campbells,” said she--“this pianoforte is very
7556
kindly given.”
7557
7558
“Yes,” he replied, and without the smallest apparent
7559
embarrassment.--“But they would have done better had they given
7560
her notice of it. Surprizes are foolish things. The pleasure is not
7561
enhanced, and the inconvenience is often considerable. I should have
7562
expected better judgment in Colonel Campbell.”
7563
7564
From that moment, Emma could have taken her oath that Mr. Knightley had
7565
had no concern in giving the instrument. But whether he were
7566
entirely free from peculiar attachment--whether there were no actual
7567
preference--remained a little longer doubtful. Towards the end of Jane's
7568
second song, her voice grew thick.
7569
7570
“That will do,” said he, when it was finished, thinking aloud--“you have
7571
sung quite enough for one evening--now be quiet.”
7572
7573
Another song, however, was soon begged for. “One more;--they would not
7574
fatigue Miss Fairfax on any account, and would only ask for one more.”
7575
And Frank Churchill was heard to say, “I think you could manage this
7576
without effort; the first part is so very trifling. The strength of the
7577
song falls on the second.”
7578
7579
Mr. Knightley grew angry.
7580
7581
“That fellow,” said he, indignantly, “thinks of nothing but shewing off
7582
his own voice. This must not be.” And touching Miss Bates, who at that
7583
moment passed near--“Miss Bates, are you mad, to let your niece sing
7584
herself hoarse in this manner? Go, and interfere. They have no mercy on
7585
her.”
7586
7587
Miss Bates, in her real anxiety for Jane, could hardly stay even to
7588
be grateful, before she stept forward and put an end to all farther
7589
singing. Here ceased the concert part of the evening, for Miss Woodhouse
7590
and Miss Fairfax were the only young lady performers; but soon (within
7591
five minutes) the proposal of dancing--originating nobody exactly knew
7592
where--was so effectually promoted by Mr. and Mrs. Cole, that every
7593
thing was rapidly clearing away, to give proper space. Mrs. Weston,
7594
capital in her country-dances, was seated, and beginning an irresistible
7595
waltz; and Frank Churchill, coming up with most becoming gallantry to
7596
Emma, had secured her hand, and led her up to the top.
7597
7598
While waiting till the other young people could pair themselves off,
7599
Emma found time, in spite of the compliments she was receiving on
7600
her voice and her taste, to look about, and see what became of Mr.
7601
Knightley. This would be a trial. He was no dancer in general. If he
7602
were to be very alert in engaging Jane Fairfax now, it might augur
7603
something. There was no immediate appearance. No; he was talking to Mrs.
7604
Cole--he was looking on unconcerned; Jane was asked by somebody else,
7605
and he was still talking to Mrs. Cole.
7606
7607
Emma had no longer an alarm for Henry; his interest was yet safe; and
7608
she led off the dance with genuine spirit and enjoyment. Not more than
7609
five couple could be mustered; but the rarity and the suddenness of
7610
it made it very delightful, and she found herself well matched in a
7611
partner. They were a couple worth looking at.
7612
7613
Two dances, unfortunately, were all that could be allowed. It was
7614
growing late, and Miss Bates became anxious to get home, on her mother's
7615
account. After some attempts, therefore, to be permitted to begin again,
7616
they were obliged to thank Mrs. Weston, look sorrowful, and have done.
7617
7618
“Perhaps it is as well,” said Frank Churchill, as he attended Emma to
7619
her carriage. “I must have asked Miss Fairfax, and her languid dancing
7620
would not have agreed with me, after yours.”
7621
7622
7623
7624
CHAPTER IX
7625
7626
7627
Emma did not repent her condescension in going to the Coles. The visit
7628
afforded her many pleasant recollections the next day; and all that she
7629
might be supposed to have lost on the side of dignified seclusion, must
7630
be amply repaid in the splendour of popularity. She must have delighted
7631
the Coles--worthy people, who deserved to be made happy!--And left a
7632
name behind her that would not soon die away.
7633
7634
Perfect happiness, even in memory, is not common; and there were two
7635
points on which she was not quite easy. She doubted whether she had not
7636
transgressed the duty of woman by woman, in betraying her suspicions of
7637
Jane Fairfax's feelings to Frank Churchill. It was hardly right; but it
7638
had been so strong an idea, that it would escape her, and his submission
7639
to all that she told, was a compliment to her penetration, which made
7640
it difficult for her to be quite certain that she ought to have held her
7641
tongue.
7642
7643
The other circumstance of regret related also to Jane Fairfax; and
7644
there she had no doubt. She did unfeignedly and unequivocally regret the
7645
inferiority of her own playing and singing. She did most heartily
7646
grieve over the idleness of her childhood--and sat down and practised
7647
vigorously an hour and a half.
7648
7649
She was then interrupted by Harriet's coming in; and if Harriet's praise
7650
could have satisfied her, she might soon have been comforted.
7651
7652
“Oh! if I could but play as well as you and Miss Fairfax!”
7653
7654
“Don't class us together, Harriet. My playing is no more like her's,
7655
than a lamp is like sunshine.”
7656
7657
“Oh! dear--I think you play the best of the two. I think you play quite
7658
as well as she does. I am sure I had much rather hear you. Every body
7659
last night said how well you played.”
7660
7661
“Those who knew any thing about it, must have felt the difference. The
7662
truth is, Harriet, that my playing is just good enough to be praised,
7663
but Jane Fairfax's is much beyond it.”
7664
7665
“Well, I always shall think that you play quite as well as she does, or
7666
that if there is any difference nobody would ever find it out. Mr. Cole
7667
said how much taste you had; and Mr. Frank Churchill talked a great deal
7668
about your taste, and that he valued taste much more than execution.”
7669
7670
“Ah! but Jane Fairfax has them both, Harriet.”
7671
7672
“Are you sure? I saw she had execution, but I did not know she had any
7673
taste. Nobody talked about it. And I hate Italian singing.--There is no
7674
understanding a word of it. Besides, if she does play so very well, you
7675
know, it is no more than she is obliged to do, because she will have to
7676
teach. The Coxes were wondering last night whether she would get into
7677
any great family. How did you think the Coxes looked?”
7678
7679
“Just as they always do--very vulgar.”
7680
7681
“They told me something,” said Harriet rather hesitatingly; “but it is
7682
nothing of any consequence.”
7683
7684
Emma was obliged to ask what they had told her, though fearful of its
7685
producing Mr. Elton.
7686
7687
“They told me--that Mr. Martin dined with them last Saturday.”
7688
7689
“Oh!”
7690
7691
“He came to their father upon some business, and he asked him to stay to
7692
dinner.”
7693
7694
“Oh!”
7695
7696
“They talked a great deal about him, especially Anne Cox. I do not know
7697
what she meant, but she asked me if I thought I should go and stay there
7698
again next summer.”
7699
7700
“She meant to be impertinently curious, just as such an Anne Cox should
7701
be.”
7702
7703
“She said he was very agreeable the day he dined there. He sat by her at
7704
dinner. Miss Nash thinks either of the Coxes would be very glad to marry
7705
him.”
7706
7707
“Very likely.--I think they are, without exception, the most vulgar
7708
girls in Highbury.”
7709
7710
Harriet had business at Ford's.--Emma thought it most prudent to go with
7711
her. Another accidental meeting with the Martins was possible, and in
7712
her present state, would be dangerous.
7713
7714
Harriet, tempted by every thing and swayed by half a word, was always
7715
very long at a purchase; and while she was still hanging over muslins
7716
and changing her mind, Emma went to the door for amusement.--Much could
7717
not be hoped from the traffic of even the busiest part of Highbury;--Mr.
7718
Perry walking hastily by, Mr. William Cox letting himself in at the
7719
office-door, Mr. Cole's carriage-horses returning from exercise, or a
7720
stray letter-boy on an obstinate mule, were the liveliest objects she
7721
could presume to expect; and when her eyes fell only on the butcher with
7722
his tray, a tidy old woman travelling homewards from shop with her full
7723
basket, two curs quarrelling over a dirty bone, and a string of dawdling
7724
children round the baker's little bow-window eyeing the gingerbread, she
7725
knew she had no reason to complain, and was amused enough; quite enough
7726
still to stand at the door. A mind lively and at ease, can do with
7727
seeing nothing, and can see nothing that does not answer.
7728
7729
She looked down the Randalls road. The scene enlarged; two persons
7730
appeared; Mrs. Weston and her son-in-law; they were walking into
7731
Highbury;--to Hartfield of course. They were stopping, however, in the
7732
first place at Mrs. Bates's; whose house was a little nearer
7733
Randalls than Ford's; and had all but knocked, when Emma caught their
7734
eye.--Immediately they crossed the road and came forward to her; and the
7735
agreeableness of yesterday's engagement seemed to give fresh pleasure to
7736
the present meeting. Mrs. Weston informed her that she was going to call
7737
on the Bateses, in order to hear the new instrument.
7738
7739
“For my companion tells me,” said she, “that I absolutely promised Miss
7740
Bates last night, that I would come this morning. I was not aware of it
7741
myself. I did not know that I had fixed a day, but as he says I did, I
7742
am going now.”
7743
7744
“And while Mrs. Weston pays her visit, I may be allowed, I hope,” said
7745
Frank Churchill, “to join your party and wait for her at Hartfield--if
7746
you are going home.”
7747
7748
Mrs. Weston was disappointed.
7749
7750
“I thought you meant to go with me. They would be very much pleased.”
7751
7752
“Me! I should be quite in the way. But, perhaps--I may be equally in the
7753
way here. Miss Woodhouse looks as if she did not want me. My aunt always
7754
sends me off when she is shopping. She says I fidget her to death; and
7755
Miss Woodhouse looks as if she could almost say the same. What am I to
7756
do?”
7757
7758
“I am here on no business of my own,” said Emma; “I am only waiting for
7759
my friend. She will probably have soon done, and then we shall go home.
7760
But you had better go with Mrs. Weston and hear the instrument.”
7761
7762
“Well--if you advise it.--But (with a smile) if Colonel Campbell should
7763
have employed a careless friend, and if it should prove to have an
7764
indifferent tone--what shall I say? I shall be no support to Mrs.
7765
Weston. She might do very well by herself. A disagreeable truth would be
7766
palatable through her lips, but I am the wretchedest being in the world
7767
at a civil falsehood.”
7768
7769
“I do not believe any such thing,” replied Emma.--“I am persuaded that
7770
you can be as insincere as your neighbours, when it is necessary; but
7771
there is no reason to suppose the instrument is indifferent. Quite
7772
otherwise indeed, if I understood Miss Fairfax's opinion last night.”
7773
7774
“Do come with me,” said Mrs. Weston, “if it be not very disagreeable to
7775
you. It need not detain us long. We will go to Hartfield afterwards.
7776
We will follow them to Hartfield. I really wish you to call with me. It
7777
will be felt so great an attention! and I always thought you meant it.”
7778
7779
He could say no more; and with the hope of Hartfield to reward him,
7780
returned with Mrs. Weston to Mrs. Bates's door. Emma watched them in,
7781
and then joined Harriet at the interesting counter,--trying, with all
7782
the force of her own mind, to convince her that if she wanted plain
7783
muslin it was of no use to look at figured; and that a blue ribbon, be
7784
it ever so beautiful, would still never match her yellow pattern. At
7785
last it was all settled, even to the destination of the parcel.
7786
7787
“Should I send it to Mrs. Goddard's, ma'am?” asked Mrs.
7788
Ford.--“Yes--no--yes, to Mrs. Goddard's. Only my pattern gown is at
7789
Hartfield. No, you shall send it to Hartfield, if you please. But then,
7790
Mrs. Goddard will want to see it.--And I could take the pattern gown
7791
home any day. But I shall want the ribbon directly--so it had better go
7792
to Hartfield--at least the ribbon. You could make it into two parcels,
7793
Mrs. Ford, could not you?”
7794
7795
“It is not worth while, Harriet, to give Mrs. Ford the trouble of two
7796
parcels.”
7797
7798
“No more it is.”
7799
7800
“No trouble in the world, ma'am,” said the obliging Mrs. Ford.
7801
7802
“Oh! but indeed I would much rather have it only in one. Then, if you
7803
please, you shall send it all to Mrs. Goddard's--I do not know--No, I
7804
think, Miss Woodhouse, I may just as well have it sent to Hartfield, and
7805
take it home with me at night. What do you advise?”
7806
7807
“That you do not give another half-second to the subject. To Hartfield,
7808
if you please, Mrs. Ford.”
7809
7810
“Aye, that will be much best,” said Harriet, quite satisfied, “I should
7811
not at all like to have it sent to Mrs. Goddard's.”
7812
7813
Voices approached the shop--or rather one voice and two ladies: Mrs.
7814
Weston and Miss Bates met them at the door.
7815
7816
“My dear Miss Woodhouse,” said the latter, “I am just run across to
7817
entreat the favour of you to come and sit down with us a little while,
7818
and give us your opinion of our new instrument; you and Miss Smith. How
7819
do you do, Miss Smith?--Very well I thank you.--And I begged Mrs. Weston
7820
to come with me, that I might be sure of succeeding.”
7821
7822
“I hope Mrs. Bates and Miss Fairfax are--”
7823
7824
“Very well, I am much obliged to you. My mother is delightfully well;
7825
and Jane caught no cold last night. How is Mr. Woodhouse?--I am so glad
7826
to hear such a good account. Mrs. Weston told me you were here.--Oh!
7827
then, said I, I must run across, I am sure Miss Woodhouse will allow me
7828
just to run across and entreat her to come in; my mother will be so
7829
very happy to see her--and now we are such a nice party, she cannot
7830
refuse.--'Aye, pray do,' said Mr. Frank Churchill, 'Miss Woodhouse's
7831
opinion of the instrument will be worth having.'--But, said I, I shall
7832
be more sure of succeeding if one of you will go with me.--'Oh,' said
7833
he, 'wait half a minute, till I have finished my job;'--For, would you
7834
believe it, Miss Woodhouse, there he is, in the most obliging manner in
7835
the world, fastening in the rivet of my mother's spectacles.--The rivet
7836
came out, you know, this morning.--So very obliging!--For my mother had
7837
no use of her spectacles--could not put them on. And, by the bye, every
7838
body ought to have two pair of spectacles; they should indeed. Jane said
7839
so. I meant to take them over to John Saunders the first thing I did,
7840
but something or other hindered me all the morning; first one thing,
7841
then another, there is no saying what, you know. At one time Patty came
7842
to say she thought the kitchen chimney wanted sweeping. Oh, said I,
7843
Patty do not come with your bad news to me. Here is the rivet of your
7844
mistress's spectacles out. Then the baked apples came home, Mrs. Wallis
7845
sent them by her boy; they are extremely civil and obliging to us, the
7846
Wallises, always--I have heard some people say that Mrs. Wallis can be
7847
uncivil and give a very rude answer, but we have never known any thing
7848
but the greatest attention from them. And it cannot be for the value
7849
of our custom now, for what is our consumption of bread, you know?
7850
Only three of us.--besides dear Jane at present--and she really eats
7851
nothing--makes such a shocking breakfast, you would be quite frightened
7852
if you saw it. I dare not let my mother know how little she eats--so I
7853
say one thing and then I say another, and it passes off. But about the
7854
middle of the day she gets hungry, and there is nothing she likes so
7855
well as these baked apples, and they are extremely wholesome, for I took
7856
the opportunity the other day of asking Mr. Perry; I happened to meet
7857
him in the street. Not that I had any doubt before--I have so often
7858
heard Mr. Woodhouse recommend a baked apple. I believe it is the only
7859
way that Mr. Woodhouse thinks the fruit thoroughly wholesome. We
7860
have apple-dumplings, however, very often. Patty makes an excellent
7861
apple-dumpling. Well, Mrs. Weston, you have prevailed, I hope, and these
7862
ladies will oblige us.”
7863
7864
Emma would be “very happy to wait on Mrs. Bates, &c.,” and they did at
7865
last move out of the shop, with no farther delay from Miss Bates than,
7866
7867
“How do you do, Mrs. Ford? I beg your pardon. I did not see you before.
7868
I hear you have a charming collection of new ribbons from town. Jane
7869
came back delighted yesterday. Thank ye, the gloves do very well--only a
7870
little too large about the wrist; but Jane is taking them in.”
7871
7872
“What was I talking of?” said she, beginning again when they were all in
7873
the street.
7874
7875
Emma wondered on what, of all the medley, she would fix.
7876
7877
“I declare I cannot recollect what I was talking of.--Oh! my mother's
7878
spectacles. So very obliging of Mr. Frank Churchill! 'Oh!' said he,
7879
'I do think I can fasten the rivet; I like a job of this kind
7880
excessively.'--Which you know shewed him to be so very.... Indeed I must
7881
say that, much as I had heard of him before and much as I had expected,
7882
he very far exceeds any thing.... I do congratulate you, Mrs. Weston,
7883
most warmly. He seems every thing the fondest parent could....
7884
'Oh!' said he, 'I can fasten the rivet. I like a job of that sort
7885
excessively.' I never shall forget his manner. And when I brought out
7886
the baked apples from the closet, and hoped our friends would be so very
7887
obliging as to take some, 'Oh!' said he directly, 'there is nothing
7888
in the way of fruit half so good, and these are the finest-looking
7889
home-baked apples I ever saw in my life.' That, you know, was so
7890
very.... And I am sure, by his manner, it was no compliment. Indeed they
7891
are very delightful apples, and Mrs. Wallis does them full justice--only
7892
we do not have them baked more than twice, and Mr. Woodhouse made us
7893
promise to have them done three times--but Miss Woodhouse will be so
7894
good as not to mention it. The apples themselves are the very finest
7895
sort for baking, beyond a doubt; all from Donwell--some of Mr.
7896
Knightley's most liberal supply. He sends us a sack every year; and
7897
certainly there never was such a keeping apple anywhere as one of his
7898
trees--I believe there is two of them. My mother says the orchard was
7899
always famous in her younger days. But I was really quite shocked the
7900
other day--for Mr. Knightley called one morning, and Jane was eating
7901
these apples, and we talked about them and said how much she enjoyed
7902
them, and he asked whether we were not got to the end of our stock. 'I
7903
am sure you must be,' said he, 'and I will send you another supply; for
7904
I have a great many more than I can ever use. William Larkins let me
7905
keep a larger quantity than usual this year. I will send you some more,
7906
before they get good for nothing.' So I begged he would not--for really
7907
as to ours being gone, I could not absolutely say that we had a great
7908
many left--it was but half a dozen indeed; but they should be all kept
7909
for Jane; and I could not at all bear that he should be sending us more,
7910
so liberal as he had been already; and Jane said the same. And when
7911
he was gone, she almost quarrelled with me--No, I should not say
7912
quarrelled, for we never had a quarrel in our lives; but she was quite
7913
distressed that I had owned the apples were so nearly gone; she wished
7914
I had made him believe we had a great many left. Oh, said I, my dear,
7915
I did say as much as I could. However, the very same evening William
7916
Larkins came over with a large basket of apples, the same sort of
7917
apples, a bushel at least, and I was very much obliged, and went down
7918
and spoke to William Larkins and said every thing, as you may suppose.
7919
William Larkins is such an old acquaintance! I am always glad to see
7920
him. But, however, I found afterwards from Patty, that William said it
7921
was all the apples of _that_ sort his master had; he had brought them
7922
all--and now his master had not one left to bake or boil. William did
7923
not seem to mind it himself, he was so pleased to think his master had
7924
sold so many; for William, you know, thinks more of his master's profit
7925
than any thing; but Mrs. Hodges, he said, was quite displeased at their
7926
being all sent away. She could not bear that her master should not be
7927
able to have another apple-tart this spring. He told Patty this, but bid
7928
her not mind it, and be sure not to say any thing to us about it, for
7929
Mrs. Hodges _would_ be cross sometimes, and as long as so many sacks
7930
were sold, it did not signify who ate the remainder. And so Patty told
7931
me, and I was excessively shocked indeed! I would not have Mr. Knightley
7932
know any thing about it for the world! He would be so very.... I wanted
7933
to keep it from Jane's knowledge; but, unluckily, I had mentioned it
7934
before I was aware.”
7935
7936
Miss Bates had just done as Patty opened the door; and her visitors
7937
walked upstairs without having any regular narration to attend to,
7938
pursued only by the sounds of her desultory good-will.
7939
7940
“Pray take care, Mrs. Weston, there is a step at the turning. Pray take
7941
care, Miss Woodhouse, ours is rather a dark staircase--rather darker
7942
and narrower than one could wish. Miss Smith, pray take care. Miss
7943
Woodhouse, I am quite concerned, I am sure you hit your foot. Miss
7944
Smith, the step at the turning.”
7945
7946
7947
7948
CHAPTER X
7949
7950
7951
The appearance of the little sitting-room as they entered, was
7952
tranquillity itself; Mrs. Bates, deprived of her usual employment,
7953
slumbering on one side of the fire, Frank Churchill, at a table near
7954
her, most deedily occupied about her spectacles, and Jane Fairfax,
7955
standing with her back to them, intent on her pianoforte.
7956
7957
Busy as he was, however, the young man was yet able to shew a most happy
7958
countenance on seeing Emma again.
7959
7960
“This is a pleasure,” said he, in rather a low voice, “coming at least
7961
ten minutes earlier than I had calculated. You find me trying to be
7962
useful; tell me if you think I shall succeed.”
7963
7964
“What!” said Mrs. Weston, “have not you finished it yet? you would not
7965
earn a very good livelihood as a working silversmith at this rate.”
7966
7967
“I have not been working uninterruptedly,” he replied, “I have been
7968
assisting Miss Fairfax in trying to make her instrument stand steadily,
7969
it was not quite firm; an unevenness in the floor, I believe. You see
7970
we have been wedging one leg with paper. This was very kind of you to be
7971
persuaded to come. I was almost afraid you would be hurrying home.”
7972
7973
He contrived that she should be seated by him; and was sufficiently
7974
employed in looking out the best baked apple for her, and trying to make
7975
her help or advise him in his work, till Jane Fairfax was quite ready
7976
to sit down to the pianoforte again. That she was not immediately ready,
7977
Emma did suspect to arise from the state of her nerves; she had not yet
7978
possessed the instrument long enough to touch it without emotion; she
7979
must reason herself into the power of performance; and Emma could not
7980
but pity such feelings, whatever their origin, and could not but resolve
7981
never to expose them to her neighbour again.
7982
7983
At last Jane began, and though the first bars were feebly given, the
7984
powers of the instrument were gradually done full justice to. Mrs.
7985
Weston had been delighted before, and was delighted again; Emma
7986
joined her in all her praise; and the pianoforte, with every proper
7987
discrimination, was pronounced to be altogether of the highest promise.
7988
7989
“Whoever Colonel Campbell might employ,” said Frank Churchill, with a
7990
smile at Emma, “the person has not chosen ill. I heard a good deal of
7991
Colonel Campbell's taste at Weymouth; and the softness of the upper
7992
notes I am sure is exactly what he and _all_ _that_ _party_ would
7993
particularly prize. I dare say, Miss Fairfax, that he either gave his
7994
friend very minute directions, or wrote to Broadwood himself. Do not you
7995
think so?”
7996
7997
Jane did not look round. She was not obliged to hear. Mrs. Weston had
7998
been speaking to her at the same moment.
7999
8000
“It is not fair,” said Emma, in a whisper; “mine was a random guess. Do
8001
not distress her.”
8002
8003
He shook his head with a smile, and looked as if he had very little
8004
doubt and very little mercy. Soon afterwards he began again,
8005
8006
“How much your friends in Ireland must be enjoying your pleasure on this
8007
occasion, Miss Fairfax. I dare say they often think of you, and wonder
8008
which will be the day, the precise day of the instrument's coming to
8009
hand. Do you imagine Colonel Campbell knows the business to be going
8010
forward just at this time?--Do you imagine it to be the consequence
8011
of an immediate commission from him, or that he may have sent only
8012
a general direction, an order indefinite as to time, to depend upon
8013
contingencies and conveniences?”
8014
8015
He paused. She could not but hear; she could not avoid answering,
8016
8017
“Till I have a letter from Colonel Campbell,” said she, in a voice of
8018
forced calmness, “I can imagine nothing with any confidence. It must be
8019
all conjecture.”
8020
8021
“Conjecture--aye, sometimes one conjectures right, and sometimes one
8022
conjectures wrong. I wish I could conjecture how soon I shall make this
8023
rivet quite firm. What nonsense one talks, Miss Woodhouse, when hard
8024
at work, if one talks at all;--your real workmen, I suppose, hold their
8025
tongues; but we gentlemen labourers if we get hold of a word--Miss
8026
Fairfax said something about conjecturing. There, it is done. I have the
8027
pleasure, madam, (to Mrs. Bates,) of restoring your spectacles, healed
8028
for the present.”
8029
8030
He was very warmly thanked both by mother and daughter; to escape a
8031
little from the latter, he went to the pianoforte, and begged Miss
8032
Fairfax, who was still sitting at it, to play something more.
8033
8034
“If you are very kind,” said he, “it will be one of the waltzes we
8035
danced last night;--let me live them over again. You did not enjoy them
8036
as I did; you appeared tired the whole time. I believe you were glad we
8037
danced no longer; but I would have given worlds--all the worlds one ever
8038
has to give--for another half-hour.”
8039
8040
She played.
8041
8042
“What felicity it is to hear a tune again which _has_ made one
8043
happy!--If I mistake not that was danced at Weymouth.”
8044
8045
She looked up at him for a moment, coloured deeply, and played something
8046
else. He took some music from a chair near the pianoforte, and turning
8047
to Emma, said,
8048
8049
“Here is something quite new to me. Do you know it?--Cramer.--And here
8050
are a new set of Irish melodies. That, from such a quarter, one might
8051
expect. This was all sent with the instrument. Very thoughtful of
8052
Colonel Campbell, was not it?--He knew Miss Fairfax could have no music
8053
here. I honour that part of the attention particularly; it shews it to
8054
have been so thoroughly from the heart. Nothing hastily done; nothing
8055
incomplete. True affection only could have prompted it.”
8056
8057
Emma wished he would be less pointed, yet could not help being amused;
8058
and when on glancing her eye towards Jane Fairfax she caught the remains
8059
of a smile, when she saw that with all the deep blush of consciousness,
8060
there had been a smile of secret delight, she had less scruple in the
8061
amusement, and much less compunction with respect to her.--This
8062
amiable, upright, perfect Jane Fairfax was apparently cherishing very
8063
reprehensible feelings.
8064
8065
He brought all the music to her, and they looked it over together.--Emma
8066
took the opportunity of whispering,
8067
8068
“You speak too plain. She must understand you.”
8069
8070
“I hope she does. I would have her understand me. I am not in the least
8071
ashamed of my meaning.”
8072
8073
“But really, I am half ashamed, and wish I had never taken up the idea.”
8074
8075
“I am very glad you did, and that you communicated it to me. I have now
8076
a key to all her odd looks and ways. Leave shame to her. If she does
8077
wrong, she ought to feel it.”
8078
8079
“She is not entirely without it, I think.”
8080
8081
“I do not see much sign of it. She is playing _Robin_ _Adair_ at this
8082
moment--_his_ favourite.”
8083
8084
Shortly afterwards Miss Bates, passing near the window, descried Mr.
8085
Knightley on horse-back not far off.
8086
8087
“Mr. Knightley I declare!--I must speak to him if possible, just to
8088
thank him. I will not open the window here; it would give you all cold;
8089
but I can go into my mother's room you know. I dare say he will come
8090
in when he knows who is here. Quite delightful to have you all meet
8091
so!--Our little room so honoured!”
8092
8093
She was in the adjoining chamber while she still spoke, and opening the
8094
casement there, immediately called Mr. Knightley's attention, and every
8095
syllable of their conversation was as distinctly heard by the others, as
8096
if it had passed within the same apartment.
8097
8098
“How d' ye do?--how d'ye do?--Very well, I thank you. So obliged to you
8099
for the carriage last night. We were just in time; my mother just ready
8100
for us. Pray come in; do come in. You will find some friends here.”
8101
8102
So began Miss Bates; and Mr. Knightley seemed determined to be heard in
8103
his turn, for most resolutely and commandingly did he say,
8104
8105
“How is your niece, Miss Bates?--I want to inquire after you all, but
8106
particularly your niece. How is Miss Fairfax?--I hope she caught no cold
8107
last night. How is she to-day? Tell me how Miss Fairfax is.”
8108
8109
And Miss Bates was obliged to give a direct answer before he would hear
8110
her in any thing else. The listeners were amused; and Mrs. Weston gave
8111
Emma a look of particular meaning. But Emma still shook her head in
8112
steady scepticism.
8113
8114
“So obliged to you!--so very much obliged to you for the carriage,”
8115
resumed Miss Bates.
8116
8117
He cut her short with,
8118
8119
“I am going to Kingston. Can I do any thing for you?”
8120
8121
“Oh! dear, Kingston--are you?--Mrs. Cole was saying the other day she
8122
wanted something from Kingston.”
8123
8124
“Mrs. Cole has servants to send. Can I do any thing for _you_?”
8125
8126
“No, I thank you. But do come in. Who do you think is here?--Miss
8127
Woodhouse and Miss Smith; so kind as to call to hear the new pianoforte.
8128
Do put up your horse at the Crown, and come in.”
8129
8130
“Well,” said he, in a deliberating manner, “for five minutes, perhaps.”
8131
8132
“And here is Mrs. Weston and Mr. Frank Churchill too!--Quite delightful;
8133
so many friends!”
8134
8135
“No, not now, I thank you. I could not stay two minutes. I must get on
8136
to Kingston as fast as I can.”
8137
8138
“Oh! do come in. They will be so very happy to see you.”
8139
8140
“No, no; your room is full enough. I will call another day, and hear the
8141
pianoforte.”
8142
8143
“Well, I am so sorry!--Oh! Mr. Knightley, what a delightful party last
8144
night; how extremely pleasant.--Did you ever see such dancing?--Was not
8145
it delightful?--Miss Woodhouse and Mr. Frank Churchill; I never saw any
8146
thing equal to it.”
8147
8148
“Oh! very delightful indeed; I can say nothing less, for I suppose Miss
8149
Woodhouse and Mr. Frank Churchill are hearing every thing that passes.
8150
And (raising his voice still more) I do not see why Miss Fairfax should
8151
not be mentioned too. I think Miss Fairfax dances very well; and Mrs.
8152
Weston is the very best country-dance player, without exception,
8153
in England. Now, if your friends have any gratitude, they will say
8154
something pretty loud about you and me in return; but I cannot stay to
8155
hear it.”
8156
8157
“Oh! Mr. Knightley, one moment more; something of consequence--so
8158
shocked!--Jane and I are both so shocked about the apples!”
8159
8160
“What is the matter now?”
8161
8162
“To think of your sending us all your store apples. You said you had
8163
a great many, and now you have not one left. We really are so shocked!
8164
Mrs. Hodges may well be angry. William Larkins mentioned it here. You
8165
should not have done it, indeed you should not. Ah! he is off. He never
8166
can bear to be thanked. But I thought he would have staid now, and it
8167
would have been a pity not to have mentioned.... Well, (returning to the
8168
room,) I have not been able to succeed. Mr. Knightley cannot stop. He is
8169
going to Kingston. He asked me if he could do any thing....”
8170
8171
“Yes,” said Jane, “we heard his kind offers, we heard every thing.”
8172
8173
“Oh! yes, my dear, I dare say you might, because you know, the door was
8174
open, and the window was open, and Mr. Knightley spoke loud. You must
8175
have heard every thing to be sure. 'Can I do any thing for you at
8176
Kingston?' said he; so I just mentioned.... Oh! Miss Woodhouse, must you
8177
be going?--You seem but just come--so very obliging of you.”
8178
8179
Emma found it really time to be at home; the visit had already lasted
8180
long; and on examining watches, so much of the morning was perceived
8181
to be gone, that Mrs. Weston and her companion taking leave also, could
8182
allow themselves only to walk with the two young ladies to Hartfield
8183
gates, before they set off for Randalls.
8184
8185
8186
8187
CHAPTER XI
8188
8189
8190
It may be possible to do without dancing entirely. Instances have been
8191
known of young people passing many, many months successively, without
8192
being at any ball of any description, and no material injury accrue
8193
either to body or mind;--but when a beginning is made--when the
8194
felicities of rapid motion have once been, though slightly, felt--it
8195
must be a very heavy set that does not ask for more.
8196
8197
Frank Churchill had danced once at Highbury, and longed to dance again;
8198
and the last half-hour of an evening which Mr. Woodhouse was persuaded
8199
to spend with his daughter at Randalls, was passed by the two young
8200
people in schemes on the subject. Frank's was the first idea; and his
8201
the greatest zeal in pursuing it; for the lady was the best judge of the
8202
difficulties, and the most solicitous for accommodation and appearance.
8203
But still she had inclination enough for shewing people again how
8204
delightfully Mr. Frank Churchill and Miss Woodhouse danced--for
8205
doing that in which she need not blush to compare herself with Jane
8206
Fairfax--and even for simple dancing itself, without any of the wicked
8207
aids of vanity--to assist him first in pacing out the room they were in
8208
to see what it could be made to hold--and then in taking the dimensions
8209
of the other parlour, in the hope of discovering, in spite of all that
8210
Mr. Weston could say of their exactly equal size, that it was a little
8211
the largest.
8212
8213
His first proposition and request, that the dance begun at Mr. Cole's
8214
should be finished there--that the same party should be collected,
8215
and the same musician engaged, met with the readiest acquiescence. Mr.
8216
Weston entered into the idea with thorough enjoyment, and Mrs. Weston
8217
most willingly undertook to play as long as they could wish to dance;
8218
and the interesting employment had followed, of reckoning up exactly who
8219
there would be, and portioning out the indispensable division of space
8220
to every couple.
8221
8222
“You and Miss Smith, and Miss Fairfax, will be three, and the two Miss
8223
Coxes five,” had been repeated many times over. “And there will be the
8224
two Gilberts, young Cox, my father, and myself, besides Mr. Knightley.
8225
Yes, that will be quite enough for pleasure. You and Miss Smith, and
8226
Miss Fairfax, will be three, and the two Miss Coxes five; and for five
8227
couple there will be plenty of room.”
8228
8229
But soon it came to be on one side,
8230
8231
“But will there be good room for five couple?--I really do not think
8232
there will.”
8233
8234
On another,
8235
8236
“And after all, five couple are not enough to make it worth while to
8237
stand up. Five couple are nothing, when one thinks seriously about it.
8238
It will not do to _invite_ five couple. It can be allowable only as the
8239
thought of the moment.”
8240
8241
Somebody said that _Miss_ Gilbert was expected at her brother's, and
8242
must be invited with the rest. Somebody else believed _Mrs_. Gilbert
8243
would have danced the other evening, if she had been asked. A word was
8244
put in for a second young Cox; and at last, Mr. Weston naming one family
8245
of cousins who must be included, and another of very old acquaintance
8246
who could not be left out, it became a certainty that the five couple
8247
would be at least ten, and a very interesting speculation in what
8248
possible manner they could be disposed of.
8249
8250
The doors of the two rooms were just opposite each other. “Might not
8251
they use both rooms, and dance across the passage?” It seemed the
8252
best scheme; and yet it was not so good but that many of them wanted a
8253
better. Emma said it would be awkward; Mrs. Weston was in distress about
8254
the supper; and Mr. Woodhouse opposed it earnestly, on the score of
8255
health. It made him so very unhappy, indeed, that it could not be
8256
persevered in.
8257
8258
“Oh! no,” said he; “it would be the extreme of imprudence. I could not
8259
bear it for Emma!--Emma is not strong. She would catch a dreadful cold.
8260
So would poor little Harriet. So you would all. Mrs. Weston, you would
8261
be quite laid up; do not let them talk of such a wild thing. Pray do
8262
not let them talk of it. That young man (speaking lower) is very
8263
thoughtless. Do not tell his father, but that young man is not quite
8264
the thing. He has been opening the doors very often this evening,
8265
and keeping them open very inconsiderately. He does not think of the
8266
draught. I do not mean to set you against him, but indeed he is not
8267
quite the thing!”
8268
8269
Mrs. Weston was sorry for such a charge. She knew the importance of
8270
it, and said every thing in her power to do it away. Every door was now
8271
closed, the passage plan given up, and the first scheme of dancing only
8272
in the room they were in resorted to again; and with such good-will on
8273
Frank Churchill's part, that the space which a quarter of an hour before
8274
had been deemed barely sufficient for five couple, was now endeavoured
8275
to be made out quite enough for ten.
8276
8277
“We were too magnificent,” said he. “We allowed unnecessary room. Ten
8278
couple may stand here very well.”
8279
8280
Emma demurred. “It would be a crowd--a sad crowd; and what could be
8281
worse than dancing without space to turn in?”
8282
8283
“Very true,” he gravely replied; “it was very bad.” But still he went on
8284
measuring, and still he ended with,
8285
8286
“I think there will be very tolerable room for ten couple.”
8287
8288
“No, no,” said she, “you are quite unreasonable. It would be dreadful
8289
to be standing so close! Nothing can be farther from pleasure than to be
8290
dancing in a crowd--and a crowd in a little room!”
8291
8292
“There is no denying it,” he replied. “I agree with you exactly. A crowd
8293
in a little room--Miss Woodhouse, you have the art of giving pictures
8294
in a few words. Exquisite, quite exquisite!--Still, however, having
8295
proceeded so far, one is unwilling to give the matter up. It would be
8296
a disappointment to my father--and altogether--I do not know that--I am
8297
rather of opinion that ten couple might stand here very well.”
8298
8299
Emma perceived that the nature of his gallantry was a little
8300
self-willed, and that he would rather oppose than lose the pleasure of
8301
dancing with her; but she took the compliment, and forgave the rest.
8302
Had she intended ever to _marry_ him, it might have been worth while to
8303
pause and consider, and try to understand the value of his preference,
8304
and the character of his temper; but for all the purposes of their
8305
acquaintance, he was quite amiable enough.
8306
8307
Before the middle of the next day, he was at Hartfield; and he entered
8308
the room with such an agreeable smile as certified the continuance of
8309
the scheme. It soon appeared that he came to announce an improvement.
8310
8311
“Well, Miss Woodhouse,” he almost immediately began, “your inclination
8312
for dancing has not been quite frightened away, I hope, by the terrors
8313
of my father's little rooms. I bring a new proposal on the subject:--a
8314
thought of my father's, which waits only your approbation to be acted
8315
upon. May I hope for the honour of your hand for the two first dances
8316
of this little projected ball, to be given, not at Randalls, but at the
8317
Crown Inn?”
8318
8319
“The Crown!”
8320
8321
“Yes; if you and Mr. Woodhouse see no objection, and I trust you cannot,
8322
my father hopes his friends will be so kind as to visit him there.
8323
Better accommodations, he can promise them, and not a less grateful
8324
welcome than at Randalls. It is his own idea. Mrs. Weston sees no
8325
objection to it, provided you are satisfied. This is what we all feel.
8326
Oh! you were perfectly right! Ten couple, in either of the Randalls
8327
rooms, would have been insufferable!--Dreadful!--I felt how right you
8328
were the whole time, but was too anxious for securing _any_ _thing_
8329
to like to yield. Is not it a good exchange?--You consent--I hope you
8330
consent?”
8331
8332
“It appears to me a plan that nobody can object to, if Mr. and Mrs.
8333
Weston do not. I think it admirable; and, as far as I can answer for
8334
myself, shall be most happy--It seems the only improvement that could
8335
be. Papa, do you not think it an excellent improvement?”
8336
8337
She was obliged to repeat and explain it, before it was fully
8338
comprehended; and then, being quite new, farther representations were
8339
necessary to make it acceptable.
8340
8341
“No; he thought it very far from an improvement--a very bad plan--much
8342
worse than the other. A room at an inn was always damp and dangerous;
8343
never properly aired, or fit to be inhabited. If they must dance, they
8344
had better dance at Randalls. He had never been in the room at the Crown
8345
in his life--did not know the people who kept it by sight.--Oh! no--a
8346
very bad plan. They would catch worse colds at the Crown than anywhere.”
8347
8348
“I was going to observe, sir,” said Frank Churchill, “that one of the
8349
great recommendations of this change would be the very little danger
8350
of any body's catching cold--so much less danger at the Crown than at
8351
Randalls! Mr. Perry might have reason to regret the alteration, but
8352
nobody else could.”
8353
8354
“Sir,” said Mr. Woodhouse, rather warmly, “you are very much mistaken
8355
if you suppose Mr. Perry to be that sort of character. Mr. Perry is
8356
extremely concerned when any of us are ill. But I do not understand how
8357
the room at the Crown can be safer for you than your father's house.”
8358
8359
“From the very circumstance of its being larger, sir. We shall have no
8360
occasion to open the windows at all--not once the whole evening; and it
8361
is that dreadful habit of opening the windows, letting in cold air upon
8362
heated bodies, which (as you well know, sir) does the mischief.”
8363
8364
“Open the windows!--but surely, Mr. Churchill, nobody would think of
8365
opening the windows at Randalls. Nobody could be so imprudent! I never
8366
heard of such a thing. Dancing with open windows!--I am sure, neither
8367
your father nor Mrs. Weston (poor Miss Taylor that was) would suffer
8368
it.”
8369
8370
“Ah! sir--but a thoughtless young person will sometimes step behind a
8371
window-curtain, and throw up a sash, without its being suspected. I have
8372
often known it done myself.”
8373
8374
“Have you indeed, sir?--Bless me! I never could have supposed it. But I
8375
live out of the world, and am often astonished at what I hear. However,
8376
this does make a difference; and, perhaps, when we come to talk it
8377
over--but these sort of things require a good deal of consideration. One
8378
cannot resolve upon them in a hurry. If Mr. and Mrs. Weston will be so
8379
obliging as to call here one morning, we may talk it over, and see what
8380
can be done.”
8381
8382
“But, unfortunately, sir, my time is so limited--”
8383
8384
“Oh!” interrupted Emma, “there will be plenty of time for talking every
8385
thing over. There is no hurry at all. If it can be contrived to be at
8386
the Crown, papa, it will be very convenient for the horses. They will be
8387
so near their own stable.”
8388
8389
“So they will, my dear. That is a great thing. Not that James ever
8390
complains; but it is right to spare our horses when we can. If I could
8391
be sure of the rooms being thoroughly aired--but is Mrs. Stokes to be
8392
trusted? I doubt it. I do not know her, even by sight.”
8393
8394
“I can answer for every thing of that nature, sir, because it will be
8395
under Mrs. Weston's care. Mrs. Weston undertakes to direct the whole.”
8396
8397
“There, papa!--Now you must be satisfied--Our own dear Mrs. Weston, who
8398
is carefulness itself. Do not you remember what Mr. Perry said, so many
8399
years ago, when I had the measles? 'If _Miss_ _Taylor_ undertakes to
8400
wrap Miss Emma up, you need not have any fears, sir.' How often have I
8401
heard you speak of it as such a compliment to her!”
8402
8403
“Aye, very true. Mr. Perry did say so. I shall never forget it. Poor
8404
little Emma! You were very bad with the measles; that is, you would have
8405
been very bad, but for Perry's great attention. He came four times a day
8406
for a week. He said, from the first, it was a very good sort--which
8407
was our great comfort; but the measles are a dreadful complaint. I hope
8408
whenever poor Isabella's little ones have the measles, she will send for
8409
Perry.”
8410
8411
“My father and Mrs. Weston are at the Crown at this moment,” said Frank
8412
Churchill, “examining the capabilities of the house. I left them there
8413
and came on to Hartfield, impatient for your opinion, and hoping you
8414
might be persuaded to join them and give your advice on the spot. I was
8415
desired to say so from both. It would be the greatest pleasure to
8416
them, if you could allow me to attend you there. They can do nothing
8417
satisfactorily without you.”
8418
8419
Emma was most happy to be called to such a council; and her father,
8420
engaging to think it all over while she was gone, the two young people
8421
set off together without delay for the Crown. There were Mr. and Mrs.
8422
Weston; delighted to see her and receive her approbation, very busy and
8423
very happy in their different way; she, in some little distress; and he,
8424
finding every thing perfect.
8425
8426
“Emma,” said she, “this paper is worse than I expected. Look! in places
8427
you see it is dreadfully dirty; and the wainscot is more yellow and
8428
forlorn than any thing I could have imagined.”
8429
8430
“My dear, you are too particular,” said her husband. “What does all that
8431
signify? You will see nothing of it by candlelight. It will be as
8432
clean as Randalls by candlelight. We never see any thing of it on our
8433
club-nights.”
8434
8435
The ladies here probably exchanged looks which meant, “Men never know
8436
when things are dirty or not;” and the gentlemen perhaps thought each to
8437
himself, “Women will have their little nonsenses and needless cares.”
8438
8439
One perplexity, however, arose, which the gentlemen did not disdain.
8440
It regarded a supper-room. At the time of the ballroom's being built,
8441
suppers had not been in question; and a small card-room adjoining, was
8442
the only addition. What was to be done? This card-room would be wanted
8443
as a card-room now; or, if cards were conveniently voted unnecessary
8444
by their four selves, still was it not too small for any comfortable
8445
supper? Another room of much better size might be secured for the
8446
purpose; but it was at the other end of the house, and a long awkward
8447
passage must be gone through to get at it. This made a difficulty. Mrs.
8448
Weston was afraid of draughts for the young people in that passage;
8449
and neither Emma nor the gentlemen could tolerate the prospect of being
8450
miserably crowded at supper.
8451
8452
Mrs. Weston proposed having no regular supper; merely sandwiches,
8453
&c., set out in the little room; but that was scouted as a wretched
8454
suggestion. A private dance, without sitting down to supper, was
8455
pronounced an infamous fraud upon the rights of men and women; and
8456
Mrs. Weston must not speak of it again. She then took another line of
8457
expediency, and looking into the doubtful room, observed,
8458
8459
“I do not think it _is_ so very small. We shall not be many, you know.”
8460
8461
And Mr. Weston at the same time, walking briskly with long steps through
8462
the passage, was calling out,
8463
8464
“You talk a great deal of the length of this passage, my dear. It is a
8465
mere nothing after all; and not the least draught from the stairs.”
8466
8467
“I wish,” said Mrs. Weston, “one could know which arrangement our guests
8468
in general would like best. To do what would be most generally pleasing
8469
must be our object--if one could but tell what that would be.”
8470
8471
“Yes, very true,” cried Frank, “very true. You want your neighbours'
8472
opinions. I do not wonder at you. If one could ascertain what the chief
8473
of them--the Coles, for instance. They are not far off. Shall I call
8474
upon them? Or Miss Bates? She is still nearer.--And I do not know
8475
whether Miss Bates is not as likely to understand the inclinations of
8476
the rest of the people as any body. I think we do want a larger council.
8477
Suppose I go and invite Miss Bates to join us?”
8478
8479
“Well--if you please,” said Mrs. Weston rather hesitating, “if you think
8480
she will be of any use.”
8481
8482
“You will get nothing to the purpose from Miss Bates,” said Emma. “She
8483
will be all delight and gratitude, but she will tell you nothing. She
8484
will not even listen to your questions. I see no advantage in consulting
8485
Miss Bates.”
8486
8487
“But she is so amusing, so extremely amusing! I am very fond of hearing
8488
Miss Bates talk. And I need not bring the whole family, you know.”
8489
8490
Here Mr. Weston joined them, and on hearing what was proposed, gave it
8491
his decided approbation.
8492
8493
“Aye, do, Frank.--Go and fetch Miss Bates, and let us end the matter at
8494
once. She will enjoy the scheme, I am sure; and I do not know a properer
8495
person for shewing us how to do away difficulties. Fetch Miss Bates.
8496
We are growing a little too nice. She is a standing lesson of how to be
8497
happy. But fetch them both. Invite them both.”
8498
8499
“Both sir! Can the old lady?”...
8500
8501
“The old lady! No, the young lady, to be sure. I shall think you a great
8502
blockhead, Frank, if you bring the aunt without the niece.”
8503
8504
“Oh! I beg your pardon, sir. I did not immediately recollect.
8505
Undoubtedly if you wish it, I will endeavour to persuade them both.” And
8506
away he ran.
8507
8508
Long before he reappeared, attending the short, neat, brisk-moving aunt,
8509
and her elegant niece,--Mrs. Weston, like a sweet-tempered woman and
8510
a good wife, had examined the passage again, and found the evils of it
8511
much less than she had supposed before--indeed very trifling; and here
8512
ended the difficulties of decision. All the rest, in speculation at
8513
least, was perfectly smooth. All the minor arrangements of table and
8514
chair, lights and music, tea and supper, made themselves; or were left
8515
as mere trifles to be settled at any time between Mrs. Weston and Mrs.
8516
Stokes.--Every body invited, was certainly to come; Frank had already
8517
written to Enscombe to propose staying a few days beyond his fortnight,
8518
which could not possibly be refused. And a delightful dance it was to
8519
be.
8520
8521
Most cordially, when Miss Bates arrived, did she agree that it must.
8522
As a counsellor she was not wanted; but as an approver, (a much safer
8523
character,) she was truly welcome. Her approbation, at once general
8524
and minute, warm and incessant, could not but please; and for another
8525
half-hour they were all walking to and fro, between the different rooms,
8526
some suggesting, some attending, and all in happy enjoyment of the
8527
future. The party did not break up without Emma's being positively
8528
secured for the two first dances by the hero of the evening, nor without
8529
her overhearing Mr. Weston whisper to his wife, “He has asked her, my
8530
dear. That's right. I knew he would!”
8531
8532
8533
8534
CHAPTER XII
8535
8536
8537
One thing only was wanting to make the prospect of the ball completely
8538
satisfactory to Emma--its being fixed for a day within the granted
8539
term of Frank Churchill's stay in Surry; for, in spite of Mr. Weston's
8540
confidence, she could not think it so very impossible that the
8541
Churchills might not allow their nephew to remain a day beyond his
8542
fortnight. But this was not judged feasible. The preparations must take
8543
their time, nothing could be properly ready till the third week were
8544
entered on, and for a few days they must be planning, proceeding and
8545
hoping in uncertainty--at the risk--in her opinion, the great risk, of
8546
its being all in vain.
8547
8548
Enscombe however was gracious, gracious in fact, if not in word. His
8549
wish of staying longer evidently did not please; but it was not opposed.
8550
All was safe and prosperous; and as the removal of one solicitude
8551
generally makes way for another, Emma, being now certain of her
8552
ball, began to adopt as the next vexation Mr. Knightley's provoking
8553
indifference about it. Either because he did not dance himself, or
8554
because the plan had been formed without his being consulted, he
8555
seemed resolved that it should not interest him, determined against its
8556
exciting any present curiosity, or affording him any future amusement.
8557
To her voluntary communications Emma could get no more approving reply,
8558
than,
8559
8560
“Very well. If the Westons think it worth while to be at all this
8561
trouble for a few hours of noisy entertainment, I have nothing to say
8562
against it, but that they shall not chuse pleasures for me.--Oh! yes,
8563
I must be there; I could not refuse; and I will keep as much awake as
8564
I can; but I would rather be at home, looking over William Larkins's
8565
week's account; much rather, I confess.--Pleasure in seeing
8566
dancing!--not I, indeed--I never look at it--I do not know who
8567
does.--Fine dancing, I believe, like virtue, must be its own reward.
8568
Those who are standing by are usually thinking of something very
8569
different.”
8570
8571
This Emma felt was aimed at her; and it made her quite angry. It was not
8572
in compliment to Jane Fairfax however that he was so indifferent, or so
8573
indignant; he was not guided by _her_ feelings in reprobating the ball,
8574
for _she_ enjoyed the thought of it to an extraordinary degree. It made
8575
her animated--open hearted--she voluntarily said;--
8576
8577
“Oh! Miss Woodhouse, I hope nothing may happen to prevent the ball.
8578
What a disappointment it would be! I do look forward to it, I own, with
8579
_very_ great pleasure.”
8580
8581
It was not to oblige Jane Fairfax therefore that he would have preferred
8582
the society of William Larkins. No!--she was more and more convinced
8583
that Mrs. Weston was quite mistaken in that surmise. There was a great
8584
deal of friendly and of compassionate attachment on his side--but no
8585
love.
8586
8587
Alas! there was soon no leisure for quarrelling with Mr. Knightley. Two
8588
days of joyful security were immediately followed by the over-throw of
8589
every thing. A letter arrived from Mr. Churchill to urge his nephew's
8590
instant return. Mrs. Churchill was unwell--far too unwell to do without
8591
him; she had been in a very suffering state (so said her husband)
8592
when writing to her nephew two days before, though from her usual
8593
unwillingness to give pain, and constant habit of never thinking of
8594
herself, she had not mentioned it; but now she was too ill to trifle,
8595
and must entreat him to set off for Enscombe without delay.
8596
8597
The substance of this letter was forwarded to Emma, in a note from Mrs.
8598
Weston, instantly. As to his going, it was inevitable. He must be gone
8599
within a few hours, though without feeling any real alarm for his aunt,
8600
to lessen his repugnance. He knew her illnesses; they never occurred but
8601
for her own convenience.
8602
8603
Mrs. Weston added, “that he could only allow himself time to hurry to
8604
Highbury, after breakfast, and take leave of the few friends there
8605
whom he could suppose to feel any interest in him; and that he might be
8606
expected at Hartfield very soon.”
8607
8608
This wretched note was the finale of Emma's breakfast. When once it had
8609
been read, there was no doing any thing, but lament and exclaim. The
8610
loss of the ball--the loss of the young man--and all that the young man
8611
might be feeling!--It was too wretched!--Such a delightful evening as
8612
it would have been!--Every body so happy! and she and her partner the
8613
happiest!--“I said it would be so,” was the only consolation.
8614
8615
Her father's feelings were quite distinct. He thought principally of
8616
Mrs. Churchill's illness, and wanted to know how she was treated; and as
8617
for the ball, it was shocking to have dear Emma disappointed; but they
8618
would all be safer at home.
8619
8620
Emma was ready for her visitor some time before he appeared; but if this
8621
reflected at all upon his impatience, his sorrowful look and total want
8622
of spirits when he did come might redeem him. He felt the going away
8623
almost too much to speak of it. His dejection was most evident. He
8624
sat really lost in thought for the first few minutes; and when rousing
8625
himself, it was only to say,
8626
8627
“Of all horrid things, leave-taking is the worst.”
8628
8629
“But you will come again,” said Emma. “This will not be your only visit
8630
to Randalls.”
8631
8632
“Ah!--(shaking his head)--the uncertainty of when I may be able to
8633
return!--I shall try for it with a zeal!--It will be the object of
8634
all my thoughts and cares!--and if my uncle and aunt go to town this
8635
spring--but I am afraid--they did not stir last spring--I am afraid it
8636
is a custom gone for ever.”
8637
8638
“Our poor ball must be quite given up.”
8639
8640
“Ah! that ball!--why did we wait for any thing?--why not seize the
8641
pleasure at once?--How often is happiness destroyed by preparation,
8642
foolish preparation!--You told us it would be so.--Oh! Miss Woodhouse,
8643
why are you always so right?”
8644
8645
“Indeed, I am very sorry to be right in this instance. I would much
8646
rather have been merry than wise.”
8647
8648
“If I can come again, we are still to have our ball. My father depends
8649
on it. Do not forget your engagement.”
8650
8651
Emma looked graciously.
8652
8653
“Such a fortnight as it has been!” he continued; “every day more
8654
precious and more delightful than the day before!--every day making
8655
me less fit to bear any other place. Happy those, who can remain at
8656
Highbury!”
8657
8658
“As you do us such ample justice now,” said Emma, laughing, “I will
8659
venture to ask, whether you did not come a little doubtfully at first?
8660
Do not we rather surpass your expectations? I am sure we do. I am sure
8661
you did not much expect to like us. You would not have been so long in
8662
coming, if you had had a pleasant idea of Highbury.”
8663
8664
He laughed rather consciously; and though denying the sentiment, Emma
8665
was convinced that it had been so.
8666
8667
“And you must be off this very morning?”
8668
8669
“Yes; my father is to join me here: we shall walk back together, and I
8670
must be off immediately. I am almost afraid that every moment will bring
8671
him.”
8672
8673
“Not five minutes to spare even for your friends Miss Fairfax and Miss
8674
Bates? How unlucky! Miss Bates's powerful, argumentative mind might have
8675
strengthened yours.”
8676
8677
“Yes--I _have_ called there; passing the door, I thought it better. It
8678
was a right thing to do. I went in for three minutes, and was detained
8679
by Miss Bates's being absent. She was out; and I felt it impossible not
8680
to wait till she came in. She is a woman that one may, that one _must_
8681
laugh at; but that one would not wish to slight. It was better to pay my
8682
visit, then”--
8683
8684
He hesitated, got up, walked to a window.
8685
8686
“In short,” said he, “perhaps, Miss Woodhouse--I think you can hardly be
8687
quite without suspicion”--
8688
8689
He looked at her, as if wanting to read her thoughts. She hardly knew
8690
what to say. It seemed like the forerunner of something absolutely
8691
serious, which she did not wish. Forcing herself to speak, therefore, in
8692
the hope of putting it by, she calmly said,
8693
8694
“You are quite in the right; it was most natural to pay your visit,
8695
then”--
8696
8697
He was silent. She believed he was looking at her; probably reflecting
8698
on what she had said, and trying to understand the manner. She heard
8699
him sigh. It was natural for him to feel that he had _cause_ to sigh.
8700
He could not believe her to be encouraging him. A few awkward moments
8701
passed, and he sat down again; and in a more determined manner said,
8702
8703
“It was something to feel that all the rest of my time might be given to
8704
Hartfield. My regard for Hartfield is most warm”--
8705
8706
He stopt again, rose again, and seemed quite embarrassed.--He was more
8707
in love with her than Emma had supposed; and who can say how it might
8708
have ended, if his father had not made his appearance? Mr. Woodhouse
8709
soon followed; and the necessity of exertion made him composed.
8710
8711
A very few minutes more, however, completed the present trial. Mr.
8712
Weston, always alert when business was to be done, and as incapable of
8713
procrastinating any evil that was inevitable, as of foreseeing any that
8714
was doubtful, said, “It was time to go;” and the young man, though he
8715
might and did sigh, could not but agree, to take leave.
8716
8717
“I shall hear about you all,” said he; “that is my chief consolation.
8718
I shall hear of every thing that is going on among you. I have engaged
8719
Mrs. Weston to correspond with me. She has been so kind as to promise
8720
it. Oh! the blessing of a female correspondent, when one is really
8721
interested in the absent!--she will tell me every thing. In her letters
8722
I shall be at dear Highbury again.”
8723
8724
A very friendly shake of the hand, a very earnest “Good-bye,” closed the
8725
speech, and the door had soon shut out Frank Churchill. Short had been
8726
the notice--short their meeting; he was gone; and Emma felt so sorry
8727
to part, and foresaw so great a loss to their little society from his
8728
absence as to begin to be afraid of being too sorry, and feeling it too
8729
much.
8730
8731
It was a sad change. They had been meeting almost every day since his
8732
arrival. Certainly his being at Randalls had given great spirit to
8733
the last two weeks--indescribable spirit; the idea, the expectation
8734
of seeing him which every morning had brought, the assurance of his
8735
attentions, his liveliness, his manners! It had been a very happy
8736
fortnight, and forlorn must be the sinking from it into the common
8737
course of Hartfield days. To complete every other recommendation, he had
8738
_almost_ told her that he loved her. What strength, or what constancy of
8739
affection he might be subject to, was another point; but at present
8740
she could not doubt his having a decidedly warm admiration, a conscious
8741
preference of herself; and this persuasion, joined to all the rest,
8742
made her think that she _must_ be a little in love with him, in spite of
8743
every previous determination against it.
8744
8745
“I certainly must,” said she. “This sensation of listlessness,
8746
weariness, stupidity, this disinclination to sit down and employ myself,
8747
this feeling of every thing's being dull and insipid about the house!--
8748
I must be in love; I should be the oddest creature in the world if I
8749
were not--for a few weeks at least. Well! evil to some is always good to
8750
others. I shall have many fellow-mourners for the ball, if not for Frank
8751
Churchill; but Mr. Knightley will be happy. He may spend the evening
8752
with his dear William Larkins now if he likes.”
8753
8754
Mr. Knightley, however, shewed no triumphant happiness. He could not say
8755
that he was sorry on his own account; his very cheerful look would have
8756
contradicted him if he had; but he said, and very steadily, that he
8757
was sorry for the disappointment of the others, and with considerable
8758
kindness added,
8759
8760
“You, Emma, who have so few opportunities of dancing, you are really out
8761
of luck; you are very much out of luck!”
8762
8763
It was some days before she saw Jane Fairfax, to judge of her honest
8764
regret in this woeful change; but when they did meet, her composure
8765
was odious. She had been particularly unwell, however, suffering from
8766
headache to a degree, which made her aunt declare, that had the ball
8767
taken place, she did not think Jane could have attended it; and it was
8768
charity to impute some of her unbecoming indifference to the languor of
8769
ill-health.
8770
8771
8772
8773
CHAPTER XIII
8774
8775
8776
Emma continued to entertain no doubt of her being in love. Her ideas
8777
only varied as to the how much. At first, she thought it was a good
8778
deal; and afterwards, but little. She had great pleasure in hearing
8779
Frank Churchill talked of; and, for his sake, greater pleasure than ever
8780
in seeing Mr. and Mrs. Weston; she was very often thinking of him, and
8781
quite impatient for a letter, that she might know how he was, how were
8782
his spirits, how was his aunt, and what was the chance of his coming to
8783
Randalls again this spring. But, on the other hand, she could not admit
8784
herself to be unhappy, nor, after the first morning, to be less disposed
8785
for employment than usual; she was still busy and cheerful; and,
8786
pleasing as he was, she could yet imagine him to have faults; and
8787
farther, though thinking of him so much, and, as she sat drawing or
8788
working, forming a thousand amusing schemes for the progress and close
8789
of their attachment, fancying interesting dialogues, and inventing
8790
elegant letters; the conclusion of every imaginary declaration on his
8791
side was that she _refused_ _him_. Their affection was always to subside
8792
into friendship. Every thing tender and charming was to mark their
8793
parting; but still they were to part. When she became sensible of this,
8794
it struck her that she could not be very much in love; for in spite of
8795
her previous and fixed determination never to quit her father, never
8796
to marry, a strong attachment certainly must produce more of a struggle
8797
than she could foresee in her own feelings.
8798
8799
“I do not find myself making any use of the word _sacrifice_,” said
8800
she.--“In not one of all my clever replies, my delicate negatives, is
8801
there any allusion to making a sacrifice. I do suspect that he is not
8802
really necessary to my happiness. So much the better. I certainly will
8803
not persuade myself to feel more than I do. I am quite enough in love. I
8804
should be sorry to be more.”
8805
8806
Upon the whole, she was equally contented with her view of his feelings.
8807
8808
“_He_ is undoubtedly very much in love--every thing denotes it--very
8809
much in love indeed!--and when he comes again, if his affection
8810
continue, I must be on my guard not to encourage it.--It would be most
8811
inexcusable to do otherwise, as my own mind is quite made up. Not that I
8812
imagine he can think I have been encouraging him hitherto. No, if he
8813
had believed me at all to share his feelings, he would not have been
8814
so wretched. Could he have thought himself encouraged, his looks and
8815
language at parting would have been different.--Still, however, I must
8816
be on my guard. This is in the supposition of his attachment continuing
8817
what it now is; but I do not know that I expect it will; I do not look
8818
upon him to be quite the sort of man--I do not altogether build upon
8819
his steadiness or constancy.--His feelings are warm, but I can imagine
8820
them rather changeable.--Every consideration of the subject, in short,
8821
makes me thankful that my happiness is not more deeply involved.--I
8822
shall do very well again after a little while--and then, it will be a
8823
good thing over; for they say every body is in love once in their lives,
8824
and I shall have been let off easily.”
8825
8826
When his letter to Mrs. Weston arrived, Emma had the perusal of it; and
8827
she read it with a degree of pleasure and admiration which made her
8828
at first shake her head over her own sensations, and think she had
8829
undervalued their strength. It was a long, well-written letter, giving
8830
the particulars of his journey and of his feelings, expressing all the
8831
affection, gratitude, and respect which was natural and honourable,
8832
and describing every thing exterior and local that could be supposed
8833
attractive, with spirit and precision. No suspicious flourishes now of
8834
apology or concern; it was the language of real feeling towards Mrs.
8835
Weston; and the transition from Highbury to Enscombe, the contrast
8836
between the places in some of the first blessings of social life was
8837
just enough touched on to shew how keenly it was felt, and how much more
8838
might have been said but for the restraints of propriety.--The charm
8839
of her own name was not wanting. _Miss_ _Woodhouse_ appeared more than
8840
once, and never without a something of pleasing connexion, either a
8841
compliment to her taste, or a remembrance of what she had said; and in
8842
the very last time of its meeting her eye, unadorned as it was by any
8843
such broad wreath of gallantry, she yet could discern the effect of
8844
her influence and acknowledge the greatest compliment perhaps of all
8845
conveyed. Compressed into the very lowest vacant corner were these
8846
words--“I had not a spare moment on Tuesday, as you know, for Miss
8847
Woodhouse's beautiful little friend. Pray make my excuses and adieus
8848
to her.” This, Emma could not doubt, was all for herself. Harriet was
8849
remembered only from being _her_ friend. His information and prospects
8850
as to Enscombe were neither worse nor better than had been anticipated;
8851
Mrs. Churchill was recovering, and he dared not yet, even in his own
8852
imagination, fix a time for coming to Randalls again.
8853
8854
Gratifying, however, and stimulative as was the letter in the material
8855
part, its sentiments, she yet found, when it was folded up and returned
8856
to Mrs. Weston, that it had not added any lasting warmth, that she could
8857
still do without the writer, and that he must learn to do without her.
8858
Her intentions were unchanged. Her resolution of refusal only grew more
8859
interesting by the addition of a scheme for his subsequent consolation
8860
and happiness. His recollection of Harriet, and the words which
8861
clothed it, the “beautiful little friend,” suggested to her the
8862
idea of Harriet's succeeding her in his affections. Was it
8863
impossible?--No.--Harriet undoubtedly was greatly his inferior in
8864
understanding; but he had been very much struck with the loveliness
8865
of her face and the warm simplicity of her manner; and all the
8866
probabilities of circumstance and connexion were in her favour.--For
8867
Harriet, it would be advantageous and delightful indeed.
8868
8869
“I must not dwell upon it,” said she.--“I must not think of it. I know
8870
the danger of indulging such speculations. But stranger things have
8871
happened; and when we cease to care for each other as we do now, it
8872
will be the means of confirming us in that sort of true disinterested
8873
friendship which I can already look forward to with pleasure.”
8874
8875
It was well to have a comfort in store on Harriet's behalf, though it
8876
might be wise to let the fancy touch it seldom; for evil in that quarter
8877
was at hand. As Frank Churchill's arrival had succeeded Mr. Elton's
8878
engagement in the conversation of Highbury, as the latest interest
8879
had entirely borne down the first, so now upon Frank Churchill's
8880
disappearance, Mr. Elton's concerns were assuming the most irresistible
8881
form.--His wedding-day was named. He would soon be among them again; Mr.
8882
Elton and his bride. There was hardly time to talk over the first letter
8883
from Enscombe before “Mr. Elton and his bride” was in every body's
8884
mouth, and Frank Churchill was forgotten. Emma grew sick at the sound.
8885
She had had three weeks of happy exemption from Mr. Elton; and Harriet's
8886
mind, she had been willing to hope, had been lately gaining strength.
8887
With Mr. Weston's ball in view at least, there had been a great deal of
8888
insensibility to other things; but it was now too evident that she had
8889
not attained such a state of composure as could stand against the actual
8890
approach--new carriage, bell-ringing, and all.
8891
8892
Poor Harriet was in a flutter of spirits which required all the
8893
reasonings and soothings and attentions of every kind that Emma could
8894
give. Emma felt that she could not do too much for her, that Harriet had
8895
a right to all her ingenuity and all her patience; but it was heavy work
8896
to be for ever convincing without producing any effect, for ever agreed
8897
to, without being able to make their opinions the same. Harriet listened
8898
submissively, and said “it was very true--it was just as Miss Woodhouse
8899
described--it was not worth while to think about them--and she would not
8900
think about them any longer” but no change of subject could avail, and
8901
the next half-hour saw her as anxious and restless about the Eltons as
8902
before. At last Emma attacked her on another ground.
8903
8904
“Your allowing yourself to be so occupied and so unhappy about Mr.
8905
Elton's marrying, Harriet, is the strongest reproach you can make _me_.
8906
You could not give me a greater reproof for the mistake I fell into.
8907
It was all my doing, I know. I have not forgotten it, I assure
8908
you.--Deceived myself, I did very miserably deceive you--and it will
8909
be a painful reflection to me for ever. Do not imagine me in danger of
8910
forgetting it.”
8911
8912
Harriet felt this too much to utter more than a few words of eager
8913
exclamation. Emma continued,
8914
8915
“I have not said, exert yourself Harriet for my sake; think less, talk
8916
less of Mr. Elton for my sake; because for your own sake rather, I
8917
would wish it to be done, for the sake of what is more important than my
8918
comfort, a habit of self-command in you, a consideration of what is your
8919
duty, an attention to propriety, an endeavour to avoid the suspicions of
8920
others, to save your health and credit, and restore your tranquillity.
8921
These are the motives which I have been pressing on you. They are very
8922
important--and sorry I am that you cannot feel them sufficiently to act
8923
upon them. My being saved from pain is a very secondary consideration.
8924
I want you to save yourself from greater pain. Perhaps I may sometimes
8925
have felt that Harriet would not forget what was due--or rather what
8926
would be kind by me.”
8927
8928
This appeal to her affections did more than all the rest. The idea of
8929
wanting gratitude and consideration for Miss Woodhouse, whom she really
8930
loved extremely, made her wretched for a while, and when the violence
8931
of grief was comforted away, still remained powerful enough to prompt to
8932
what was right and support her in it very tolerably.
8933
8934
“You, who have been the best friend I ever had in my life--Want
8935
gratitude to you!--Nobody is equal to you!--I care for nobody as I do
8936
for you!--Oh! Miss Woodhouse, how ungrateful I have been!”
8937
8938
Such expressions, assisted as they were by every thing that look and
8939
manner could do, made Emma feel that she had never loved Harriet so
8940
well, nor valued her affection so highly before.
8941
8942
“There is no charm equal to tenderness of heart,” said she afterwards to
8943
herself. “There is nothing to be compared to it. Warmth and tenderness
8944
of heart, with an affectionate, open manner, will beat all the
8945
clearness of head in the world, for attraction, I am sure it will. It
8946
is tenderness of heart which makes my dear father so generally
8947
beloved--which gives Isabella all her popularity.--I have it not--but
8948
I know how to prize and respect it.--Harriet is my superior in all the
8949
charm and all the felicity it gives. Dear Harriet!--I would not change
8950
you for the clearest-headed, longest-sighted, best-judging female
8951
breathing. Oh! the coldness of a Jane Fairfax!--Harriet is worth a
8952
hundred such--And for a wife--a sensible man's wife--it is invaluable. I
8953
mention no names; but happy the man who changes Emma for Harriet!”
8954
8955
8956
8957
CHAPTER XIV
8958
8959
8960
Mrs. Elton was first seen at church: but though devotion might be
8961
interrupted, curiosity could not be satisfied by a bride in a pew, and
8962
it must be left for the visits in form which were then to be paid, to
8963
settle whether she were very pretty indeed, or only rather pretty, or
8964
not pretty at all.
8965
8966
Emma had feelings, less of curiosity than of pride or propriety, to make
8967
her resolve on not being the last to pay her respects; and she made a
8968
point of Harriet's going with her, that the worst of the business might
8969
be gone through as soon as possible.
8970
8971
She could not enter the house again, could not be in the same room to
8972
which she had with such vain artifice retreated three months ago, to
8973
lace up her boot, without _recollecting_. A thousand vexatious thoughts
8974
would recur. Compliments, charades, and horrible blunders; and it was
8975
not to be supposed that poor Harriet should not be recollecting too; but
8976
she behaved very well, and was only rather pale and silent. The visit
8977
was of course short; and there was so much embarrassment and occupation
8978
of mind to shorten it, that Emma would not allow herself entirely to
8979
form an opinion of the lady, and on no account to give one, beyond the
8980
nothing-meaning terms of being “elegantly dressed, and very pleasing.”
8981
8982
She did not really like her. She would not be in a hurry to find fault,
8983
but she suspected that there was no elegance;--ease, but not elegance.--
8984
She was almost sure that for a young woman, a stranger, a bride, there
8985
was too much ease. Her person was rather good; her face not unpretty;
8986
but neither feature, nor air, nor voice, nor manner, were elegant. Emma
8987
thought at least it would turn out so.
8988
8989
As for Mr. Elton, his manners did not appear--but no, she would not
8990
permit a hasty or a witty word from herself about his manners. It was an
8991
awkward ceremony at any time to be receiving wedding visits, and a man
8992
had need be all grace to acquit himself well through it. The woman
8993
was better off; she might have the assistance of fine clothes, and the
8994
privilege of bashfulness, but the man had only his own good sense to
8995
depend on; and when she considered how peculiarly unlucky poor Mr.
8996
Elton was in being in the same room at once with the woman he had just
8997
married, the woman he had wanted to marry, and the woman whom he had
8998
been expected to marry, she must allow him to have the right to look as
8999
little wise, and to be as much affectedly, and as little really easy as
9000
could be.
9001
9002
“Well, Miss Woodhouse,” said Harriet, when they had quitted the
9003
house, and after waiting in vain for her friend to begin; “Well, Miss
9004
Woodhouse, (with a gentle sigh,) what do you think of her?--Is not she
9005
very charming?”
9006
9007
There was a little hesitation in Emma's answer.
9008
9009
“Oh! yes--very--a very pleasing young woman.”
9010
9011
“I think her beautiful, quite beautiful.”
9012
9013
“Very nicely dressed, indeed; a remarkably elegant gown.”
9014
9015
“I am not at all surprized that he should have fallen in love.”
9016
9017
“Oh! no--there is nothing to surprize one at all.--A pretty fortune; and
9018
she came in his way.”
9019
9020
“I dare say,” returned Harriet, sighing again, “I dare say she was very
9021
much attached to him.”
9022
9023
“Perhaps she might; but it is not every man's fate to marry the woman
9024
who loves him best. Miss Hawkins perhaps wanted a home, and thought this
9025
the best offer she was likely to have.”
9026
9027
“Yes,” said Harriet earnestly, “and well she might, nobody could ever
9028
have a better. Well, I wish them happy with all my heart. And now, Miss
9029
Woodhouse, I do not think I shall mind seeing them again. He is just as
9030
superior as ever;--but being married, you know, it is quite a different
9031
thing. No, indeed, Miss Woodhouse, you need not be afraid; I can sit and
9032
admire him now without any great misery. To know that he has not thrown
9033
himself away, is such a comfort!--She does seem a charming young woman,
9034
just what he deserves. Happy creature! He called her 'Augusta.' How
9035
delightful!”
9036
9037
When the visit was returned, Emma made up her mind. She could then see
9038
more and judge better. From Harriet's happening not to be at Hartfield,
9039
and her father's being present to engage Mr. Elton, she had a quarter
9040
of an hour of the lady's conversation to herself, and could composedly
9041
attend to her; and the quarter of an hour quite convinced her that
9042
Mrs. Elton was a vain woman, extremely well satisfied with herself, and
9043
thinking much of her own importance; that she meant to shine and be very
9044
superior, but with manners which had been formed in a bad school, pert
9045
and familiar; that all her notions were drawn from one set of people,
9046
and one style of living; that if not foolish she was ignorant, and that
9047
her society would certainly do Mr. Elton no good.
9048
9049
Harriet would have been a better match. If not wise or refined herself,
9050
she would have connected him with those who were; but Miss Hawkins, it
9051
might be fairly supposed from her easy conceit, had been the best of
9052
her own set. The rich brother-in-law near Bristol was the pride of the
9053
alliance, and his place and his carriages were the pride of him.
9054
9055
The very first subject after being seated was Maple Grove, “My brother
9056
Mr. Suckling's seat;”--a comparison of Hartfield to Maple Grove. The
9057
grounds of Hartfield were small, but neat and pretty; and the house was
9058
modern and well-built. Mrs. Elton seemed most favourably impressed
9059
by the size of the room, the entrance, and all that she could see or
9060
imagine. “Very like Maple Grove indeed!--She was quite struck by the
9061
likeness!--That room was the very shape and size of the morning-room
9062
at Maple Grove; her sister's favourite room.”--Mr. Elton was appealed
9063
to.--“Was not it astonishingly like?--She could really almost fancy
9064
herself at Maple Grove.”
9065
9066
“And the staircase--You know, as I came in, I observed how very like the
9067
staircase was; placed exactly in the same part of the house. I really
9068
could not help exclaiming! I assure you, Miss Woodhouse, it is very
9069
delightful to me, to be reminded of a place I am so extremely partial to
9070
as Maple Grove. I have spent so many happy months there! (with a little
9071
sigh of sentiment). A charming place, undoubtedly. Every body who
9072
sees it is struck by its beauty; but to me, it has been quite a home.
9073
Whenever you are transplanted, like me, Miss Woodhouse, you will
9074
understand how very delightful it is to meet with any thing at all like
9075
what one has left behind. I always say this is quite one of the evils of
9076
matrimony.”
9077
9078
Emma made as slight a reply as she could; but it was fully sufficient
9079
for Mrs. Elton, who only wanted to be talking herself.
9080
9081
“So extremely like Maple Grove! And it is not merely the house--the
9082
grounds, I assure you, as far as I could observe, are strikingly like.
9083
The laurels at Maple Grove are in the same profusion as here, and stand
9084
very much in the same way--just across the lawn; and I had a glimpse
9085
of a fine large tree, with a bench round it, which put me so exactly in
9086
mind! My brother and sister will be enchanted with this place. People
9087
who have extensive grounds themselves are always pleased with any thing
9088
in the same style.”
9089
9090
Emma doubted the truth of this sentiment. She had a great idea that
9091
people who had extensive grounds themselves cared very little for the
9092
extensive grounds of any body else; but it was not worth while to attack
9093
an error so double-dyed, and therefore only said in reply,
9094
9095
“When you have seen more of this country, I am afraid you will think you
9096
have overrated Hartfield. Surry is full of beauties.”
9097
9098
“Oh! yes, I am quite aware of that. It is the garden of England, you
9099
know. Surry is the garden of England.”
9100
9101
“Yes; but we must not rest our claims on that distinction. Many
9102
counties, I believe, are called the garden of England, as well as
9103
Surry.”
9104
9105
“No, I fancy not,” replied Mrs. Elton, with a most satisfied smile.
9106
“I never heard any county but Surry called so.”
9107
9108
Emma was silenced.
9109
9110
“My brother and sister have promised us a visit in the spring, or summer
9111
at farthest,” continued Mrs. Elton; “and that will be our time for
9112
exploring. While they are with us, we shall explore a great deal, I dare
9113
say. They will have their barouche-landau, of course, which holds four
9114
perfectly; and therefore, without saying any thing of _our_ carriage,
9115
we should be able to explore the different beauties extremely well. They
9116
would hardly come in their chaise, I think, at that season of the
9117
year. Indeed, when the time draws on, I shall decidedly recommend their
9118
bringing the barouche-landau; it will be so very much preferable.
9119
When people come into a beautiful country of this sort, you know, Miss
9120
Woodhouse, one naturally wishes them to see as much as possible; and Mr.
9121
Suckling is extremely fond of exploring. We explored to King's-Weston
9122
twice last summer, in that way, most delightfully, just after their
9123
first having the barouche-landau. You have many parties of that kind
9124
here, I suppose, Miss Woodhouse, every summer?”
9125
9126
“No; not immediately here. We are rather out of distance of the very
9127
striking beauties which attract the sort of parties you speak of; and we
9128
are a very quiet set of people, I believe; more disposed to stay at home
9129
than engage in schemes of pleasure.”
9130
9131
“Ah! there is nothing like staying at home for real comfort. Nobody can
9132
be more devoted to home than I am. I was quite a proverb for it at Maple
9133
Grove. Many a time has Selina said, when she has been going to Bristol,
9134
'I really cannot get this girl to move from the house. I absolutely must
9135
go in by myself, though I hate being stuck up in the barouche-landau
9136
without a companion; but Augusta, I believe, with her own good-will,
9137
would never stir beyond the park paling.' Many a time has she said so;
9138
and yet I am no advocate for entire seclusion. I think, on the contrary,
9139
when people shut themselves up entirely from society, it is a very
9140
bad thing; and that it is much more advisable to mix in the world in
9141
a proper degree, without living in it either too much or too little. I
9142
perfectly understand your situation, however, Miss Woodhouse--(looking
9143
towards Mr. Woodhouse), Your father's state of health must be a great
9144
drawback. Why does not he try Bath?--Indeed he should. Let me recommend
9145
Bath to you. I assure you I have no doubt of its doing Mr. Woodhouse
9146
good.”
9147
9148
“My father tried it more than once, formerly; but without receiving any
9149
benefit; and Mr. Perry, whose name, I dare say, is not unknown to you,
9150
does not conceive it would be at all more likely to be useful now.”
9151
9152
“Ah! that's a great pity; for I assure you, Miss Woodhouse, where the
9153
waters do agree, it is quite wonderful the relief they give. In my Bath
9154
life, I have seen such instances of it! And it is so cheerful a place,
9155
that it could not fail of being of use to Mr. Woodhouse's spirits,
9156
which, I understand, are sometimes much depressed. And as to its
9157
recommendations to _you_, I fancy I need not take much pains to dwell
9158
on them. The advantages of Bath to the young are pretty generally
9159
understood. It would be a charming introduction for you, who have lived
9160
so secluded a life; and I could immediately secure you some of the best
9161
society in the place. A line from me would bring you a little host of
9162
acquaintance; and my particular friend, Mrs. Partridge, the lady I have
9163
always resided with when in Bath, would be most happy to shew you any
9164
attentions, and would be the very person for you to go into public
9165
with.”
9166
9167
It was as much as Emma could bear, without being impolite. The idea
9168
of her being indebted to Mrs. Elton for what was called an
9169
_introduction_--of her going into public under the auspices of a friend
9170
of Mrs. Elton's--probably some vulgar, dashing widow, who, with the
9171
help of a boarder, just made a shift to live!--The dignity of Miss
9172
Woodhouse, of Hartfield, was sunk indeed!
9173
9174
She restrained herself, however, from any of the reproofs she could have
9175
given, and only thanked Mrs. Elton coolly; “but their going to Bath was
9176
quite out of the question; and she was not perfectly convinced that
9177
the place might suit her better than her father.” And then, to prevent
9178
farther outrage and indignation, changed the subject directly.
9179
9180
“I do not ask whether you are musical, Mrs. Elton. Upon these occasions,
9181
a lady's character generally precedes her; and Highbury has long known
9182
that you are a superior performer.”
9183
9184
“Oh! no, indeed; I must protest against any such idea. A superior
9185
performer!--very far from it, I assure you. Consider from how partial
9186
a quarter your information came. I am doatingly fond of
9187
music--passionately fond;--and my friends say I am not entirely devoid
9188
of taste; but as to any thing else, upon my honour my performance is
9189
_mediocre_ to the last degree. You, Miss Woodhouse, I well know, play
9190
delightfully. I assure you it has been the greatest satisfaction,
9191
comfort, and delight to me, to hear what a musical society I am got
9192
into. I absolutely cannot do without music. It is a necessary of life to
9193
me; and having always been used to a very musical society, both at
9194
Maple Grove and in Bath, it would have been a most serious sacrifice. I
9195
honestly said as much to Mr. E. when he was speaking of my future
9196
home, and expressing his fears lest the retirement of it should be
9197
disagreeable; and the inferiority of the house too--knowing what I had
9198
been accustomed to--of course he was not wholly without apprehension.
9199
When he was speaking of it in that way, I honestly said that _the_
9200
_world_ I could give up--parties, balls, plays--for I had no fear of
9201
retirement. Blessed with so many resources within myself, the world was
9202
not necessary to _me_. I could do very well without it. To those who had
9203
no resources it was a different thing; but my resources made me quite
9204
independent. And as to smaller-sized rooms than I had been used to, I
9205
really could not give it a thought. I hoped I was perfectly equal to any
9206
sacrifice of that description. Certainly I had been accustomed to every
9207
luxury at Maple Grove; but I did assure him that two carriages were not
9208
necessary to my happiness, nor were spacious apartments. 'But,' said I,
9209
'to be quite honest, I do not think I can live without something of a
9210
musical society. I condition for nothing else; but without music, life
9211
would be a blank to me.'”
9212
9213
“We cannot suppose,” said Emma, smiling, “that Mr. Elton would hesitate
9214
to assure you of there being a _very_ musical society in Highbury; and
9215
I hope you will not find he has outstepped the truth more than may be
9216
pardoned, in consideration of the motive.”
9217
9218
“No, indeed, I have no doubts at all on that head. I am delighted to
9219
find myself in such a circle. I hope we shall have many sweet little
9220
concerts together. I think, Miss Woodhouse, you and I must establish a
9221
musical club, and have regular weekly meetings at your house, or ours.
9222
Will not it be a good plan? If _we_ exert ourselves, I think we shall
9223
not be long in want of allies. Something of that nature would be
9224
particularly desirable for _me_, as an inducement to keep me in
9225
practice; for married women, you know--there is a sad story against
9226
them, in general. They are but too apt to give up music.”
9227
9228
“But you, who are so extremely fond of it--there can be no danger,
9229
surely?”
9230
9231
“I should hope not; but really when I look around among my acquaintance,
9232
I tremble. Selina has entirely given up music--never touches the
9233
instrument--though she played sweetly. And the same may be said of Mrs.
9234
Jeffereys--Clara Partridge, that was--and of the two Milmans, now Mrs.
9235
Bird and Mrs. James Cooper; and of more than I can enumerate. Upon my
9236
word it is enough to put one in a fright. I used to be quite angry with
9237
Selina; but really I begin now to comprehend that a married woman has
9238
many things to call her attention. I believe I was half an hour this
9239
morning shut up with my housekeeper.”
9240
9241
“But every thing of that kind,” said Emma, “will soon be in so regular a
9242
train--”
9243
9244
“Well,” said Mrs. Elton, laughing, “we shall see.”
9245
9246
Emma, finding her so determined upon neglecting her music, had nothing
9247
more to say; and, after a moment's pause, Mrs. Elton chose another
9248
subject.
9249
9250
“We have been calling at Randalls,” said she, “and found them both at
9251
home; and very pleasant people they seem to be. I like them extremely.
9252
Mr. Weston seems an excellent creature--quite a first-rate favourite
9253
with me already, I assure you. And _she_ appears so truly good--there is
9254
something so motherly and kind-hearted about her, that it wins upon one
9255
directly. She was your governess, I think?”
9256
9257
Emma was almost too much astonished to answer; but Mrs. Elton hardly
9258
waited for the affirmative before she went on.
9259
9260
“Having understood as much, I was rather astonished to find her so very
9261
lady-like! But she is really quite the gentlewoman.”
9262
9263
“Mrs. Weston's manners,” said Emma, “were always particularly good.
9264
Their propriety, simplicity, and elegance, would make them the safest
9265
model for any young woman.”
9266
9267
“And who do you think came in while we were there?”
9268
9269
Emma was quite at a loss. The tone implied some old acquaintance--and
9270
how could she possibly guess?
9271
9272
“Knightley!” continued Mrs. Elton; “Knightley himself!--Was not it
9273
lucky?--for, not being within when he called the other day, I had never
9274
seen him before; and of course, as so particular a friend of Mr. E.'s,
9275
I had a great curiosity. 'My friend Knightley' had been so often
9276
mentioned, that I was really impatient to see him; and I must do my
9277
caro sposo the justice to say that he need not be ashamed of his friend.
9278
Knightley is quite the gentleman. I like him very much. Decidedly, I
9279
think, a very gentleman-like man.”
9280
9281
Happily, it was now time to be gone. They were off; and Emma could
9282
breathe.
9283
9284
“Insufferable woman!” was her immediate exclamation. “Worse than I had
9285
supposed. Absolutely insufferable! Knightley!--I could not have
9286
believed it. Knightley!--never seen him in her life before, and call
9287
him Knightley!--and discover that he is a gentleman! A little upstart,
9288
vulgar being, with her Mr. E., and her _caro_ _sposo_, and her
9289
resources, and all her airs of pert pretension and underbred finery.
9290
Actually to discover that Mr. Knightley is a gentleman! I doubt whether
9291
he will return the compliment, and discover her to be a lady. I could
9292
not have believed it! And to propose that she and I should unite to
9293
form a musical club! One would fancy we were bosom friends! And Mrs.
9294
Weston!--Astonished that the person who had brought me up should be a
9295
gentlewoman! Worse and worse. I never met with her equal. Much beyond
9296
my hopes. Harriet is disgraced by any comparison. Oh! what would Frank
9297
Churchill say to her, if he were here? How angry and how diverted he
9298
would be! Ah! there I am--thinking of him directly. Always the first
9299
person to be thought of! How I catch myself out! Frank Churchill comes
9300
as regularly into my mind!”--
9301
9302
All this ran so glibly through her thoughts, that by the time her father
9303
had arranged himself, after the bustle of the Eltons' departure, and was
9304
ready to speak, she was very tolerably capable of attending.
9305
9306
“Well, my dear,” he deliberately began, “considering we never saw her
9307
before, she seems a very pretty sort of young lady; and I dare say she
9308
was very much pleased with you. She speaks a little too quick. A little
9309
quickness of voice there is which rather hurts the ear. But I believe
9310
I am nice; I do not like strange voices; and nobody speaks like you and
9311
poor Miss Taylor. However, she seems a very obliging, pretty-behaved
9312
young lady, and no doubt will make him a very good wife. Though I think
9313
he had better not have married. I made the best excuses I could for not
9314
having been able to wait on him and Mrs. Elton on this happy occasion; I
9315
said that I hoped I _should_ in the course of the summer. But I ought to
9316
have gone before. Not to wait upon a bride is very remiss. Ah! it shews
9317
what a sad invalid I am! But I do not like the corner into Vicarage
9318
Lane.”
9319
9320
“I dare say your apologies were accepted, sir. Mr. Elton knows you.”
9321
9322
“Yes: but a young lady--a bride--I ought to have paid my respects to her
9323
if possible. It was being very deficient.”
9324
9325
“But, my dear papa, you are no friend to matrimony; and therefore why
9326
should you be so anxious to pay your respects to a _bride_? It ought to
9327
be no recommendation to _you_. It is encouraging people to marry if you
9328
make so much of them.”
9329
9330
“No, my dear, I never encouraged any body to marry, but I would always
9331
wish to pay every proper attention to a lady--and a bride, especially,
9332
is never to be neglected. More is avowedly due to _her_. A bride, you
9333
know, my dear, is always the first in company, let the others be who
9334
they may.”
9335
9336
“Well, papa, if this is not encouragement to marry, I do not know what
9337
is. And I should never have expected you to be lending your sanction to
9338
such vanity-baits for poor young ladies.”
9339
9340
“My dear, you do not understand me. This is a matter of mere
9341
common politeness and good-breeding, and has nothing to do with any
9342
encouragement to people to marry.”
9343
9344
Emma had done. Her father was growing nervous, and could not understand
9345
_her_. Her mind returned to Mrs. Elton's offences, and long, very long,
9346
did they occupy her.
9347
9348
9349
9350
CHAPTER XV
9351
9352
9353
Emma was not required, by any subsequent discovery, to retract her ill
9354
opinion of Mrs. Elton. Her observation had been pretty correct. Such as
9355
Mrs. Elton appeared to her on this second interview, such she appeared
9356
whenever they met again,--self-important, presuming, familiar, ignorant,
9357
and ill-bred. She had a little beauty and a little accomplishment,
9358
but so little judgment that she thought herself coming with superior
9359
knowledge of the world, to enliven and improve a country neighbourhood;
9360
and conceived Miss Hawkins to have held such a place in society as Mrs.
9361
Elton's consequence only could surpass.
9362
9363
There was no reason to suppose Mr. Elton thought at all differently from
9364
his wife. He seemed not merely happy with her, but proud. He had the air
9365
of congratulating himself on having brought such a woman to Highbury,
9366
as not even Miss Woodhouse could equal; and the greater part of her
9367
new acquaintance, disposed to commend, or not in the habit of judging,
9368
following the lead of Miss Bates's good-will, or taking it for granted
9369
that the bride must be as clever and as agreeable as she professed
9370
herself, were very well satisfied; so that Mrs. Elton's praise
9371
passed from one mouth to another as it ought to do, unimpeded by Miss
9372
Woodhouse, who readily continued her first contribution and talked with
9373
a good grace of her being “very pleasant and very elegantly dressed.”
9374
9375
In one respect Mrs. Elton grew even worse than she had appeared at
9376
first. Her feelings altered towards Emma.--Offended, probably, by the
9377
little encouragement which her proposals of intimacy met with, she drew
9378
back in her turn and gradually became much more cold and distant; and
9379
though the effect was agreeable, the ill-will which produced it was
9380
necessarily increasing Emma's dislike. Her manners, too--and Mr.
9381
Elton's, were unpleasant towards Harriet. They were sneering and
9382
negligent. Emma hoped it must rapidly work Harriet's cure; but the
9383
sensations which could prompt such behaviour sunk them both very
9384
much.--It was not to be doubted that poor Harriet's attachment had been
9385
an offering to conjugal unreserve, and her own share in the story, under
9386
a colouring the least favourable to her and the most soothing to him,
9387
had in all likelihood been given also. She was, of course, the object
9388
of their joint dislike.--When they had nothing else to say, it must be
9389
always easy to begin abusing Miss Woodhouse; and the enmity which
9390
they dared not shew in open disrespect to her, found a broader vent in
9391
contemptuous treatment of Harriet.
9392
9393
Mrs. Elton took a great fancy to Jane Fairfax; and from the first. Not
9394
merely when a state of warfare with one young lady might be supposed to
9395
recommend the other, but from the very first; and she was not satisfied
9396
with expressing a natural and reasonable admiration--but without
9397
solicitation, or plea, or privilege, she must be wanting to assist and
9398
befriend her.--Before Emma had forfeited her confidence, and about the
9399
third time of their meeting, she heard all Mrs. Elton's knight-errantry
9400
on the subject.--
9401
9402
“Jane Fairfax is absolutely charming, Miss Woodhouse.--I quite rave
9403
about Jane Fairfax.--A sweet, interesting creature. So mild and
9404
ladylike--and with such talents!--I assure you I think she has very
9405
extraordinary talents. I do not scruple to say that she plays extremely
9406
well. I know enough of music to speak decidedly on that point. Oh! she
9407
is absolutely charming! You will laugh at my warmth--but, upon my word,
9408
I talk of nothing but Jane Fairfax.--And her situation is so calculated
9409
to affect one!--Miss Woodhouse, we must exert ourselves and endeavour
9410
to do something for her. We must bring her forward. Such talent as hers
9411
must not be suffered to remain unknown.--I dare say you have heard those
9412
charming lines of the poet,
9413
9414
'Full many a flower is born to blush unseen,
9415
'And waste its fragrance on the desert air.'
9416
9417
We must not allow them to be verified in sweet Jane Fairfax.”
9418
9419
“I cannot think there is any danger of it,” was Emma's calm answer--“and
9420
when you are better acquainted with Miss Fairfax's situation and
9421
understand what her home has been, with Colonel and Mrs. Campbell, I
9422
have no idea that you will suppose her talents can be unknown.”
9423
9424
“Oh! but dear Miss Woodhouse, she is now in such retirement, such
9425
obscurity, so thrown away.--Whatever advantages she may have enjoyed
9426
with the Campbells are so palpably at an end! And I think she feels it.
9427
I am sure she does. She is very timid and silent. One can see that she
9428
feels the want of encouragement. I like her the better for it. I
9429
must confess it is a recommendation to me. I am a great advocate for
9430
timidity--and I am sure one does not often meet with it.--But in those
9431
who are at all inferior, it is extremely prepossessing. Oh! I assure
9432
you, Jane Fairfax is a very delightful character, and interests me more
9433
than I can express.”
9434
9435
“You appear to feel a great deal--but I am not aware how you or any of
9436
Miss Fairfax's acquaintance here, any of those who have known her longer
9437
than yourself, can shew her any other attention than”--
9438
9439
“My dear Miss Woodhouse, a vast deal may be done by those who dare to
9440
act. You and I need not be afraid. If _we_ set the example, many will
9441
follow it as far as they can; though all have not our situations. _We_
9442
have carriages to fetch and convey her home, and _we_ live in a style
9443
which could not make the addition of Jane Fairfax, at any time, the
9444
least inconvenient.--I should be extremely displeased if Wright were to
9445
send us up such a dinner, as could make me regret having asked _more_
9446
than Jane Fairfax to partake of it. I have no idea of that sort of
9447
thing. It is not likely that I _should_, considering what I have been
9448
used to. My greatest danger, perhaps, in housekeeping, may be quite the
9449
other way, in doing too much, and being too careless of expense. Maple
9450
Grove will probably be my model more than it ought to be--for we do not
9451
at all affect to equal my brother, Mr. Suckling, in income.--However, my
9452
resolution is taken as to noticing Jane Fairfax.--I shall certainly have
9453
her very often at my house, shall introduce her wherever I can, shall
9454
have musical parties to draw out her talents, and shall be constantly
9455
on the watch for an eligible situation. My acquaintance is so very
9456
extensive, that I have little doubt of hearing of something to suit
9457
her shortly.--I shall introduce her, of course, very particularly to my
9458
brother and sister when they come to us. I am sure they will like her
9459
extremely; and when she gets a little acquainted with them, her fears
9460
will completely wear off, for there really is nothing in the manners
9461
of either but what is highly conciliating.--I shall have her very often
9462
indeed while they are with me, and I dare say we shall sometimes find a
9463
seat for her in the barouche-landau in some of our exploring parties.”
9464
9465
“Poor Jane Fairfax!”--thought Emma.--“You have not deserved this. You
9466
may have done wrong with regard to Mr. Dixon, but this is a punishment
9467
beyond what you can have merited!--The kindness and protection of Mrs.
9468
Elton!--'Jane Fairfax and Jane Fairfax.' Heavens! Let me not suppose
9469
that she dares go about, Emma Woodhouse-ing me!--But upon my honour,
9470
there seems no limits to the licentiousness of that woman's tongue!”
9471
9472
Emma had not to listen to such paradings again--to any so exclusively
9473
addressed to herself--so disgustingly decorated with a “dear Miss
9474
Woodhouse.” The change on Mrs. Elton's side soon afterwards appeared,
9475
and she was left in peace--neither forced to be the very particular
9476
friend of Mrs. Elton, nor, under Mrs. Elton's guidance, the very active
9477
patroness of Jane Fairfax, and only sharing with others in a general
9478
way, in knowing what was felt, what was meditated, what was done.
9479
9480
She looked on with some amusement.--Miss Bates's gratitude for
9481
Mrs. Elton's attentions to Jane was in the first style of guileless
9482
simplicity and warmth. She was quite one of her worthies--the
9483
most amiable, affable, delightful woman--just as accomplished and
9484
condescending as Mrs. Elton meant to be considered. Emma's only surprize
9485
was that Jane Fairfax should accept those attentions and tolerate Mrs.
9486
Elton as she seemed to do. She heard of her walking with the Eltons,
9487
sitting with the Eltons, spending a day with the Eltons! This was
9488
astonishing!--She could not have believed it possible that the taste or
9489
the pride of Miss Fairfax could endure such society and friendship as
9490
the Vicarage had to offer.
9491
9492
“She is a riddle, quite a riddle!” said she.--“To chuse to remain here
9493
month after month, under privations of every sort! And now to chuse the
9494
mortification of Mrs. Elton's notice and the penury of her conversation,
9495
rather than return to the superior companions who have always loved her
9496
with such real, generous affection.”
9497
9498
Jane had come to Highbury professedly for three months; the Campbells
9499
were gone to Ireland for three months; but now the Campbells had
9500
promised their daughter to stay at least till Midsummer, and fresh
9501
invitations had arrived for her to join them there. According to Miss
9502
Bates--it all came from her--Mrs. Dixon had written most pressingly.
9503
Would Jane but go, means were to be found, servants sent, friends
9504
contrived--no travelling difficulty allowed to exist; but still she had
9505
declined it!
9506
9507
“She must have some motive, more powerful than appears, for refusing
9508
this invitation,” was Emma's conclusion. “She must be under some sort
9509
of penance, inflicted either by the Campbells or herself. There is great
9510
fear, great caution, great resolution somewhere.--She is _not_ to be
9511
with the _Dixons_. The decree is issued by somebody. But why must she
9512
consent to be with the Eltons?--Here is quite a separate puzzle.”
9513
9514
Upon her speaking her wonder aloud on that part of the subject, before
9515
the few who knew her opinion of Mrs. Elton, Mrs. Weston ventured this
9516
apology for Jane.
9517
9518
“We cannot suppose that she has any great enjoyment at the Vicarage,
9519
my dear Emma--but it is better than being always at home. Her aunt is a
9520
good creature, but, as a constant companion, must be very tiresome. We
9521
must consider what Miss Fairfax quits, before we condemn her taste for
9522
what she goes to.”
9523
9524
“You are right, Mrs. Weston,” said Mr. Knightley warmly, “Miss Fairfax
9525
is as capable as any of us of forming a just opinion of Mrs. Elton.
9526
Could she have chosen with whom to associate, she would not have chosen
9527
her. But (with a reproachful smile at Emma) she receives attentions from
9528
Mrs. Elton, which nobody else pays her.”
9529
9530
Emma felt that Mrs. Weston was giving her a momentary glance; and she
9531
was herself struck by his warmth. With a faint blush, she presently
9532
replied,
9533
9534
“Such attentions as Mrs. Elton's, I should have imagined, would rather
9535
disgust than gratify Miss Fairfax. Mrs. Elton's invitations I should
9536
have imagined any thing but inviting.”
9537
9538
“I should not wonder,” said Mrs. Weston, “if Miss Fairfax were to have
9539
been drawn on beyond her own inclination, by her aunt's eagerness in
9540
accepting Mrs. Elton's civilities for her. Poor Miss Bates may
9541
very likely have committed her niece and hurried her into a greater
9542
appearance of intimacy than her own good sense would have dictated, in
9543
spite of the very natural wish of a little change.”
9544
9545
Both felt rather anxious to hear him speak again; and after a few
9546
minutes silence, he said,
9547
9548
“Another thing must be taken into consideration too--Mrs. Elton does
9549
not talk _to_ Miss Fairfax as she speaks _of_ her. We all know the
9550
difference between the pronouns he or she and thou, the plainest spoken
9551
amongst us; we all feel the influence of a something beyond common
9552
civility in our personal intercourse with each other--a something more
9553
early implanted. We cannot give any body the disagreeable hints that we
9554
may have been very full of the hour before. We feel things differently.
9555
And besides the operation of this, as a general principle, you may be
9556
sure that Miss Fairfax awes Mrs. Elton by her superiority both of mind
9557
and manner; and that, face to face, Mrs. Elton treats her with all the
9558
respect which she has a claim to. Such a woman as Jane Fairfax probably
9559
never fell in Mrs. Elton's way before--and no degree of vanity can
9560
prevent her acknowledging her own comparative littleness in action, if
9561
not in consciousness.”
9562
9563
“I know how highly you think of Jane Fairfax,” said Emma. Little Henry
9564
was in her thoughts, and a mixture of alarm and delicacy made her
9565
irresolute what else to say.
9566
9567
“Yes,” he replied, “any body may know how highly I think of her.”
9568
9569
“And yet,” said Emma, beginning hastily and with an arch look, but soon
9570
stopping--it was better, however, to know the worst at once--she hurried
9571
on--“And yet, perhaps, you may hardly be aware yourself how highly it
9572
is. The extent of your admiration may take you by surprize some day or
9573
other.”
9574
9575
Mr. Knightley was hard at work upon the lower buttons of his thick
9576
leather gaiters, and either the exertion of getting them together, or
9577
some other cause, brought the colour into his face, as he answered,
9578
9579
“Oh! are you there?--But you are miserably behindhand. Mr. Cole gave me
9580
a hint of it six weeks ago.”
9581
9582
He stopped.--Emma felt her foot pressed by Mrs. Weston, and did not
9583
herself know what to think. In a moment he went on--
9584
9585
“That will never be, however, I can assure you. Miss Fairfax, I dare
9586
say, would not have me if I were to ask her--and I am very sure I shall
9587
never ask her.”
9588
9589
Emma returned her friend's pressure with interest; and was pleased
9590
enough to exclaim,
9591
9592
“You are not vain, Mr. Knightley. I will say that for you.”
9593
9594
He seemed hardly to hear her; he was thoughtful--and in a manner which
9595
shewed him not pleased, soon afterwards said,
9596
9597
“So you have been settling that I should marry Jane Fairfax?”
9598
9599
“No indeed I have not. You have scolded me too much for match-making,
9600
for me to presume to take such a liberty with you. What I said just now,
9601
meant nothing. One says those sort of things, of course, without any
9602
idea of a serious meaning. Oh! no, upon my word I have not the smallest
9603
wish for your marrying Jane Fairfax or Jane any body. You would not come
9604
in and sit with us in this comfortable way, if you were married.”
9605
9606
Mr. Knightley was thoughtful again. The result of his reverie was, “No,
9607
Emma, I do not think the extent of my admiration for her will ever take
9608
me by surprize.--I never had a thought of her in that way, I assure
9609
you.” And soon afterwards, “Jane Fairfax is a very charming young
9610
woman--but not even Jane Fairfax is perfect. She has a fault. She has
9611
not the open temper which a man would wish for in a wife.”
9612
9613
Emma could not but rejoice to hear that she had a fault. “Well,” said
9614
she, “and you soon silenced Mr. Cole, I suppose?”
9615
9616
“Yes, very soon. He gave me a quiet hint; I told him he was mistaken;
9617
he asked my pardon and said no more. Cole does not want to be wiser or
9618
wittier than his neighbours.”
9619
9620
“In that respect how unlike dear Mrs. Elton, who wants to be wiser and
9621
wittier than all the world! I wonder how she speaks of the Coles--what
9622
she calls them! How can she find any appellation for them, deep enough
9623
in familiar vulgarity? She calls you, Knightley--what can she do for
9624
Mr. Cole? And so I am not to be surprized that Jane Fairfax accepts
9625
her civilities and consents to be with her. Mrs. Weston, your argument
9626
weighs most with me. I can much more readily enter into the temptation
9627
of getting away from Miss Bates, than I can believe in the triumph of
9628
Miss Fairfax's mind over Mrs. Elton. I have no faith in Mrs. Elton's
9629
acknowledging herself the inferior in thought, word, or deed; or in her
9630
being under any restraint beyond her own scanty rule of good-breeding.
9631
I cannot imagine that she will not be continually insulting her visitor
9632
with praise, encouragement, and offers of service; that she will not be
9633
continually detailing her magnificent intentions, from the procuring her
9634
a permanent situation to the including her in those delightful exploring
9635
parties which are to take place in the barouche-landau.”
9636
9637
“Jane Fairfax has feeling,” said Mr. Knightley--“I do not accuse her
9638
of want of feeling. Her sensibilities, I suspect, are strong--and her
9639
temper excellent in its power of forbearance, patience, self-control;
9640
but it wants openness. She is reserved, more reserved, I think, than
9641
she used to be--And I love an open temper. No--till Cole alluded to my
9642
supposed attachment, it had never entered my head. I saw Jane Fairfax
9643
and conversed with her, with admiration and pleasure always--but with no
9644
thought beyond.”
9645
9646
“Well, Mrs. Weston,” said Emma triumphantly when he left them, “what do
9647
you say now to Mr. Knightley's marrying Jane Fairfax?”
9648
9649
“Why, really, dear Emma, I say that he is so very much occupied by the
9650
idea of _not_ being in love with her, that I should not wonder if it
9651
were to end in his being so at last. Do not beat me.”
9652
9653
9654
9655
CHAPTER XVI
9656
9657
9658
Every body in and about Highbury who had ever visited Mr. Elton, was
9659
disposed to pay him attention on his marriage. Dinner-parties and
9660
evening-parties were made for him and his lady; and invitations flowed
9661
in so fast that she had soon the pleasure of apprehending they were
9662
never to have a disengaged day.
9663
9664
“I see how it is,” said she. “I see what a life I am to lead among you.
9665
Upon my word we shall be absolutely dissipated. We really seem quite
9666
the fashion. If this is living in the country, it is nothing very
9667
formidable. From Monday next to Saturday, I assure you we have not a
9668
disengaged day!--A woman with fewer resources than I have, need not have
9669
been at a loss.”
9670
9671
No invitation came amiss to her. Her Bath habits made evening-parties
9672
perfectly natural to her, and Maple Grove had given her a taste for
9673
dinners. She was a little shocked at the want of two drawing rooms, at
9674
the poor attempt at rout-cakes, and there being no ice in the Highbury
9675
card-parties. Mrs. Bates, Mrs. Perry, Mrs. Goddard and others, were a
9676
good deal behind-hand in knowledge of the world, but she would soon shew
9677
them how every thing ought to be arranged. In the course of the spring
9678
she must return their civilities by one very superior party--in which
9679
her card-tables should be set out with their separate candles and
9680
unbroken packs in the true style--and more waiters engaged for the
9681
evening than their own establishment could furnish, to carry round the
9682
refreshments at exactly the proper hour, and in the proper order.
9683
9684
Emma, in the meanwhile, could not be satisfied without a dinner at
9685
Hartfield for the Eltons. They must not do less than others, or she
9686
should be exposed to odious suspicions, and imagined capable of pitiful
9687
resentment. A dinner there must be. After Emma had talked about it for
9688
ten minutes, Mr. Woodhouse felt no unwillingness, and only made the
9689
usual stipulation of not sitting at the bottom of the table himself,
9690
with the usual regular difficulty of deciding who should do it for him.
9691
9692
The persons to be invited, required little thought. Besides the
9693
Eltons, it must be the Westons and Mr. Knightley; so far it was all of
9694
course--and it was hardly less inevitable that poor little Harriet must
9695
be asked to make the eighth:--but this invitation was not given with
9696
equal satisfaction, and on many accounts Emma was particularly pleased
9697
by Harriet's begging to be allowed to decline it. “She would rather not
9698
be in his company more than she could help. She was not yet quite
9699
able to see him and his charming happy wife together, without feeling
9700
uncomfortable. If Miss Woodhouse would not be displeased, she would
9701
rather stay at home.” It was precisely what Emma would have wished, had
9702
she deemed it possible enough for wishing. She was delighted with the
9703
fortitude of her little friend--for fortitude she knew it was in her to
9704
give up being in company and stay at home; and she could now invite the
9705
very person whom she really wanted to make the eighth, Jane Fairfax.--
9706
Since her last conversation with Mrs. Weston and Mr. Knightley, she
9707
was more conscience-stricken about Jane Fairfax than she had often
9708
been.--Mr. Knightley's words dwelt with her. He had said that Jane
9709
Fairfax received attentions from Mrs. Elton which nobody else paid her.
9710
9711
“This is very true,” said she, “at least as far as relates to me, which
9712
was all that was meant--and it is very shameful.--Of the same age--and
9713
always knowing her--I ought to have been more her friend.--She will
9714
never like me now. I have neglected her too long. But I will shew her
9715
greater attention than I have done.”
9716
9717
Every invitation was successful. They were all disengaged and all
9718
happy.--The preparatory interest of this dinner, however, was not yet
9719
over. A circumstance rather unlucky occurred. The two eldest little
9720
Knightleys were engaged to pay their grandpapa and aunt a visit of some
9721
weeks in the spring, and their papa now proposed bringing them, and
9722
staying one whole day at Hartfield--which one day would be the very day
9723
of this party.--His professional engagements did not allow of his being
9724
put off, but both father and daughter were disturbed by its happening
9725
so. Mr. Woodhouse considered eight persons at dinner together as the
9726
utmost that his nerves could bear--and here would be a ninth--and Emma
9727
apprehended that it would be a ninth very much out of humour at not
9728
being able to come even to Hartfield for forty-eight hours without
9729
falling in with a dinner-party.
9730
9731
She comforted her father better than she could comfort herself, by
9732
representing that though he certainly would make them nine, yet
9733
he always said so little, that the increase of noise would be very
9734
immaterial. She thought it in reality a sad exchange for herself, to
9735
have him with his grave looks and reluctant conversation opposed to her
9736
instead of his brother.
9737
9738
The event was more favourable to Mr. Woodhouse than to Emma. John
9739
Knightley came; but Mr. Weston was unexpectedly summoned to town and
9740
must be absent on the very day. He might be able to join them in the
9741
evening, but certainly not to dinner. Mr. Woodhouse was quite at ease;
9742
and the seeing him so, with the arrival of the little boys and the
9743
philosophic composure of her brother on hearing his fate, removed the
9744
chief of even Emma's vexation.
9745
9746
The day came, the party were punctually assembled, and Mr. John
9747
Knightley seemed early to devote himself to the business of being
9748
agreeable. Instead of drawing his brother off to a window while they
9749
waited for dinner, he was talking to Miss Fairfax. Mrs. Elton,
9750
as elegant as lace and pearls could make her, he looked at in
9751
silence--wanting only to observe enough for Isabella's information--but
9752
Miss Fairfax was an old acquaintance and a quiet girl, and he could talk
9753
to her. He had met her before breakfast as he was returning from a walk
9754
with his little boys, when it had been just beginning to rain. It was
9755
natural to have some civil hopes on the subject, and he said,
9756
9757
“I hope you did not venture far, Miss Fairfax, this morning, or I am
9758
sure you must have been wet.--We scarcely got home in time. I hope you
9759
turned directly.”
9760
9761
“I went only to the post-office,” said she, “and reached home before the
9762
rain was much. It is my daily errand. I always fetch the letters when
9763
I am here. It saves trouble, and is a something to get me out. A walk
9764
before breakfast does me good.”
9765
9766
“Not a walk in the rain, I should imagine.”
9767
9768
“No, but it did not absolutely rain when I set out.”
9769
9770
Mr. John Knightley smiled, and replied,
9771
9772
“That is to say, you chose to have your walk, for you were not six yards
9773
from your own door when I had the pleasure of meeting you; and Henry
9774
and John had seen more drops than they could count long before. The
9775
post-office has a great charm at one period of our lives. When you have
9776
lived to my age, you will begin to think letters are never worth going
9777
through the rain for.”
9778
9779
There was a little blush, and then this answer,
9780
9781
“I must not hope to be ever situated as you are, in the midst of every
9782
dearest connexion, and therefore I cannot expect that simply growing
9783
older should make me indifferent about letters.”
9784
9785
“Indifferent! Oh! no--I never conceived you could become indifferent.
9786
Letters are no matter of indifference; they are generally a very
9787
positive curse.”
9788
9789
“You are speaking of letters of business; mine are letters of
9790
friendship.”
9791
9792
“I have often thought them the worst of the two,” replied he coolly.
9793
“Business, you know, may bring money, but friendship hardly ever does.”
9794
9795
“Ah! you are not serious now. I know Mr. John Knightley too well--I am
9796
very sure he understands the value of friendship as well as any body. I
9797
can easily believe that letters are very little to you, much less than
9798
to me, but it is not your being ten years older than myself which
9799
makes the difference, it is not age, but situation. You have every
9800
body dearest to you always at hand, I, probably, never shall again;
9801
and therefore till I have outlived all my affections, a post-office,
9802
I think, must always have power to draw me out, in worse weather than
9803
to-day.”
9804
9805
“When I talked of your being altered by time, by the progress of years,”
9806
said John Knightley, “I meant to imply the change of situation which
9807
time usually brings. I consider one as including the other. Time will
9808
generally lessen the interest of every attachment not within the daily
9809
circle--but that is not the change I had in view for you. As an old
9810
friend, you will allow me to hope, Miss Fairfax, that ten years hence
9811
you may have as many concentrated objects as I have.”
9812
9813
It was kindly said, and very far from giving offence. A pleasant “thank
9814
you” seemed meant to laugh it off, but a blush, a quivering lip, a tear
9815
in the eye, shewed that it was felt beyond a laugh. Her attention was
9816
now claimed by Mr. Woodhouse, who being, according to his custom on such
9817
occasions, making the circle of his guests, and paying his particular
9818
compliments to the ladies, was ending with her--and with all his mildest
9819
urbanity, said,
9820
9821
“I am very sorry to hear, Miss Fairfax, of your being out this morning
9822
in the rain. Young ladies should take care of themselves.--Young ladies
9823
are delicate plants. They should take care of their health and their
9824
complexion. My dear, did you change your stockings?”
9825
9826
“Yes, sir, I did indeed; and I am very much obliged by your kind
9827
solicitude about me.”
9828
9829
“My dear Miss Fairfax, young ladies are very sure to be cared for.--I
9830
hope your good grand-mama and aunt are well. They are some of my very
9831
old friends. I wish my health allowed me to be a better neighbour. You
9832
do us a great deal of honour to-day, I am sure. My daughter and I
9833
are both highly sensible of your goodness, and have the greatest
9834
satisfaction in seeing you at Hartfield.”
9835
9836
The kind-hearted, polite old man might then sit down and feel that he
9837
had done his duty, and made every fair lady welcome and easy.
9838
9839
By this time, the walk in the rain had reached Mrs. Elton, and her
9840
remonstrances now opened upon Jane.
9841
9842
“My dear Jane, what is this I hear?--Going to the post-office in the
9843
rain!--This must not be, I assure you.--You sad girl, how could you do
9844
such a thing?--It is a sign I was not there to take care of you.”
9845
9846
Jane very patiently assured her that she had not caught any cold.
9847
9848
“Oh! do not tell _me_. You really are a very sad girl, and do not know
9849
how to take care of yourself.--To the post-office indeed! Mrs. Weston,
9850
did you ever hear the like? You and I must positively exert our
9851
authority.”
9852
9853
“My advice,” said Mrs. Weston kindly and persuasively, “I certainly do
9854
feel tempted to give. Miss Fairfax, you must not run such risks.--Liable
9855
as you have been to severe colds, indeed you ought to be particularly
9856
careful, especially at this time of year. The spring I always think
9857
requires more than common care. Better wait an hour or two, or even
9858
half a day for your letters, than run the risk of bringing on your cough
9859
again. Now do not you feel that you had? Yes, I am sure you are much too
9860
reasonable. You look as if you would not do such a thing again.”
9861
9862
“Oh! she _shall_ _not_ do such a thing again,” eagerly rejoined Mrs.
9863
Elton. “We will not allow her to do such a thing again:”--and nodding
9864
significantly--“there must be some arrangement made, there must indeed.
9865
I shall speak to Mr. E. The man who fetches our letters every morning
9866
(one of our men, I forget his name) shall inquire for yours too and
9867
bring them to you. That will obviate all difficulties you know; and from
9868
_us_ I really think, my dear Jane, you can have no scruple to accept
9869
such an accommodation.”
9870
9871
“You are extremely kind,” said Jane; “but I cannot give up my early
9872
walk. I am advised to be out of doors as much as I can, I must walk
9873
somewhere, and the post-office is an object; and upon my word, I have
9874
scarcely ever had a bad morning before.”
9875
9876
“My dear Jane, say no more about it. The thing is determined, that is
9877
(laughing affectedly) as far as I can presume to determine any thing
9878
without the concurrence of my lord and master. You know, Mrs. Weston,
9879
you and I must be cautious how we express ourselves. But I do flatter
9880
myself, my dear Jane, that my influence is not entirely worn out. If I
9881
meet with no insuperable difficulties therefore, consider that point as
9882
settled.”
9883
9884
“Excuse me,” said Jane earnestly, “I cannot by any means consent to such
9885
an arrangement, so needlessly troublesome to your servant. If the errand
9886
were not a pleasure to me, it could be done, as it always is when I am
9887
not here, by my grandmama's.”
9888
9889
“Oh! my dear; but so much as Patty has to do!--And it is a kindness to
9890
employ our men.”
9891
9892
Jane looked as if she did not mean to be conquered; but instead of
9893
answering, she began speaking again to Mr. John Knightley.
9894
9895
“The post-office is a wonderful establishment!” said she.--“The
9896
regularity and despatch of it! If one thinks of all that it has to do,
9897
and all that it does so well, it is really astonishing!”
9898
9899
“It is certainly very well regulated.”
9900
9901
“So seldom that any negligence or blunder appears! So seldom that
9902
a letter, among the thousands that are constantly passing about the
9903
kingdom, is even carried wrong--and not one in a million, I suppose,
9904
actually lost! And when one considers the variety of hands, and of bad
9905
hands too, that are to be deciphered, it increases the wonder.”
9906
9907
“The clerks grow expert from habit.--They must begin with some quickness
9908
of sight and hand, and exercise improves them. If you want any farther
9909
explanation,” continued he, smiling, “they are paid for it. That is
9910
the key to a great deal of capacity. The public pays and must be served
9911
well.”
9912
9913
The varieties of handwriting were farther talked of, and the usual
9914
observations made.
9915
9916
“I have heard it asserted,” said John Knightley, “that the same sort
9917
of handwriting often prevails in a family; and where the same master
9918
teaches, it is natural enough. But for that reason, I should imagine
9919
the likeness must be chiefly confined to the females, for boys have very
9920
little teaching after an early age, and scramble into any hand they can
9921
get. Isabella and Emma, I think, do write very much alike. I have not
9922
always known their writing apart.”
9923
9924
“Yes,” said his brother hesitatingly, “there is a likeness. I know what
9925
you mean--but Emma's hand is the strongest.”
9926
9927
“Isabella and Emma both write beautifully,” said Mr. Woodhouse; “and
9928
always did. And so does poor Mrs. Weston”--with half a sigh and half a
9929
smile at her.
9930
9931
“I never saw any gentleman's handwriting”--Emma began, looking also at
9932
Mrs. Weston; but stopped, on perceiving that Mrs. Weston was attending
9933
to some one else--and the pause gave her time to reflect, “Now, how am
9934
I going to introduce him?--Am I unequal to speaking his name at once
9935
before all these people? Is it necessary for me to use any roundabout
9936
phrase?--Your Yorkshire friend--your correspondent in Yorkshire;--that
9937
would be the way, I suppose, if I were very bad.--No, I can pronounce
9938
his name without the smallest distress. I certainly get better and
9939
better.--Now for it.”
9940
9941
Mrs. Weston was disengaged and Emma began again--“Mr. Frank Churchill
9942
writes one of the best gentleman's hands I ever saw.”
9943
9944
“I do not admire it,” said Mr. Knightley. “It is too small--wants
9945
strength. It is like a woman's writing.”
9946
9947
This was not submitted to by either lady. They vindicated him against
9948
the base aspersion. “No, it by no means wanted strength--it was not a
9949
large hand, but very clear and certainly strong. Had not Mrs. Weston any
9950
letter about her to produce?” No, she had heard from him very lately,
9951
but having answered the letter, had put it away.
9952
9953
“If we were in the other room,” said Emma, “if I had my writing-desk, I
9954
am sure I could produce a specimen. I have a note of his.--Do not you
9955
remember, Mrs. Weston, employing him to write for you one day?”
9956
9957
“He chose to say he was employed”--
9958
9959
“Well, well, I have that note; and can shew it after dinner to convince
9960
Mr. Knightley.”
9961
9962
“Oh! when a gallant young man, like Mr. Frank Churchill,” said Mr.
9963
Knightley dryly, “writes to a fair lady like Miss Woodhouse, he will, of
9964
course, put forth his best.”
9965
9966
Dinner was on table.--Mrs. Elton, before she could be spoken to, was
9967
ready; and before Mr. Woodhouse had reached her with his request to be
9968
allowed to hand her into the dining-parlour, was saying--
9969
9970
“Must I go first? I really am ashamed of always leading the way.”
9971
9972
Jane's solicitude about fetching her own letters had not escaped Emma.
9973
She had heard and seen it all; and felt some curiosity to know whether
9974
the wet walk of this morning had produced any. She suspected that it
9975
_had_; that it would not have been so resolutely encountered but in full
9976
expectation of hearing from some one very dear, and that it had not been
9977
in vain. She thought there was an air of greater happiness than usual--a
9978
glow both of complexion and spirits.
9979
9980
She could have made an inquiry or two, as to the expedition and the
9981
expense of the Irish mails;--it was at her tongue's end--but she
9982
abstained. She was quite determined not to utter a word that should hurt
9983
Jane Fairfax's feelings; and they followed the other ladies out of the
9984
room, arm in arm, with an appearance of good-will highly becoming to the
9985
beauty and grace of each.
9986
9987
9988
9989
CHAPTER XVII
9990
9991
9992
When the ladies returned to the drawing-room after dinner, Emma found it
9993
hardly possible to prevent their making two distinct parties;--with so
9994
much perseverance in judging and behaving ill did Mrs. Elton engross
9995
Jane Fairfax and slight herself. She and Mrs. Weston were obliged to
9996
be almost always either talking together or silent together. Mrs. Elton
9997
left them no choice. If Jane repressed her for a little time, she
9998
soon began again; and though much that passed between them was in a
9999
half-whisper, especially on Mrs. Elton's side, there was no avoiding
10000
a knowledge of their principal subjects: The post-office--catching
10001
cold--fetching letters--and friendship, were long under discussion;
10002
and to them succeeded one, which must be at least equally unpleasant
10003
to Jane--inquiries whether she had yet heard of any situation likely to
10004
suit her, and professions of Mrs. Elton's meditated activity.
10005
10006
“Here is April come!” said she, “I get quite anxious about you. June
10007
will soon be here.”
10008
10009
“But I have never fixed on June or any other month--merely looked
10010
forward to the summer in general.”
10011
10012
“But have you really heard of nothing?”
10013
10014
“I have not even made any inquiry; I do not wish to make any yet.”
10015
10016
“Oh! my dear, we cannot begin too early; you are not aware of the
10017
difficulty of procuring exactly the desirable thing.”
10018
10019
“I not aware!” said Jane, shaking her head; “dear Mrs. Elton, who can
10020
have thought of it as I have done?”
10021
10022
“But you have not seen so much of the world as I have. You do not know
10023
how many candidates there always are for the _first_ situations. I saw
10024
a vast deal of that in the neighbourhood round Maple Grove. A cousin of
10025
Mr. Suckling, Mrs. Bragge, had such an infinity of applications; every
10026
body was anxious to be in her family, for she moves in the first circle.
10027
Wax-candles in the schoolroom! You may imagine how desirable! Of all
10028
houses in the kingdom Mrs. Bragge's is the one I would most wish to see
10029
you in.”
10030
10031
“Colonel and Mrs. Campbell are to be in town again by midsummer,”
10032
said Jane. “I must spend some time with them; I am sure they will want
10033
it;--afterwards I may probably be glad to dispose of myself. But I would
10034
not wish you to take the trouble of making any inquiries at present.”
10035
10036
“Trouble! aye, I know your scruples. You are afraid of giving me
10037
trouble; but I assure you, my dear Jane, the Campbells can hardly be
10038
more interested about you than I am. I shall write to Mrs. Partridge in
10039
a day or two, and shall give her a strict charge to be on the look-out
10040
for any thing eligible.”
10041
10042
“Thank you, but I would rather you did not mention the subject to
10043
her; till the time draws nearer, I do not wish to be giving any body
10044
trouble.”
10045
10046
“But, my dear child, the time is drawing near; here is April, and June,
10047
or say even July, is very near, with such business to accomplish before
10048
us. Your inexperience really amuses me! A situation such as you deserve,
10049
and your friends would require for you, is no everyday occurrence,
10050
is not obtained at a moment's notice; indeed, indeed, we must begin
10051
inquiring directly.”
10052
10053
“Excuse me, ma'am, but this is by no means my intention; I make no
10054
inquiry myself, and should be sorry to have any made by my friends. When
10055
I am quite determined as to the time, I am not at all afraid of being
10056
long unemployed. There are places in town, offices, where inquiry
10057
would soon produce something--Offices for the sale--not quite of human
10058
flesh--but of human intellect.”
10059
10060
“Oh! my dear, human flesh! You quite shock me; if you mean a fling at
10061
the slave-trade, I assure you Mr. Suckling was always rather a friend to
10062
the abolition.”
10063
10064
“I did not mean, I was not thinking of the slave-trade,” replied Jane;
10065
“governess-trade, I assure you, was all that I had in view; widely
10066
different certainly as to the guilt of those who carry it on; but as to
10067
the greater misery of the victims, I do not know where it lies. But
10068
I only mean to say that there are advertising offices, and that by
10069
applying to them I should have no doubt of very soon meeting with
10070
something that would do.”
10071
10072
“Something that would do!” repeated Mrs. Elton. “Aye, _that_ may suit
10073
your humble ideas of yourself;--I know what a modest creature you are;
10074
but it will not satisfy your friends to have you taking up with any
10075
thing that may offer, any inferior, commonplace situation, in a family
10076
not moving in a certain circle, or able to command the elegancies of
10077
life.”
10078
10079
“You are very obliging; but as to all that, I am very indifferent;
10080
it would be no object to me to be with the rich; my mortifications, I
10081
think, would only be the greater; I should suffer more from comparison.
10082
A gentleman's family is all that I should condition for.”
10083
10084
“I know you, I know you; you would take up with any thing; but I shall
10085
be a little more nice, and I am sure the good Campbells will be quite
10086
on my side; with your superior talents, you have a right to move in the
10087
first circle. Your musical knowledge alone would entitle you to name
10088
your own terms, have as many rooms as you like, and mix in the family
10089
as much as you chose;--that is--I do not know--if you knew the harp, you
10090
might do all that, I am very sure; but you sing as well as play;--yes, I
10091
really believe you might, even without the harp, stipulate for what
10092
you chose;--and you must and shall be delightfully, honourably and
10093
comfortably settled before the Campbells or I have any rest.”
10094
10095
“You may well class the delight, the honour, and the comfort of such
10096
a situation together,” said Jane, “they are pretty sure to be equal;
10097
however, I am very serious in not wishing any thing to be attempted
10098
at present for me. I am exceedingly obliged to you, Mrs. Elton, I am
10099
obliged to any body who feels for me, but I am quite serious in wishing
10100
nothing to be done till the summer. For two or three months longer I
10101
shall remain where I am, and as I am.”
10102
10103
“And I am quite serious too, I assure you,” replied Mrs. Elton gaily,
10104
“in resolving to be always on the watch, and employing my friends to
10105
watch also, that nothing really unexceptionable may pass us.”
10106
10107
In this style she ran on; never thoroughly stopped by any thing till Mr.
10108
Woodhouse came into the room; her vanity had then a change of object,
10109
and Emma heard her saying in the same half-whisper to Jane,
10110
10111
“Here comes this dear old beau of mine, I protest!--Only think of his
10112
gallantry in coming away before the other men!--what a dear creature
10113
he is;--I assure you I like him excessively. I admire all that quaint,
10114
old-fashioned politeness; it is much more to my taste than modern ease;
10115
modern ease often disgusts me. But this good old Mr. Woodhouse, I wish
10116
you had heard his gallant speeches to me at dinner. Oh! I assure you I
10117
began to think my caro sposo would be absolutely jealous. I fancy I
10118
am rather a favourite; he took notice of my gown. How do you like
10119
it?--Selina's choice--handsome, I think, but I do not know whether it
10120
is not over-trimmed; I have the greatest dislike to the idea of being
10121
over-trimmed--quite a horror of finery. I must put on a few ornaments
10122
now, because it is expected of me. A bride, you know, must appear like
10123
a bride, but my natural taste is all for simplicity; a simple style
10124
of dress is so infinitely preferable to finery. But I am quite in the
10125
minority, I believe; few people seem to value simplicity of dress,--show
10126
and finery are every thing. I have some notion of putting such a
10127
trimming as this to my white and silver poplin. Do you think it will
10128
look well?”
10129
10130
The whole party were but just reassembled in the drawing-room when Mr.
10131
Weston made his appearance among them. He had returned to a late dinner,
10132
and walked to Hartfield as soon as it was over. He had been too much
10133
expected by the best judges, for surprize--but there was great joy. Mr.
10134
Woodhouse was almost as glad to see him now, as he would have been sorry
10135
to see him before. John Knightley only was in mute astonishment.--That
10136
a man who might have spent his evening quietly at home after a day
10137
of business in London, should set off again, and walk half a mile
10138
to another man's house, for the sake of being in mixed company till
10139
bed-time, of finishing his day in the efforts of civility and the noise
10140
of numbers, was a circumstance to strike him deeply. A man who had been
10141
in motion since eight o'clock in the morning, and might now have been
10142
still, who had been long talking, and might have been silent, who had
10143
been in more than one crowd, and might have been alone!--Such a man, to
10144
quit the tranquillity and independence of his own fireside, and on the
10145
evening of a cold sleety April day rush out again into the world!--Could
10146
he by a touch of his finger have instantly taken back his wife, there
10147
would have been a motive; but his coming would probably prolong rather
10148
than break up the party. John Knightley looked at him with amazement,
10149
then shrugged his shoulders, and said, “I could not have believed it
10150
even of _him_.”
10151
10152
Mr. Weston meanwhile, perfectly unsuspicious of the indignation he was
10153
exciting, happy and cheerful as usual, and with all the right of being
10154
principal talker, which a day spent anywhere from home confers, was
10155
making himself agreeable among the rest; and having satisfied the
10156
inquiries of his wife as to his dinner, convincing her that none of all
10157
her careful directions to the servants had been forgotten, and spread
10158
abroad what public news he had heard, was proceeding to a family
10159
communication, which, though principally addressed to Mrs. Weston, he
10160
had not the smallest doubt of being highly interesting to every body in
10161
the room. He gave her a letter, it was from Frank, and to herself; he
10162
had met with it in his way, and had taken the liberty of opening it.
10163
10164
“Read it, read it,” said he, “it will give you pleasure; only a few
10165
lines--will not take you long; read it to Emma.”
10166
10167
The two ladies looked over it together; and he sat smiling and talking
10168
to them the whole time, in a voice a little subdued, but very audible to
10169
every body.
10170
10171
“Well, he is coming, you see; good news, I think. Well, what do you say
10172
to it?--I always told you he would be here again soon, did not I?--Anne,
10173
my dear, did not I always tell you so, and you would not believe me?--In
10174
town next week, you see--at the latest, I dare say; for _she_ is as
10175
impatient as the black gentleman when any thing is to be done; most
10176
likely they will be there to-morrow or Saturday. As to her illness, all
10177
nothing of course. But it is an excellent thing to have Frank among us
10178
again, so near as town. They will stay a good while when they do come,
10179
and he will be half his time with us. This is precisely what I wanted.
10180
Well, pretty good news, is not it? Have you finished it? Has Emma read
10181
it all? Put it up, put it up; we will have a good talk about it some
10182
other time, but it will not do now. I shall only just mention the
10183
circumstance to the others in a common way.”
10184
10185
Mrs. Weston was most comfortably pleased on the occasion. Her looks
10186
and words had nothing to restrain them. She was happy, she knew she was
10187
happy, and knew she ought to be happy. Her congratulations were warm and
10188
open; but Emma could not speak so fluently. _She_ was a little occupied
10189
in weighing her own feelings, and trying to understand the degree of her
10190
agitation, which she rather thought was considerable.
10191
10192
Mr. Weston, however, too eager to be very observant, too communicative
10193
to want others to talk, was very well satisfied with what she did say,
10194
and soon moved away to make the rest of his friends happy by a partial
10195
communication of what the whole room must have overheard already.
10196
10197
It was well that he took every body's joy for granted, or he might
10198
not have thought either Mr. Woodhouse or Mr. Knightley particularly
10199
delighted. They were the first entitled, after Mrs. Weston and Emma, to
10200
be made happy;--from them he would have proceeded to Miss Fairfax, but
10201
she was so deep in conversation with John Knightley, that it would have
10202
been too positive an interruption; and finding himself close to Mrs.
10203
Elton, and her attention disengaged, he necessarily began on the subject
10204
with her.
10205
10206
10207
10208
CHAPTER XVIII
10209
10210
10211
“I hope I shall soon have the pleasure of introducing my son to you,”
10212
said Mr. Weston.
10213
10214
Mrs. Elton, very willing to suppose a particular compliment intended her
10215
by such a hope, smiled most graciously.
10216
10217
“You have heard of a certain Frank Churchill, I presume,” he
10218
continued--“and know him to be my son, though he does not bear my name.”
10219
10220
“Oh! yes, and I shall be very happy in his acquaintance. I am sure Mr.
10221
Elton will lose no time in calling on him; and we shall both have great
10222
pleasure in seeing him at the Vicarage.”
10223
10224
“You are very obliging.--Frank will be extremely happy, I am sure.--
10225
He is to be in town next week, if not sooner. We have notice of it in a
10226
letter to-day. I met the letters in my way this morning, and seeing my
10227
son's hand, presumed to open it--though it was not directed to me--it
10228
was to Mrs. Weston. She is his principal correspondent, I assure you. I
10229
hardly ever get a letter.”
10230
10231
“And so you absolutely opened what was directed to her! Oh! Mr.
10232
Weston--(laughing affectedly) I must protest against that.--A most
10233
dangerous precedent indeed!--I beg you will not let your neighbours
10234
follow your example.--Upon my word, if this is what I am to expect, we
10235
married women must begin to exert ourselves!--Oh! Mr. Weston, I could
10236
not have believed it of you!”
10237
10238
“Aye, we men are sad fellows. You must take care of yourself, Mrs.
10239
Elton.--This letter tells us--it is a short letter--written in a hurry,
10240
merely to give us notice--it tells us that they are all coming up to
10241
town directly, on Mrs. Churchill's account--she has not been well the
10242
whole winter, and thinks Enscombe too cold for her--so they are all to
10243
move southward without loss of time.”
10244
10245
“Indeed!--from Yorkshire, I think. Enscombe is in Yorkshire?”
10246
10247
“Yes, they are about one hundred and ninety miles from London, a
10248
considerable journey.”
10249
10250
“Yes, upon my word, very considerable. Sixty-five miles farther than
10251
from Maple Grove to London. But what is distance, Mr. Weston, to people
10252
of large fortune?--You would be amazed to hear how my brother, Mr.
10253
Suckling, sometimes flies about. You will hardly believe me--but twice
10254
in one week he and Mr. Bragge went to London and back again with four
10255
horses.”
10256
10257
“The evil of the distance from Enscombe,” said Mr. Weston, “is, that
10258
Mrs. Churchill, _as_ _we_ _understand_, has not been able to leave the
10259
sofa for a week together. In Frank's last letter she complained, he
10260
said, of being too weak to get into her conservatory without having
10261
both his arm and his uncle's! This, you know, speaks a great degree of
10262
weakness--but now she is so impatient to be in town, that she means to
10263
sleep only two nights on the road.--So Frank writes word. Certainly,
10264
delicate ladies have very extraordinary constitutions, Mrs. Elton. You
10265
must grant me that.”
10266
10267
“No, indeed, I shall grant you nothing. I always take the part of my
10268
own sex. I do indeed. I give you notice--You will find me a formidable
10269
antagonist on that point. I always stand up for women--and I assure you,
10270
if you knew how Selina feels with respect to sleeping at an inn, you
10271
would not wonder at Mrs. Churchill's making incredible exertions to
10272
avoid it. Selina says it is quite horror to her--and I believe I have
10273
caught a little of her nicety. She always travels with her own sheets;
10274
an excellent precaution. Does Mrs. Churchill do the same?”
10275
10276
“Depend upon it, Mrs. Churchill does every thing that any other fine
10277
lady ever did. Mrs. Churchill will not be second to any lady in the land
10278
for”--
10279
10280
Mrs. Elton eagerly interposed with,
10281
10282
“Oh! Mr. Weston, do not mistake me. Selina is no fine lady, I assure
10283
you. Do not run away with such an idea.”
10284
10285
“Is not she? Then she is no rule for Mrs. Churchill, who is as thorough
10286
a fine lady as any body ever beheld.”
10287
10288
Mrs. Elton began to think she had been wrong in disclaiming so warmly.
10289
It was by no means her object to have it believed that her sister was
10290
_not_ a fine lady; perhaps there was want of spirit in the pretence of
10291
it;--and she was considering in what way she had best retract, when Mr.
10292
Weston went on.
10293
10294
“Mrs. Churchill is not much in my good graces, as you may suspect--but
10295
this is quite between ourselves. She is very fond of Frank, and
10296
therefore I would not speak ill of her. Besides, she is out of health
10297
now; but _that_ indeed, by her own account, she has always been. I would
10298
not say so to every body, Mrs. Elton, but I have not much faith in Mrs.
10299
Churchill's illness.”
10300
10301
“If she is really ill, why not go to Bath, Mr. Weston?--To Bath, or to
10302
Clifton?” “She has taken it into her head that Enscombe is too cold for
10303
her. The fact is, I suppose, that she is tired of Enscombe. She has now
10304
been a longer time stationary there, than she ever was before, and she
10305
begins to want change. It is a retired place. A fine place, but very
10306
retired.”
10307
10308
“Aye--like Maple Grove, I dare say. Nothing can stand more retired from
10309
the road than Maple Grove. Such an immense plantation all round it! You
10310
seem shut out from every thing--in the most complete retirement.--And
10311
Mrs. Churchill probably has not health or spirits like Selina to enjoy
10312
that sort of seclusion. Or, perhaps she may not have resources enough in
10313
herself to be qualified for a country life. I always say a woman cannot
10314
have too many resources--and I feel very thankful that I have so many
10315
myself as to be quite independent of society.”
10316
10317
“Frank was here in February for a fortnight.”
10318
10319
“So I remember to have heard. He will find an _addition_ to the society
10320
of Highbury when he comes again; that is, if I may presume to call
10321
myself an addition. But perhaps he may never have heard of there being
10322
such a creature in the world.”
10323
10324
This was too loud a call for a compliment to be passed by, and Mr.
10325
Weston, with a very good grace, immediately exclaimed,
10326
10327
“My dear madam! Nobody but yourself could imagine such a thing possible.
10328
Not heard of you!--I believe Mrs. Weston's letters lately have been full
10329
of very little else than Mrs. Elton.”
10330
10331
He had done his duty and could return to his son.
10332
10333
“When Frank left us,” continued he, “it was quite uncertain when we
10334
might see him again, which makes this day's news doubly welcome. It has
10335
been completely unexpected. That is, _I_ always had a strong persuasion
10336
he would be here again soon, I was sure something favourable would turn
10337
up--but nobody believed me. He and Mrs. Weston were both dreadfully
10338
desponding. 'How could he contrive to come? And how could it be supposed
10339
that his uncle and aunt would spare him again?' and so forth--I always
10340
felt that something would happen in our favour; and so it has, you see.
10341
I have observed, Mrs. Elton, in the course of my life, that if things
10342
are going untowardly one month, they are sure to mend the next.”
10343
10344
“Very true, Mr. Weston, perfectly true. It is just what I used to say to
10345
a certain gentleman in company in the days of courtship, when, because
10346
things did not go quite right, did not proceed with all the rapidity
10347
which suited his feelings, he was apt to be in despair, and exclaim that
10348
he was sure at this rate it would be _May_ before Hymen's saffron robe
10349
would be put on for us. Oh! the pains I have been at to dispel those
10350
gloomy ideas and give him cheerfuller views! The carriage--we had
10351
disappointments about the carriage;--one morning, I remember, he came to
10352
me quite in despair.”
10353
10354
She was stopped by a slight fit of coughing, and Mr. Weston instantly
10355
seized the opportunity of going on.
10356
10357
“You were mentioning May. May is the very month which Mrs. Churchill
10358
is ordered, or has ordered herself, to spend in some warmer place than
10359
Enscombe--in short, to spend in London; so that we have the agreeable
10360
prospect of frequent visits from Frank the whole spring--precisely the
10361
season of the year which one should have chosen for it: days almost at
10362
the longest; weather genial and pleasant, always inviting one out, and
10363
never too hot for exercise. When he was here before, we made the best
10364
of it; but there was a good deal of wet, damp, cheerless weather;
10365
there always is in February, you know, and we could not do half that we
10366
intended. Now will be the time. This will be complete enjoyment; and I
10367
do not know, Mrs. Elton, whether the uncertainty of our meetings, the
10368
sort of constant expectation there will be of his coming in to-day or
10369
to-morrow, and at any hour, may not be more friendly to happiness than
10370
having him actually in the house. I think it is so. I think it is the
10371
state of mind which gives most spirit and delight. I hope you will be
10372
pleased with my son; but you must not expect a prodigy. He is generally
10373
thought a fine young man, but do not expect a prodigy. Mrs. Weston's
10374
partiality for him is very great, and, as you may suppose, most
10375
gratifying to me. She thinks nobody equal to him.”
10376
10377
“And I assure you, Mr. Weston, I have very little doubt that my opinion
10378
will be decidedly in his favour. I have heard so much in praise of Mr.
10379
Frank Churchill.--At the same time it is fair to observe, that I am one
10380
of those who always judge for themselves, and are by no means implicitly
10381
guided by others. I give you notice that as I find your son, so I shall
10382
judge of him.--I am no flatterer.”
10383
10384
Mr. Weston was musing.
10385
10386
“I hope,” said he presently, “I have not been severe upon poor Mrs.
10387
Churchill. If she is ill I should be sorry to do her injustice; but
10388
there are some traits in her character which make it difficult for me to
10389
speak of her with the forbearance I could wish. You cannot be ignorant,
10390
Mrs. Elton, of my connexion with the family, nor of the treatment I have
10391
met with; and, between ourselves, the whole blame of it is to be laid
10392
to her. She was the instigator. Frank's mother would never have been
10393
slighted as she was but for her. Mr. Churchill has pride; but his pride
10394
is nothing to his wife's: his is a quiet, indolent, gentlemanlike sort
10395
of pride that would harm nobody, and only make himself a little helpless
10396
and tiresome; but her pride is arrogance and insolence! And what
10397
inclines one less to bear, she has no fair pretence of family or blood.
10398
She was nobody when he married her, barely the daughter of a gentleman;
10399
but ever since her being turned into a Churchill she has out-Churchill'd
10400
them all in high and mighty claims: but in herself, I assure you, she is
10401
an upstart.”
10402
10403
“Only think! well, that must be infinitely provoking! I have quite
10404
a horror of upstarts. Maple Grove has given me a thorough disgust to
10405
people of that sort; for there is a family in that neighbourhood who
10406
are such an annoyance to my brother and sister from the airs they give
10407
themselves! Your description of Mrs. Churchill made me think of them
10408
directly. People of the name of Tupman, very lately settled there, and
10409
encumbered with many low connexions, but giving themselves immense airs,
10410
and expecting to be on a footing with the old established families.
10411
A year and a half is the very utmost that they can have lived at West
10412
Hall; and how they got their fortune nobody knows. They came from
10413
Birmingham, which is not a place to promise much, you know, Mr. Weston.
10414
One has not great hopes from Birmingham. I always say there is something
10415
direful in the sound: but nothing more is positively known of the
10416
Tupmans, though a good many things I assure you are suspected; and
10417
yet by their manners they evidently think themselves equal even to
10418
my brother, Mr. Suckling, who happens to be one of their nearest
10419
neighbours. It is infinitely too bad. Mr. Suckling, who has been eleven
10420
years a resident at Maple Grove, and whose father had it before him--I
10421
believe, at least--I am almost sure that old Mr. Suckling had completed
10422
the purchase before his death.”
10423
10424
They were interrupted. Tea was carrying round, and Mr. Weston, having
10425
said all that he wanted, soon took the opportunity of walking away.
10426
10427
After tea, Mr. and Mrs. Weston, and Mr. Elton sat down with Mr.
10428
Woodhouse to cards. The remaining five were left to their own powers,
10429
and Emma doubted their getting on very well; for Mr. Knightley seemed
10430
little disposed for conversation; Mrs. Elton was wanting notice, which
10431
nobody had inclination to pay, and she was herself in a worry of spirits
10432
which would have made her prefer being silent.
10433
10434
Mr. John Knightley proved more talkative than his brother. He was to
10435
leave them early the next day; and he soon began with--
10436
10437
“Well, Emma, I do not believe I have any thing more to say about the
10438
boys; but you have your sister's letter, and every thing is down at full
10439
length there we may be sure. My charge would be much more concise than
10440
her's, and probably not much in the same spirit; all that I have to
10441
recommend being comprised in, do not spoil them, and do not physic
10442
them.”
10443
10444
“I rather hope to satisfy you both,” said Emma, “for I shall do all
10445
in my power to make them happy, which will be enough for Isabella; and
10446
happiness must preclude false indulgence and physic.”
10447
10448
“And if you find them troublesome, you must send them home again.”
10449
10450
“That is very likely. You think so, do not you?”
10451
10452
“I hope I am aware that they may be too noisy for your father--or even
10453
may be some encumbrance to you, if your visiting engagements continue to
10454
increase as much as they have done lately.”
10455
10456
“Increase!”
10457
10458
“Certainly; you must be sensible that the last half-year has made a
10459
great difference in your way of life.”
10460
10461
“Difference! No indeed I am not.”
10462
10463
“There can be no doubt of your being much more engaged with company than
10464
you used to be. Witness this very time. Here am I come down for only
10465
one day, and you are engaged with a dinner-party!--When did it happen
10466
before, or any thing like it? Your neighbourhood is increasing, and you
10467
mix more with it. A little while ago, every letter to Isabella brought
10468
an account of fresh gaieties; dinners at Mr. Cole's, or balls at the
10469
Crown. The difference which Randalls, Randalls alone makes in your
10470
goings-on, is very great.”
10471
10472
“Yes,” said his brother quickly, “it is Randalls that does it all.”
10473
10474
“Very well--and as Randalls, I suppose, is not likely to have less
10475
influence than heretofore, it strikes me as a possible thing, Emma, that
10476
Henry and John may be sometimes in the way. And if they are, I only beg
10477
you to send them home.”
10478
10479
“No,” cried Mr. Knightley, “that need not be the consequence. Let them
10480
be sent to Donwell. I shall certainly be at leisure.”
10481
10482
“Upon my word,” exclaimed Emma, “you amuse me! I should like to know how
10483
many of all my numerous engagements take place without your being of
10484
the party; and why I am to be supposed in danger of wanting leisure to
10485
attend to the little boys. These amazing engagements of mine--what have
10486
they been? Dining once with the Coles--and having a ball talked of,
10487
which never took place. I can understand you--(nodding at Mr. John
10488
Knightley)--your good fortune in meeting with so many of your friends at
10489
once here, delights you too much to pass unnoticed. But you, (turning to
10490
Mr. Knightley,) who know how very, very seldom I am ever two hours from
10491
Hartfield, why you should foresee such a series of dissipation for me, I
10492
cannot imagine. And as to my dear little boys, I must say, that if Aunt
10493
Emma has not time for them, I do not think they would fare much better
10494
with Uncle Knightley, who is absent from home about five hours where she
10495
is absent one--and who, when he is at home, is either reading to himself
10496
or settling his accounts.”
10497
10498
Mr. Knightley seemed to be trying not to smile; and succeeded without
10499
difficulty, upon Mrs. Elton's beginning to talk to him.
10500
10501
10502
10503
10504
VOLUME III
10505
10506
10507
10508
CHAPTER I
10509
10510
10511
A very little quiet reflection was enough to satisfy Emma as to the
10512
nature of her agitation on hearing this news of Frank Churchill. She
10513
was soon convinced that it was not for herself she was feeling at all
10514
apprehensive or embarrassed; it was for him. Her own attachment had
10515
really subsided into a mere nothing; it was not worth thinking of;--but
10516
if he, who had undoubtedly been always so much the most in love of the
10517
two, were to be returning with the same warmth of sentiment which he had
10518
taken away, it would be very distressing. If a separation of two
10519
months should not have cooled him, there were dangers and evils before
10520
her:--caution for him and for herself would be necessary. She did
10521
not mean to have her own affections entangled again, and it would be
10522
incumbent on her to avoid any encouragement of his.
10523
10524
She wished she might be able to keep him from an absolute declaration.
10525
That would be so very painful a conclusion of their present
10526
acquaintance! and yet, she could not help rather anticipating something
10527
decisive. She felt as if the spring would not pass without bringing a
10528
crisis, an event, a something to alter her present composed and tranquil
10529
state.
10530
10531
It was not very long, though rather longer than Mr. Weston had foreseen,
10532
before she had the power of forming some opinion of Frank Churchill's
10533
feelings. The Enscombe family were not in town quite so soon as had been
10534
imagined, but he was at Highbury very soon afterwards. He rode down
10535
for a couple of hours; he could not yet do more; but as he came from
10536
Randalls immediately to Hartfield, she could then exercise all her quick
10537
observation, and speedily determine how he was influenced, and how she
10538
must act. They met with the utmost friendliness. There could be no doubt
10539
of his great pleasure in seeing her. But she had an almost instant doubt
10540
of his caring for her as he had done, of his feeling the same tenderness
10541
in the same degree. She watched him well. It was a clear thing he was
10542
less in love than he had been. Absence, with the conviction probably
10543
of her indifference, had produced this very natural and very desirable
10544
effect.
10545
10546
He was in high spirits; as ready to talk and laugh as ever, and seemed
10547
delighted to speak of his former visit, and recur to old stories: and he
10548
was not without agitation. It was not in his calmness that she read
10549
his comparative difference. He was not calm; his spirits were evidently
10550
fluttered; there was restlessness about him. Lively as he was, it seemed
10551
a liveliness that did not satisfy himself; but what decided her belief
10552
on the subject, was his staying only a quarter of an hour, and hurrying
10553
away to make other calls in Highbury. “He had seen a group of old
10554
acquaintance in the street as he passed--he had not stopped, he would
10555
not stop for more than a word--but he had the vanity to think they would
10556
be disappointed if he did not call, and much as he wished to stay longer
10557
at Hartfield, he must hurry off.” She had no doubt as to his being less
10558
in love--but neither his agitated spirits, nor his hurrying away, seemed
10559
like a perfect cure; and she was rather inclined to think it implied a
10560
dread of her returning power, and a discreet resolution of not trusting
10561
himself with her long.
10562
10563
This was the only visit from Frank Churchill in the course of ten days.
10564
He was often hoping, intending to come--but was always prevented. His
10565
aunt could not bear to have him leave her. Such was his own account at
10566
Randall's. If he were quite sincere, if he really tried to come, it was
10567
to be inferred that Mrs. Churchill's removal to London had been of no
10568
service to the wilful or nervous part of her disorder. That she was
10569
really ill was very certain; he had declared himself convinced of it, at
10570
Randalls. Though much might be fancy, he could not doubt, when he looked
10571
back, that she was in a weaker state of health than she had been half a
10572
year ago. He did not believe it to proceed from any thing that care
10573
and medicine might not remove, or at least that she might not have many
10574
years of existence before her; but he could not be prevailed on, by all
10575
his father's doubts, to say that her complaints were merely imaginary,
10576
or that she was as strong as ever.
10577
10578
It soon appeared that London was not the place for her. She could
10579
not endure its noise. Her nerves were under continual irritation and
10580
suffering; and by the ten days' end, her nephew's letter to Randalls
10581
communicated a change of plan. They were going to remove immediately to
10582
Richmond. Mrs. Churchill had been recommended to the medical skill of
10583
an eminent person there, and had otherwise a fancy for the place. A
10584
ready-furnished house in a favourite spot was engaged, and much benefit
10585
expected from the change.
10586
10587
Emma heard that Frank wrote in the highest spirits of this arrangement,
10588
and seemed most fully to appreciate the blessing of having two months
10589
before him of such near neighbourhood to many dear friends--for the
10590
house was taken for May and June. She was told that now he wrote with
10591
the greatest confidence of being often with them, almost as often as he
10592
could even wish.
10593
10594
Emma saw how Mr. Weston understood these joyous prospects. He was
10595
considering her as the source of all the happiness they offered. She
10596
hoped it was not so. Two months must bring it to the proof.
10597
10598
Mr. Weston's own happiness was indisputable. He was quite delighted.
10599
It was the very circumstance he could have wished for. Now, it would be
10600
really having Frank in their neighbourhood. What were nine miles to
10601
a young man?--An hour's ride. He would be always coming over. The
10602
difference in that respect of Richmond and London was enough to make
10603
the whole difference of seeing him always and seeing him never. Sixteen
10604
miles--nay, eighteen--it must be full eighteen to Manchester-street--was
10605
a serious obstacle. Were he ever able to get away, the day would be
10606
spent in coming and returning. There was no comfort in having him in
10607
London; he might as well be at Enscombe; but Richmond was the very
10608
distance for easy intercourse. Better than nearer!
10609
10610
One good thing was immediately brought to a certainty by this
10611
removal,--the ball at the Crown. It had not been forgotten before,
10612
but it had been soon acknowledged vain to attempt to fix a day. Now,
10613
however, it was absolutely to be; every preparation was resumed, and
10614
very soon after the Churchills had removed to Richmond, a few lines from
10615
Frank, to say that his aunt felt already much better for the change, and
10616
that he had no doubt of being able to join them for twenty-four hours at
10617
any given time, induced them to name as early a day as possible.
10618
10619
Mr. Weston's ball was to be a real thing. A very few to-morrows stood
10620
between the young people of Highbury and happiness.
10621
10622
Mr. Woodhouse was resigned. The time of year lightened the evil to him.
10623
May was better for every thing than February. Mrs. Bates was engaged to
10624
spend the evening at Hartfield, James had due notice, and he sanguinely
10625
hoped that neither dear little Henry nor dear little John would have any
10626
thing the matter with them, while dear Emma were gone.
10627
10628
10629
10630
CHAPTER II
10631
10632
10633
No misfortune occurred, again to prevent the ball. The day approached,
10634
the day arrived; and after a morning of some anxious watching, Frank
10635
Churchill, in all the certainty of his own self, reached Randalls before
10636
dinner, and every thing was safe.
10637
10638
No second meeting had there yet been between him and Emma. The room
10639
at the Crown was to witness it;--but it would be better than a
10640
common meeting in a crowd. Mr. Weston had been so very earnest in his
10641
entreaties for her arriving there as soon as possible after themselves,
10642
for the purpose of taking her opinion as to the propriety and comfort of
10643
the rooms before any other persons came, that she could not refuse him,
10644
and must therefore spend some quiet interval in the young man's company.
10645
She was to convey Harriet, and they drove to the Crown in good time, the
10646
Randalls party just sufficiently before them.
10647
10648
Frank Churchill seemed to have been on the watch; and though he did not
10649
say much, his eyes declared that he meant to have a delightful evening.
10650
They all walked about together, to see that every thing was as it should
10651
be; and within a few minutes were joined by the contents of another
10652
carriage, which Emma could not hear the sound of at first, without great
10653
surprize. “So unreasonably early!” she was going to exclaim; but she
10654
presently found that it was a family of old friends, who were coming,
10655
like herself, by particular desire, to help Mr. Weston's judgment; and
10656
they were so very closely followed by another carriage of cousins,
10657
who had been entreated to come early with the same distinguishing
10658
earnestness, on the same errand, that it seemed as if half the company
10659
might soon be collected together for the purpose of preparatory
10660
inspection.
10661
10662
Emma perceived that her taste was not the only taste on which Mr. Weston
10663
depended, and felt, that to be the favourite and intimate of a man
10664
who had so many intimates and confidantes, was not the very first
10665
distinction in the scale of vanity. She liked his open manners, but
10666
a little less of open-heartedness would have made him a higher
10667
character.--General benevolence, but not general friendship, made a
10668
man what he ought to be.--She could fancy such a man. The whole party
10669
walked about, and looked, and praised again; and then, having nothing
10670
else to do, formed a sort of half-circle round the fire, to observe
10671
in their various modes, till other subjects were started, that, though
10672
_May_, a fire in the evening was still very pleasant.
10673
10674
Emma found that it was not Mr. Weston's fault that the number of privy
10675
councillors was not yet larger. They had stopped at Mrs. Bates's door
10676
to offer the use of their carriage, but the aunt and niece were to be
10677
brought by the Eltons.
10678
10679
Frank was standing by her, but not steadily; there was a restlessness,
10680
which shewed a mind not at ease. He was looking about, he was going to
10681
the door, he was watching for the sound of other carriages,--impatient
10682
to begin, or afraid of being always near her.
10683
10684
Mrs. Elton was spoken of. “I think she must be here soon,” said he. “I
10685
have a great curiosity to see Mrs. Elton, I have heard so much of her.
10686
It cannot be long, I think, before she comes.”
10687
10688
A carriage was heard. He was on the move immediately; but coming back,
10689
said,
10690
10691
“I am forgetting that I am not acquainted with her. I have never seen
10692
either Mr. or Mrs. Elton. I have no business to put myself forward.”
10693
10694
Mr. and Mrs. Elton appeared; and all the smiles and the proprieties
10695
passed.
10696
10697
“But Miss Bates and Miss Fairfax!” said Mr. Weston, looking about. “We
10698
thought you were to bring them.”
10699
10700
The mistake had been slight. The carriage was sent for them now. Emma
10701
longed to know what Frank's first opinion of Mrs. Elton might be; how
10702
he was affected by the studied elegance of her dress, and her smiles of
10703
graciousness. He was immediately qualifying himself to form an opinion,
10704
by giving her very proper attention, after the introduction had passed.
10705
10706
In a few minutes the carriage returned.--Somebody talked of rain.--“I
10707
will see that there are umbrellas, sir,” said Frank to his father:
10708
“Miss Bates must not be forgotten:” and away he went. Mr. Weston was
10709
following; but Mrs. Elton detained him, to gratify him by her opinion
10710
of his son; and so briskly did she begin, that the young man himself,
10711
though by no means moving slowly, could hardly be out of hearing.
10712
10713
“A very fine young man indeed, Mr. Weston. You know I candidly told you
10714
I should form my own opinion; and I am happy to say that I am extremely
10715
pleased with him.--You may believe me. I never compliment. I think him
10716
a very handsome young man, and his manners are precisely what I like and
10717
approve--so truly the gentleman, without the least conceit or puppyism.
10718
You must know I have a vast dislike to puppies--quite a horror of them.
10719
They were never tolerated at Maple Grove. Neither Mr. Suckling nor
10720
me had ever any patience with them; and we used sometimes to say very
10721
cutting things! Selina, who is mild almost to a fault, bore with them
10722
much better.”
10723
10724
While she talked of his son, Mr. Weston's attention was chained; but
10725
when she got to Maple Grove, he could recollect that there were ladies
10726
just arriving to be attended to, and with happy smiles must hurry away.
10727
10728
Mrs. Elton turned to Mrs. Weston. “I have no doubt of its being our
10729
carriage with Miss Bates and Jane. Our coachman and horses are so
10730
extremely expeditious!--I believe we drive faster than any body.--What
10731
a pleasure it is to send one's carriage for a friend!--I understand you
10732
were so kind as to offer, but another time it will be quite unnecessary.
10733
You may be very sure I shall always take care of _them_.”
10734
10735
Miss Bates and Miss Fairfax, escorted by the two gentlemen, walked into
10736
the room; and Mrs. Elton seemed to think it as much her duty as Mrs.
10737
Weston's to receive them. Her gestures and movements might be understood
10738
by any one who looked on like Emma; but her words, every body's words,
10739
were soon lost under the incessant flow of Miss Bates, who came in
10740
talking, and had not finished her speech under many minutes after her
10741
being admitted into the circle at the fire. As the door opened she was
10742
heard,
10743
10744
“So very obliging of you!--No rain at all. Nothing to signify. I do not
10745
care for myself. Quite thick shoes. And Jane declares--Well!--(as soon
10746
as she was within the door) Well! This is brilliant indeed!--This is
10747
admirable!--Excellently contrived, upon my word. Nothing wanting. Could
10748
not have imagined it.--So well lighted up!--Jane, Jane, look!--did you
10749
ever see any thing? Oh! Mr. Weston, you must really have had Aladdin's
10750
lamp. Good Mrs. Stokes would not know her own room again. I saw her as
10751
I came in; she was standing in the entrance. 'Oh! Mrs. Stokes,' said
10752
I--but I had not time for more.” She was now met by Mrs. Weston.--“Very
10753
well, I thank you, ma'am. I hope you are quite well. Very happy to hear
10754
it. So afraid you might have a headache!--seeing you pass by so often,
10755
and knowing how much trouble you must have. Delighted to hear it indeed.
10756
Ah! dear Mrs. Elton, so obliged to you for the carriage!--excellent
10757
time. Jane and I quite ready. Did not keep the horses a moment. Most
10758
comfortable carriage.--Oh! and I am sure our thanks are due to you,
10759
Mrs. Weston, on that score. Mrs. Elton had most kindly sent Jane a note,
10760
or we should have been.--But two such offers in one day!--Never were
10761
such neighbours. I said to my mother, 'Upon my word, ma'am--.' Thank
10762
you, my mother is remarkably well. Gone to Mr. Woodhouse's. I made her
10763
take her shawl--for the evenings are not warm--her large new shawl--
10764
Mrs. Dixon's wedding-present.--So kind of her to think of my mother!
10765
Bought at Weymouth, you know--Mr. Dixon's choice. There were three
10766
others, Jane says, which they hesitated about some time. Colonel
10767
Campbell rather preferred an olive. My dear Jane, are you sure you did
10768
not wet your feet?--It was but a drop or two, but I am so afraid:--but
10769
Mr. Frank Churchill was so extremely--and there was a mat to step
10770
upon--I shall never forget his extreme politeness.--Oh! Mr. Frank
10771
Churchill, I must tell you my mother's spectacles have never been in
10772
fault since; the rivet never came out again. My mother often talks of
10773
your good-nature. Does not she, Jane?--Do not we often talk of Mr. Frank
10774
Churchill?--Ah! here's Miss Woodhouse.--Dear Miss Woodhouse, how do
10775
you do?--Very well I thank you, quite well. This is meeting quite
10776
in fairy-land!--Such a transformation!--Must not compliment, I know
10777
(eyeing Emma most complacently)--that would be rude--but upon my word,
10778
Miss Woodhouse, you do look--how do you like Jane's hair?--You are
10779
a judge.--She did it all herself. Quite wonderful how she does her
10780
hair!--No hairdresser from London I think could.--Ah! Dr. Hughes I
10781
declare--and Mrs. Hughes. Must go and speak to Dr. and Mrs. Hughes for a
10782
moment.--How do you do? How do you do?--Very well, I thank you. This
10783
is delightful, is not it?--Where's dear Mr. Richard?--Oh! there he is.
10784
Don't disturb him. Much better employed talking to the young ladies. How
10785
do you do, Mr. Richard?--I saw you the other day as you rode through
10786
the town--Mrs. Otway, I protest!--and good Mr. Otway, and Miss Otway
10787
and Miss Caroline.--Such a host of friends!--and Mr. George and Mr.
10788
Arthur!--How do you do? How do you all do?--Quite well, I am much
10789
obliged to you. Never better.--Don't I hear another carriage?--Who can
10790
this be?--very likely the worthy Coles.--Upon my word, this is charming
10791
to be standing about among such friends! And such a noble fire!--I am
10792
quite roasted. No coffee, I thank you, for me--never take coffee.--A
10793
little tea if you please, sir, by and bye,--no hurry--Oh! here it comes.
10794
Every thing so good!”
10795
10796
Frank Churchill returned to his station by Emma; and as soon as Miss
10797
Bates was quiet, she found herself necessarily overhearing the discourse
10798
of Mrs. Elton and Miss Fairfax, who were standing a little way behind
10799
her.--He was thoughtful. Whether he were overhearing too, she could not
10800
determine. After a good many compliments to Jane on her dress and look,
10801
compliments very quietly and properly taken, Mrs. Elton was evidently
10802
wanting to be complimented herself--and it was, “How do you like
10803
my gown?--How do you like my trimming?--How has Wright done my
10804
hair?”--with many other relative questions, all answered with patient
10805
politeness. Mrs. Elton then said, “Nobody can think less of dress in
10806
general than I do--but upon such an occasion as this, when every body's
10807
eyes are so much upon me, and in compliment to the Westons--who I have
10808
no doubt are giving this ball chiefly to do me honour--I would not wish
10809
to be inferior to others. And I see very few pearls in the room except
10810
mine.--So Frank Churchill is a capital dancer, I understand.--We shall
10811
see if our styles suit.--A fine young man certainly is Frank Churchill.
10812
I like him very well.”
10813
10814
At this moment Frank began talking so vigorously, that Emma could not
10815
but imagine he had overheard his own praises, and did not want to hear
10816
more;--and the voices of the ladies were drowned for a while, till
10817
another suspension brought Mrs. Elton's tones again distinctly
10818
forward.--Mr. Elton had just joined them, and his wife was exclaiming,
10819
10820
“Oh! you have found us out at last, have you, in our seclusion?--I was
10821
this moment telling Jane, I thought you would begin to be impatient for
10822
tidings of us.”
10823
10824
“Jane!”--repeated Frank Churchill, with a look of surprize and
10825
displeasure.--“That is easy--but Miss Fairfax does not disapprove it, I
10826
suppose.”
10827
10828
“How do you like Mrs. Elton?” said Emma in a whisper.
10829
10830
“Not at all.”
10831
10832
“You are ungrateful.”
10833
10834
“Ungrateful!--What do you mean?” Then changing from a frown to a
10835
smile--“No, do not tell me--I do not want to know what you mean.--Where
10836
is my father?--When are we to begin dancing?”
10837
10838
Emma could hardly understand him; he seemed in an odd humour. He walked
10839
off to find his father, but was quickly back again with both Mr. and
10840
Mrs. Weston. He had met with them in a little perplexity, which must be
10841
laid before Emma. It had just occurred to Mrs. Weston that Mrs. Elton
10842
must be asked to begin the ball; that she would expect it; which
10843
interfered with all their wishes of giving Emma that distinction.--Emma
10844
heard the sad truth with fortitude.
10845
10846
“And what are we to do for a proper partner for her?” said Mr. Weston.
10847
“She will think Frank ought to ask her.”
10848
10849
Frank turned instantly to Emma, to claim her former promise; and
10850
boasted himself an engaged man, which his father looked his most perfect
10851
approbation of--and it then appeared that Mrs. Weston was wanting _him_
10852
to dance with Mrs. Elton himself, and that their business was to help to
10853
persuade him into it, which was done pretty soon.--Mr. Weston and Mrs.
10854
Elton led the way, Mr. Frank Churchill and Miss Woodhouse followed.
10855
Emma must submit to stand second to Mrs. Elton, though she had always
10856
considered the ball as peculiarly for her. It was almost enough to make
10857
her think of marrying. Mrs. Elton had undoubtedly the advantage, at this
10858
time, in vanity completely gratified; for though she had intended to
10859
begin with Frank Churchill, she could not lose by the change. Mr. Weston
10860
might be his son's superior.--In spite of this little rub, however,
10861
Emma was smiling with enjoyment, delighted to see the respectable length
10862
of the set as it was forming, and to feel that she had so many hours
10863
of unusual festivity before her.--She was more disturbed by Mr.
10864
Knightley's not dancing than by any thing else.--There he was, among
10865
the standers-by, where he ought not to be; he ought to be dancing,--not
10866
classing himself with the husbands, and fathers, and whist-players, who
10867
were pretending to feel an interest in the dance till their rubbers were
10868
made up,--so young as he looked!--He could not have appeared to greater
10869
advantage perhaps anywhere, than where he had placed himself. His tall,
10870
firm, upright figure, among the bulky forms and stooping shoulders of
10871
the elderly men, was such as Emma felt must draw every body's eyes;
10872
and, excepting her own partner, there was not one among the whole row of
10873
young men who could be compared with him.--He moved a few steps nearer,
10874
and those few steps were enough to prove in how gentlemanlike a manner,
10875
with what natural grace, he must have danced, would he but take the
10876
trouble.--Whenever she caught his eye, she forced him to smile; but
10877
in general he was looking grave. She wished he could love a ballroom
10878
better, and could like Frank Churchill better.--He seemed often
10879
observing her. She must not flatter herself that he thought of her
10880
dancing, but if he were criticising her behaviour, she did not feel
10881
afraid. There was nothing like flirtation between her and her partner.
10882
They seemed more like cheerful, easy friends, than lovers. That Frank
10883
Churchill thought less of her than he had done, was indubitable.
10884
10885
The ball proceeded pleasantly. The anxious cares, the incessant
10886
attentions of Mrs. Weston, were not thrown away. Every body seemed
10887
happy; and the praise of being a delightful ball, which is seldom
10888
bestowed till after a ball has ceased to be, was repeatedly given in
10889
the very beginning of the existence of this. Of very important, very
10890
recordable events, it was not more productive than such meetings usually
10891
are. There was one, however, which Emma thought something of.--The two
10892
last dances before supper were begun, and Harriet had no partner;--the
10893
only young lady sitting down;--and so equal had been hitherto the
10894
number of dancers, that how there could be any one disengaged was the
10895
wonder!--But Emma's wonder lessened soon afterwards, on seeing Mr. Elton
10896
sauntering about. He would not ask Harriet to dance if it were possible
10897
to be avoided: she was sure he would not--and she was expecting him
10898
every moment to escape into the card-room.
10899
10900
Escape, however, was not his plan. He came to the part of the room where
10901
the sitters-by were collected, spoke to some, and walked about in front
10902
of them, as if to shew his liberty, and his resolution of maintaining
10903
it. He did not omit being sometimes directly before Miss Smith, or
10904
speaking to those who were close to her.--Emma saw it. She was not yet
10905
dancing; she was working her way up from the bottom, and had therefore
10906
leisure to look around, and by only turning her head a little she saw
10907
it all. When she was half-way up the set, the whole group were exactly
10908
behind her, and she would no longer allow her eyes to watch; but Mr.
10909
Elton was so near, that she heard every syllable of a dialogue which
10910
just then took place between him and Mrs. Weston; and she perceived that
10911
his wife, who was standing immediately above her, was not only
10912
listening also, but even encouraging him by significant glances.--The
10913
kind-hearted, gentle Mrs. Weston had left her seat to join him and say,
10914
“Do not you dance, Mr. Elton?” to which his prompt reply was, “Most
10915
readily, Mrs. Weston, if you will dance with me.”
10916
10917
“Me!--oh! no--I would get you a better partner than myself. I am no
10918
dancer.”
10919
10920
“If Mrs. Gilbert wishes to dance,” said he, “I shall have great
10921
pleasure, I am sure--for, though beginning to feel myself rather an old
10922
married man, and that my dancing days are over, it would give me very
10923
great pleasure at any time to stand up with an old friend like Mrs.
10924
Gilbert.”
10925
10926
“Mrs. Gilbert does not mean to dance, but there is a young lady
10927
disengaged whom I should be very glad to see dancing--Miss Smith.” “Miss
10928
Smith!--oh!--I had not observed.--You are extremely obliging--and if I
10929
were not an old married man.--But my dancing days are over, Mrs. Weston.
10930
You will excuse me. Any thing else I should be most happy to do, at your
10931
command--but my dancing days are over.”
10932
10933
Mrs. Weston said no more; and Emma could imagine with what surprize and
10934
mortification she must be returning to her seat. This was Mr. Elton! the
10935
amiable, obliging, gentle Mr. Elton.--She looked round for a moment; he
10936
had joined Mr. Knightley at a little distance, and was arranging himself
10937
for settled conversation, while smiles of high glee passed between him
10938
and his wife.
10939
10940
She would not look again. Her heart was in a glow, and she feared her
10941
face might be as hot.
10942
10943
In another moment a happier sight caught her;--Mr. Knightley leading
10944
Harriet to the set!--Never had she been more surprized, seldom more
10945
delighted, than at that instant. She was all pleasure and gratitude,
10946
both for Harriet and herself, and longed to be thanking him; and though
10947
too distant for speech, her countenance said much, as soon as she could
10948
catch his eye again.
10949
10950
His dancing proved to be just what she had believed it, extremely good;
10951
and Harriet would have seemed almost too lucky, if it had not been for
10952
the cruel state of things before, and for the very complete enjoyment
10953
and very high sense of the distinction which her happy features
10954
announced. It was not thrown away on her, she bounded higher than ever,
10955
flew farther down the middle, and was in a continual course of smiles.
10956
10957
Mr. Elton had retreated into the card-room, looking (Emma trusted) very
10958
foolish. She did not think he was quite so hardened as his wife, though
10959
growing very like her;--_she_ spoke some of her feelings, by observing
10960
audibly to her partner,
10961
10962
“Knightley has taken pity on poor little Miss Smith!--Very good-natured,
10963
I declare.”
10964
10965
Supper was announced. The move began; and Miss Bates might be heard from
10966
that moment, without interruption, till her being seated at table and
10967
taking up her spoon.
10968
10969
“Jane, Jane, my dear Jane, where are you?--Here is your tippet. Mrs.
10970
Weston begs you to put on your tippet. She says she is afraid there will
10971
be draughts in the passage, though every thing has been done--One door
10972
nailed up--Quantities of matting--My dear Jane, indeed you must.
10973
Mr. Churchill, oh! you are too obliging! How well you put it on!--so
10974
gratified! Excellent dancing indeed!--Yes, my dear, I ran home, as I
10975
said I should, to help grandmama to bed, and got back again, and
10976
nobody missed me.--I set off without saying a word, just as I told you.
10977
Grandmama was quite well, had a charming evening with Mr. Woodhouse, a
10978
vast deal of chat, and backgammon.--Tea was made downstairs, biscuits
10979
and baked apples and wine before she came away: amazing luck in some
10980
of her throws: and she inquired a great deal about you, how you were
10981
amused, and who were your partners. 'Oh!' said I, 'I shall not forestall
10982
Jane; I left her dancing with Mr. George Otway; she will love to tell
10983
you all about it herself to-morrow: her first partner was Mr. Elton,
10984
I do not know who will ask her next, perhaps Mr. William Cox.' My dear
10985
sir, you are too obliging.--Is there nobody you would not rather?--I am
10986
not helpless. Sir, you are most kind. Upon my word, Jane on one arm, and
10987
me on the other!--Stop, stop, let us stand a little back, Mrs. Elton is
10988
going; dear Mrs. Elton, how elegant she looks!--Beautiful lace!--Now we
10989
all follow in her train. Quite the queen of the evening!--Well, here we
10990
are at the passage. Two steps, Jane, take care of the two steps. Oh! no,
10991
there is but one. Well, I was persuaded there were two. How very odd!
10992
I was convinced there were two, and there is but one. I never saw any
10993
thing equal to the comfort and style--Candles everywhere.--I was telling
10994
you of your grandmama, Jane,--There was a little disappointment.--The
10995
baked apples and biscuits, excellent in their way, you know; but there
10996
was a delicate fricassee of sweetbread and some asparagus brought in at
10997
first, and good Mr. Woodhouse, not thinking the asparagus quite boiled
10998
enough, sent it all out again. Now there is nothing grandmama loves
10999
better than sweetbread and asparagus--so she was rather disappointed,
11000
but we agreed we would not speak of it to any body, for fear of
11001
its getting round to dear Miss Woodhouse, who would be so very much
11002
concerned!--Well, this is brilliant! I am all amazement! could not have
11003
supposed any thing!--Such elegance and profusion!--I have seen nothing
11004
like it since--Well, where shall we sit? where shall we sit? Anywhere,
11005
so that Jane is not in a draught. Where _I_ sit is of no consequence.
11006
Oh! do you recommend this side?--Well, I am sure, Mr. Churchill--only
11007
it seems too good--but just as you please. What you direct in this house
11008
cannot be wrong. Dear Jane, how shall we ever recollect half the dishes
11009
for grandmama? Soup too! Bless me! I should not be helped so soon, but
11010
it smells most excellent, and I cannot help beginning.”
11011
11012
Emma had no opportunity of speaking to Mr. Knightley till after supper;
11013
but, when they were all in the ballroom again, her eyes invited
11014
him irresistibly to come to her and be thanked. He was warm in his
11015
reprobation of Mr. Elton's conduct; it had been unpardonable rudeness;
11016
and Mrs. Elton's looks also received the due share of censure.
11017
11018
“They aimed at wounding more than Harriet,” said he. “Emma, why is it
11019
that they are your enemies?”
11020
11021
He looked with smiling penetration; and, on receiving no answer, added,
11022
“_She_ ought not to be angry with you, I suspect, whatever he may
11023
be.--To that surmise, you say nothing, of course; but confess, Emma,
11024
that you did want him to marry Harriet.”
11025
11026
“I did,” replied Emma, “and they cannot forgive me.”
11027
11028
He shook his head; but there was a smile of indulgence with it, and he
11029
only said,
11030
11031
“I shall not scold you. I leave you to your own reflections.”
11032
11033
“Can you trust me with such flatterers?--Does my vain spirit ever tell
11034
me I am wrong?”
11035
11036
“Not your vain spirit, but your serious spirit.--If one leads you wrong,
11037
I am sure the other tells you of it.”
11038
11039
“I do own myself to have been completely mistaken in Mr. Elton. There is
11040
a littleness about him which you discovered, and which I did not: and I
11041
was fully convinced of his being in love with Harriet. It was through a
11042
series of strange blunders!”
11043
11044
“And, in return for your acknowledging so much, I will do you the
11045
justice to say, that you would have chosen for him better than he has
11046
chosen for himself.--Harriet Smith has some first-rate qualities, which
11047
Mrs. Elton is totally without. An unpretending, single-minded, artless
11048
girl--infinitely to be preferred by any man of sense and taste to such a
11049
woman as Mrs. Elton. I found Harriet more conversable than I expected.”
11050
11051
Emma was extremely gratified.--They were interrupted by the bustle of
11052
Mr. Weston calling on every body to begin dancing again.
11053
11054
“Come Miss Woodhouse, Miss Otway, Miss Fairfax, what are you all
11055
doing?--Come Emma, set your companions the example. Every body is lazy!
11056
Every body is asleep!”
11057
11058
“I am ready,” said Emma, “whenever I am wanted.”
11059
11060
“Whom are you going to dance with?” asked Mr. Knightley.
11061
11062
She hesitated a moment, and then replied, “With you, if you will ask
11063
me.”
11064
11065
“Will you?” said he, offering his hand.
11066
11067
“Indeed I will. You have shewn that you can dance, and you know we are
11068
not really so much brother and sister as to make it at all improper.”
11069
11070
“Brother and sister! no, indeed.”
11071
11072
11073
11074
CHAPTER III
11075
11076
11077
This little explanation with Mr. Knightley gave Emma considerable
11078
pleasure. It was one of the agreeable recollections of the ball, which
11079
she walked about the lawn the next morning to enjoy.--She was extremely
11080
glad that they had come to so good an understanding respecting the
11081
Eltons, and that their opinions of both husband and wife were so much
11082
alike; and his praise of Harriet, his concession in her favour, was
11083
peculiarly gratifying. The impertinence of the Eltons, which for a few
11084
minutes had threatened to ruin the rest of her evening, had been the
11085
occasion of some of its highest satisfactions; and she looked forward
11086
to another happy result--the cure of Harriet's infatuation.--From
11087
Harriet's manner of speaking of the circumstance before they quitted the
11088
ballroom, she had strong hopes. It seemed as if her eyes were suddenly
11089
opened, and she were enabled to see that Mr. Elton was not the superior
11090
creature she had believed him. The fever was over, and Emma could
11091
harbour little fear of the pulse being quickened again by injurious
11092
courtesy. She depended on the evil feelings of the Eltons for
11093
supplying all the discipline of pointed neglect that could be farther
11094
requisite.--Harriet rational, Frank Churchill not too much in love, and
11095
Mr. Knightley not wanting to quarrel with her, how very happy a summer
11096
must be before her!
11097
11098
She was not to see Frank Churchill this morning. He had told her that he
11099
could not allow himself the pleasure of stopping at Hartfield, as he was
11100
to be at home by the middle of the day. She did not regret it.
11101
11102
Having arranged all these matters, looked them through, and put them all
11103
to rights, she was just turning to the house with spirits freshened up
11104
for the demands of the two little boys, as well as of their grandpapa,
11105
when the great iron sweep-gate opened, and two persons entered whom she
11106
had never less expected to see together--Frank Churchill, with Harriet
11107
leaning on his arm--actually Harriet!--A moment sufficed to convince
11108
her that something extraordinary had happened. Harriet looked white
11109
and frightened, and he was trying to cheer her.--The iron gates and the
11110
front-door were not twenty yards asunder;--they were all three soon in
11111
the hall, and Harriet immediately sinking into a chair fainted away.
11112
11113
A young lady who faints, must be recovered; questions must be answered,
11114
and surprizes be explained. Such events are very interesting, but the
11115
suspense of them cannot last long. A few minutes made Emma acquainted
11116
with the whole.
11117
11118
Miss Smith, and Miss Bickerton, another parlour boarder at Mrs.
11119
Goddard's, who had been also at the ball, had walked out together, and
11120
taken a road, the Richmond road, which, though apparently public enough
11121
for safety, had led them into alarm.--About half a mile beyond Highbury,
11122
making a sudden turn, and deeply shaded by elms on each side, it became
11123
for a considerable stretch very retired; and when the young ladies
11124
had advanced some way into it, they had suddenly perceived at a small
11125
distance before them, on a broader patch of greensward by the side, a
11126
party of gipsies. A child on the watch, came towards them to beg; and
11127
Miss Bickerton, excessively frightened, gave a great scream, and calling
11128
on Harriet to follow her, ran up a steep bank, cleared a slight hedge at
11129
the top, and made the best of her way by a short cut back to Highbury.
11130
But poor Harriet could not follow. She had suffered very much from cramp
11131
after dancing, and her first attempt to mount the bank brought on such
11132
a return of it as made her absolutely powerless--and in this state, and
11133
exceedingly terrified, she had been obliged to remain.
11134
11135
How the trampers might have behaved, had the young ladies been more
11136
courageous, must be doubtful; but such an invitation for attack could
11137
not be resisted; and Harriet was soon assailed by half a dozen children,
11138
headed by a stout woman and a great boy, all clamorous, and impertinent
11139
in look, though not absolutely in word.--More and more frightened, she
11140
immediately promised them money, and taking out her purse, gave them a
11141
shilling, and begged them not to want more, or to use her ill.--She
11142
was then able to walk, though but slowly, and was moving away--but her
11143
terror and her purse were too tempting, and she was followed, or rather
11144
surrounded, by the whole gang, demanding more.
11145
11146
In this state Frank Churchill had found her, she trembling and
11147
conditioning, they loud and insolent. By a most fortunate chance his
11148
leaving Highbury had been delayed so as to bring him to her assistance
11149
at this critical moment. The pleasantness of the morning had induced
11150
him to walk forward, and leave his horses to meet him by another road,
11151
a mile or two beyond Highbury--and happening to have borrowed a pair
11152
of scissors the night before of Miss Bates, and to have forgotten to
11153
restore them, he had been obliged to stop at her door, and go in for a
11154
few minutes: he was therefore later than he had intended; and being
11155
on foot, was unseen by the whole party till almost close to them. The
11156
terror which the woman and boy had been creating in Harriet was then
11157
their own portion. He had left them completely frightened; and Harriet
11158
eagerly clinging to him, and hardly able to speak, had just strength
11159
enough to reach Hartfield, before her spirits were quite overcome.
11160
It was his idea to bring her to Hartfield: he had thought of no other
11161
place.
11162
11163
This was the amount of the whole story,--of his communication and of
11164
Harriet's as soon as she had recovered her senses and speech.--He dared
11165
not stay longer than to see her well; these several delays left him
11166
not another minute to lose; and Emma engaging to give assurance of her
11167
safety to Mrs. Goddard, and notice of there being such a set of people
11168
in the neighbourhood to Mr. Knightley, he set off, with all the grateful
11169
blessings that she could utter for her friend and herself.
11170
11171
Such an adventure as this,--a fine young man and a lovely young woman
11172
thrown together in such a way, could hardly fail of suggesting certain
11173
ideas to the coldest heart and the steadiest brain. So Emma thought, at
11174
least. Could a linguist, could a grammarian, could even a mathematician
11175
have seen what she did, have witnessed their appearance together, and
11176
heard their history of it, without feeling that circumstances had been
11177
at work to make them peculiarly interesting to each other?--How much
11178
more must an imaginist, like herself, be on fire with speculation and
11179
foresight!--especially with such a groundwork of anticipation as her
11180
mind had already made.
11181
11182
It was a very extraordinary thing! Nothing of the sort had ever
11183
occurred before to any young ladies in the place, within her memory; no
11184
rencontre, no alarm of the kind;--and now it had happened to the very
11185
person, and at the very hour, when the other very person was chancing
11186
to pass by to rescue her!--It certainly was very extraordinary!--And
11187
knowing, as she did, the favourable state of mind of each at this
11188
period, it struck her the more. He was wishing to get the better of his
11189
attachment to herself, she just recovering from her mania for Mr. Elton.
11190
It seemed as if every thing united to promise the most interesting
11191
consequences. It was not possible that the occurrence should not be
11192
strongly recommending each to the other.
11193
11194
In the few minutes' conversation which she had yet had with him, while
11195
Harriet had been partially insensible, he had spoken of her terror,
11196
her naivete, her fervour as she seized and clung to his arm, with a
11197
sensibility amused and delighted; and just at last, after Harriet's
11198
own account had been given, he had expressed his indignation at the
11199
abominable folly of Miss Bickerton in the warmest terms. Every thing was
11200
to take its natural course, however, neither impelled nor assisted.
11201
She would not stir a step, nor drop a hint. No, she had had enough of
11202
interference. There could be no harm in a scheme, a mere passive scheme.
11203
It was no more than a wish. Beyond it she would on no account proceed.
11204
11205
Emma's first resolution was to keep her father from the knowledge of
11206
what had passed,--aware of the anxiety and alarm it would occasion: but
11207
she soon felt that concealment must be impossible. Within half an hour
11208
it was known all over Highbury. It was the very event to engage those
11209
who talk most, the young and the low; and all the youth and servants in
11210
the place were soon in the happiness of frightful news. The last night's
11211
ball seemed lost in the gipsies. Poor Mr. Woodhouse trembled as he sat,
11212
and, as Emma had foreseen, would scarcely be satisfied without their
11213
promising never to go beyond the shrubbery again. It was some comfort
11214
to him that many inquiries after himself and Miss Woodhouse (for his
11215
neighbours knew that he loved to be inquired after), as well as Miss
11216
Smith, were coming in during the rest of the day; and he had
11217
the pleasure of returning for answer, that they were all very
11218
indifferent--which, though not exactly true, for she was perfectly well,
11219
and Harriet not much otherwise, Emma would not interfere with. She had
11220
an unhappy state of health in general for the child of such a man,
11221
for she hardly knew what indisposition was; and if he did not invent
11222
illnesses for her, she could make no figure in a message.
11223
11224
The gipsies did not wait for the operations of justice; they took
11225
themselves off in a hurry. The young ladies of Highbury might have
11226
walked again in safety before their panic began, and the whole history
11227
dwindled soon into a matter of little importance but to Emma and her
11228
nephews:--in her imagination it maintained its ground, and Henry and
11229
John were still asking every day for the story of Harriet and the
11230
gipsies, and still tenaciously setting her right if she varied in the
11231
slightest particular from the original recital.
11232
11233
11234
11235
CHAPTER IV
11236
11237
11238
A very few days had passed after this adventure, when Harriet came one
11239
morning to Emma with a small parcel in her hand, and after sitting down
11240
and hesitating, thus began:
11241
11242
“Miss Woodhouse--if you are at leisure--I have something that I should
11243
like to tell you--a sort of confession to make--and then, you know, it
11244
will be over.”
11245
11246
Emma was a good deal surprized; but begged her to speak. There was a
11247
seriousness in Harriet's manner which prepared her, quite as much as her
11248
words, for something more than ordinary.
11249
11250
“It is my duty, and I am sure it is my wish,” she continued, “to have
11251
no reserves with you on this subject. As I am happily quite an altered
11252
creature in _one_ _respect_, it is very fit that you should have
11253
the satisfaction of knowing it. I do not want to say more than is
11254
necessary--I am too much ashamed of having given way as I have done, and
11255
I dare say you understand me.”
11256
11257
“Yes,” said Emma, “I hope I do.”
11258
11259
“How I could so long a time be fancying myself!...” cried Harriet,
11260
warmly. “It seems like madness! I can see nothing at all extraordinary
11261
in him now.--I do not care whether I meet him or not--except that of the
11262
two I had rather not see him--and indeed I would go any distance round
11263
to avoid him--but I do not envy his wife in the least; I neither admire
11264
her nor envy her, as I have done: she is very charming, I dare say, and
11265
all that, but I think her very ill-tempered and disagreeable--I shall
11266
never forget her look the other night!--However, I assure you, Miss
11267
Woodhouse, I wish her no evil.--No, let them be ever so happy together,
11268
it will not give me another moment's pang: and to convince you that I
11269
have been speaking truth, I am now going to destroy--what I ought to
11270
have destroyed long ago--what I ought never to have kept--I know that
11271
very well (blushing as she spoke).--However, now I will destroy it
11272
all--and it is my particular wish to do it in your presence, that you
11273
may see how rational I am grown. Cannot you guess what this parcel
11274
holds?” said she, with a conscious look.
11275
11276
“Not the least in the world.--Did he ever give you any thing?”
11277
11278
“No--I cannot call them gifts; but they are things that I have valued
11279
very much.”
11280
11281
She held the parcel towards her, and Emma read the words _Most_
11282
_precious_ _treasures_ on the top. Her curiosity was greatly excited.
11283
Harriet unfolded the parcel, and she looked on with impatience. Within
11284
abundance of silver paper was a pretty little Tunbridge-ware box,
11285
which Harriet opened: it was well lined with the softest cotton; but,
11286
excepting the cotton, Emma saw only a small piece of court-plaister.
11287
11288
“Now,” said Harriet, “you _must_ recollect.”
11289
11290
“No, indeed I do not.”
11291
11292
“Dear me! I should not have thought it possible you could forget what
11293
passed in this very room about court-plaister, one of the very last
11294
times we ever met in it!--It was but a very few days before I had my
11295
sore throat--just before Mr. and Mrs. John Knightley came--I think the
11296
very evening.--Do not you remember his cutting his finger with your new
11297
penknife, and your recommending court-plaister?--But, as you had none
11298
about you, and knew I had, you desired me to supply him; and so I took
11299
mine out and cut him a piece; but it was a great deal too large, and he
11300
cut it smaller, and kept playing some time with what was left, before he
11301
gave it back to me. And so then, in my nonsense, I could not help making
11302
a treasure of it--so I put it by never to be used, and looked at it now
11303
and then as a great treat.”
11304
11305
“My dearest Harriet!” cried Emma, putting her hand before her face,
11306
and jumping up, “you make me more ashamed of myself than I can bear.
11307
Remember it? Aye, I remember it all now; all, except your saving this
11308
relic--I knew nothing of that till this moment--but the cutting the
11309
finger, and my recommending court-plaister, and saying I had none
11310
about me!--Oh! my sins, my sins!--And I had plenty all the while in my
11311
pocket!--One of my senseless tricks!--I deserve to be under a continual
11312
blush all the rest of my life.--Well--(sitting down again)--go on--what
11313
else?”
11314
11315
“And had you really some at hand yourself? I am sure I never suspected
11316
it, you did it so naturally.”
11317
11318
“And so you actually put this piece of court-plaister by for his sake!”
11319
said Emma, recovering from her state of shame and feeling divided
11320
between wonder and amusement. And secretly she added to herself, “Lord
11321
bless me! when should I ever have thought of putting by in cotton a
11322
piece of court-plaister that Frank Churchill had been pulling about! I
11323
never was equal to this.”
11324
11325
“Here,” resumed Harriet, turning to her box again, “here is something
11326
still more valuable, I mean that _has_ _been_ more valuable, because
11327
this is what did really once belong to him, which the court-plaister
11328
never did.”
11329
11330
Emma was quite eager to see this superior treasure. It was the end of an
11331
old pencil,--the part without any lead.
11332
11333
“This was really his,” said Harriet.--“Do not you remember one
11334
morning?--no, I dare say you do not. But one morning--I forget exactly
11335
the day--but perhaps it was the Tuesday or Wednesday before _that_
11336
_evening_, he wanted to make a memorandum in his pocket-book; it was
11337
about spruce-beer. Mr. Knightley had been telling him something about
11338
brewing spruce-beer, and he wanted to put it down; but when he took out
11339
his pencil, there was so little lead that he soon cut it all away, and
11340
it would not do, so you lent him another, and this was left upon the
11341
table as good for nothing. But I kept my eye on it; and, as soon as I
11342
dared, caught it up, and never parted with it again from that moment.”
11343
11344
“I do remember it,” cried Emma; “I perfectly remember it.--Talking
11345
about spruce-beer.--Oh! yes--Mr. Knightley and I both saying we
11346
liked it, and Mr. Elton's seeming resolved to learn to like it too. I
11347
perfectly remember it.--Stop; Mr. Knightley was standing just here, was
11348
not he? I have an idea he was standing just here.”
11349
11350
“Ah! I do not know. I cannot recollect.--It is very odd, but I cannot
11351
recollect.--Mr. Elton was sitting here, I remember, much about where I
11352
am now.”--
11353
11354
“Well, go on.”
11355
11356
“Oh! that's all. I have nothing more to shew you, or to say--except that
11357
I am now going to throw them both behind the fire, and I wish you to see
11358
me do it.”
11359
11360
“My poor dear Harriet! and have you actually found happiness in
11361
treasuring up these things?”
11362
11363
“Yes, simpleton as I was!--but I am quite ashamed of it now, and wish I
11364
could forget as easily as I can burn them. It was very wrong of me, you
11365
know, to keep any remembrances, after he was married. I knew it was--but
11366
had not resolution enough to part with them.”
11367
11368
“But, Harriet, is it necessary to burn the court-plaister?--I have not
11369
a word to say for the bit of old pencil, but the court-plaister might be
11370
useful.”
11371
11372
“I shall be happier to burn it,” replied Harriet. “It has a disagreeable
11373
look to me. I must get rid of every thing.--There it goes, and there is
11374
an end, thank Heaven! of Mr. Elton.”
11375
11376
“And when,” thought Emma, “will there be a beginning of Mr. Churchill?”
11377
11378
She had soon afterwards reason to believe that the beginning was already
11379
made, and could not but hope that the gipsy, though she had _told_ no
11380
fortune, might be proved to have made Harriet's.--About a fortnight
11381
after the alarm, they came to a sufficient explanation, and quite
11382
undesignedly. Emma was not thinking of it at the moment, which made the
11383
information she received more valuable. She merely said, in the course
11384
of some trivial chat, “Well, Harriet, whenever you marry I would advise
11385
you to do so and so”--and thought no more of it, till after a minute's
11386
silence she heard Harriet say in a very serious tone, “I shall never
11387
marry.”
11388
11389
Emma then looked up, and immediately saw how it was; and after a
11390
moment's debate, as to whether it should pass unnoticed or not, replied,
11391
11392
“Never marry!--This is a new resolution.”
11393
11394
“It is one that I shall never change, however.”
11395
11396
After another short hesitation, “I hope it does not proceed from--I hope
11397
it is not in compliment to Mr. Elton?”
11398
11399
“Mr. Elton indeed!” cried Harriet indignantly.--“Oh! no”--and Emma could
11400
just catch the words, “so superior to Mr. Elton!”
11401
11402
She then took a longer time for consideration. Should she proceed no
11403
farther?--should she let it pass, and seem to suspect nothing?--Perhaps
11404
Harriet might think her cold or angry if she did; or perhaps if she were
11405
totally silent, it might only drive Harriet into asking her to hear too
11406
much; and against any thing like such an unreserve as had been, such
11407
an open and frequent discussion of hopes and chances, she was perfectly
11408
resolved.--She believed it would be wiser for her to say and know at
11409
once, all that she meant to say and know. Plain dealing was always
11410
best. She had previously determined how far she would proceed, on any
11411
application of the sort; and it would be safer for both, to have the
11412
judicious law of her own brain laid down with speed.--She was decided,
11413
and thus spoke--
11414
11415
“Harriet, I will not affect to be in doubt of your meaning. Your
11416
resolution, or rather your expectation of never marrying, results from
11417
an idea that the person whom you might prefer, would be too greatly your
11418
superior in situation to think of you. Is not it so?”
11419
11420
“Oh! Miss Woodhouse, believe me I have not the presumption to suppose--
11421
Indeed I am not so mad.--But it is a pleasure to me to admire him at a
11422
distance--and to think of his infinite superiority to all the rest of
11423
the world, with the gratitude, wonder, and veneration, which are so
11424
proper, in me especially.”
11425
11426
“I am not at all surprized at you, Harriet. The service he rendered you
11427
was enough to warm your heart.”
11428
11429
“Service! oh! it was such an inexpressible obligation!--The very
11430
recollection of it, and all that I felt at the time--when I saw him
11431
coming--his noble look--and my wretchedness before. Such a change! In
11432
one moment such a change! From perfect misery to perfect happiness!”
11433
11434
“It is very natural. It is natural, and it is honourable.--Yes,
11435
honourable, I think, to chuse so well and so gratefully.--But that
11436
it will be a fortunate preference is more than I can promise. I do not
11437
advise you to give way to it, Harriet. I do not by any means engage
11438
for its being returned. Consider what you are about. Perhaps it will be
11439
wisest in you to check your feelings while you can: at any rate do not
11440
let them carry you far, unless you are persuaded of his liking you. Be
11441
observant of him. Let his behaviour be the guide of your sensations. I
11442
give you this caution now, because I shall never speak to you again on
11443
the subject. I am determined against all interference. Henceforward I
11444
know nothing of the matter. Let no name ever pass our lips. We were very
11445
wrong before; we will be cautious now.--He is your superior, no doubt,
11446
and there do seem objections and obstacles of a very serious nature; but
11447
yet, Harriet, more wonderful things have taken place, there have been
11448
matches of greater disparity. But take care of yourself. I would not
11449
have you too sanguine; though, however it may end, be assured your
11450
raising your thoughts to _him_, is a mark of good taste which I shall
11451
always know how to value.”
11452
11453
Harriet kissed her hand in silent and submissive gratitude. Emma was
11454
very decided in thinking such an attachment no bad thing for her friend.
11455
Its tendency would be to raise and refine her mind--and it must be
11456
saving her from the danger of degradation.
11457
11458
11459
11460
CHAPTER V
11461
11462
11463
In this state of schemes, and hopes, and connivance, June opened upon
11464
Hartfield. To Highbury in general it brought no material change. The
11465
Eltons were still talking of a visit from the Sucklings, and of the use
11466
to be made of their barouche-landau; and Jane Fairfax was still at her
11467
grandmother's; and as the return of the Campbells from Ireland was again
11468
delayed, and August, instead of Midsummer, fixed for it, she was likely
11469
to remain there full two months longer, provided at least she were able
11470
to defeat Mrs. Elton's activity in her service, and save herself from
11471
being hurried into a delightful situation against her will.
11472
11473
Mr. Knightley, who, for some reason best known to himself, had certainly
11474
taken an early dislike to Frank Churchill, was only growing to dislike
11475
him more. He began to suspect him of some double dealing in his pursuit
11476
of Emma. That Emma was his object appeared indisputable. Every thing
11477
declared it; his own attentions, his father's hints, his mother-in-law's
11478
guarded silence; it was all in unison; words, conduct, discretion, and
11479
indiscretion, told the same story. But while so many were devoting him
11480
to Emma, and Emma herself making him over to Harriet, Mr. Knightley
11481
began to suspect him of some inclination to trifle with Jane Fairfax. He
11482
could not understand it; but there were symptoms of intelligence between
11483
them--he thought so at least--symptoms of admiration on his side, which,
11484
having once observed, he could not persuade himself to think entirely
11485
void of meaning, however he might wish to escape any of Emma's errors
11486
of imagination. _She_ was not present when the suspicion first arose.
11487
He was dining with the Randalls family, and Jane, at the Eltons'; and he
11488
had seen a look, more than a single look, at Miss Fairfax, which, from
11489
the admirer of Miss Woodhouse, seemed somewhat out of place. When he was
11490
again in their company, he could not help remembering what he had seen;
11491
nor could he avoid observations which, unless it were like Cowper and
11492
his fire at twilight,
11493
11494
“Myself creating what I saw,”
11495
11496
brought him yet stronger suspicion of there being a something of private
11497
liking, of private understanding even, between Frank Churchill and Jane.
11498
11499
He had walked up one day after dinner, as he very often did, to spend
11500
his evening at Hartfield. Emma and Harriet were going to walk; he joined
11501
them; and, on returning, they fell in with a larger party, who, like
11502
themselves, judged it wisest to take their exercise early, as the
11503
weather threatened rain; Mr. and Mrs. Weston and their son, Miss Bates
11504
and her niece, who had accidentally met. They all united; and, on
11505
reaching Hartfield gates, Emma, who knew it was exactly the sort of
11506
visiting that would be welcome to her father, pressed them all to go in
11507
and drink tea with him. The Randalls party agreed to it immediately; and
11508
after a pretty long speech from Miss Bates, which few persons listened
11509
to, she also found it possible to accept dear Miss Woodhouse's most
11510
obliging invitation.
11511
11512
As they were turning into the grounds, Mr. Perry passed by on horseback.
11513
The gentlemen spoke of his horse.
11514
11515
“By the bye,” said Frank Churchill to Mrs. Weston presently, “what
11516
became of Mr. Perry's plan of setting up his carriage?”
11517
11518
Mrs. Weston looked surprized, and said, “I did not know that he ever had
11519
any such plan.”
11520
11521
“Nay, I had it from you. You wrote me word of it three months ago.”
11522
11523
“Me! impossible!”
11524
11525
“Indeed you did. I remember it perfectly. You mentioned it as what
11526
was certainly to be very soon. Mrs. Perry had told somebody, and was
11527
extremely happy about it. It was owing to _her_ persuasion, as she
11528
thought his being out in bad weather did him a great deal of harm. You
11529
must remember it now?”
11530
11531
“Upon my word I never heard of it till this moment.”
11532
11533
“Never! really, never!--Bless me! how could it be?--Then I must have
11534
dreamt it--but I was completely persuaded--Miss Smith, you walk as if
11535
you were tired. You will not be sorry to find yourself at home.”
11536
11537
“What is this?--What is this?” cried Mr. Weston, “about Perry and a
11538
carriage? Is Perry going to set up his carriage, Frank? I am glad he can
11539
afford it. You had it from himself, had you?”
11540
11541
“No, sir,” replied his son, laughing, “I seem to have had it from
11542
nobody.--Very odd!--I really was persuaded of Mrs. Weston's having
11543
mentioned it in one of her letters to Enscombe, many weeks ago, with all
11544
these particulars--but as she declares she never heard a syllable of
11545
it before, of course it must have been a dream. I am a great dreamer.
11546
I dream of every body at Highbury when I am away--and when I have gone
11547
through my particular friends, then I begin dreaming of Mr. and Mrs.
11548
Perry.”
11549
11550
“It is odd though,” observed his father, “that you should have had such
11551
a regular connected dream about people whom it was not very likely you
11552
should be thinking of at Enscombe. Perry's setting up his carriage! and
11553
his wife's persuading him to it, out of care for his health--just
11554
what will happen, I have no doubt, some time or other; only a little
11555
premature. What an air of probability sometimes runs through a dream!
11556
And at others, what a heap of absurdities it is! Well, Frank, your dream
11557
certainly shews that Highbury is in your thoughts when you are absent.
11558
Emma, you are a great dreamer, I think?”
11559
11560
Emma was out of hearing. She had hurried on before her guests to
11561
prepare her father for their appearance, and was beyond the reach of Mr.
11562
Weston's hint.
11563
11564
“Why, to own the truth,” cried Miss Bates, who had been trying in vain
11565
to be heard the last two minutes, “if I must speak on this subject,
11566
there is no denying that Mr. Frank Churchill might have--I do not mean
11567
to say that he did not dream it--I am sure I have sometimes the oddest
11568
dreams in the world--but if I am questioned about it, I must acknowledge
11569
that there was such an idea last spring; for Mrs. Perry herself
11570
mentioned it to my mother, and the Coles knew of it as well as
11571
ourselves--but it was quite a secret, known to nobody else, and only
11572
thought of about three days. Mrs. Perry was very anxious that he should
11573
have a carriage, and came to my mother in great spirits one morning
11574
because she thought she had prevailed. Jane, don't you remember
11575
grandmama's telling us of it when we got home? I forget where we
11576
had been walking to--very likely to Randalls; yes, I think it was to
11577
Randalls. Mrs. Perry was always particularly fond of my mother--indeed
11578
I do not know who is not--and she had mentioned it to her in confidence;
11579
she had no objection to her telling us, of course, but it was not to go
11580
beyond: and, from that day to this, I never mentioned it to a soul that
11581
I know of. At the same time, I will not positively answer for my having
11582
never dropt a hint, because I know I do sometimes pop out a thing before
11583
I am aware. I am a talker, you know; I am rather a talker; and now and
11584
then I have let a thing escape me which I should not. I am not like
11585
Jane; I wish I were. I will answer for it _she_ never betrayed the least
11586
thing in the world. Where is she?--Oh! just behind. Perfectly remember
11587
Mrs. Perry's coming.--Extraordinary dream, indeed!”
11588
11589
They were entering the hall. Mr. Knightley's eyes had preceded Miss
11590
Bates's in a glance at Jane. From Frank Churchill's face, where
11591
he thought he saw confusion suppressed or laughed away, he had
11592
involuntarily turned to hers; but she was indeed behind, and too busy
11593
with her shawl. Mr. Weston had walked in. The two other gentlemen waited
11594
at the door to let her pass. Mr. Knightley suspected in Frank
11595
Churchill the determination of catching her eye--he seemed watching her
11596
intently--in vain, however, if it were so--Jane passed between them
11597
into the hall, and looked at neither.
11598
11599
There was no time for farther remark or explanation. The dream must be
11600
borne with, and Mr. Knightley must take his seat with the rest round the
11601
large modern circular table which Emma had introduced at Hartfield, and
11602
which none but Emma could have had power to place there and persuade her
11603
father to use, instead of the small-sized Pembroke, on which two of his
11604
daily meals had, for forty years been crowded. Tea passed pleasantly,
11605
and nobody seemed in a hurry to move.
11606
11607
“Miss Woodhouse,” said Frank Churchill, after examining a table behind
11608
him, which he could reach as he sat, “have your nephews taken away their
11609
alphabets--their box of letters? It used to stand here. Where is it?
11610
This is a sort of dull-looking evening, that ought to be treated rather
11611
as winter than summer. We had great amusement with those letters one
11612
morning. I want to puzzle you again.”
11613
11614
Emma was pleased with the thought; and producing the box, the table
11615
was quickly scattered over with alphabets, which no one seemed so much
11616
disposed to employ as their two selves. They were rapidly forming words
11617
for each other, or for any body else who would be puzzled. The quietness
11618
of the game made it particularly eligible for Mr. Woodhouse, who had
11619
often been distressed by the more animated sort, which Mr. Weston had
11620
occasionally introduced, and who now sat happily occupied in lamenting,
11621
with tender melancholy, over the departure of the “poor little boys,”
11622
or in fondly pointing out, as he took up any stray letter near him, how
11623
beautifully Emma had written it.
11624
11625
Frank Churchill placed a word before Miss Fairfax. She gave a slight
11626
glance round the table, and applied herself to it. Frank was next to
11627
Emma, Jane opposite to them--and Mr. Knightley so placed as to see them
11628
all; and it was his object to see as much as he could, with as little
11629
apparent observation. The word was discovered, and with a faint smile
11630
pushed away. If meant to be immediately mixed with the others, and
11631
buried from sight, she should have looked on the table instead of
11632
looking just across, for it was not mixed; and Harriet, eager after
11633
every fresh word, and finding out none, directly took it up, and fell to
11634
work. She was sitting by Mr. Knightley, and turned to him for help. The
11635
word was _blunder_; and as Harriet exultingly proclaimed it, there was a
11636
blush on Jane's cheek which gave it a meaning not otherwise ostensible.
11637
Mr. Knightley connected it with the dream; but how it could all be,
11638
was beyond his comprehension. How the delicacy, the discretion of his
11639
favourite could have been so lain asleep! He feared there must be some
11640
decided involvement. Disingenuousness and double dealing seemed to meet
11641
him at every turn. These letters were but the vehicle for gallantry and
11642
trick. It was a child's play, chosen to conceal a deeper game on Frank
11643
Churchill's part.
11644
11645
With great indignation did he continue to observe him; with great alarm
11646
and distrust, to observe also his two blinded companions. He saw a short
11647
word prepared for Emma, and given to her with a look sly and demure. He
11648
saw that Emma had soon made it out, and found it highly entertaining,
11649
though it was something which she judged it proper to appear to censure;
11650
for she said, “Nonsense! for shame!” He heard Frank Churchill next say,
11651
with a glance towards Jane, “I will give it to her--shall I?”--and as
11652
clearly heard Emma opposing it with eager laughing warmth. “No, no, you
11653
must not; you shall not, indeed.”
11654
11655
It was done however. This gallant young man, who seemed to love without
11656
feeling, and to recommend himself without complaisance, directly handed
11657
over the word to Miss Fairfax, and with a particular degree of sedate
11658
civility entreated her to study it. Mr. Knightley's excessive curiosity
11659
to know what this word might be, made him seize every possible moment
11660
for darting his eye towards it, and it was not long before he saw it
11661
to be _Dixon_. Jane Fairfax's perception seemed to accompany his;
11662
her comprehension was certainly more equal to the covert meaning,
11663
the superior intelligence, of those five letters so arranged. She was
11664
evidently displeased; looked up, and seeing herself watched, blushed
11665
more deeply than he had ever perceived her, and saying only, “I did not
11666
know that proper names were allowed,” pushed away the letters with even
11667
an angry spirit, and looked resolved to be engaged by no other word
11668
that could be offered. Her face was averted from those who had made the
11669
attack, and turned towards her aunt.
11670
11671
“Aye, very true, my dear,” cried the latter, though Jane had not spoken
11672
a word--“I was just going to say the same thing. It is time for us to be
11673
going indeed. The evening is closing in, and grandmama will be looking
11674
for us. My dear sir, you are too obliging. We really must wish you good
11675
night.”
11676
11677
Jane's alertness in moving, proved her as ready as her aunt had
11678
preconceived. She was immediately up, and wanting to quit the table; but
11679
so many were also moving, that she could not get away; and Mr. Knightley
11680
thought he saw another collection of letters anxiously pushed towards
11681
her, and resolutely swept away by her unexamined. She was afterwards
11682
looking for her shawl--Frank Churchill was looking also--it was growing
11683
dusk, and the room was in confusion; and how they parted, Mr. Knightley
11684
could not tell.
11685
11686
He remained at Hartfield after all the rest, his thoughts full of
11687
what he had seen; so full, that when the candles came to assist his
11688
observations, he must--yes, he certainly must, as a friend--an anxious
11689
friend--give Emma some hint, ask her some question. He could not see her
11690
in a situation of such danger, without trying to preserve her. It was
11691
his duty.
11692
11693
“Pray, Emma,” said he, “may I ask in what lay the great amusement, the
11694
poignant sting of the last word given to you and Miss Fairfax? I saw the
11695
word, and am curious to know how it could be so very entertaining to the
11696
one, and so very distressing to the other.”
11697
11698
Emma was extremely confused. She could not endure to give him the true
11699
explanation; for though her suspicions were by no means removed, she was
11700
really ashamed of having ever imparted them.
11701
11702
“Oh!” she cried in evident embarrassment, “it all meant nothing; a mere
11703
joke among ourselves.”
11704
11705
“The joke,” he replied gravely, “seemed confined to you and Mr.
11706
Churchill.”
11707
11708
He had hoped she would speak again, but she did not. She would rather
11709
busy herself about any thing than speak. He sat a little while in
11710
doubt. A variety of evils crossed his mind. Interference--fruitless
11711
interference. Emma's confusion, and the acknowledged intimacy, seemed to
11712
declare her affection engaged. Yet he would speak. He owed it to her,
11713
to risk any thing that might be involved in an unwelcome interference,
11714
rather than her welfare; to encounter any thing, rather than the
11715
remembrance of neglect in such a cause.
11716
11717
“My dear Emma,” said he at last, with earnest kindness, “do you
11718
think you perfectly understand the degree of acquaintance between the
11719
gentleman and lady we have been speaking of?”
11720
11721
“Between Mr. Frank Churchill and Miss Fairfax? Oh! yes, perfectly.--Why
11722
do you make a doubt of it?”
11723
11724
“Have you never at any time had reason to think that he admired her, or
11725
that she admired him?”
11726
11727
“Never, never!” she cried with a most open eagerness--“Never, for the
11728
twentieth part of a moment, did such an idea occur to me. And how could
11729
it possibly come into your head?”
11730
11731
“I have lately imagined that I saw symptoms of attachment between
11732
them--certain expressive looks, which I did not believe meant to be
11733
public.”
11734
11735
“Oh! you amuse me excessively. I am delighted to find that you can
11736
vouchsafe to let your imagination wander--but it will not do--very sorry
11737
to check you in your first essay--but indeed it will not do. There is no
11738
admiration between them, I do assure you; and the appearances which
11739
have caught you, have arisen from some peculiar circumstances--feelings
11740
rather of a totally different nature--it is impossible exactly to
11741
explain:--there is a good deal of nonsense in it--but the part which is
11742
capable of being communicated, which is sense, is, that they are as far
11743
from any attachment or admiration for one another, as any two beings in
11744
the world can be. That is, I _presume_ it to be so on her side, and I
11745
can _answer_ for its being so on his. I will answer for the gentleman's
11746
indifference.”
11747
11748
She spoke with a confidence which staggered, with a satisfaction
11749
which silenced, Mr. Knightley. She was in gay spirits, and would have
11750
prolonged the conversation, wanting to hear the particulars of his
11751
suspicions, every look described, and all the wheres and hows of a
11752
circumstance which highly entertained her: but his gaiety did not meet
11753
hers. He found he could not be useful, and his feelings were too much
11754
irritated for talking. That he might not be irritated into an absolute
11755
fever, by the fire which Mr. Woodhouse's tender habits required almost
11756
every evening throughout the year, he soon afterwards took a hasty
11757
leave, and walked home to the coolness and solitude of Donwell Abbey.
11758
11759
11760
11761
CHAPTER VI
11762
11763
11764
After being long fed with hopes of a speedy visit from Mr. and Mrs.
11765
Suckling, the Highbury world were obliged to endure the mortification
11766
of hearing that they could not possibly come till the autumn. No such
11767
importation of novelties could enrich their intellectual stores at
11768
present. In the daily interchange of news, they must be again restricted
11769
to the other topics with which for a while the Sucklings' coming had
11770
been united, such as the last accounts of Mrs. Churchill, whose health
11771
seemed every day to supply a different report, and the situation of Mrs.
11772
Weston, whose happiness it was to be hoped might eventually be as much
11773
increased by the arrival of a child, as that of all her neighbours was
11774
by the approach of it.
11775
11776
Mrs. Elton was very much disappointed. It was the delay of a great deal
11777
of pleasure and parade. Her introductions and recommendations must all
11778
wait, and every projected party be still only talked of. So she thought
11779
at first;--but a little consideration convinced her that every thing
11780
need not be put off. Why should not they explore to Box Hill though
11781
the Sucklings did not come? They could go there again with them in the
11782
autumn. It was settled that they should go to Box Hill. That there was
11783
to be such a party had been long generally known: it had even given the
11784
idea of another. Emma had never been to Box Hill; she wished to see what
11785
every body found so well worth seeing, and she and Mr. Weston had agreed
11786
to chuse some fine morning and drive thither. Two or three more of the
11787
chosen only were to be admitted to join them, and it was to be done in a
11788
quiet, unpretending, elegant way, infinitely superior to the bustle and
11789
preparation, the regular eating and drinking, and picnic parade of the
11790
Eltons and the Sucklings.
11791
11792
This was so very well understood between them, that Emma could not but
11793
feel some surprise, and a little displeasure, on hearing from Mr. Weston
11794
that he had been proposing to Mrs. Elton, as her brother and sister had
11795
failed her, that the two parties should unite, and go together; and that
11796
as Mrs. Elton had very readily acceded to it, so it was to be, if she
11797
had no objection. Now, as her objection was nothing but her very great
11798
dislike of Mrs. Elton, of which Mr. Weston must already be perfectly
11799
aware, it was not worth bringing forward again:--it could not be done
11800
without a reproof to him, which would be giving pain to his wife; and
11801
she found herself therefore obliged to consent to an arrangement which
11802
she would have done a great deal to avoid; an arrangement which would
11803
probably expose her even to the degradation of being said to be of Mrs.
11804
Elton's party! Every feeling was offended; and the forbearance of her
11805
outward submission left a heavy arrear due of secret severity in her
11806
reflections on the unmanageable goodwill of Mr. Weston's temper.
11807
11808
“I am glad you approve of what I have done,” said he very comfortably.
11809
“But I thought you would. Such schemes as these are nothing without
11810
numbers. One cannot have too large a party. A large party secures its
11811
own amusement. And she is a good-natured woman after all. One could not
11812
leave her out.”
11813
11814
Emma denied none of it aloud, and agreed to none of it in private.
11815
11816
It was now the middle of June, and the weather fine; and Mrs. Elton
11817
was growing impatient to name the day, and settle with Mr. Weston as to
11818
pigeon-pies and cold lamb, when a lame carriage-horse threw every thing
11819
into sad uncertainty. It might be weeks, it might be only a few days,
11820
before the horse were useable; but no preparations could be ventured
11821
on, and it was all melancholy stagnation. Mrs. Elton's resources were
11822
inadequate to such an attack.
11823
11824
“Is not this most vexatious, Knightley?” she cried.--“And such weather
11825
for exploring!--These delays and disappointments are quite odious. What
11826
are we to do?--The year will wear away at this rate, and nothing
11827
done. Before this time last year I assure you we had had a delightful
11828
exploring party from Maple Grove to Kings Weston.”
11829
11830
“You had better explore to Donwell,” replied Mr. Knightley. “That may
11831
be done without horses. Come, and eat my strawberries. They are ripening
11832
fast.”
11833
11834
If Mr. Knightley did not begin seriously, he was obliged to proceed so,
11835
for his proposal was caught at with delight; and the “Oh! I should like
11836
it of all things,” was not plainer in words than manner. Donwell was
11837
famous for its strawberry-beds, which seemed a plea for the invitation:
11838
but no plea was necessary; cabbage-beds would have been enough to tempt
11839
the lady, who only wanted to be going somewhere. She promised him again
11840
and again to come--much oftener than he doubted--and was extremely
11841
gratified by such a proof of intimacy, such a distinguishing compliment
11842
as she chose to consider it.
11843
11844
“You may depend upon me,” said she. “I certainly will come. Name your
11845
day, and I will come. You will allow me to bring Jane Fairfax?”
11846
11847
“I cannot name a day,” said he, “till I have spoken to some others whom
11848
I would wish to meet you.”
11849
11850
“Oh! leave all that to me. Only give me a carte-blanche.--I am Lady
11851
Patroness, you know. It is my party. I will bring friends with me.”
11852
11853
“I hope you will bring Elton,” said he: “but I will not trouble you to
11854
give any other invitations.”
11855
11856
“Oh! now you are looking very sly. But consider--you need not be afraid
11857
of delegating power to _me_. I am no young lady on her preferment.
11858
Married women, you know, may be safely authorised. It is my party. Leave
11859
it all to me. I will invite your guests.”
11860
11861
“No,”--he calmly replied,--“there is but one married woman in the world
11862
whom I can ever allow to invite what guests she pleases to Donwell, and
11863
that one is--”
11864
11865
“--Mrs. Weston, I suppose,” interrupted Mrs. Elton, rather mortified.
11866
11867
“No--Mrs. Knightley;--and till she is in being, I will manage such
11868
matters myself.”
11869
11870
“Ah! you are an odd creature!” she cried, satisfied to have no one
11871
preferred to herself.--“You are a humourist, and may say what you
11872
like. Quite a humourist. Well, I shall bring Jane with me--Jane and her
11873
aunt.--The rest I leave to you. I have no objections at all to meeting
11874
the Hartfield family. Don't scruple. I know you are attached to them.”
11875
11876
“You certainly will meet them if I can prevail; and I shall call on Miss
11877
Bates in my way home.”
11878
11879
“That's quite unnecessary; I see Jane every day:--but as you like. It
11880
is to be a morning scheme, you know, Knightley; quite a simple thing. I
11881
shall wear a large bonnet, and bring one of my little baskets hanging
11882
on my arm. Here,--probably this basket with pink ribbon. Nothing can be
11883
more simple, you see. And Jane will have such another. There is to be
11884
no form or parade--a sort of gipsy party. We are to walk about
11885
your gardens, and gather the strawberries ourselves, and sit under
11886
trees;--and whatever else you may like to provide, it is to be all out
11887
of doors--a table spread in the shade, you know. Every thing as natural
11888
and simple as possible. Is not that your idea?”
11889
11890
“Not quite. My idea of the simple and the natural will be to have
11891
the table spread in the dining-room. The nature and the simplicity of
11892
gentlemen and ladies, with their servants and furniture, I think is
11893
best observed by meals within doors. When you are tired of eating
11894
strawberries in the garden, there shall be cold meat in the house.”
11895
11896
“Well--as you please; only don't have a great set out. And, by the bye,
11897
can I or my housekeeper be of any use to you with our opinion?--Pray be
11898
sincere, Knightley. If you wish me to talk to Mrs. Hodges, or to inspect
11899
anything--”
11900
11901
“I have not the least wish for it, I thank you.”
11902
11903
“Well--but if any difficulties should arise, my housekeeper is extremely
11904
clever.”
11905
11906
“I will answer for it, that mine thinks herself full as clever, and
11907
would spurn any body's assistance.”
11908
11909
“I wish we had a donkey. The thing would be for us all to come on
11910
donkeys, Jane, Miss Bates, and me--and my caro sposo walking by. I
11911
really must talk to him about purchasing a donkey. In a country life
11912
I conceive it to be a sort of necessary; for, let a woman have ever
11913
so many resources, it is not possible for her to be always shut up at
11914
home;--and very long walks, you know--in summer there is dust, and in
11915
winter there is dirt.”
11916
11917
“You will not find either, between Donwell and Highbury. Donwell Lane is
11918
never dusty, and now it is perfectly dry. Come on a donkey, however, if
11919
you prefer it. You can borrow Mrs. Cole's. I would wish every thing to
11920
be as much to your taste as possible.”
11921
11922
“That I am sure you would. Indeed I do you justice, my good friend.
11923
Under that peculiar sort of dry, blunt manner, I know you have the
11924
warmest heart. As I tell Mr. E., you are a thorough humourist.--Yes,
11925
believe me, Knightley, I am fully sensible of your attention to me in
11926
the whole of this scheme. You have hit upon the very thing to please
11927
me.”
11928
11929
Mr. Knightley had another reason for avoiding a table in the shade. He
11930
wished to persuade Mr. Woodhouse, as well as Emma, to join the party;
11931
and he knew that to have any of them sitting down out of doors to
11932
eat would inevitably make him ill. Mr. Woodhouse must not, under the
11933
specious pretence of a morning drive, and an hour or two spent at
11934
Donwell, be tempted away to his misery.
11935
11936
He was invited on good faith. No lurking horrors were to upbraid him for
11937
his easy credulity. He did consent. He had not been at Donwell for two
11938
years. “Some very fine morning, he, and Emma, and Harriet, could go
11939
very well; and he could sit still with Mrs. Weston, while the dear girls
11940
walked about the gardens. He did not suppose they could be damp now,
11941
in the middle of the day. He should like to see the old house again
11942
exceedingly, and should be very happy to meet Mr. and Mrs. Elton, and
11943
any other of his neighbours.--He could not see any objection at all to
11944
his, and Emma's, and Harriet's going there some very fine morning. He
11945
thought it very well done of Mr. Knightley to invite them--very kind
11946
and sensible--much cleverer than dining out.--He was not fond of dining
11947
out.”
11948
11949
Mr. Knightley was fortunate in every body's most ready concurrence. The
11950
invitation was everywhere so well received, that it seemed as if, like
11951
Mrs. Elton, they were all taking the scheme as a particular compliment
11952
to themselves.--Emma and Harriet professed very high expectations of
11953
pleasure from it; and Mr. Weston, unasked, promised to get Frank over to
11954
join them, if possible; a proof of approbation and gratitude which could
11955
have been dispensed with.--Mr. Knightley was then obliged to say that
11956
he should be glad to see him; and Mr. Weston engaged to lose no time in
11957
writing, and spare no arguments to induce him to come.
11958
11959
In the meanwhile the lame horse recovered so fast, that the party to
11960
Box Hill was again under happy consideration; and at last Donwell was
11961
settled for one day, and Box Hill for the next,--the weather appearing
11962
exactly right.
11963
11964
Under a bright mid-day sun, at almost Midsummer, Mr. Woodhouse was
11965
safely conveyed in his carriage, with one window down, to partake of
11966
this al-fresco party; and in one of the most comfortable rooms in the
11967
Abbey, especially prepared for him by a fire all the morning, he was
11968
happily placed, quite at his ease, ready to talk with pleasure of what
11969
had been achieved, and advise every body to come and sit down, and not
11970
to heat themselves.--Mrs. Weston, who seemed to have walked there on
11971
purpose to be tired, and sit all the time with him, remained, when
11972
all the others were invited or persuaded out, his patient listener and
11973
sympathiser.
11974
11975
It was so long since Emma had been at the Abbey, that as soon as she was
11976
satisfied of her father's comfort, she was glad to leave him, and look
11977
around her; eager to refresh and correct her memory with more particular
11978
observation, more exact understanding of a house and grounds which must
11979
ever be so interesting to her and all her family.
11980
11981
She felt all the honest pride and complacency which her alliance with
11982
the present and future proprietor could fairly warrant, as she viewed
11983
the respectable size and style of the building, its suitable, becoming,
11984
characteristic situation, low and sheltered--its ample gardens
11985
stretching down to meadows washed by a stream, of which the Abbey, with
11986
all the old neglect of prospect, had scarcely a sight--and its abundance
11987
of timber in rows and avenues, which neither fashion nor extravagance
11988
had rooted up.--The house was larger than Hartfield, and totally unlike
11989
it, covering a good deal of ground, rambling and irregular, with many
11990
comfortable, and one or two handsome rooms.--It was just what it ought
11991
to be, and it looked what it was--and Emma felt an increasing respect
11992
for it, as the residence of a family of such true gentility, untainted
11993
in blood and understanding.--Some faults of temper John Knightley had;
11994
but Isabella had connected herself unexceptionably. She had given them
11995
neither men, nor names, nor places, that could raise a blush. These were
11996
pleasant feelings, and she walked about and indulged them till it
11997
was necessary to do as the others did, and collect round the
11998
strawberry-beds.--The whole party were assembled, excepting Frank
11999
Churchill, who was expected every moment from Richmond; and Mrs. Elton,
12000
in all her apparatus of happiness, her large bonnet and her basket,
12001
was very ready to lead the way in gathering, accepting, or
12002
talking--strawberries, and only strawberries, could now be thought or
12003
spoken of.--“The best fruit in England--every body's favourite--always
12004
wholesome.--These the finest beds and finest sorts.--Delightful to
12005
gather for one's self--the only way of really enjoying them.--Morning
12006
decidedly the best time--never tired--every sort good--hautboy
12007
infinitely superior--no comparison--the others hardly eatable--hautboys
12008
very scarce--Chili preferred--white wood finest flavour of all--price
12009
of strawberries in London--abundance about Bristol--Maple
12010
Grove--cultivation--beds when to be renewed--gardeners thinking exactly
12011
different--no general rule--gardeners never to be put out of their
12012
way--delicious fruit--only too rich to be eaten much of--inferior
12013
to cherries--currants more refreshing--only objection to gathering
12014
strawberries the stooping--glaring sun--tired to death--could bear it no
12015
longer--must go and sit in the shade.”
12016
12017
Such, for half an hour, was the conversation--interrupted only once by
12018
Mrs. Weston, who came out, in her solicitude after her son-in-law, to
12019
inquire if he were come--and she was a little uneasy.--She had some
12020
fears of his horse.
12021
12022
Seats tolerably in the shade were found; and now Emma was obliged
12023
to overhear what Mrs. Elton and Jane Fairfax were talking of.--A
12024
situation, a most desirable situation, was in question. Mrs. Elton had
12025
received notice of it that morning, and was in raptures. It was not
12026
with Mrs. Suckling, it was not with Mrs. Bragge, but in felicity and
12027
splendour it fell short only of them: it was with a cousin of Mrs.
12028
Bragge, an acquaintance of Mrs. Suckling, a lady known at Maple Grove.
12029
Delightful, charming, superior, first circles, spheres, lines, ranks,
12030
every thing--and Mrs. Elton was wild to have the offer closed with
12031
immediately.--On her side, all was warmth, energy, and triumph--and she
12032
positively refused to take her friend's negative, though Miss Fairfax
12033
continued to assure her that she would not at present engage in any
12034
thing, repeating the same motives which she had been heard to urge
12035
before.--Still Mrs. Elton insisted on being authorised to write an
12036
acquiescence by the morrow's post.--How Jane could bear it at all, was
12037
astonishing to Emma.--She did look vexed, she did speak pointedly--and
12038
at last, with a decision of action unusual to her, proposed a
12039
removal.--“Should not they walk? Would not Mr. Knightley shew them the
12040
gardens--all the gardens?--She wished to see the whole extent.”--The
12041
pertinacity of her friend seemed more than she could bear.
12042
12043
It was hot; and after walking some time over the gardens in a scattered,
12044
dispersed way, scarcely any three together, they insensibly followed one
12045
another to the delicious shade of a broad short avenue of limes, which
12046
stretching beyond the garden at an equal distance from the river, seemed
12047
the finish of the pleasure grounds.--It led to nothing; nothing but a
12048
view at the end over a low stone wall with high pillars, which seemed
12049
intended, in their erection, to give the appearance of an approach to
12050
the house, which never had been there. Disputable, however, as might be
12051
the taste of such a termination, it was in itself a charming walk, and
12052
the view which closed it extremely pretty.--The considerable slope, at
12053
nearly the foot of which the Abbey stood, gradually acquired a steeper
12054
form beyond its grounds; and at half a mile distant was a bank of
12055
considerable abruptness and grandeur, well clothed with wood;--and at
12056
the bottom of this bank, favourably placed and sheltered, rose the
12057
Abbey Mill Farm, with meadows in front, and the river making a close and
12058
handsome curve around it.
12059
12060
It was a sweet view--sweet to the eye and the mind. English verdure,
12061
English culture, English comfort, seen under a sun bright, without being
12062
oppressive.
12063
12064
In this walk Emma and Mr. Weston found all the others assembled; and
12065
towards this view she immediately perceived Mr. Knightley and Harriet
12066
distinct from the rest, quietly leading the way. Mr. Knightley and
12067
Harriet!--It was an odd tete-a-tete; but she was glad to see it.--There
12068
had been a time when he would have scorned her as a companion, and
12069
turned from her with little ceremony. Now they seemed in pleasant
12070
conversation. There had been a time also when Emma would have been sorry
12071
to see Harriet in a spot so favourable for the Abbey Mill Farm; but now
12072
she feared it not. It might be safely viewed with all its appendages of
12073
prosperity and beauty, its rich pastures, spreading flocks, orchard in
12074
blossom, and light column of smoke ascending.--She joined them at the
12075
wall, and found them more engaged in talking than in looking around. He
12076
was giving Harriet information as to modes of agriculture, etc. and Emma
12077
received a smile which seemed to say, “These are my own concerns. I have
12078
a right to talk on such subjects, without being suspected of
12079
introducing Robert Martin.”--She did not suspect him. It was too old
12080
a story.--Robert Martin had probably ceased to think of Harriet.--They
12081
took a few turns together along the walk.--The shade was most
12082
refreshing, and Emma found it the pleasantest part of the day.
12083
12084
The next remove was to the house; they must all go in and eat;--and they
12085
were all seated and busy, and still Frank Churchill did not come. Mrs.
12086
Weston looked, and looked in vain. His father would not own himself
12087
uneasy, and laughed at her fears; but she could not be cured of wishing
12088
that he would part with his black mare. He had expressed himself as to
12089
coming, with more than common certainty. “His aunt was so much better,
12090
that he had not a doubt of getting over to them.”--Mrs. Churchill's
12091
state, however, as many were ready to remind her, was liable to such
12092
sudden variation as might disappoint her nephew in the most reasonable
12093
dependence--and Mrs. Weston was at last persuaded to believe, or to say,
12094
that it must be by some attack of Mrs. Churchill that he was
12095
prevented coming.--Emma looked at Harriet while the point was under
12096
consideration; she behaved very well, and betrayed no emotion.
12097
12098
The cold repast was over, and the party were to go out once more to see
12099
what had not yet been seen, the old Abbey fish-ponds; perhaps get as far
12100
as the clover, which was to be begun cutting on the morrow, or, at
12101
any rate, have the pleasure of being hot, and growing cool again.--Mr.
12102
Woodhouse, who had already taken his little round in the highest part
12103
of the gardens, where no damps from the river were imagined even by him,
12104
stirred no more; and his daughter resolved to remain with him, that
12105
Mrs. Weston might be persuaded away by her husband to the exercise and
12106
variety which her spirits seemed to need.
12107
12108
Mr. Knightley had done all in his power for Mr. Woodhouse's
12109
entertainment. Books of engravings, drawers of medals, cameos, corals,
12110
shells, and every other family collection within his cabinets, had been
12111
prepared for his old friend, to while away the morning; and the kindness
12112
had perfectly answered. Mr. Woodhouse had been exceedingly well amused.
12113
Mrs. Weston had been shewing them all to him, and now he would shew them
12114
all to Emma;--fortunate in having no other resemblance to a child, than
12115
in a total want of taste for what he saw, for he was slow, constant, and
12116
methodical.--Before this second looking over was begun, however, Emma
12117
walked into the hall for the sake of a few moments' free observation of
12118
the entrance and ground-plot of the house--and was hardly there, when
12119
Jane Fairfax appeared, coming quickly in from the garden, and with a
12120
look of escape.--Little expecting to meet Miss Woodhouse so soon, there
12121
was a start at first; but Miss Woodhouse was the very person she was in
12122
quest of.
12123
12124
“Will you be so kind,” said she, “when I am missed, as to say that I am
12125
gone home?--I am going this moment.--My aunt is not aware how late it
12126
is, nor how long we have been absent--but I am sure we shall be wanted,
12127
and I am determined to go directly.--I have said nothing about it to any
12128
body. It would only be giving trouble and distress. Some are gone to the
12129
ponds, and some to the lime walk. Till they all come in I shall not be
12130
missed; and when they do, will you have the goodness to say that I am
12131
gone?”
12132
12133
“Certainly, if you wish it;--but you are not going to walk to Highbury
12134
alone?”
12135
12136
“Yes--what should hurt me?--I walk fast. I shall be at home in twenty
12137
minutes.”
12138
12139
“But it is too far, indeed it is, to be walking quite alone. Let my
12140
father's servant go with you.--Let me order the carriage. It can be
12141
round in five minutes.”
12142
12143
“Thank you, thank you--but on no account.--I would rather walk.--And
12144
for _me_ to be afraid of walking alone!--I, who may so soon have to
12145
guard others!”
12146
12147
She spoke with great agitation; and Emma very feelingly replied, “That
12148
can be no reason for your being exposed to danger now. I must order the
12149
carriage. The heat even would be danger.--You are fatigued already.”
12150
12151
“I am,”--she answered--“I am fatigued; but it is not the sort of
12152
fatigue--quick walking will refresh me.--Miss Woodhouse, we all know
12153
at times what it is to be wearied in spirits. Mine, I confess, are
12154
exhausted. The greatest kindness you can shew me, will be to let me have
12155
my own way, and only say that I am gone when it is necessary.”
12156
12157
Emma had not another word to oppose. She saw it all; and entering into
12158
her feelings, promoted her quitting the house immediately, and
12159
watched her safely off with the zeal of a friend. Her parting look was
12160
grateful--and her parting words, “Oh! Miss Woodhouse, the comfort of
12161
being sometimes alone!”--seemed to burst from an overcharged heart, and
12162
to describe somewhat of the continual endurance to be practised by her,
12163
even towards some of those who loved her best.
12164
12165
“Such a home, indeed! such an aunt!” said Emma, as she turned back into
12166
the hall again. “I do pity you. And the more sensibility you betray of
12167
their just horrors, the more I shall like you.”
12168
12169
Jane had not been gone a quarter of an hour, and they had only
12170
accomplished some views of St. Mark's Place, Venice, when Frank
12171
Churchill entered the room. Emma had not been thinking of him, she had
12172
forgotten to think of him--but she was very glad to see him. Mrs. Weston
12173
would be at ease. The black mare was blameless; _they_ were right
12174
who had named Mrs. Churchill as the cause. He had been detained by
12175
a temporary increase of illness in her; a nervous seizure, which had
12176
lasted some hours--and he had quite given up every thought of coming,
12177
till very late;--and had he known how hot a ride he should have, and
12178
how late, with all his hurry, he must be, he believed he should not have
12179
come at all. The heat was excessive; he had never suffered any thing
12180
like it--almost wished he had staid at home--nothing killed him
12181
like heat--he could bear any degree of cold, etc., but heat was
12182
intolerable--and he sat down, at the greatest possible distance from the
12183
slight remains of Mr. Woodhouse's fire, looking very deplorable.
12184
12185
“You will soon be cooler, if you sit still,” said Emma.
12186
12187
“As soon as I am cooler I shall go back again. I could very ill be
12188
spared--but such a point had been made of my coming! You will all be
12189
going soon I suppose; the whole party breaking up. I met _one_ as I
12190
came--Madness in such weather!--absolute madness!”
12191
12192
Emma listened, and looked, and soon perceived that Frank Churchill's
12193
state might be best defined by the expressive phrase of being out of
12194
humour. Some people were always cross when they were hot. Such might be
12195
his constitution; and as she knew that eating and drinking were often
12196
the cure of such incidental complaints, she recommended his taking
12197
some refreshment; he would find abundance of every thing in the
12198
dining-room--and she humanely pointed out the door.
12199
12200
“No--he should not eat. He was not hungry; it would only make him
12201
hotter.” In two minutes, however, he relented in his own favour; and
12202
muttering something about spruce-beer, walked off. Emma returned all her
12203
attention to her father, saying in secret--
12204
12205
“I am glad I have done being in love with him. I should not like a man
12206
who is so soon discomposed by a hot morning. Harriet's sweet easy temper
12207
will not mind it.”
12208
12209
He was gone long enough to have had a very comfortable meal, and came
12210
back all the better--grown quite cool--and, with good manners, like
12211
himself--able to draw a chair close to them, take an interest in their
12212
employment; and regret, in a reasonable way, that he should be so late.
12213
He was not in his best spirits, but seemed trying to improve them; and,
12214
at last, made himself talk nonsense very agreeably. They were looking
12215
over views in Swisserland.
12216
12217
“As soon as my aunt gets well, I shall go abroad,” said he. “I shall
12218
never be easy till I have seen some of these places. You will have my
12219
sketches, some time or other, to look at--or my tour to read--or my
12220
poem. I shall do something to expose myself.”
12221
12222
“That may be--but not by sketches in Swisserland. You will never go to
12223
Swisserland. Your uncle and aunt will never allow you to leave England.”
12224
12225
“They may be induced to go too. A warm climate may be prescribed for
12226
her. I have more than half an expectation of our all going abroad. I
12227
assure you I have. I feel a strong persuasion, this morning, that I
12228
shall soon be abroad. I ought to travel. I am tired of doing nothing. I
12229
want a change. I am serious, Miss Woodhouse, whatever your penetrating
12230
eyes may fancy--I am sick of England--and would leave it to-morrow, if
12231
I could.”
12232
12233
“You are sick of prosperity and indulgence. Cannot you invent a few
12234
hardships for yourself, and be contented to stay?”
12235
12236
“_I_ sick of prosperity and indulgence! You are quite mistaken. I do
12237
not look upon myself as either prosperous or indulged. I am thwarted
12238
in every thing material. I do not consider myself at all a fortunate
12239
person.”
12240
12241
“You are not quite so miserable, though, as when you first came. Go and
12242
eat and drink a little more, and you will do very well. Another slice of
12243
cold meat, another draught of Madeira and water, will make you nearly on
12244
a par with the rest of us.”
12245
12246
“No--I shall not stir. I shall sit by you. You are my best cure.”
12247
12248
“We are going to Box Hill to-morrow;--you will join us. It is not
12249
Swisserland, but it will be something for a young man so much in want of
12250
a change. You will stay, and go with us?”
12251
12252
“No, certainly not; I shall go home in the cool of the evening.”
12253
12254
“But you may come again in the cool of to-morrow morning.”
12255
12256
“No--It will not be worth while. If I come, I shall be cross.”
12257
12258
“Then pray stay at Richmond.”
12259
12260
“But if I do, I shall be crosser still. I can never bear to think of you
12261
all there without me.”
12262
12263
“These are difficulties which you must settle for yourself. Chuse your
12264
own degree of crossness. I shall press you no more.”
12265
12266
The rest of the party were now returning, and all were soon collected.
12267
With some there was great joy at the sight of Frank Churchill; others
12268
took it very composedly; but there was a very general distress and
12269
disturbance on Miss Fairfax's disappearance being explained. That it was
12270
time for every body to go, concluded the subject; and with a short final
12271
arrangement for the next day's scheme, they parted. Frank Churchill's
12272
little inclination to exclude himself increased so much, that his last
12273
words to Emma were,
12274
12275
“Well;--if _you_ wish me to stay and join the party, I will.”
12276
12277
She smiled her acceptance; and nothing less than a summons from Richmond
12278
was to take him back before the following evening.
12279
12280
12281
12282
CHAPTER VII
12283
12284
12285
They had a very fine day for Box Hill; and all the other outward
12286
circumstances of arrangement, accommodation, and punctuality, were in
12287
favour of a pleasant party. Mr. Weston directed the whole, officiating
12288
safely between Hartfield and the Vicarage, and every body was in good
12289
time. Emma and Harriet went together; Miss Bates and her niece, with
12290
the Eltons; the gentlemen on horseback. Mrs. Weston remained with Mr.
12291
Woodhouse. Nothing was wanting but to be happy when they got there.
12292
Seven miles were travelled in expectation of enjoyment, and every body
12293
had a burst of admiration on first arriving; but in the general amount
12294
of the day there was deficiency. There was a languor, a want of spirits,
12295
a want of union, which could not be got over. They separated too much
12296
into parties. The Eltons walked together; Mr. Knightley took charge of
12297
Miss Bates and Jane; and Emma and Harriet belonged to Frank Churchill.
12298
And Mr. Weston tried, in vain, to make them harmonise better. It seemed
12299
at first an accidental division, but it never materially varied. Mr. and
12300
Mrs. Elton, indeed, shewed no unwillingness to mix, and be as agreeable
12301
as they could; but during the two whole hours that were spent on the
12302
hill, there seemed a principle of separation, between the other parties,
12303
too strong for any fine prospects, or any cold collation, or any
12304
cheerful Mr. Weston, to remove.
12305
12306
At first it was downright dulness to Emma. She had never seen Frank
12307
Churchill so silent and stupid. He said nothing worth hearing--looked
12308
without seeing--admired without intelligence--listened without knowing
12309
what she said. While he was so dull, it was no wonder that Harriet
12310
should be dull likewise; and they were both insufferable.
12311
12312
When they all sat down it was better; to her taste a great deal better,
12313
for Frank Churchill grew talkative and gay, making her his first object.
12314
Every distinguishing attention that could be paid, was paid to her.
12315
To amuse her, and be agreeable in her eyes, seemed all that he cared
12316
for--and Emma, glad to be enlivened, not sorry to be flattered, was gay
12317
and easy too, and gave him all the friendly encouragement, the admission
12318
to be gallant, which she had ever given in the first and most animating
12319
period of their acquaintance; but which now, in her own estimation,
12320
meant nothing, though in the judgment of most people looking on it must
12321
have had such an appearance as no English word but flirtation could very
12322
well describe. “Mr. Frank Churchill and Miss Woodhouse flirted together
12323
excessively.” They were laying themselves open to that very phrase--and
12324
to having it sent off in a letter to Maple Grove by one lady, to
12325
Ireland by another. Not that Emma was gay and thoughtless from any
12326
real felicity; it was rather because she felt less happy than she had
12327
expected. She laughed because she was disappointed; and though she liked
12328
him for his attentions, and thought them all, whether in friendship,
12329
admiration, or playfulness, extremely judicious, they were not winning
12330
back her heart. She still intended him for her friend.
12331
12332
“How much I am obliged to you,” said he, “for telling me to come
12333
to-day!--If it had not been for you, I should certainly have lost all
12334
the happiness of this party. I had quite determined to go away again.”
12335
12336
“Yes, you were very cross; and I do not know what about, except that you
12337
were too late for the best strawberries. I was a kinder friend than you
12338
deserved. But you were humble. You begged hard to be commanded to come.”
12339
12340
“Don't say I was cross. I was fatigued. The heat overcame me.”
12341
12342
“It is hotter to-day.”
12343
12344
“Not to my feelings. I am perfectly comfortable to-day.”
12345
12346
“You are comfortable because you are under command.”
12347
12348
“Your command?--Yes.”
12349
12350
“Perhaps I intended you to say so, but I meant self-command. You had,
12351
somehow or other, broken bounds yesterday, and run away from your own
12352
management; but to-day you are got back again--and as I cannot be always
12353
with you, it is best to believe your temper under your own command
12354
rather than mine.”
12355
12356
“It comes to the same thing. I can have no self-command without a
12357
motive. You order me, whether you speak or not. And you can be always
12358
with me. You are always with me.”
12359
12360
“Dating from three o'clock yesterday. My perpetual influence could not
12361
begin earlier, or you would not have been so much out of humour before.”
12362
12363
“Three o'clock yesterday! That is your date. I thought I had seen you
12364
first in February.”
12365
12366
“Your gallantry is really unanswerable. But (lowering her voice)--nobody
12367
speaks except ourselves, and it is rather too much to be talking
12368
nonsense for the entertainment of seven silent people.”
12369
12370
“I say nothing of which I am ashamed,” replied he, with lively
12371
impudence. “I saw you first in February. Let every body on the Hill
12372
hear me if they can. Let my accents swell to Mickleham on one side,
12373
and Dorking on the other. I saw you first in February.” And then
12374
whispering--“Our companions are excessively stupid. What shall we do
12375
to rouse them? Any nonsense will serve. They _shall_ talk. Ladies
12376
and gentlemen, I am ordered by Miss Woodhouse (who, wherever she is,
12377
presides) to say, that she desires to know what you are all thinking
12378
of?”
12379
12380
Some laughed, and answered good-humouredly. Miss Bates said a great
12381
deal; Mrs. Elton swelled at the idea of Miss Woodhouse's presiding; Mr.
12382
Knightley's answer was the most distinct.
12383
12384
“Is Miss Woodhouse sure that she would like to hear what we are all
12385
thinking of?”
12386
12387
“Oh! no, no”--cried Emma, laughing as carelessly as she could--“Upon no
12388
account in the world. It is the very last thing I would stand the brunt
12389
of just now. Let me hear any thing rather than what you are all thinking
12390
of. I will not say quite all. There are one or two, perhaps, (glancing
12391
at Mr. Weston and Harriet,) whose thoughts I might not be afraid of
12392
knowing.”
12393
12394
“It is a sort of thing,” cried Mrs. Elton emphatically, “which _I_
12395
should not have thought myself privileged to inquire into. Though,
12396
perhaps, as the _Chaperon_ of the party--_I_ never was in any
12397
circle--exploring parties--young ladies--married women--”
12398
12399
Her mutterings were chiefly to her husband; and he murmured, in reply,
12400
12401
“Very true, my love, very true. Exactly so, indeed--quite unheard
12402
of--but some ladies say any thing. Better pass it off as a joke. Every
12403
body knows what is due to _you_.”
12404
12405
“It will not do,” whispered Frank to Emma; “they are most of them
12406
affronted. I will attack them with more address. Ladies and gentlemen--I
12407
am ordered by Miss Woodhouse to say, that she waives her right of
12408
knowing exactly what you may all be thinking of, and only requires
12409
something very entertaining from each of you, in a general way. Here
12410
are seven of you, besides myself, (who, she is pleased to say, am very
12411
entertaining already,) and she only demands from each of you either one
12412
thing very clever, be it prose or verse, original or repeated--or two
12413
things moderately clever--or three things very dull indeed, and she
12414
engages to laugh heartily at them all.”
12415
12416
“Oh! very well,” exclaimed Miss Bates, “then I need not be uneasy.
12417
'Three things very dull indeed.' That will just do for me, you know. I
12418
shall be sure to say three dull things as soon as ever I open my mouth,
12419
shan't I? (looking round with the most good-humoured dependence on every
12420
body's assent)--Do not you all think I shall?”
12421
12422
Emma could not resist.
12423
12424
“Ah! ma'am, but there may be a difficulty. Pardon me--but you will be
12425
limited as to number--only three at once.”
12426
12427
Miss Bates, deceived by the mock ceremony of her manner, did not
12428
immediately catch her meaning; but, when it burst on her, it could not
12429
anger, though a slight blush shewed that it could pain her.
12430
12431
“Ah!--well--to be sure. Yes, I see what she means, (turning to Mr.
12432
Knightley,) and I will try to hold my tongue. I must make myself very
12433
disagreeable, or she would not have said such a thing to an old friend.”
12434
12435
“I like your plan,” cried Mr. Weston. “Agreed, agreed. I will do my
12436
best. I am making a conundrum. How will a conundrum reckon?”
12437
12438
“Low, I am afraid, sir, very low,” answered his son;--“but we shall be
12439
indulgent--especially to any one who leads the way.”
12440
12441
“No, no,” said Emma, “it will not reckon low. A conundrum of Mr.
12442
Weston's shall clear him and his next neighbour. Come, sir, pray let me
12443
hear it.”
12444
12445
“I doubt its being very clever myself,” said Mr. Weston. “It is too much
12446
a matter of fact, but here it is.--What two letters of the alphabet are
12447
there, that express perfection?”
12448
12449
“What two letters!--express perfection! I am sure I do not know.”
12450
12451
“Ah! you will never guess. You, (to Emma), I am certain, will never
12452
guess.--I will tell you.--M. and A.--Em-ma.--Do you understand?”
12453
12454
Understanding and gratification came together. It might be a very
12455
indifferent piece of wit, but Emma found a great deal to laugh at and
12456
enjoy in it--and so did Frank and Harriet.--It did not seem to touch
12457
the rest of the party equally; some looked very stupid about it, and Mr.
12458
Knightley gravely said,
12459
12460
“This explains the sort of clever thing that is wanted, and Mr. Weston
12461
has done very well for himself; but he must have knocked up every body
12462
else. _Perfection_ should not have come quite so soon.”
12463
12464
“Oh! for myself, I protest I must be excused,” said Mrs. Elton; “_I_
12465
really cannot attempt--I am not at all fond of the sort of thing. I had
12466
an acrostic once sent to me upon my own name, which I was not at all
12467
pleased with. I knew who it came from. An abominable puppy!--You know
12468
who I mean (nodding to her husband). These kind of things are very
12469
well at Christmas, when one is sitting round the fire; but quite out of
12470
place, in my opinion, when one is exploring about the country in summer.
12471
Miss Woodhouse must excuse me. I am not one of those who have witty
12472
things at every body's service. I do not pretend to be a wit. I have a
12473
great deal of vivacity in my own way, but I really must be allowed to
12474
judge when to speak and when to hold my tongue. Pass us, if you please,
12475
Mr. Churchill. Pass Mr. E., Knightley, Jane, and myself. We have nothing
12476
clever to say--not one of us.
12477
12478
“Yes, yes, pray pass _me_,” added her husband, with a sort of sneering
12479
consciousness; “_I_ have nothing to say that can entertain Miss
12480
Woodhouse, or any other young lady. An old married man--quite good for
12481
nothing. Shall we walk, Augusta?”
12482
12483
“With all my heart. I am really tired of exploring so long on one spot.
12484
Come, Jane, take my other arm.”
12485
12486
Jane declined it, however, and the husband and wife walked off.
12487
“Happy couple!” said Frank Churchill, as soon as they were out of
12488
hearing:--“How well they suit one another!--Very lucky--marrying as they
12489
did, upon an acquaintance formed only in a public place!--They only knew
12490
each other, I think, a few weeks in Bath! Peculiarly lucky!--for as to
12491
any real knowledge of a person's disposition that Bath, or any public
12492
place, can give--it is all nothing; there can be no knowledge. It is
12493
only by seeing women in their own homes, among their own set, just as
12494
they always are, that you can form any just judgment. Short of that, it
12495
is all guess and luck--and will generally be ill-luck. How many a man
12496
has committed himself on a short acquaintance, and rued it all the rest
12497
of his life!”
12498
12499
Miss Fairfax, who had seldom spoken before, except among her own
12500
confederates, spoke now.
12501
12502
“Such things do occur, undoubtedly.”--She was stopped by a cough. Frank
12503
Churchill turned towards her to listen.
12504
12505
“You were speaking,” said he, gravely. She recovered her voice.
12506
12507
“I was only going to observe, that though such unfortunate circumstances
12508
do sometimes occur both to men and women, I cannot imagine them to be
12509
very frequent. A hasty and imprudent attachment may arise--but there is
12510
generally time to recover from it afterwards. I would be understood to
12511
mean, that it can be only weak, irresolute characters, (whose happiness
12512
must be always at the mercy of chance,) who will suffer an unfortunate
12513
acquaintance to be an inconvenience, an oppression for ever.”
12514
12515
He made no answer; merely looked, and bowed in submission; and soon
12516
afterwards said, in a lively tone,
12517
12518
“Well, I have so little confidence in my own judgment, that whenever I
12519
marry, I hope some body will chuse my wife for me. Will you? (turning to
12520
Emma.) Will you chuse a wife for me?--I am sure I should like any body
12521
fixed on by you. You provide for the family, you know, (with a smile at
12522
his father). Find some body for me. I am in no hurry. Adopt her, educate
12523
her.”
12524
12525
“And make her like myself.”
12526
12527
“By all means, if you can.”
12528
12529
“Very well. I undertake the commission. You shall have a charming wife.”
12530
12531
“She must be very lively, and have hazle eyes. I care for nothing else.
12532
I shall go abroad for a couple of years--and when I return, I shall come
12533
to you for my wife. Remember.”
12534
12535
Emma was in no danger of forgetting. It was a commission to touch every
12536
favourite feeling. Would not Harriet be the very creature described?
12537
Hazle eyes excepted, two years more might make her all that he wished.
12538
He might even have Harriet in his thoughts at the moment; who could say?
12539
Referring the education to her seemed to imply it.
12540
12541
“Now, ma'am,” said Jane to her aunt, “shall we join Mrs. Elton?”
12542
12543
“If you please, my dear. With all my heart. I am quite ready. I was
12544
ready to have gone with her, but this will do just as well. We shall
12545
soon overtake her. There she is--no, that's somebody else. That's one
12546
of the ladies in the Irish car party, not at all like her.--Well, I
12547
declare--”
12548
12549
They walked off, followed in half a minute by Mr. Knightley. Mr. Weston,
12550
his son, Emma, and Harriet, only remained; and the young man's spirits
12551
now rose to a pitch almost unpleasant. Even Emma grew tired at last of
12552
flattery and merriment, and wished herself rather walking quietly about
12553
with any of the others, or sitting almost alone, and quite unattended
12554
to, in tranquil observation of the beautiful views beneath her. The
12555
appearance of the servants looking out for them to give notice of the
12556
carriages was a joyful sight; and even the bustle of collecting and
12557
preparing to depart, and the solicitude of Mrs. Elton to have _her_
12558
carriage first, were gladly endured, in the prospect of the quiet drive
12559
home which was to close the very questionable enjoyments of this day of
12560
pleasure. Such another scheme, composed of so many ill-assorted people,
12561
she hoped never to be betrayed into again.
12562
12563
While waiting for the carriage, she found Mr. Knightley by her side. He
12564
looked around, as if to see that no one were near, and then said,
12565
12566
“Emma, I must once more speak to you as I have been used to do: a
12567
privilege rather endured than allowed, perhaps, but I must still use it.
12568
I cannot see you acting wrong, without a remonstrance. How could you be
12569
so unfeeling to Miss Bates? How could you be so insolent in your wit to
12570
a woman of her character, age, and situation?--Emma, I had not thought
12571
it possible.”
12572
12573
Emma recollected, blushed, was sorry, but tried to laugh it off.
12574
12575
“Nay, how could I help saying what I did?--Nobody could have helped it.
12576
It was not so very bad. I dare say she did not understand me.”
12577
12578
“I assure you she did. She felt your full meaning. She has talked of
12579
it since. I wish you could have heard how she talked of it--with what
12580
candour and generosity. I wish you could have heard her honouring your
12581
forbearance, in being able to pay her such attentions, as she was for
12582
ever receiving from yourself and your father, when her society must be
12583
so irksome.”
12584
12585
“Oh!” cried Emma, “I know there is not a better creature in the world:
12586
but you must allow, that what is good and what is ridiculous are most
12587
unfortunately blended in her.”
12588
12589
“They are blended,” said he, “I acknowledge; and, were she prosperous,
12590
I could allow much for the occasional prevalence of the ridiculous over
12591
the good. Were she a woman of fortune, I would leave every harmless
12592
absurdity to take its chance, I would not quarrel with you for any
12593
liberties of manner. Were she your equal in situation--but, Emma,
12594
consider how far this is from being the case. She is poor; she has sunk
12595
from the comforts she was born to; and, if she live to old age, must
12596
probably sink more. Her situation should secure your compassion. It was
12597
badly done, indeed! You, whom she had known from an infant, whom she had
12598
seen grow up from a period when her notice was an honour, to have you
12599
now, in thoughtless spirits, and the pride of the moment, laugh at her,
12600
humble her--and before her niece, too--and before others, many of whom
12601
(certainly _some_,) would be entirely guided by _your_ treatment
12602
of her.--This is not pleasant to you, Emma--and it is very far from
12603
pleasant to me; but I must, I will,--I will tell you truths while I can;
12604
satisfied with proving myself your friend by very faithful counsel, and
12605
trusting that you will some time or other do me greater justice than you
12606
can do now.”
12607
12608
While they talked, they were advancing towards the carriage; it was
12609
ready; and, before she could speak again, he had handed her in. He had
12610
misinterpreted the feelings which had kept her face averted, and her
12611
tongue motionless. They were combined only of anger against herself,
12612
mortification, and deep concern. She had not been able to speak; and, on
12613
entering the carriage, sunk back for a moment overcome--then reproaching
12614
herself for having taken no leave, making no acknowledgment, parting in
12615
apparent sullenness, she looked out with voice and hand eager to shew a
12616
difference; but it was just too late. He had turned away, and the horses
12617
were in motion. She continued to look back, but in vain; and soon, with
12618
what appeared unusual speed, they were half way down the hill, and
12619
every thing left far behind. She was vexed beyond what could have been
12620
expressed--almost beyond what she could conceal. Never had she felt so
12621
agitated, mortified, grieved, at any circumstance in her life. She was
12622
most forcibly struck. The truth of this representation there was no
12623
denying. She felt it at her heart. How could she have been so brutal,
12624
so cruel to Miss Bates! How could she have exposed herself to such ill
12625
opinion in any one she valued! And how suffer him to leave her without
12626
saying one word of gratitude, of concurrence, of common kindness!
12627
12628
Time did not compose her. As she reflected more, she seemed but to feel
12629
it more. She never had been so depressed. Happily it was not necessary
12630
to speak. There was only Harriet, who seemed not in spirits herself,
12631
fagged, and very willing to be silent; and Emma felt the tears running
12632
down her cheeks almost all the way home, without being at any trouble to
12633
check them, extraordinary as they were.
12634
12635
12636
12637
CHAPTER VIII
12638
12639
12640
The wretchedness of a scheme to Box Hill was in Emma's thoughts all the
12641
evening. How it might be considered by the rest of the party, she could
12642
not tell. They, in their different homes, and their different ways,
12643
might be looking back on it with pleasure; but in her view it was
12644
a morning more completely misspent, more totally bare of rational
12645
satisfaction at the time, and more to be abhorred in recollection, than
12646
any she had ever passed. A whole evening of back-gammon with her father,
12647
was felicity to it. _There_, indeed, lay real pleasure, for there she
12648
was giving up the sweetest hours of the twenty-four to his comfort; and
12649
feeling that, unmerited as might be the degree of his fond affection and
12650
confiding esteem, she could not, in her general conduct, be open to any
12651
severe reproach. As a daughter, she hoped she was not without a heart.
12652
She hoped no one could have said to her, “How could you be so unfeeling
12653
to your father?--I must, I will tell you truths while I can.” Miss
12654
Bates should never again--no, never! If attention, in future, could do
12655
away the past, she might hope to be forgiven. She had been often remiss,
12656
her conscience told her so; remiss, perhaps, more in thought than fact;
12657
scornful, ungracious. But it should be so no more. In the warmth of true
12658
contrition, she would call upon her the very next morning, and it should
12659
be the beginning, on her side, of a regular, equal, kindly intercourse.
12660
12661
She was just as determined when the morrow came, and went early, that
12662
nothing might prevent her. It was not unlikely, she thought, that she
12663
might see Mr. Knightley in her way; or, perhaps, he might come in
12664
while she were paying her visit. She had no objection. She would not be
12665
ashamed of the appearance of the penitence, so justly and truly hers.
12666
Her eyes were towards Donwell as she walked, but she saw him not.
12667
12668
“The ladies were all at home.” She had never rejoiced at the sound
12669
before, nor ever before entered the passage, nor walked up the stairs,
12670
with any wish of giving pleasure, but in conferring obligation, or of
12671
deriving it, except in subsequent ridicule.
12672
12673
There was a bustle on her approach; a good deal of moving and talking.
12674
She heard Miss Bates's voice, something was to be done in a hurry; the
12675
maid looked frightened and awkward; hoped she would be pleased to wait a
12676
moment, and then ushered her in too soon. The aunt and niece seemed both
12677
escaping into the adjoining room. Jane she had a distinct glimpse of,
12678
looking extremely ill; and, before the door had shut them out, she heard
12679
Miss Bates saying, “Well, my dear, I shall _say_ you are laid down upon
12680
the bed, and I am sure you are ill enough.”
12681
12682
Poor old Mrs. Bates, civil and humble as usual, looked as if she did not
12683
quite understand what was going on.
12684
12685
“I am afraid Jane is not very well,” said she, “but I do not know; they
12686
_tell_ me she is well. I dare say my daughter will be here presently,
12687
Miss Woodhouse. I hope you find a chair. I wish Hetty had not gone. I am
12688
very little able--Have you a chair, ma'am? Do you sit where you like? I
12689
am sure she will be here presently.”
12690
12691
Emma seriously hoped she would. She had a moment's fear of Miss Bates
12692
keeping away from her. But Miss Bates soon came--“Very happy and
12693
obliged”--but Emma's conscience told her that there was not the same
12694
cheerful volubility as before--less ease of look and manner. A very
12695
friendly inquiry after Miss Fairfax, she hoped, might lead the way to a
12696
return of old feelings. The touch seemed immediate.
12697
12698
“Ah! Miss Woodhouse, how kind you are!--I suppose you have heard--and
12699
are come to give us joy. This does not seem much like joy, indeed, in
12700
me--(twinkling away a tear or two)--but it will be very trying for us
12701
to part with her, after having had her so long, and she has a dreadful
12702
headache just now, writing all the morning:--such long letters, you
12703
know, to be written to Colonel Campbell, and Mrs. Dixon. 'My dear,' said
12704
I, 'you will blind yourself'--for tears were in her eyes perpetually.
12705
One cannot wonder, one cannot wonder. It is a great change; and though
12706
she is amazingly fortunate--such a situation, I suppose, as no
12707
young woman before ever met with on first going out--do not think us
12708
ungrateful, Miss Woodhouse, for such surprising good fortune--(again
12709
dispersing her tears)--but, poor dear soul! if you were to see what a
12710
headache she has. When one is in great pain, you know one cannot feel
12711
any blessing quite as it may deserve. She is as low as possible. To
12712
look at her, nobody would think how delighted and happy she is to have
12713
secured such a situation. You will excuse her not coming to you--she is
12714
not able--she is gone into her own room--I want her to lie down upon the
12715
bed. 'My dear,' said I, 'I shall say you are laid down upon the bed:'
12716
but, however, she is not; she is walking about the room. But, now that
12717
she has written her letters, she says she shall soon be well. She will
12718
be extremely sorry to miss seeing you, Miss Woodhouse, but your
12719
kindness will excuse her. You were kept waiting at the door--I was quite
12720
ashamed--but somehow there was a little bustle--for it so happened that
12721
we had not heard the knock, and till you were on the stairs, we did not
12722
know any body was coming. 'It is only Mrs. Cole,' said I, 'depend upon
12723
it. Nobody else would come so early.' 'Well,' said she, 'it must be
12724
borne some time or other, and it may as well be now.' But then Patty
12725
came in, and said it was you. 'Oh!' said I, 'it is Miss Woodhouse: I am
12726
sure you will like to see her.'--'I can see nobody,' said she; and
12727
up she got, and would go away; and that was what made us keep you
12728
waiting--and extremely sorry and ashamed we were. 'If you must go, my
12729
dear,' said I, 'you must, and I will say you are laid down upon the
12730
bed.'”
12731
12732
Emma was most sincerely interested. Her heart had been long growing
12733
kinder towards Jane; and this picture of her present sufferings acted
12734
as a cure of every former ungenerous suspicion, and left her nothing but
12735
pity; and the remembrance of the less just and less gentle sensations of
12736
the past, obliged her to admit that Jane might very naturally resolve on
12737
seeing Mrs. Cole or any other steady friend, when she might not bear
12738
to see herself. She spoke as she felt, with earnest regret and
12739
solicitude--sincerely wishing that the circumstances which she collected
12740
from Miss Bates to be now actually determined on, might be as much for
12741
Miss Fairfax's advantage and comfort as possible. “It must be a severe
12742
trial to them all. She had understood it was to be delayed till Colonel
12743
Campbell's return.”
12744
12745
“So very kind!” replied Miss Bates. “But you are always kind.”
12746
12747
There was no bearing such an “always;” and to break through her dreadful
12748
gratitude, Emma made the direct inquiry of--
12749
12750
“Where--may I ask?--is Miss Fairfax going?”
12751
12752
“To a Mrs. Smallridge--charming woman--most superior--to have the charge
12753
of her three little girls--delightful children. Impossible that any
12754
situation could be more replete with comfort; if we except, perhaps,
12755
Mrs. Suckling's own family, and Mrs. Bragge's; but Mrs. Smallridge is
12756
intimate with both, and in the very same neighbourhood:--lives only four
12757
miles from Maple Grove. Jane will be only four miles from Maple Grove.”
12758
12759
“Mrs. Elton, I suppose, has been the person to whom Miss Fairfax owes--”
12760
12761
“Yes, our good Mrs. Elton. The most indefatigable, true friend. She
12762
would not take a denial. She would not let Jane say, 'No;' for when Jane
12763
first heard of it, (it was the day before yesterday, the very morning
12764
we were at Donwell,) when Jane first heard of it, she was quite decided
12765
against accepting the offer, and for the reasons you mention; exactly
12766
as you say, she had made up her mind to close with nothing till Colonel
12767
Campbell's return, and nothing should induce her to enter into any
12768
engagement at present--and so she told Mrs. Elton over and over
12769
again--and I am sure I had no more idea that she would change her
12770
mind!--but that good Mrs. Elton, whose judgment never fails her, saw
12771
farther than I did. It is not every body that would have stood out in
12772
such a kind way as she did, and refuse to take Jane's answer; but she
12773
positively declared she would _not_ write any such denial yesterday, as
12774
Jane wished her; she would wait--and, sure enough, yesterday evening it
12775
was all settled that Jane should go. Quite a surprize to me! I had not
12776
the least idea!--Jane took Mrs. Elton aside, and told her at once, that
12777
upon thinking over the advantages of Mrs. Smallridge's situation, she
12778
had come to the resolution of accepting it.--I did not know a word of it
12779
till it was all settled.”
12780
12781
“You spent the evening with Mrs. Elton?”
12782
12783
“Yes, all of us; Mrs. Elton would have us come. It was settled so, upon
12784
the hill, while we were walking about with Mr. Knightley. 'You _must_
12785
_all_ spend your evening with us,' said she--'I positively must have you
12786
_all_ come.'”
12787
12788
“Mr. Knightley was there too, was he?”
12789
12790
“No, not Mr. Knightley; he declined it from the first; and though I
12791
thought he would come, because Mrs. Elton declared she would not let him
12792
off, he did not;--but my mother, and Jane, and I, were all there, and
12793
a very agreeable evening we had. Such kind friends, you know, Miss
12794
Woodhouse, one must always find agreeable, though every body seemed
12795
rather fagged after the morning's party. Even pleasure, you know, is
12796
fatiguing--and I cannot say that any of them seemed very much to have
12797
enjoyed it. However, _I_ shall always think it a very pleasant party,
12798
and feel extremely obliged to the kind friends who included me in it.”
12799
12800
“Miss Fairfax, I suppose, though you were not aware of it, had been
12801
making up her mind the whole day?”
12802
12803
“I dare say she had.”
12804
12805
“Whenever the time may come, it must be unwelcome to her and all her
12806
friends--but I hope her engagement will have every alleviation that is
12807
possible--I mean, as to the character and manners of the family.”
12808
12809
“Thank you, dear Miss Woodhouse. Yes, indeed, there is every thing
12810
in the world that can make her happy in it. Except the Sucklings and
12811
Bragges, there is not such another nursery establishment, so liberal
12812
and elegant, in all Mrs. Elton's acquaintance. Mrs. Smallridge, a most
12813
delightful woman!--A style of living almost equal to Maple Grove--and as
12814
to the children, except the little Sucklings and little Bragges, there
12815
are not such elegant sweet children anywhere. Jane will be treated with
12816
such regard and kindness!--It will be nothing but pleasure, a life of
12817
pleasure.--And her salary!--I really cannot venture to name her salary
12818
to you, Miss Woodhouse. Even you, used as you are to great sums, would
12819
hardly believe that so much could be given to a young person like Jane.”
12820
12821
“Ah! madam,” cried Emma, “if other children are at all like what I
12822
remember to have been myself, I should think five times the amount of
12823
what I have ever yet heard named as a salary on such occasions, dearly
12824
earned.”
12825
12826
“You are so noble in your ideas!”
12827
12828
“And when is Miss Fairfax to leave you?”
12829
12830
“Very soon, very soon, indeed; that's the worst of it. Within a
12831
fortnight. Mrs. Smallridge is in a great hurry. My poor mother does not
12832
know how to bear it. So then, I try to put it out of her thoughts, and
12833
say, Come ma'am, do not let us think about it any more.”
12834
12835
“Her friends must all be sorry to lose her; and will not Colonel and
12836
Mrs. Campbell be sorry to find that she has engaged herself before their
12837
return?”
12838
12839
“Yes; Jane says she is sure they will; but yet, this is such a situation
12840
as she cannot feel herself justified in declining. I was so astonished
12841
when she first told me what she had been saying to Mrs. Elton, and when
12842
Mrs. Elton at the same moment came congratulating me upon it! It was
12843
before tea--stay--no, it could not be before tea, because we were
12844
just going to cards--and yet it was before tea, because I remember
12845
thinking--Oh! no, now I recollect, now I have it; something happened
12846
before tea, but not that. Mr. Elton was called out of the room before
12847
tea, old John Abdy's son wanted to speak with him. Poor old John, I
12848
have a great regard for him; he was clerk to my poor father twenty-seven
12849
years; and now, poor old man, he is bed-ridden, and very poorly with the
12850
rheumatic gout in his joints--I must go and see him to-day; and so will
12851
Jane, I am sure, if she gets out at all. And poor John's son came to
12852
talk to Mr. Elton about relief from the parish; he is very well to do
12853
himself, you know, being head man at the Crown, ostler, and every thing
12854
of that sort, but still he cannot keep his father without some help;
12855
and so, when Mr. Elton came back, he told us what John ostler had been
12856
telling him, and then it came out about the chaise having been sent to
12857
Randalls to take Mr. Frank Churchill to Richmond. That was what happened
12858
before tea. It was after tea that Jane spoke to Mrs. Elton.”
12859
12860
Miss Bates would hardly give Emma time to say how perfectly new this
12861
circumstance was to her; but as without supposing it possible that she
12862
could be ignorant of any of the particulars of Mr. Frank Churchill's
12863
going, she proceeded to give them all, it was of no consequence.
12864
12865
What Mr. Elton had learned from the ostler on the subject, being the
12866
accumulation of the ostler's own knowledge, and the knowledge of the
12867
servants at Randalls, was, that a messenger had come over from Richmond
12868
soon after the return of the party from Box Hill--which messenger,
12869
however, had been no more than was expected; and that Mr. Churchill had
12870
sent his nephew a few lines, containing, upon the whole, a tolerable
12871
account of Mrs. Churchill, and only wishing him not to delay coming
12872
back beyond the next morning early; but that Mr. Frank Churchill having
12873
resolved to go home directly, without waiting at all, and his horse
12874
seeming to have got a cold, Tom had been sent off immediately for the
12875
Crown chaise, and the ostler had stood out and seen it pass by, the boy
12876
going a good pace, and driving very steady.
12877
12878
There was nothing in all this either to astonish or interest, and it
12879
caught Emma's attention only as it united with the subject which already
12880
engaged her mind. The contrast between Mrs. Churchill's importance in
12881
the world, and Jane Fairfax's, struck her; one was every thing, the
12882
other nothing--and she sat musing on the difference of woman's destiny,
12883
and quite unconscious on what her eyes were fixed, till roused by Miss
12884
Bates's saying,
12885
12886
“Aye, I see what you are thinking of, the pianoforte. What is to become
12887
of that?--Very true. Poor dear Jane was talking of it just now.--'You
12888
must go,' said she. 'You and I must part. You will have no business
12889
here.--Let it stay, however,' said she; 'give it houseroom till Colonel
12890
Campbell comes back. I shall talk about it to him; he will settle for
12891
me; he will help me out of all my difficulties.'--And to this day, I do
12892
believe, she knows not whether it was his present or his daughter's.”
12893
12894
Now Emma was obliged to think of the pianoforte; and the remembrance of
12895
all her former fanciful and unfair conjectures was so little pleasing,
12896
that she soon allowed herself to believe her visit had been long enough;
12897
and, with a repetition of every thing that she could venture to say of
12898
the good wishes which she really felt, took leave.
12899
12900
12901
12902
CHAPTER IX
12903
12904
12905
Emma's pensive meditations, as she walked home, were not interrupted;
12906
but on entering the parlour, she found those who must rouse her. Mr.
12907
Knightley and Harriet had arrived during her absence, and were sitting
12908
with her father.--Mr. Knightley immediately got up, and in a manner
12909
decidedly graver than usual, said,
12910
12911
“I would not go away without seeing you, but I have no time to spare,
12912
and therefore must now be gone directly. I am going to London, to spend
12913
a few days with John and Isabella. Have you any thing to send or say,
12914
besides the 'love,' which nobody carries?”
12915
12916
“Nothing at all. But is not this a sudden scheme?”
12917
12918
“Yes--rather--I have been thinking of it some little time.”
12919
12920
Emma was sure he had not forgiven her; he looked unlike himself. Time,
12921
however, she thought, would tell him that they ought to be friends
12922
again. While he stood, as if meaning to go, but not going--her father
12923
began his inquiries.
12924
12925
“Well, my dear, and did you get there safely?--And how did you find my
12926
worthy old friend and her daughter?--I dare say they must have been very
12927
much obliged to you for coming. Dear Emma has been to call on Mrs.
12928
and Miss Bates, Mr. Knightley, as I told you before. She is always so
12929
attentive to them!”
12930
12931
Emma's colour was heightened by this unjust praise; and with a
12932
smile, and shake of the head, which spoke much, she looked at Mr.
12933
Knightley.--It seemed as if there were an instantaneous impression in
12934
her favour, as if his eyes received the truth from hers, and all that
12935
had passed of good in her feelings were at once caught and honoured.--
12936
He looked at her with a glow of regard. She was warmly gratified--and in
12937
another moment still more so, by a little movement of more than common
12938
friendliness on his part.--He took her hand;--whether she had not
12939
herself made the first motion, she could not say--she might, perhaps,
12940
have rather offered it--but he took her hand, pressed it, and certainly
12941
was on the point of carrying it to his lips--when, from some fancy or
12942
other, he suddenly let it go.--Why he should feel such a scruple, why
12943
he should change his mind when it was all but done, she could not
12944
perceive.--He would have judged better, she thought, if he had not
12945
stopped.--The intention, however, was indubitable; and whether it was
12946
that his manners had in general so little gallantry, or however else it
12947
happened, but she thought nothing became him more.--It was with him,
12948
of so simple, yet so dignified a nature.--She could not but recall the
12949
attempt with great satisfaction. It spoke such perfect amity.--He left
12950
them immediately afterwards--gone in a moment. He always moved with the
12951
alertness of a mind which could neither be undecided nor dilatory, but
12952
now he seemed more sudden than usual in his disappearance.
12953
12954
Emma could not regret her having gone to Miss Bates, but she wished she
12955
had left her ten minutes earlier;--it would have been a great pleasure
12956
to talk over Jane Fairfax's situation with Mr. Knightley.--Neither
12957
would she regret that he should be going to Brunswick Square, for she
12958
knew how much his visit would be enjoyed--but it might have happened
12959
at a better time--and to have had longer notice of it, would have been
12960
pleasanter.--They parted thorough friends, however; she could not
12961
be deceived as to the meaning of his countenance, and his unfinished
12962
gallantry;--it was all done to assure her that she had fully recovered
12963
his good opinion.--He had been sitting with them half an hour, she
12964
found. It was a pity that she had not come back earlier!
12965
12966
In the hope of diverting her father's thoughts from the disagreeableness
12967
of Mr. Knightley's going to London; and going so suddenly; and going on
12968
horseback, which she knew would be all very bad; Emma communicated her
12969
news of Jane Fairfax, and her dependence on the effect was justified;
12970
it supplied a very useful check,--interested, without disturbing him. He
12971
had long made up his mind to Jane Fairfax's going out as governess, and
12972
could talk of it cheerfully, but Mr. Knightley's going to London had
12973
been an unexpected blow.
12974
12975
“I am very glad, indeed, my dear, to hear she is to be so comfortably
12976
settled. Mrs. Elton is very good-natured and agreeable, and I dare say
12977
her acquaintance are just what they ought to be. I hope it is a dry
12978
situation, and that her health will be taken good care of. It ought to
12979
be a first object, as I am sure poor Miss Taylor's always was with me.
12980
You know, my dear, she is going to be to this new lady what Miss Taylor
12981
was to us. And I hope she will be better off in one respect, and not be
12982
induced to go away after it has been her home so long.”
12983
12984
The following day brought news from Richmond to throw every thing else
12985
into the background. An express arrived at Randalls to announce the
12986
death of Mrs. Churchill! Though her nephew had had no particular reason
12987
to hasten back on her account, she had not lived above six-and-thirty
12988
hours after his return. A sudden seizure of a different nature from any
12989
thing foreboded by her general state, had carried her off after a short
12990
struggle. The great Mrs. Churchill was no more.
12991
12992
It was felt as such things must be felt. Every body had a degree of
12993
gravity and sorrow; tenderness towards the departed, solicitude for the
12994
surviving friends; and, in a reasonable time, curiosity to know where
12995
she would be buried. Goldsmith tells us, that when lovely woman stoops
12996
to folly, she has nothing to do but to die; and when she stoops to be
12997
disagreeable, it is equally to be recommended as a clearer of ill-fame.
12998
Mrs. Churchill, after being disliked at least twenty-five years, was
12999
now spoken of with compassionate allowances. In one point she was fully
13000
justified. She had never been admitted before to be seriously ill. The
13001
event acquitted her of all the fancifulness, and all the selfishness of
13002
imaginary complaints.
13003
13004
“Poor Mrs. Churchill! no doubt she had been suffering a great deal:
13005
more than any body had ever supposed--and continual pain would try the
13006
temper. It was a sad event--a great shock--with all her faults, what
13007
would Mr. Churchill do without her? Mr. Churchill's loss would be
13008
dreadful indeed. Mr. Churchill would never get over it.”--Even Mr.
13009
Weston shook his head, and looked solemn, and said, “Ah! poor woman,
13010
who would have thought it!” and resolved, that his mourning should be as
13011
handsome as possible; and his wife sat sighing and moralising over her
13012
broad hems with a commiseration and good sense, true and steady. How it
13013
would affect Frank was among the earliest thoughts of both. It was also
13014
a very early speculation with Emma. The character of Mrs. Churchill,
13015
the grief of her husband--her mind glanced over them both with awe and
13016
compassion--and then rested with lightened feelings on how Frank might
13017
be affected by the event, how benefited, how freed. She saw in a moment
13018
all the possible good. Now, an attachment to Harriet Smith would have
13019
nothing to encounter. Mr. Churchill, independent of his wife, was feared
13020
by nobody; an easy, guidable man, to be persuaded into any thing by his
13021
nephew. All that remained to be wished was, that the nephew should form
13022
the attachment, as, with all her goodwill in the cause, Emma could feel
13023
no certainty of its being already formed.
13024
13025
Harriet behaved extremely well on the occasion, with great self-command.
13026
What ever she might feel of brighter hope, she betrayed nothing. Emma
13027
was gratified, to observe such a proof in her of strengthened character,
13028
and refrained from any allusion that might endanger its maintenance.
13029
They spoke, therefore, of Mrs. Churchill's death with mutual
13030
forbearance.
13031
13032
Short letters from Frank were received at Randalls, communicating all
13033
that was immediately important of their state and plans. Mr. Churchill
13034
was better than could be expected; and their first removal, on the
13035
departure of the funeral for Yorkshire, was to be to the house of a very
13036
old friend in Windsor, to whom Mr. Churchill had been promising a
13037
visit the last ten years. At present, there was nothing to be done for
13038
Harriet; good wishes for the future were all that could yet be possible
13039
on Emma's side.
13040
13041
It was a more pressing concern to shew attention to Jane Fairfax, whose
13042
prospects were closing, while Harriet's opened, and whose engagements
13043
now allowed of no delay in any one at Highbury, who wished to shew her
13044
kindness--and with Emma it was grown into a first wish. She had scarcely
13045
a stronger regret than for her past coldness; and the person, whom she
13046
had been so many months neglecting, was now the very one on whom she
13047
would have lavished every distinction of regard or sympathy. She wanted
13048
to be of use to her; wanted to shew a value for her society, and testify
13049
respect and consideration. She resolved to prevail on her to spend a day
13050
at Hartfield. A note was written to urge it. The invitation was refused,
13051
and by a verbal message. “Miss Fairfax was not well enough to write;”
13052
and when Mr. Perry called at Hartfield, the same morning, it appeared
13053
that she was so much indisposed as to have been visited, though against
13054
her own consent, by himself, and that she was suffering under severe
13055
headaches, and a nervous fever to a degree, which made him doubt the
13056
possibility of her going to Mrs. Smallridge's at the time proposed.
13057
Her health seemed for the moment completely deranged--appetite quite
13058
gone--and though there were no absolutely alarming symptoms, nothing
13059
touching the pulmonary complaint, which was the standing apprehension
13060
of the family, Mr. Perry was uneasy about her. He thought she had
13061
undertaken more than she was equal to, and that she felt it so herself,
13062
though she would not own it. Her spirits seemed overcome. Her
13063
present home, he could not but observe, was unfavourable to a nervous
13064
disorder:--confined always to one room;--he could have wished it
13065
otherwise--and her good aunt, though his very old friend, he must
13066
acknowledge to be not the best companion for an invalid of that
13067
description. Her care and attention could not be questioned; they were,
13068
in fact, only too great. He very much feared that Miss Fairfax derived
13069
more evil than good from them. Emma listened with the warmest concern;
13070
grieved for her more and more, and looked around eager to discover some
13071
way of being useful. To take her--be it only an hour or two--from
13072
her aunt, to give her change of air and scene, and quiet rational
13073
conversation, even for an hour or two, might do her good; and the
13074
following morning she wrote again to say, in the most feeling language
13075
she could command, that she would call for her in the carriage at any
13076
hour that Jane would name--mentioning that she had Mr. Perry's decided
13077
opinion, in favour of such exercise for his patient. The answer was only
13078
in this short note:
13079
13080
“Miss Fairfax's compliments and thanks, but is quite unequal to any
13081
exercise.”
13082
13083
Emma felt that her own note had deserved something better; but it was
13084
impossible to quarrel with words, whose tremulous inequality shewed
13085
indisposition so plainly, and she thought only of how she might best
13086
counteract this unwillingness to be seen or assisted. In spite of the
13087
answer, therefore, she ordered the carriage, and drove to Mrs. Bates's,
13088
in the hope that Jane would be induced to join her--but it would not
13089
do;--Miss Bates came to the carriage door, all gratitude, and agreeing
13090
with her most earnestly in thinking an airing might be of the greatest
13091
service--and every thing that message could do was tried--but all in
13092
vain. Miss Bates was obliged to return without success; Jane was
13093
quite unpersuadable; the mere proposal of going out seemed to make her
13094
worse.--Emma wished she could have seen her, and tried her own powers;
13095
but, almost before she could hint the wish, Miss Bates made it appear
13096
that she had promised her niece on no account to let Miss Woodhouse in.
13097
“Indeed, the truth was, that poor dear Jane could not bear to see any
13098
body--any body at all--Mrs. Elton, indeed, could not be denied--and
13099
Mrs. Cole had made such a point--and Mrs. Perry had said so much--but,
13100
except them, Jane would really see nobody.”
13101
13102
Emma did not want to be classed with the Mrs. Eltons, the Mrs. Perrys,
13103
and the Mrs. Coles, who would force themselves anywhere; neither could
13104
she feel any right of preference herself--she submitted, therefore, and
13105
only questioned Miss Bates farther as to her niece's appetite and diet,
13106
which she longed to be able to assist. On that subject poor Miss Bates
13107
was very unhappy, and very communicative; Jane would hardly eat any
13108
thing:--Mr. Perry recommended nourishing food; but every thing
13109
they could command (and never had any body such good neighbours) was
13110
distasteful.
13111
13112
Emma, on reaching home, called the housekeeper directly, to an
13113
examination of her stores; and some arrowroot of very superior quality
13114
was speedily despatched to Miss Bates with a most friendly note. In half
13115
an hour the arrowroot was returned, with a thousand thanks from Miss
13116
Bates, but “dear Jane would not be satisfied without its being sent
13117
back; it was a thing she could not take--and, moreover, she insisted on
13118
her saying, that she was not at all in want of any thing.”
13119
13120
When Emma afterwards heard that Jane Fairfax had been seen wandering
13121
about the meadows, at some distance from Highbury, on the afternoon of
13122
the very day on which she had, under the plea of being unequal to any
13123
exercise, so peremptorily refused to go out with her in the carriage,
13124
she could have no doubt--putting every thing together--that Jane was
13125
resolved to receive no kindness from _her_. She was sorry, very sorry.
13126
Her heart was grieved for a state which seemed but the more pitiable
13127
from this sort of irritation of spirits, inconsistency of action, and
13128
inequality of powers; and it mortified her that she was given so little
13129
credit for proper feeling, or esteemed so little worthy as a friend: but
13130
she had the consolation of knowing that her intentions were good, and of
13131
being able to say to herself, that could Mr. Knightley have been privy
13132
to all her attempts of assisting Jane Fairfax, could he even have seen
13133
into her heart, he would not, on this occasion, have found any thing to
13134
reprove.
13135
13136
13137
13138
CHAPTER X
13139
13140
13141
One morning, about ten days after Mrs. Churchill's decease, Emma was
13142
called downstairs to Mr. Weston, who “could not stay five minutes,
13143
and wanted particularly to speak with her.”--He met her at the
13144
parlour-door, and hardly asking her how she did, in the natural key of
13145
his voice, sunk it immediately, to say, unheard by her father,
13146
13147
“Can you come to Randalls at any time this morning?--Do, if it be
13148
possible. Mrs. Weston wants to see you. She must see you.”
13149
13150
“Is she unwell?”
13151
13152
“No, no, not at all--only a little agitated. She would have ordered the
13153
carriage, and come to you, but she must see you _alone_, and that you
13154
know--(nodding towards her father)--Humph!--Can you come?”
13155
13156
“Certainly. This moment, if you please. It is impossible to refuse what
13157
you ask in such a way. But what can be the matter?--Is she really not
13158
ill?”
13159
13160
“Depend upon me--but ask no more questions. You will know it all in
13161
time. The most unaccountable business! But hush, hush!”
13162
13163
To guess what all this meant, was impossible even for Emma. Something
13164
really important seemed announced by his looks; but, as her friend was
13165
well, she endeavoured not to be uneasy, and settling it with her father,
13166
that she would take her walk now, she and Mr. Weston were soon out of
13167
the house together and on their way at a quick pace for Randalls.
13168
13169
“Now,”--said Emma, when they were fairly beyond the sweep gates,--“now
13170
Mr. Weston, do let me know what has happened.”
13171
13172
“No, no,”--he gravely replied.--“Don't ask me. I promised my wife to
13173
leave it all to her. She will break it to you better than I can. Do not
13174
be impatient, Emma; it will all come out too soon.”
13175
13176
“Break it to me,” cried Emma, standing still with terror.--“Good
13177
God!--Mr. Weston, tell me at once.--Something has happened in Brunswick
13178
Square. I know it has. Tell me, I charge you tell me this moment what it
13179
is.”
13180
13181
“No, indeed you are mistaken.”--
13182
13183
“Mr. Weston do not trifle with me.--Consider how many of my dearest
13184
friends are now in Brunswick Square. Which of them is it?--I charge you
13185
by all that is sacred, not to attempt concealment.”
13186
13187
“Upon my word, Emma.”--
13188
13189
“Your word!--why not your honour!--why not say upon your honour, that
13190
it has nothing to do with any of them? Good Heavens!--What can be to be
13191
_broke_ to me, that does not relate to one of that family?”
13192
13193
“Upon my honour,” said he very seriously, “it does not. It is not in
13194
the smallest degree connected with any human being of the name of
13195
Knightley.”
13196
13197
Emma's courage returned, and she walked on.
13198
13199
“I was wrong,” he continued, “in talking of its being _broke_ to you.
13200
I should not have used the expression. In fact, it does not concern
13201
you--it concerns only myself,--that is, we hope.--Humph!--In short, my
13202
dear Emma, there is no occasion to be so uneasy about it. I don't
13203
say that it is not a disagreeable business--but things might be much
13204
worse.--If we walk fast, we shall soon be at Randalls.”
13205
13206
Emma found that she must wait; and now it required little effort. She
13207
asked no more questions therefore, merely employed her own fancy, and
13208
that soon pointed out to her the probability of its being some money
13209
concern--something just come to light, of a disagreeable nature in the
13210
circumstances of the family,--something which the late event at Richmond
13211
had brought forward. Her fancy was very active. Half a dozen natural
13212
children, perhaps--and poor Frank cut off!--This, though very
13213
undesirable, would be no matter of agony to her. It inspired little more
13214
than an animating curiosity.
13215
13216
“Who is that gentleman on horseback?” said she, as they
13217
proceeded--speaking more to assist Mr. Weston in keeping his secret,
13218
than with any other view.
13219
13220
“I do not know.--One of the Otways.--Not Frank;--it is not Frank, I
13221
assure you. You will not see him. He is half way to Windsor by this
13222
time.”
13223
13224
“Has your son been with you, then?”
13225
13226
“Oh! yes--did not you know?--Well, well, never mind.”
13227
13228
For a moment he was silent; and then added, in a tone much more guarded
13229
and demure,
13230
13231
“Yes, Frank came over this morning, just to ask us how we did.”
13232
13233
They hurried on, and were speedily at Randalls.--“Well, my dear,” said
13234
he, as they entered the room--“I have brought her, and now I hope you
13235
will soon be better. I shall leave you together. There is no use in
13236
delay. I shall not be far off, if you want me.”--And Emma distinctly
13237
heard him add, in a lower tone, before he quitted the room,--“I have
13238
been as good as my word. She has not the least idea.”
13239
13240
Mrs. Weston was looking so ill, and had an air of so much perturbation,
13241
that Emma's uneasiness increased; and the moment they were alone, she
13242
eagerly said,
13243
13244
“What is it my dear friend? Something of a very unpleasant nature, I
13245
find, has occurred;--do let me know directly what it is. I have been
13246
walking all this way in complete suspense. We both abhor suspense.
13247
Do not let mine continue longer. It will do you good to speak of your
13248
distress, whatever it may be.”
13249
13250
“Have you indeed no idea?” said Mrs. Weston in a trembling voice.
13251
“Cannot you, my dear Emma--cannot you form a guess as to what you are to
13252
hear?”
13253
13254
“So far as that it relates to Mr. Frank Churchill, I do guess.”
13255
13256
“You are right. It does relate to him, and I will tell you directly;”
13257
(resuming her work, and seeming resolved against looking up.) “He has
13258
been here this very morning, on a most extraordinary errand. It is
13259
impossible to express our surprize. He came to speak to his father on a
13260
subject,--to announce an attachment--”
13261
13262
She stopped to breathe. Emma thought first of herself, and then of
13263
Harriet.
13264
13265
“More than an attachment, indeed,” resumed Mrs. Weston; “an
13266
engagement--a positive engagement.--What will you say, Emma--what will
13267
any body say, when it is known that Frank Churchill and Miss Fairfax are
13268
engaged;--nay, that they have been long engaged!”
13269
13270
Emma even jumped with surprize;--and, horror-struck, exclaimed,
13271
13272
“Jane Fairfax!--Good God! You are not serious? You do not mean it?”
13273
13274
“You may well be amazed,” returned Mrs. Weston, still averting her eyes,
13275
and talking on with eagerness, that Emma might have time to recover--
13276
“You may well be amazed. But it is even so. There has been a solemn
13277
engagement between them ever since October--formed at Weymouth, and
13278
kept a secret from every body. Not a creature knowing it but
13279
themselves--neither the Campbells, nor her family, nor his.--It is so
13280
wonderful, that though perfectly convinced of the fact, it is yet almost
13281
incredible to myself. I can hardly believe it.--I thought I knew him.”
13282
13283
Emma scarcely heard what was said.--Her mind was divided between two
13284
ideas--her own former conversations with him about Miss Fairfax; and
13285
poor Harriet;--and for some time she could only exclaim, and require
13286
confirmation, repeated confirmation.
13287
13288
“Well,” said she at last, trying to recover herself; “this is a
13289
circumstance which I must think of at least half a day, before I can at
13290
all comprehend it. What!--engaged to her all the winter--before either
13291
of them came to Highbury?”
13292
13293
“Engaged since October,--secretly engaged.--It has hurt me, Emma, very
13294
much. It has hurt his father equally. _Some_ _part_ of his conduct we
13295
cannot excuse.”
13296
13297
Emma pondered a moment, and then replied, “I will not pretend _not_ to
13298
understand you; and to give you all the relief in my power, be assured
13299
that no such effect has followed his attentions to me, as you are
13300
apprehensive of.”
13301
13302
Mrs. Weston looked up, afraid to believe; but Emma's countenance was as
13303
steady as her words.
13304
13305
“That you may have less difficulty in believing this boast, of my
13306
present perfect indifference,” she continued, “I will farther tell you,
13307
that there was a period in the early part of our acquaintance, when I
13308
did like him, when I was very much disposed to be attached to him--nay,
13309
was attached--and how it came to cease, is perhaps the wonder.
13310
Fortunately, however, it did cease. I have really for some time past,
13311
for at least these three months, cared nothing about him. You may
13312
believe me, Mrs. Weston. This is the simple truth.”
13313
13314
Mrs. Weston kissed her with tears of joy; and when she could find
13315
utterance, assured her, that this protestation had done her more good
13316
than any thing else in the world could do.
13317
13318
“Mr. Weston will be almost as much relieved as myself,” said she. “On
13319
this point we have been wretched. It was our darling wish that you
13320
might be attached to each other--and we were persuaded that it was so.--
13321
Imagine what we have been feeling on your account.”
13322
13323
“I have escaped; and that I should escape, may be a matter of grateful
13324
wonder to you and myself. But this does not acquit _him_, Mrs. Weston;
13325
and I must say, that I think him greatly to blame. What right had he
13326
to come among us with affection and faith engaged, and with manners
13327
so _very_ disengaged? What right had he to endeavour to please, as
13328
he certainly did--to distinguish any one young woman with persevering
13329
attention, as he certainly did--while he really belonged to
13330
another?--How could he tell what mischief he might be doing?--How could
13331
he tell that he might not be making me in love with him?--very wrong,
13332
very wrong indeed.”
13333
13334
“From something that he said, my dear Emma, I rather imagine--”
13335
13336
“And how could _she_ bear such behaviour! Composure with a witness!
13337
to look on, while repeated attentions were offering to another woman,
13338
before her face, and not resent it.--That is a degree of placidity,
13339
which I can neither comprehend nor respect.”
13340
13341
“There were misunderstandings between them, Emma; he said so expressly.
13342
He had not time to enter into much explanation. He was here only a
13343
quarter of an hour, and in a state of agitation which did not allow
13344
the full use even of the time he could stay--but that there had been
13345
misunderstandings he decidedly said. The present crisis, indeed,
13346
seemed to be brought on by them; and those misunderstandings might very
13347
possibly arise from the impropriety of his conduct.”
13348
13349
“Impropriety! Oh! Mrs. Weston--it is too calm a censure. Much, much
13350
beyond impropriety!--It has sunk him, I cannot say how it has sunk him
13351
in my opinion. So unlike what a man should be!--None of that upright
13352
integrity, that strict adherence to truth and principle, that disdain of
13353
trick and littleness, which a man should display in every transaction of
13354
his life.”
13355
13356
“Nay, dear Emma, now I must take his part; for though he has been wrong
13357
in this instance, I have known him long enough to answer for his having
13358
many, very many, good qualities; and--”
13359
13360
“Good God!” cried Emma, not attending to her.--“Mrs. Smallridge, too!
13361
Jane actually on the point of going as governess! What could he mean by
13362
such horrible indelicacy? To suffer her to engage herself--to suffer her
13363
even to think of such a measure!”
13364
13365
“He knew nothing about it, Emma. On this article I can fully acquit
13366
him. It was a private resolution of hers, not communicated to him--or at
13367
least not communicated in a way to carry conviction.--Till yesterday, I
13368
know he said he was in the dark as to her plans. They burst on him, I do
13369
not know how, but by some letter or message--and it was the discovery of
13370
what she was doing, of this very project of hers, which determined him
13371
to come forward at once, own it all to his uncle, throw himself on
13372
his kindness, and, in short, put an end to the miserable state of
13373
concealment that had been carrying on so long.”
13374
13375
Emma began to listen better.
13376
13377
“I am to hear from him soon,” continued Mrs. Weston. “He told me at
13378
parting, that he should soon write; and he spoke in a manner which
13379
seemed to promise me many particulars that could not be given now. Let
13380
us wait, therefore, for this letter. It may bring many extenuations. It
13381
may make many things intelligible and excusable which now are not to
13382
be understood. Don't let us be severe, don't let us be in a hurry to
13383
condemn him. Let us have patience. I must love him; and now that I am
13384
satisfied on one point, the one material point, I am sincerely anxious
13385
for its all turning out well, and ready to hope that it may. They must
13386
both have suffered a great deal under such a system of secresy and
13387
concealment.”
13388
13389
“_His_ sufferings,” replied Emma dryly, “do not appear to have done him
13390
much harm. Well, and how did Mr. Churchill take it?”
13391
13392
“Most favourably for his nephew--gave his consent with scarcely a
13393
difficulty. Conceive what the events of a week have done in that family!
13394
While poor Mrs. Churchill lived, I suppose there could not have been a
13395
hope, a chance, a possibility;--but scarcely are her remains at rest in
13396
the family vault, than her husband is persuaded to act exactly opposite
13397
to what she would have required. What a blessing it is, when undue
13398
influence does not survive the grave!--He gave his consent with very
13399
little persuasion.”
13400
13401
“Ah!” thought Emma, “he would have done as much for Harriet.”
13402
13403
“This was settled last night, and Frank was off with the light this
13404
morning. He stopped at Highbury, at the Bates's, I fancy, some time--and
13405
then came on hither; but was in such a hurry to get back to his uncle,
13406
to whom he is just now more necessary than ever, that, as I tell you,
13407
he could stay with us but a quarter of an hour.--He was very much
13408
agitated--very much, indeed--to a degree that made him appear quite
13409
a different creature from any thing I had ever seen him before.--In
13410
addition to all the rest, there had been the shock of finding her so
13411
very unwell, which he had had no previous suspicion of--and there was
13412
every appearance of his having been feeling a great deal.”
13413
13414
“And do you really believe the affair to have been carrying on with such
13415
perfect secresy?--The Campbells, the Dixons, did none of them know of
13416
the engagement?”
13417
13418
Emma could not speak the name of Dixon without a little blush.
13419
13420
“None; not one. He positively said that it had been known to no being in
13421
the world but their two selves.”
13422
13423
“Well,” said Emma, “I suppose we shall gradually grow reconciled to the
13424
idea, and I wish them very happy. But I shall always think it a
13425
very abominable sort of proceeding. What has it been but a system of
13426
hypocrisy and deceit,--espionage, and treachery?--To come among us with
13427
professions of openness and simplicity; and such a league in secret
13428
to judge us all!--Here have we been, the whole winter and spring,
13429
completely duped, fancying ourselves all on an equal footing of truth
13430
and honour, with two people in the midst of us who may have been
13431
carrying round, comparing and sitting in judgment on sentiments and
13432
words that were never meant for both to hear.--They must take the
13433
consequence, if they have heard each other spoken of in a way not
13434
perfectly agreeable!”
13435
13436
“I am quite easy on that head,” replied Mrs. Weston. “I am very sure
13437
that I never said any thing of either to the other, which both might not
13438
have heard.”
13439
13440
“You are in luck.--Your only blunder was confined to my ear, when you
13441
imagined a certain friend of ours in love with the lady.”
13442
13443
“True. But as I have always had a thoroughly good opinion of Miss
13444
Fairfax, I never could, under any blunder, have spoken ill of her; and
13445
as to speaking ill of him, there I must have been safe.”
13446
13447
At this moment Mr. Weston appeared at a little distance from the window,
13448
evidently on the watch. His wife gave him a look which invited him
13449
in; and, while he was coming round, added, “Now, dearest Emma, let me
13450
intreat you to say and look every thing that may set his heart at ease,
13451
and incline him to be satisfied with the match. Let us make the best of
13452
it--and, indeed, almost every thing may be fairly said in her favour. It
13453
is not a connexion to gratify; but if Mr. Churchill does not feel that,
13454
why should we? and it may be a very fortunate circumstance for him, for
13455
Frank, I mean, that he should have attached himself to a girl of such
13456
steadiness of character and good judgment as I have always given her
13457
credit for--and still am disposed to give her credit for, in spite of
13458
this one great deviation from the strict rule of right. And how much may
13459
be said in her situation for even that error!”
13460
13461
“Much, indeed!” cried Emma feelingly. “If a woman can ever be
13462
excused for thinking only of herself, it is in a situation like Jane
13463
Fairfax's.--Of such, one may almost say, that 'the world is not their's,
13464
nor the world's law.'”
13465
13466
She met Mr. Weston on his entrance, with a smiling countenance,
13467
exclaiming,
13468
13469
“A very pretty trick you have been playing me, upon my word! This was a
13470
device, I suppose, to sport with my curiosity, and exercise my talent of
13471
guessing. But you really frightened me. I thought you had lost half
13472
your property, at least. And here, instead of its being a matter of
13473
condolence, it turns out to be one of congratulation.--I congratulate
13474
you, Mr. Weston, with all my heart, on the prospect of having one of the
13475
most lovely and accomplished young women in England for your daughter.”
13476
13477
A glance or two between him and his wife, convinced him that all was as
13478
right as this speech proclaimed; and its happy effect on his spirits was
13479
immediate. His air and voice recovered their usual briskness: he shook
13480
her heartily and gratefully by the hand, and entered on the subject in
13481
a manner to prove, that he now only wanted time and persuasion to think
13482
the engagement no very bad thing. His companions suggested only what
13483
could palliate imprudence, or smooth objections; and by the time they
13484
had talked it all over together, and he had talked it all over again
13485
with Emma, in their walk back to Hartfield, he was become perfectly
13486
reconciled, and not far from thinking it the very best thing that Frank
13487
could possibly have done.
13488
13489
13490
13491
CHAPTER XI
13492
13493
13494
“Harriet, poor Harriet!”--Those were the words; in them lay the
13495
tormenting ideas which Emma could not get rid of, and which constituted
13496
the real misery of the business to her. Frank Churchill had behaved very
13497
ill by herself--very ill in many ways,--but it was not so much _his_
13498
behaviour as her _own_, which made her so angry with him. It was the
13499
scrape which he had drawn her into on Harriet's account, that gave the
13500
deepest hue to his offence.--Poor Harriet! to be a second time the
13501
dupe of her misconceptions and flattery. Mr. Knightley had spoken
13502
prophetically, when he once said, “Emma, you have been no friend
13503
to Harriet Smith.”--She was afraid she had done her nothing but
13504
disservice.--It was true that she had not to charge herself, in this
13505
instance as in the former, with being the sole and original author of
13506
the mischief; with having suggested such feelings as might otherwise
13507
never have entered Harriet's imagination; for Harriet had acknowledged
13508
her admiration and preference of Frank Churchill before she had ever
13509
given her a hint on the subject; but she felt completely guilty
13510
of having encouraged what she might have repressed. She might have
13511
prevented the indulgence and increase of such sentiments. Her influence
13512
would have been enough. And now she was very conscious that she ought
13513
to have prevented them.--She felt that she had been risking her friend's
13514
happiness on most insufficient grounds. Common sense would have directed
13515
her to tell Harriet, that she must not allow herself to think of him,
13516
and that there were five hundred chances to one against his ever caring
13517
for her.--“But, with common sense,” she added, “I am afraid I have had
13518
little to do.”
13519
13520
She was extremely angry with herself. If she could not have been angry
13521
with Frank Churchill too, it would have been dreadful.--As for Jane
13522
Fairfax, she might at least relieve her feelings from any present
13523
solicitude on her account. Harriet would be anxiety enough; she need
13524
no longer be unhappy about Jane, whose troubles and whose ill-health
13525
having, of course, the same origin, must be equally under cure.--Her
13526
days of insignificance and evil were over.--She would soon be well, and
13527
happy, and prosperous.--Emma could now imagine why her own attentions
13528
had been slighted. This discovery laid many smaller matters open. No
13529
doubt it had been from jealousy.--In Jane's eyes she had been a rival;
13530
and well might any thing she could offer of assistance or regard be
13531
repulsed. An airing in the Hartfield carriage would have been the rack,
13532
and arrowroot from the Hartfield storeroom must have been poison. She
13533
understood it all; and as far as her mind could disengage itself from
13534
the injustice and selfishness of angry feelings, she acknowledged that
13535
Jane Fairfax would have neither elevation nor happiness beyond her
13536
desert. But poor Harriet was such an engrossing charge! There was little
13537
sympathy to be spared for any body else. Emma was sadly fearful
13538
that this second disappointment would be more severe than the first.
13539
Considering the very superior claims of the object, it ought; and
13540
judging by its apparently stronger effect on Harriet's mind, producing
13541
reserve and self-command, it would.--She must communicate the painful
13542
truth, however, and as soon as possible. An injunction of secresy had
13543
been among Mr. Weston's parting words. “For the present, the whole
13544
affair was to be completely a secret. Mr. Churchill had made a point of
13545
it, as a token of respect to the wife he had so very recently lost;
13546
and every body admitted it to be no more than due decorum.”--Emma had
13547
promised; but still Harriet must be excepted. It was her superior duty.
13548
13549
In spite of her vexation, she could not help feeling it almost
13550
ridiculous, that she should have the very same distressing and delicate
13551
office to perform by Harriet, which Mrs. Weston had just gone through by
13552
herself. The intelligence, which had been so anxiously announced to her,
13553
she was now to be anxiously announcing to another. Her heart beat quick
13554
on hearing Harriet's footstep and voice; so, she supposed, had poor Mrs.
13555
Weston felt when _she_ was approaching Randalls. Could the event of
13556
the disclosure bear an equal resemblance!--But of that, unfortunately,
13557
there could be no chance.
13558
13559
“Well, Miss Woodhouse!” cried Harriet, coming eagerly into the room--“is
13560
not this the oddest news that ever was?”
13561
13562
“What news do you mean?” replied Emma, unable to guess, by look or
13563
voice, whether Harriet could indeed have received any hint.
13564
13565
“About Jane Fairfax. Did you ever hear any thing so strange? Oh!--you
13566
need not be afraid of owning it to me, for Mr. Weston has told me
13567
himself. I met him just now. He told me it was to be a great secret;
13568
and, therefore, I should not think of mentioning it to any body but you,
13569
but he said you knew it.”
13570
13571
“What did Mr. Weston tell you?”--said Emma, still perplexed.
13572
13573
“Oh! he told me all about it; that Jane Fairfax and Mr. Frank Churchill
13574
are to be married, and that they have been privately engaged to one
13575
another this long while. How very odd!”
13576
13577
It was, indeed, so odd; Harriet's behaviour was so extremely odd,
13578
that Emma did not know how to understand it. Her character appeared
13579
absolutely changed. She seemed to propose shewing no agitation, or
13580
disappointment, or peculiar concern in the discovery. Emma looked at
13581
her, quite unable to speak.
13582
13583
“Had you any idea,” cried Harriet, “of his being in love with her?--You,
13584
perhaps, might.--You (blushing as she spoke) who can see into every
13585
body's heart; but nobody else--”
13586
13587
“Upon my word,” said Emma, “I begin to doubt my having any such talent.
13588
Can you seriously ask me, Harriet, whether I imagined him attached
13589
to another woman at the very time that I was--tacitly, if not
13590
openly--encouraging you to give way to your own feelings?--I never
13591
had the slightest suspicion, till within the last hour, of Mr. Frank
13592
Churchill's having the least regard for Jane Fairfax. You may be very
13593
sure that if I had, I should have cautioned you accordingly.”
13594
13595
“Me!” cried Harriet, colouring, and astonished. “Why should you caution
13596
me?--You do not think I care about Mr. Frank Churchill.”
13597
13598
“I am delighted to hear you speak so stoutly on the subject,” replied
13599
Emma, smiling; “but you do not mean to deny that there was a time--and
13600
not very distant either--when you gave me reason to understand that you
13601
did care about him?”
13602
13603
“Him!--never, never. Dear Miss Woodhouse, how could you so mistake me?”
13604
turning away distressed.
13605
13606
“Harriet!” cried Emma, after a moment's pause--“What do you mean?--Good
13607
Heaven! what do you mean?--Mistake you!--Am I to suppose then?--”
13608
13609
She could not speak another word.--Her voice was lost; and she sat down,
13610
waiting in great terror till Harriet should answer.
13611
13612
Harriet, who was standing at some distance, and with face turned from
13613
her, did not immediately say any thing; and when she did speak, it was
13614
in a voice nearly as agitated as Emma's.
13615
13616
“I should not have thought it possible,” she began, “that you could have
13617
misunderstood me! I know we agreed never to name him--but considering
13618
how infinitely superior he is to every body else, I should not have
13619
thought it possible that I could be supposed to mean any other person.
13620
Mr. Frank Churchill, indeed! I do not know who would ever look at him in
13621
the company of the other. I hope I have a better taste than to think of
13622
Mr. Frank Churchill, who is like nobody by his side. And that you should
13623
have been so mistaken, is amazing!--I am sure, but for believing that
13624
you entirely approved and meant to encourage me in my attachment, I
13625
should have considered it at first too great a presumption almost,
13626
to dare to think of him. At first, if you had not told me that more
13627
wonderful things had happened; that there had been matches of greater
13628
disparity (those were your very words);--I should not have dared to
13629
give way to--I should not have thought it possible--But if _you_, who
13630
had been always acquainted with him--”
13631
13632
“Harriet!” cried Emma, collecting herself resolutely--“Let us understand
13633
each other now, without the possibility of farther mistake. Are you
13634
speaking of--Mr. Knightley?”
13635
13636
“To be sure I am. I never could have an idea of any body else--and so
13637
I thought you knew. When we talked about him, it was as clear as
13638
possible.”
13639
13640
“Not quite,” returned Emma, with forced calmness, “for all that you then
13641
said, appeared to me to relate to a different person. I could almost
13642
assert that you had _named_ Mr. Frank Churchill. I am sure the service
13643
Mr. Frank Churchill had rendered you, in protecting you from the
13644
gipsies, was spoken of.”
13645
13646
“Oh! Miss Woodhouse, how you do forget!”
13647
13648
“My dear Harriet, I perfectly remember the substance of what I said on
13649
the occasion. I told you that I did not wonder at your attachment;
13650
that considering the service he had rendered you, it was extremely
13651
natural:--and you agreed to it, expressing yourself very warmly as to
13652
your sense of that service, and mentioning even what your sensations had
13653
been in seeing him come forward to your rescue.--The impression of it is
13654
strong on my memory.”
13655
13656
“Oh, dear,” cried Harriet, “now I recollect what you mean; but I
13657
was thinking of something very different at the time. It was not the
13658
gipsies--it was not Mr. Frank Churchill that I meant. No! (with some
13659
elevation) I was thinking of a much more precious circumstance--of Mr.
13660
Knightley's coming and asking me to dance, when Mr. Elton would not
13661
stand up with me; and when there was no other partner in the room. That
13662
was the kind action; that was the noble benevolence and generosity; that
13663
was the service which made me begin to feel how superior he was to every
13664
other being upon earth.”
13665
13666
“Good God!” cried Emma, “this has been a most unfortunate--most
13667
deplorable mistake!--What is to be done?”
13668
13669
“You would not have encouraged me, then, if you had understood me? At
13670
least, however, I cannot be worse off than I should have been, if the
13671
other had been the person; and now--it _is_ possible--”
13672
13673
She paused a few moments. Emma could not speak.
13674
13675
“I do not wonder, Miss Woodhouse,” she resumed, “that you should feel a
13676
great difference between the two, as to me or as to any body. You must
13677
think one five hundred million times more above me than the other. But
13678
I hope, Miss Woodhouse, that supposing--that if--strange as it may
13679
appear--. But you know they were your own words, that _more_ wonderful
13680
things had happened, matches of _greater_ disparity had taken place than
13681
between Mr. Frank Churchill and me; and, therefore, it seems as if such
13682
a thing even as this, may have occurred before--and if I should be so
13683
fortunate, beyond expression, as to--if Mr. Knightley should really--if
13684
_he_ does not mind the disparity, I hope, dear Miss Woodhouse, you will
13685
not set yourself against it, and try to put difficulties in the way. But
13686
you are too good for that, I am sure.”
13687
13688
Harriet was standing at one of the windows. Emma turned round to look at
13689
her in consternation, and hastily said,
13690
13691
“Have you any idea of Mr. Knightley's returning your affection?”
13692
13693
“Yes,” replied Harriet modestly, but not fearfully--“I must say that I
13694
have.”
13695
13696
Emma's eyes were instantly withdrawn; and she sat silently meditating,
13697
in a fixed attitude, for a few minutes. A few minutes were sufficient
13698
for making her acquainted with her own heart. A mind like hers,
13699
once opening to suspicion, made rapid progress. She touched--she
13700
admitted--she acknowledged the whole truth. Why was it so much worse
13701
that Harriet should be in love with Mr. Knightley, than with Frank
13702
Churchill? Why was the evil so dreadfully increased by Harriet's having
13703
some hope of a return? It darted through her, with the speed of an
13704
arrow, that Mr. Knightley must marry no one but herself!
13705
13706
Her own conduct, as well as her own heart, was before her in the same
13707
few minutes. She saw it all with a clearness which had never blessed
13708
her before. How improperly had she been acting by Harriet! How
13709
inconsiderate, how indelicate, how irrational, how unfeeling had been
13710
her conduct! What blindness, what madness, had led her on! It struck her
13711
with dreadful force, and she was ready to give it every bad name in the
13712
world. Some portion of respect for herself, however, in spite of all
13713
these demerits--some concern for her own appearance, and a strong sense
13714
of justice by Harriet--(there would be no need of _compassion_ to the
13715
girl who believed herself loved by Mr. Knightley--but justice required
13716
that she should not be made unhappy by any coldness now,) gave Emma the
13717
resolution to sit and endure farther with calmness, with even apparent
13718
kindness.--For her own advantage indeed, it was fit that the utmost
13719
extent of Harriet's hopes should be enquired into; and Harriet had done
13720
nothing to forfeit the regard and interest which had been so voluntarily
13721
formed and maintained--or to deserve to be slighted by the person, whose
13722
counsels had never led her right.--Rousing from reflection, therefore,
13723
and subduing her emotion, she turned to Harriet again, and, in a more
13724
inviting accent, renewed the conversation; for as to the subject which
13725
had first introduced it, the wonderful story of Jane Fairfax, that was
13726
quite sunk and lost.--Neither of them thought but of Mr. Knightley and
13727
themselves.
13728
13729
Harriet, who had been standing in no unhappy reverie, was yet very glad
13730
to be called from it, by the now encouraging manner of such a judge, and
13731
such a friend as Miss Woodhouse, and only wanted invitation, to give
13732
the history of her hopes with great, though trembling delight.--Emma's
13733
tremblings as she asked, and as she listened, were better concealed than
13734
Harriet's, but they were not less. Her voice was not unsteady; but her
13735
mind was in all the perturbation that such a development of self, such
13736
a burst of threatening evil, such a confusion of sudden and perplexing
13737
emotions, must create.--She listened with much inward suffering, but
13738
with great outward patience, to Harriet's detail.--Methodical, or well
13739
arranged, or very well delivered, it could not be expected to be; but it
13740
contained, when separated from all the feebleness and tautology of
13741
the narration, a substance to sink her spirit--especially with the
13742
corroborating circumstances, which her own memory brought in favour of
13743
Mr. Knightley's most improved opinion of Harriet.
13744
13745
Harriet had been conscious of a difference in his behaviour ever since
13746
those two decisive dances.--Emma knew that he had, on that occasion,
13747
found her much superior to his expectation. From that evening, or at
13748
least from the time of Miss Woodhouse's encouraging her to think of him,
13749
Harriet had begun to be sensible of his talking to her much more than he
13750
had been used to do, and of his having indeed quite a different manner
13751
towards her; a manner of kindness and sweetness!--Latterly she had been
13752
more and more aware of it. When they had been all walking together,
13753
he had so often come and walked by her, and talked so very
13754
delightfully!--He seemed to want to be acquainted with her. Emma knew it
13755
to have been very much the case. She had often observed the change, to
13756
almost the same extent.--Harriet repeated expressions of approbation
13757
and praise from him--and Emma felt them to be in the closest agreement
13758
with what she had known of his opinion of Harriet. He praised her for
13759
being without art or affectation, for having simple, honest, generous,
13760
feelings.--She knew that he saw such recommendations in Harriet; he
13761
had dwelt on them to her more than once.--Much that lived in Harriet's
13762
memory, many little particulars of the notice she had received from
13763
him, a look, a speech, a removal from one chair to another, a compliment
13764
implied, a preference inferred, had been unnoticed, because unsuspected,
13765
by Emma. Circumstances that might swell to half an hour's relation,
13766
and contained multiplied proofs to her who had seen them, had passed
13767
undiscerned by her who now heard them; but the two latest occurrences to
13768
be mentioned, the two of strongest promise to Harriet, were not without
13769
some degree of witness from Emma herself.--The first, was his walking
13770
with her apart from the others, in the lime-walk at Donwell, where they
13771
had been walking some time before Emma came, and he had taken pains (as
13772
she was convinced) to draw her from the rest to himself--and at first,
13773
he had talked to her in a more particular way than he had ever done
13774
before, in a very particular way indeed!--(Harriet could not recall
13775
it without a blush.) He seemed to be almost asking her, whether her
13776
affections were engaged.--But as soon as she (Miss Woodhouse) appeared
13777
likely to join them, he changed the subject, and began talking about
13778
farming:--The second, was his having sat talking with her nearly half
13779
an hour before Emma came back from her visit, the very last morning of
13780
his being at Hartfield--though, when he first came in, he had said that
13781
he could not stay five minutes--and his having told her, during their
13782
conversation, that though he must go to London, it was very much against
13783
his inclination that he left home at all, which was much more (as
13784
Emma felt) than he had acknowledged to _her_. The superior degree of
13785
confidence towards Harriet, which this one article marked, gave her
13786
severe pain.
13787
13788
On the subject of the first of the two circumstances, she did, after a
13789
little reflection, venture the following question. “Might he not?--Is
13790
not it possible, that when enquiring, as you thought, into the state of
13791
your affections, he might be alluding to Mr. Martin--he might have
13792
Mr. Martin's interest in view? But Harriet rejected the suspicion with
13793
spirit.
13794
13795
“Mr. Martin! No indeed!--There was not a hint of Mr. Martin. I hope I
13796
know better now, than to care for Mr. Martin, or to be suspected of it.”
13797
13798
When Harriet had closed her evidence, she appealed to her dear Miss
13799
Woodhouse, to say whether she had not good ground for hope.
13800
13801
“I never should have presumed to think of it at first,” said she, “but
13802
for you. You told me to observe him carefully, and let his behaviour
13803
be the rule of mine--and so I have. But now I seem to feel that I may
13804
deserve him; and that if he does chuse me, it will not be any thing so
13805
very wonderful.”
13806
13807
The bitter feelings occasioned by this speech, the many bitter feelings,
13808
made the utmost exertion necessary on Emma's side, to enable her to say
13809
on reply,
13810
13811
“Harriet, I will only venture to declare, that Mr. Knightley is the last
13812
man in the world, who would intentionally give any woman the idea of his
13813
feeling for her more than he really does.”
13814
13815
Harriet seemed ready to worship her friend for a sentence so
13816
satisfactory; and Emma was only saved from raptures and fondness, which
13817
at that moment would have been dreadful penance, by the sound of her
13818
father's footsteps. He was coming through the hall. Harriet was too
13819
much agitated to encounter him. “She could not compose herself--
13820
Mr. Woodhouse would be alarmed--she had better go;”--with most ready
13821
encouragement from her friend, therefore, she passed off through another
13822
door--and the moment she was gone, this was the spontaneous burst of
13823
Emma's feelings: “Oh God! that I had never seen her!”
13824
13825
The rest of the day, the following night, were hardly enough for her
13826
thoughts.--She was bewildered amidst the confusion of all that had
13827
rushed on her within the last few hours. Every moment had brought a
13828
fresh surprize; and every surprize must be matter of humiliation to
13829
her.--How to understand it all! How to understand the deceptions she had
13830
been thus practising on herself, and living under!--The blunders, the
13831
blindness of her own head and heart!--she sat still, she walked about,
13832
she tried her own room, she tried the shrubbery--in every place, every
13833
posture, she perceived that she had acted most weakly; that she had
13834
been imposed on by others in a most mortifying degree; that she had
13835
been imposing on herself in a degree yet more mortifying; that she
13836
was wretched, and should probably find this day but the beginning of
13837
wretchedness.
13838
13839
To understand, thoroughly understand her own heart, was the first
13840
endeavour. To that point went every leisure moment which her father's
13841
claims on her allowed, and every moment of involuntary absence of mind.
13842
13843
How long had Mr. Knightley been so dear to her, as every feeling
13844
declared him now to be? When had his influence, such influence begun?--
13845
When had he succeeded to that place in her affection, which Frank
13846
Churchill had once, for a short period, occupied?--She looked back;
13847
she compared the two--compared them, as they had always stood in her
13848
estimation, from the time of the latter's becoming known to her--and as
13849
they must at any time have been compared by her, had it--oh! had it, by
13850
any blessed felicity, occurred to her, to institute the comparison.--She
13851
saw that there never had been a time when she did not consider Mr.
13852
Knightley as infinitely the superior, or when his regard for her had not
13853
been infinitely the most dear. She saw, that in persuading herself,
13854
in fancying, in acting to the contrary, she had been entirely under a
13855
delusion, totally ignorant of her own heart--and, in short, that she had
13856
never really cared for Frank Churchill at all!
13857
13858
This was the conclusion of the first series of reflection. This was
13859
the knowledge of herself, on the first question of inquiry, which
13860
she reached; and without being long in reaching it.--She was most
13861
sorrowfully indignant; ashamed of every sensation but the one revealed
13862
to her--her affection for Mr. Knightley.--Every other part of her mind
13863
was disgusting.
13864
13865
With insufferable vanity had she believed herself in the secret of every
13866
body's feelings; with unpardonable arrogance proposed to arrange every
13867
body's destiny. She was proved to have been universally mistaken; and
13868
she had not quite done nothing--for she had done mischief. She had
13869
brought evil on Harriet, on herself, and she too much feared, on Mr.
13870
Knightley.--Were this most unequal of all connexions to take place, on
13871
her must rest all the reproach of having given it a beginning; for his
13872
attachment, she must believe to be produced only by a consciousness of
13873
Harriet's;--and even were this not the case, he would never have known
13874
Harriet at all but for her folly.
13875
13876
Mr. Knightley and Harriet Smith!--It was a union to distance every
13877
wonder of the kind.--The attachment of Frank Churchill and Jane Fairfax
13878
became commonplace, threadbare, stale in the comparison, exciting no
13879
surprize, presenting no disparity, affording nothing to be said or
13880
thought.--Mr. Knightley and Harriet Smith!--Such an elevation on her
13881
side! Such a debasement on his! It was horrible to Emma to think how it
13882
must sink him in the general opinion, to foresee the smiles, the sneers,
13883
the merriment it would prompt at his expense; the mortification and
13884
disdain of his brother, the thousand inconveniences to himself.--Could
13885
it be?--No; it was impossible. And yet it was far, very far, from
13886
impossible.--Was it a new circumstance for a man of first-rate abilities
13887
to be captivated by very inferior powers? Was it new for one, perhaps
13888
too busy to seek, to be the prize of a girl who would seek him?--Was
13889
it new for any thing in this world to be unequal, inconsistent,
13890
incongruous--or for chance and circumstance (as second causes) to direct
13891
the human fate?
13892
13893
Oh! had she never brought Harriet forward! Had she left her where she
13894
ought, and where he had told her she ought!--Had she not, with a
13895
folly which no tongue could express, prevented her marrying the
13896
unexceptionable young man who would have made her happy and respectable
13897
in the line of life to which she ought to belong--all would have been
13898
safe; none of this dreadful sequel would have been.
13899
13900
How Harriet could ever have had the presumption to raise her thoughts to
13901
Mr. Knightley!--How she could dare to fancy herself the chosen of such
13902
a man till actually assured of it!--But Harriet was less humble, had
13903
fewer scruples than formerly.--Her inferiority, whether of mind or
13904
situation, seemed little felt.--She had seemed more sensible of Mr.
13905
Elton's being to stoop in marrying her, than she now seemed of Mr.
13906
Knightley's.--Alas! was not that her own doing too? Who had been at
13907
pains to give Harriet notions of self-consequence but herself?--Who but
13908
herself had taught her, that she was to elevate herself if possible,
13909
and that her claims were great to a high worldly establishment?--If
13910
Harriet, from being humble, were grown vain, it was her doing too.
13911
13912
13913
13914
CHAPTER XII
13915
13916
13917
Till now that she was threatened with its loss, Emma had never known
13918
how much of her happiness depended on being _first_ with Mr. Knightley,
13919
first in interest and affection.--Satisfied that it was so, and feeling
13920
it her due, she had enjoyed it without reflection; and only in the
13921
dread of being supplanted, found how inexpressibly important it had
13922
been.--Long, very long, she felt she had been first; for, having no
13923
female connexions of his own, there had been only Isabella whose claims
13924
could be compared with hers, and she had always known exactly how far
13925
he loved and esteemed Isabella. She had herself been first with him for
13926
many years past. She had not deserved it; she had often been negligent
13927
or perverse, slighting his advice, or even wilfully opposing him,
13928
insensible of half his merits, and quarrelling with him because he would
13929
not acknowledge her false and insolent estimate of her own--but still,
13930
from family attachment and habit, and thorough excellence of mind, he
13931
had loved her, and watched over her from a girl, with an endeavour to
13932
improve her, and an anxiety for her doing right, which no other creature
13933
had at all shared. In spite of all her faults, she knew she was dear
13934
to him; might she not say, very dear?--When the suggestions of hope,
13935
however, which must follow here, presented themselves, she could not
13936
presume to indulge them. Harriet Smith might think herself not unworthy
13937
of being peculiarly, exclusively, passionately loved by Mr. Knightley.
13938
_She_ could not. She could not flatter herself with any idea of
13939
blindness in his attachment to _her_. She had received a very recent
13940
proof of its impartiality.--How shocked had he been by her behaviour to
13941
Miss Bates! How directly, how strongly had he expressed himself to her
13942
on the subject!--Not too strongly for the offence--but far, far too
13943
strongly to issue from any feeling softer than upright justice and
13944
clear-sighted goodwill.--She had no hope, nothing to deserve the name
13945
of hope, that he could have that sort of affection for herself which was
13946
now in question; but there was a hope (at times a slight one, at
13947
times much stronger,) that Harriet might have deceived herself, and be
13948
overrating his regard for _her_.--Wish it she must, for his sake--be the
13949
consequence nothing to herself, but his remaining single all his life.
13950
Could she be secure of that, indeed, of his never marrying at all, she
13951
believed she should be perfectly satisfied.--Let him but continue the
13952
same Mr. Knightley to her and her father, the same Mr. Knightley to
13953
all the world; let Donwell and Hartfield lose none of their precious
13954
intercourse of friendship and confidence, and her peace would be
13955
fully secured.--Marriage, in fact, would not do for her. It would be
13956
incompatible with what she owed to her father, and with what she felt
13957
for him. Nothing should separate her from her father. She would not
13958
marry, even if she were asked by Mr. Knightley.
13959
13960
It must be her ardent wish that Harriet might be disappointed; and she
13961
hoped, that when able to see them together again, she might at least
13962
be able to ascertain what the chances for it were.--She should see them
13963
henceforward with the closest observance; and wretchedly as she had
13964
hitherto misunderstood even those she was watching, she did not know how
13965
to admit that she could be blinded here.--He was expected back every
13966
day. The power of observation would be soon given--frightfully soon it
13967
appeared when her thoughts were in one course. In the meanwhile, she
13968
resolved against seeing Harriet.--It would do neither of them good,
13969
it would do the subject no good, to be talking of it farther.--She was
13970
resolved not to be convinced, as long as she could doubt, and yet had
13971
no authority for opposing Harriet's confidence. To talk would be only to
13972
irritate.--She wrote to her, therefore, kindly, but decisively, to beg
13973
that she would not, at present, come to Hartfield; acknowledging it to
13974
be her conviction, that all farther confidential discussion of _one_
13975
topic had better be avoided; and hoping, that if a few days were allowed
13976
to pass before they met again, except in the company of others--she
13977
objected only to a tete-a-tete--they might be able to act as if they
13978
had forgotten the conversation of yesterday.--Harriet submitted, and
13979
approved, and was grateful.
13980
13981
This point was just arranged, when a visitor arrived to tear Emma's
13982
thoughts a little from the one subject which had engrossed them,
13983
sleeping or waking, the last twenty-four hours--Mrs. Weston, who had
13984
been calling on her daughter-in-law elect, and took Hartfield in her
13985
way home, almost as much in duty to Emma as in pleasure to herself, to
13986
relate all the particulars of so interesting an interview.
13987
13988
Mr. Weston had accompanied her to Mrs. Bates's, and gone through his
13989
share of this essential attention most handsomely; but she having then
13990
induced Miss Fairfax to join her in an airing, was now returned with
13991
much more to say, and much more to say with satisfaction, than a quarter
13992
of an hour spent in Mrs. Bates's parlour, with all the encumbrance of
13993
awkward feelings, could have afforded.
13994
13995
A little curiosity Emma had; and she made the most of it while her
13996
friend related. Mrs. Weston had set off to pay the visit in a good deal
13997
of agitation herself; and in the first place had wished not to go at all
13998
at present, to be allowed merely to write to Miss Fairfax instead, and
13999
to defer this ceremonious call till a little time had passed, and Mr.
14000
Churchill could be reconciled to the engagement's becoming known; as,
14001
considering every thing, she thought such a visit could not be paid
14002
without leading to reports:--but Mr. Weston had thought differently; he
14003
was extremely anxious to shew his approbation to Miss Fairfax and her
14004
family, and did not conceive that any suspicion could be excited by it;
14005
or if it were, that it would be of any consequence; for “such things,”
14006
he observed, “always got about.” Emma smiled, and felt that Mr. Weston
14007
had very good reason for saying so. They had gone, in short--and very
14008
great had been the evident distress and confusion of the lady. She had
14009
hardly been able to speak a word, and every look and action had shewn
14010
how deeply she was suffering from consciousness. The quiet, heart-felt
14011
satisfaction of the old lady, and the rapturous delight of her
14012
daughter--who proved even too joyous to talk as usual, had been a
14013
gratifying, yet almost an affecting, scene. They were both so truly
14014
respectable in their happiness, so disinterested in every sensation;
14015
thought so much of Jane; so much of every body, and so little of
14016
themselves, that every kindly feeling was at work for them. Miss
14017
Fairfax's recent illness had offered a fair plea for Mrs. Weston to
14018
invite her to an airing; she had drawn back and declined at first, but,
14019
on being pressed had yielded; and, in the course of their drive,
14020
Mrs. Weston had, by gentle encouragement, overcome so much of her
14021
embarrassment, as to bring her to converse on the important subject.
14022
Apologies for her seemingly ungracious silence in their first reception,
14023
and the warmest expressions of the gratitude she was always feeling
14024
towards herself and Mr. Weston, must necessarily open the cause; but
14025
when these effusions were put by, they had talked a good deal of the
14026
present and of the future state of the engagement. Mrs. Weston was
14027
convinced that such conversation must be the greatest relief to her
14028
companion, pent up within her own mind as every thing had so long been,
14029
and was very much pleased with all that she had said on the subject.
14030
14031
“On the misery of what she had suffered, during the concealment of so
14032
many months,” continued Mrs. Weston, “she was energetic. This was one
14033
of her expressions. 'I will not say, that since I entered into the
14034
engagement I have not had some happy moments; but I can say, that I have
14035
never known the blessing of one tranquil hour:'--and the quivering lip,
14036
Emma, which uttered it, was an attestation that I felt at my heart.”
14037
14038
“Poor girl!” said Emma. “She thinks herself wrong, then, for having
14039
consented to a private engagement?”
14040
14041
“Wrong! No one, I believe, can blame her more than she is disposed
14042
to blame herself. 'The consequence,' said she, 'has been a state of
14043
perpetual suffering to me; and so it ought. But after all the punishment
14044
that misconduct can bring, it is still not less misconduct. Pain is no
14045
expiation. I never can be blameless. I have been acting contrary to all
14046
my sense of right; and the fortunate turn that every thing has taken,
14047
and the kindness I am now receiving, is what my conscience tells me
14048
ought not to be.' 'Do not imagine, madam,' she continued, 'that I was
14049
taught wrong. Do not let any reflection fall on the principles or the
14050
care of the friends who brought me up. The error has been all my own;
14051
and I do assure you that, with all the excuse that present circumstances
14052
may appear to give, I shall yet dread making the story known to Colonel
14053
Campbell.'”
14054
14055
“Poor girl!” said Emma again. “She loves him then excessively, I
14056
suppose. It must have been from attachment only, that she could be
14057
led to form the engagement. Her affection must have overpowered her
14058
judgment.”
14059
14060
“Yes, I have no doubt of her being extremely attached to him.”
14061
14062
“I am afraid,” returned Emma, sighing, “that I must often have
14063
contributed to make her unhappy.”
14064
14065
“On your side, my love, it was very innocently done. But she
14066
probably had something of that in her thoughts, when alluding to the
14067
misunderstandings which he had given us hints of before. One natural
14068
consequence of the evil she had involved herself in,” she said, “was
14069
that of making her _unreasonable_. The consciousness of having done
14070
amiss, had exposed her to a thousand inquietudes, and made her captious
14071
and irritable to a degree that must have been--that had been--hard for
14072
him to bear. 'I did not make the allowances,' said she, 'which I ought
14073
to have done, for his temper and spirits--his delightful spirits, and
14074
that gaiety, that playfulness of disposition, which, under any other
14075
circumstances, would, I am sure, have been as constantly bewitching to
14076
me, as they were at first.' She then began to speak of you, and of the
14077
great kindness you had shewn her during her illness; and with a blush
14078
which shewed me how it was all connected, desired me, whenever I had
14079
an opportunity, to thank you--I could not thank you too much--for every
14080
wish and every endeavour to do her good. She was sensible that you had
14081
never received any proper acknowledgment from herself.”
14082
14083
“If I did not know her to be happy now,” said Emma, seriously, “which,
14084
in spite of every little drawback from her scrupulous conscience, she
14085
must be, I could not bear these thanks;--for, oh! Mrs. Weston, if there
14086
were an account drawn up of the evil and the good I have done Miss
14087
Fairfax!--Well (checking herself, and trying to be more lively), this
14088
is all to be forgotten. You are very kind to bring me these interesting
14089
particulars. They shew her to the greatest advantage. I am sure she is
14090
very good--I hope she will be very happy. It is fit that the fortune
14091
should be on his side, for I think the merit will be all on hers.”
14092
14093
Such a conclusion could not pass unanswered by Mrs. Weston. She thought
14094
well of Frank in almost every respect; and, what was more, she loved him
14095
very much, and her defence was, therefore, earnest. She talked with a
14096
great deal of reason, and at least equal affection--but she had too much
14097
to urge for Emma's attention; it was soon gone to Brunswick Square or
14098
to Donwell; she forgot to attempt to listen; and when Mrs. Weston ended
14099
with, “We have not yet had the letter we are so anxious for, you know,
14100
but I hope it will soon come,” she was obliged to pause before she
14101
answered, and at last obliged to answer at random, before she could at
14102
all recollect what letter it was which they were so anxious for.
14103
14104
“Are you well, my Emma?” was Mrs. Weston's parting question.
14105
14106
“Oh! perfectly. I am always well, you know. Be sure to give me
14107
intelligence of the letter as soon as possible.”
14108
14109
Mrs. Weston's communications furnished Emma with more food for
14110
unpleasant reflection, by increasing her esteem and compassion, and her
14111
sense of past injustice towards Miss Fairfax. She bitterly regretted
14112
not having sought a closer acquaintance with her, and blushed for the
14113
envious feelings which had certainly been, in some measure, the cause.
14114
Had she followed Mr. Knightley's known wishes, in paying that attention
14115
to Miss Fairfax, which was every way her due; had she tried to know her
14116
better; had she done her part towards intimacy; had she endeavoured
14117
to find a friend there instead of in Harriet Smith; she must, in all
14118
probability, have been spared from every pain which pressed on her
14119
now.--Birth, abilities, and education, had been equally marking one as
14120
an associate for her, to be received with gratitude; and the other--what
14121
was she?--Supposing even that they had never become intimate friends;
14122
that she had never been admitted into Miss Fairfax's confidence on this
14123
important matter--which was most probable--still, in knowing her as
14124
she ought, and as she might, she must have been preserved from the
14125
abominable suspicions of an improper attachment to Mr. Dixon, which she
14126
had not only so foolishly fashioned and harboured herself, but had so
14127
unpardonably imparted; an idea which she greatly feared had been made a
14128
subject of material distress to the delicacy of Jane's feelings, by the
14129
levity or carelessness of Frank Churchill's. Of all the sources of evil
14130
surrounding the former, since her coming to Highbury, she was persuaded
14131
that she must herself have been the worst. She must have been a
14132
perpetual enemy. They never could have been all three together, without
14133
her having stabbed Jane Fairfax's peace in a thousand instances; and on
14134
Box Hill, perhaps, it had been the agony of a mind that would bear no
14135
more.
14136
14137
The evening of this day was very long, and melancholy, at Hartfield.
14138
The weather added what it could of gloom. A cold stormy rain set in, and
14139
nothing of July appeared but in the trees and shrubs, which the wind was
14140
despoiling, and the length of the day, which only made such cruel sights
14141
the longer visible.
14142
14143
The weather affected Mr. Woodhouse, and he could only be kept tolerably
14144
comfortable by almost ceaseless attention on his daughter's side, and by
14145
exertions which had never cost her half so much before. It reminded
14146
her of their first forlorn tete-a-tete, on the evening of Mrs. Weston's
14147
wedding-day; but Mr. Knightley had walked in then, soon after tea,
14148
and dissipated every melancholy fancy. Alas! such delightful proofs of
14149
Hartfield's attraction, as those sort of visits conveyed, might shortly
14150
be over. The picture which she had then drawn of the privations of the
14151
approaching winter, had proved erroneous; no friends had deserted them,
14152
no pleasures had been lost.--But her present forebodings she feared
14153
would experience no similar contradiction. The prospect before her now,
14154
was threatening to a degree that could not be entirely dispelled--that
14155
might not be even partially brightened. If all took place that
14156
might take place among the circle of her friends, Hartfield must be
14157
comparatively deserted; and she left to cheer her father with the
14158
spirits only of ruined happiness.
14159
14160
The child to be born at Randalls must be a tie there even dearer than
14161
herself; and Mrs. Weston's heart and time would be occupied by it.
14162
They should lose her; and, probably, in great measure, her husband
14163
also.--Frank Churchill would return among them no more; and Miss
14164
Fairfax, it was reasonable to suppose, would soon cease to belong to
14165
Highbury. They would be married, and settled either at or near Enscombe.
14166
All that were good would be withdrawn; and if to these losses, the
14167
loss of Donwell were to be added, what would remain of cheerful or
14168
of rational society within their reach? Mr. Knightley to be no longer
14169
coming there for his evening comfort!--No longer walking in at all
14170
hours, as if ever willing to change his own home for their's!--How was
14171
it to be endured? And if he were to be lost to them for Harriet's sake;
14172
if he were to be thought of hereafter, as finding in Harriet's society
14173
all that he wanted; if Harriet were to be the chosen, the first,
14174
the dearest, the friend, the wife to whom he looked for all the best
14175
blessings of existence; what could be increasing Emma's wretchedness but
14176
the reflection never far distant from her mind, that it had been all her
14177
own work?
14178
14179
When it came to such a pitch as this, she was not able to refrain from
14180
a start, or a heavy sigh, or even from walking about the room for a
14181
few seconds--and the only source whence any thing like consolation
14182
or composure could be drawn, was in the resolution of her own better
14183
conduct, and the hope that, however inferior in spirit and gaiety might
14184
be the following and every future winter of her life to the past, it
14185
would yet find her more rational, more acquainted with herself, and
14186
leave her less to regret when it were gone.
14187
14188
14189
14190
CHAPTER XIII
14191
14192
14193
The weather continued much the same all the following morning; and
14194
the same loneliness, and the same melancholy, seemed to reign at
14195
Hartfield--but in the afternoon it cleared; the wind changed into a
14196
softer quarter; the clouds were carried off; the sun appeared; it was
14197
summer again. With all the eagerness which such a transition gives, Emma
14198
resolved to be out of doors as soon as possible. Never had the exquisite
14199
sight, smell, sensation of nature, tranquil, warm, and brilliant after
14200
a storm, been more attractive to her. She longed for the serenity they
14201
might gradually introduce; and on Mr. Perry's coming in soon after
14202
dinner, with a disengaged hour to give her father, she lost no time
14203
in hurrying into the shrubbery.--There, with spirits freshened, and
14204
thoughts a little relieved, she had taken a few turns, when she saw Mr.
14205
Knightley passing through the garden door, and coming towards her.--It
14206
was the first intimation of his being returned from London. She had
14207
been thinking of him the moment before, as unquestionably sixteen miles
14208
distant.--There was time only for the quickest arrangement of mind. She
14209
must be collected and calm. In half a minute they were together. The
14210
“How d'ye do's” were quiet and constrained on each side. She asked after
14211
their mutual friends; they were all well.--When had he left them?--Only
14212
that morning. He must have had a wet ride.--Yes.--He meant to walk with
14213
her, she found. “He had just looked into the dining-room, and as he was
14214
not wanted there, preferred being out of doors.”--She thought he neither
14215
looked nor spoke cheerfully; and the first possible cause for it,
14216
suggested by her fears, was, that he had perhaps been communicating his
14217
plans to his brother, and was pained by the manner in which they had
14218
been received.
14219
14220
They walked together. He was silent. She thought he was often looking
14221
at her, and trying for a fuller view of her face than it suited her to
14222
give. And this belief produced another dread. Perhaps he wanted to
14223
speak to her, of his attachment to Harriet; he might be watching for
14224
encouragement to begin.--She did not, could not, feel equal to lead the
14225
way to any such subject. He must do it all himself. Yet she could
14226
not bear this silence. With him it was most unnatural. She
14227
considered--resolved--and, trying to smile, began--
14228
14229
“You have some news to hear, now you are come back, that will rather
14230
surprize you.”
14231
14232
“Have I?” said he quietly, and looking at her; “of what nature?”
14233
14234
“Oh! the best nature in the world--a wedding.”
14235
14236
After waiting a moment, as if to be sure she intended to say no more, he
14237
replied,
14238
14239
“If you mean Miss Fairfax and Frank Churchill, I have heard that
14240
already.”
14241
14242
“How is it possible?” cried Emma, turning her glowing cheeks towards
14243
him; for, while she spoke, it occurred to her that he might have called
14244
at Mrs. Goddard's in his way.
14245
14246
“I had a few lines on parish business from Mr. Weston this morning, and
14247
at the end of them he gave me a brief account of what had happened.”
14248
14249
Emma was quite relieved, and could presently say, with a little more
14250
composure,
14251
14252
“_You_ probably have been less surprized than any of us, for you have
14253
had your suspicions.--I have not forgotten that you once tried to give
14254
me a caution.--I wish I had attended to it--but--(with a sinking voice
14255
and a heavy sigh) I seem to have been doomed to blindness.”
14256
14257
For a moment or two nothing was said, and she was unsuspicious of having
14258
excited any particular interest, till she found her arm drawn within
14259
his, and pressed against his heart, and heard him thus saying, in a tone
14260
of great sensibility, speaking low,
14261
14262
“Time, my dearest Emma, time will heal the wound.--Your own excellent
14263
sense--your exertions for your father's sake--I know you will not allow
14264
yourself--.” Her arm was pressed again, as he added, in a more
14265
broken and subdued accent, “The feelings of the warmest
14266
friendship--Indignation--Abominable scoundrel!”--And in a louder,
14267
steadier tone, he concluded with, “He will soon be gone. They will soon
14268
be in Yorkshire. I am sorry for _her_. She deserves a better fate.”
14269
14270
Emma understood him; and as soon as she could recover from the flutter
14271
of pleasure, excited by such tender consideration, replied,
14272
14273
“You are very kind--but you are mistaken--and I must set you right.--
14274
I am not in want of that sort of compassion. My blindness to what was
14275
going on, led me to act by them in a way that I must always be ashamed
14276
of, and I was very foolishly tempted to say and do many things which may
14277
well lay me open to unpleasant conjectures, but I have no other reason
14278
to regret that I was not in the secret earlier.”
14279
14280
“Emma!” cried he, looking eagerly at her, “are you, indeed?”--but
14281
checking himself--“No, no, I understand you--forgive me--I am pleased
14282
that you can say even so much.--He is no object of regret, indeed! and
14283
it will not be very long, I hope, before that becomes the acknowledgment
14284
of more than your reason.--Fortunate that your affections were not
14285
farther entangled!--I could never, I confess, from your manners, assure
14286
myself as to the degree of what you felt--I could only be certain that
14287
there was a preference--and a preference which I never believed him to
14288
deserve.--He is a disgrace to the name of man.--And is he to be rewarded
14289
with that sweet young woman?--Jane, Jane, you will be a miserable
14290
creature.”
14291
14292
“Mr. Knightley,” said Emma, trying to be lively, but really confused--“I
14293
am in a very extraordinary situation. I cannot let you continue in your
14294
error; and yet, perhaps, since my manners gave such an impression, I
14295
have as much reason to be ashamed of confessing that I never have been
14296
at all attached to the person we are speaking of, as it might be natural
14297
for a woman to feel in confessing exactly the reverse.--But I never
14298
have.”
14299
14300
He listened in perfect silence. She wished him to speak, but he would
14301
not. She supposed she must say more before she were entitled to his
14302
clemency; but it was a hard case to be obliged still to lower herself in
14303
his opinion. She went on, however.
14304
14305
“I have very little to say for my own conduct.--I was tempted by his
14306
attentions, and allowed myself to appear pleased.--An old story,
14307
probably--a common case--and no more than has happened to hundreds of my
14308
sex before; and yet it may not be the more excusable in one who sets up
14309
as I do for Understanding. Many circumstances assisted the temptation.
14310
He was the son of Mr. Weston--he was continually here--I always found
14311
him very pleasant--and, in short, for (with a sigh) let me swell out the
14312
causes ever so ingeniously, they all centre in this at last--my vanity
14313
was flattered, and I allowed his attentions. Latterly, however--for some
14314
time, indeed--I have had no idea of their meaning any thing.--I thought
14315
them a habit, a trick, nothing that called for seriousness on my side.
14316
He has imposed on me, but he has not injured me. I have never been
14317
attached to him. And now I can tolerably comprehend his behaviour. He
14318
never wished to attach me. It was merely a blind to conceal his real
14319
situation with another.--It was his object to blind all about him; and
14320
no one, I am sure, could be more effectually blinded than myself--except
14321
that I was _not_ blinded--that it was my good fortune--that, in short, I
14322
was somehow or other safe from him.”
14323
14324
She had hoped for an answer here--for a few words to say that her
14325
conduct was at least intelligible; but he was silent; and, as far as she
14326
could judge, deep in thought. At last, and tolerably in his usual tone,
14327
he said,
14328
14329
“I have never had a high opinion of Frank Churchill.--I can suppose,
14330
however, that I may have underrated him. My acquaintance with him has
14331
been but trifling.--And even if I have not underrated him hitherto, he
14332
may yet turn out well.--With such a woman he has a chance.--I have no
14333
motive for wishing him ill--and for her sake, whose happiness will be
14334
involved in his good character and conduct, I shall certainly wish him
14335
well.”
14336
14337
“I have no doubt of their being happy together,” said Emma; “I believe
14338
them to be very mutually and very sincerely attached.”
14339
14340
“He is a most fortunate man!” returned Mr. Knightley, with energy. “So
14341
early in life--at three-and-twenty--a period when, if a man chuses a
14342
wife, he generally chuses ill. At three-and-twenty to have drawn such
14343
a prize! What years of felicity that man, in all human calculation,
14344
has before him!--Assured of the love of such a woman--the disinterested
14345
love, for Jane Fairfax's character vouches for her disinterestedness;
14346
every thing in his favour,--equality of situation--I mean, as far as
14347
regards society, and all the habits and manners that are important;
14348
equality in every point but one--and that one, since the purity of her
14349
heart is not to be doubted, such as must increase his felicity, for it
14350
will be his to bestow the only advantages she wants.--A man would always
14351
wish to give a woman a better home than the one he takes her from;
14352
and he who can do it, where there is no doubt of _her_ regard, must,
14353
I think, be the happiest of mortals.--Frank Churchill is, indeed, the
14354
favourite of fortune. Every thing turns out for his good.--He meets
14355
with a young woman at a watering-place, gains her affection, cannot even
14356
weary her by negligent treatment--and had he and all his family sought
14357
round the world for a perfect wife for him, they could not have found
14358
her superior.--His aunt is in the way.--His aunt dies.--He has only to
14359
speak.--His friends are eager to promote his happiness.--He had used
14360
every body ill--and they are all delighted to forgive him.--He is a
14361
fortunate man indeed!”
14362
14363
“You speak as if you envied him.”
14364
14365
“And I do envy him, Emma. In one respect he is the object of my envy.”
14366
14367
Emma could say no more. They seemed to be within half a sentence
14368
of Harriet, and her immediate feeling was to avert the subject, if
14369
possible. She made her plan; she would speak of something totally
14370
different--the children in Brunswick Square; and she only waited for
14371
breath to begin, when Mr. Knightley startled her, by saying,
14372
14373
“You will not ask me what is the point of envy.--You are determined, I
14374
see, to have no curiosity.--You are wise--but _I_ cannot be wise. Emma,
14375
I must tell you what you will not ask, though I may wish it unsaid the
14376
next moment.”
14377
14378
“Oh! then, don't speak it, don't speak it,” she eagerly cried. “Take a
14379
little time, consider, do not commit yourself.”
14380
14381
“Thank you,” said he, in an accent of deep mortification, and not
14382
another syllable followed.
14383
14384
Emma could not bear to give him pain. He was wishing to confide in
14385
her--perhaps to consult her;--cost her what it would, she would listen.
14386
She might assist his resolution, or reconcile him to it; she might give
14387
just praise to Harriet, or, by representing to him his own independence,
14388
relieve him from that state of indecision, which must be more
14389
intolerable than any alternative to such a mind as his.--They had
14390
reached the house.
14391
14392
“You are going in, I suppose?” said he.
14393
14394
“No,”--replied Emma--quite confirmed by the depressed manner in which
14395
he still spoke--“I should like to take another turn. Mr. Perry is not
14396
gone.” And, after proceeding a few steps, she added--“I stopped you
14397
ungraciously, just now, Mr. Knightley, and, I am afraid, gave you
14398
pain.--But if you have any wish to speak openly to me as a friend, or
14399
to ask my opinion of any thing that you may have in contemplation--as
14400
a friend, indeed, you may command me.--I will hear whatever you like. I
14401
will tell you exactly what I think.”
14402
14403
“As a friend!”--repeated Mr. Knightley.--“Emma, that I fear is a
14404
word--No, I have no wish--Stay, yes, why should I hesitate?--I
14405
have gone too far already for concealment.--Emma, I accept your
14406
offer--Extraordinary as it may seem, I accept it, and refer myself to
14407
you as a friend.--Tell me, then, have I no chance of ever succeeding?”
14408
14409
He stopped in his earnestness to look the question, and the expression
14410
of his eyes overpowered her.
14411
14412
“My dearest Emma,” said he, “for dearest you will always be, whatever
14413
the event of this hour's conversation, my dearest, most beloved
14414
Emma--tell me at once. Say 'No,' if it is to be said.”--She could
14415
really say nothing.--“You are silent,” he cried, with great animation;
14416
“absolutely silent! at present I ask no more.”
14417
14418
Emma was almost ready to sink under the agitation of this moment. The
14419
dread of being awakened from the happiest dream, was perhaps the most
14420
prominent feeling.
14421
14422
“I cannot make speeches, Emma:” he soon resumed; and in a tone of
14423
such sincere, decided, intelligible tenderness as was tolerably
14424
convincing.--“If I loved you less, I might be able to talk about it
14425
more. But you know what I am.--You hear nothing but truth from me.--I
14426
have blamed you, and lectured you, and you have borne it as no other
14427
woman in England would have borne it.--Bear with the truths I would
14428
tell you now, dearest Emma, as well as you have borne with them. The
14429
manner, perhaps, may have as little to recommend them. God knows, I have
14430
been a very indifferent lover.--But you understand me.--Yes, you see,
14431
you understand my feelings--and will return them if you can. At present,
14432
I ask only to hear, once to hear your voice.”
14433
14434
While he spoke, Emma's mind was most busy, and, with all the wonderful
14435
velocity of thought, had been able--and yet without losing a word--to
14436
catch and comprehend the exact truth of the whole; to see that Harriet's
14437
hopes had been entirely groundless, a mistake, a delusion, as complete a
14438
delusion as any of her own--that Harriet was nothing; that she was every
14439
thing herself; that what she had been saying relative to Harriet
14440
had been all taken as the language of her own feelings; and that her
14441
agitation, her doubts, her reluctance, her discouragement, had been all
14442
received as discouragement from herself.--And not only was there time
14443
for these convictions, with all their glow of attendant happiness; there
14444
was time also to rejoice that Harriet's secret had not escaped her, and
14445
to resolve that it need not, and should not.--It was all the service
14446
she could now render her poor friend; for as to any of that heroism of
14447
sentiment which might have prompted her to entreat him to transfer his
14448
affection from herself to Harriet, as infinitely the most worthy of the
14449
two--or even the more simple sublimity of resolving to refuse him at
14450
once and for ever, without vouchsafing any motive, because he could not
14451
marry them both, Emma had it not. She felt for Harriet, with pain and
14452
with contrition; but no flight of generosity run mad, opposing all that
14453
could be probable or reasonable, entered her brain. She had led her
14454
friend astray, and it would be a reproach to her for ever; but her
14455
judgment was as strong as her feelings, and as strong as it had ever
14456
been before, in reprobating any such alliance for him, as most unequal
14457
and degrading. Her way was clear, though not quite smooth.--She spoke
14458
then, on being so entreated.--What did she say?--Just what she ought,
14459
of course. A lady always does.--She said enough to shew there need not
14460
be despair--and to invite him to say more himself. He _had_ despaired at
14461
one period; he had received such an injunction to caution and silence,
14462
as for the time crushed every hope;--she had begun by refusing to hear
14463
him.--The change had perhaps been somewhat sudden;--her proposal of
14464
taking another turn, her renewing the conversation which she had
14465
just put an end to, might be a little extraordinary!--She felt its
14466
inconsistency; but Mr. Knightley was so obliging as to put up with it,
14467
and seek no farther explanation.
14468
14469
Seldom, very seldom, does complete truth belong to any human disclosure;
14470
seldom can it happen that something is not a little disguised, or a
14471
little mistaken; but where, as in this case, though the conduct is
14472
mistaken, the feelings are not, it may not be very material.--Mr.
14473
Knightley could not impute to Emma a more relenting heart than she
14474
possessed, or a heart more disposed to accept of his.
14475
14476
He had, in fact, been wholly unsuspicious of his own influence. He had
14477
followed her into the shrubbery with no idea of trying it. He had come,
14478
in his anxiety to see how she bore Frank Churchill's engagement, with no
14479
selfish view, no view at all, but of endeavouring, if she allowed him an
14480
opening, to soothe or to counsel her.--The rest had been the work of
14481
the moment, the immediate effect of what he heard, on his feelings. The
14482
delightful assurance of her total indifference towards Frank Churchill,
14483
of her having a heart completely disengaged from him, had given birth
14484
to the hope, that, in time, he might gain her affection himself;--but
14485
it had been no present hope--he had only, in the momentary conquest of
14486
eagerness over judgment, aspired to be told that she did not forbid his
14487
attempt to attach her.--The superior hopes which gradually opened were
14488
so much the more enchanting.--The affection, which he had been asking
14489
to be allowed to create, if he could, was already his!--Within half
14490
an hour, he had passed from a thoroughly distressed state of mind, to
14491
something so like perfect happiness, that it could bear no other name.
14492
14493
_Her_ change was equal.--This one half-hour had given to each the same
14494
precious certainty of being beloved, had cleared from each the same
14495
degree of ignorance, jealousy, or distrust.--On his side, there had been
14496
a long-standing jealousy, old as the arrival, or even the expectation,
14497
of Frank Churchill.--He had been in love with Emma, and jealous of Frank
14498
Churchill, from about the same period, one sentiment having probably
14499
enlightened him as to the other. It was his jealousy of Frank Churchill
14500
that had taken him from the country.--The Box Hill party had decided
14501
him on going away. He would save himself from witnessing again
14502
such permitted, encouraged attentions.--He had gone to learn to be
14503
indifferent.--But he had gone to a wrong place. There was too much
14504
domestic happiness in his brother's house; woman wore too amiable a form
14505
in it; Isabella was too much like Emma--differing only in those striking
14506
inferiorities, which always brought the other in brilliancy before
14507
him, for much to have been done, even had his time been longer.--He had
14508
stayed on, however, vigorously, day after day--till this very morning's
14509
post had conveyed the history of Jane Fairfax.--Then, with the gladness
14510
which must be felt, nay, which he did not scruple to feel, having never
14511
believed Frank Churchill to be at all deserving Emma, was there so much
14512
fond solicitude, so much keen anxiety for her, that he could stay no
14513
longer. He had ridden home through the rain; and had walked up directly
14514
after dinner, to see how this sweetest and best of all creatures,
14515
faultless in spite of all her faults, bore the discovery.
14516
14517
He had found her agitated and low.--Frank Churchill was a villain.--
14518
He heard her declare that she had never loved him. Frank Churchill's
14519
character was not desperate.--She was his own Emma, by hand and word,
14520
when they returned into the house; and if he could have thought of Frank
14521
Churchill then, he might have deemed him a very good sort of fellow.
14522
14523
14524
14525
CHAPTER XIV
14526
14527
14528
What totally different feelings did Emma take back into the house from
14529
what she had brought out!--she had then been only daring to hope for
14530
a little respite of suffering;--she was now in an exquisite flutter of
14531
happiness, and such happiness moreover as she believed must still be
14532
greater when the flutter should have passed away.
14533
14534
They sat down to tea--the same party round the same table--how often
14535
it had been collected!--and how often had her eyes fallen on the same
14536
shrubs in the lawn, and observed the same beautiful effect of the
14537
western sun!--But never in such a state of spirits, never in any thing
14538
like it; and it was with difficulty that she could summon enough of her
14539
usual self to be the attentive lady of the house, or even the attentive
14540
daughter.
14541
14542
Poor Mr. Woodhouse little suspected what was plotting against him in the
14543
breast of that man whom he was so cordially welcoming, and so anxiously
14544
hoping might not have taken cold from his ride.--Could he have seen the
14545
heart, he would have cared very little for the lungs; but without the
14546
most distant imagination of the impending evil, without the slightest
14547
perception of any thing extraordinary in the looks or ways of either,
14548
he repeated to them very comfortably all the articles of news he had
14549
received from Mr. Perry, and talked on with much self-contentment,
14550
totally unsuspicious of what they could have told him in return.
14551
14552
As long as Mr. Knightley remained with them, Emma's fever continued;
14553
but when he was gone, she began to be a little tranquillised and
14554
subdued--and in the course of the sleepless night, which was the tax
14555
for such an evening, she found one or two such very serious points
14556
to consider, as made her feel, that even her happiness must have some
14557
alloy. Her father--and Harriet. She could not be alone without feeling
14558
the full weight of their separate claims; and how to guard the comfort
14559
of both to the utmost, was the question. With respect to her father,
14560
it was a question soon answered. She hardly knew yet what Mr. Knightley
14561
would ask; but a very short parley with her own heart produced the most
14562
solemn resolution of never quitting her father.--She even wept over
14563
the idea of it, as a sin of thought. While he lived, it must be only an
14564
engagement; but she flattered herself, that if divested of the danger of
14565
drawing her away, it might become an increase of comfort to him.--How
14566
to do her best by Harriet, was of more difficult decision;--how to spare
14567
her from any unnecessary pain; how to make her any possible atonement;
14568
how to appear least her enemy?--On these subjects, her perplexity
14569
and distress were very great--and her mind had to pass again and
14570
again through every bitter reproach and sorrowful regret that had ever
14571
surrounded it.--She could only resolve at last, that she would still
14572
avoid a meeting with her, and communicate all that need be told by
14573
letter; that it would be inexpressibly desirable to have her removed
14574
just now for a time from Highbury, and--indulging in one scheme
14575
more--nearly resolve, that it might be practicable to get an invitation
14576
for her to Brunswick Square.--Isabella had been pleased with Harriet;
14577
and a few weeks spent in London must give her some amusement.--She did
14578
not think it in Harriet's nature to escape being benefited by novelty
14579
and variety, by the streets, the shops, and the children.--At any rate,
14580
it would be a proof of attention and kindness in herself, from whom
14581
every thing was due; a separation for the present; an averting of the
14582
evil day, when they must all be together again.
14583
14584
She rose early, and wrote her letter to Harriet; an employment which
14585
left her so very serious, so nearly sad, that Mr. Knightley, in walking
14586
up to Hartfield to breakfast, did not arrive at all too soon; and half
14587
an hour stolen afterwards to go over the same ground again with him,
14588
literally and figuratively, was quite necessary to reinstate her in a
14589
proper share of the happiness of the evening before.
14590
14591
He had not left her long, by no means long enough for her to have the
14592
slightest inclination for thinking of any body else, when a letter was
14593
brought her from Randalls--a very thick letter;--she guessed what it
14594
must contain, and deprecated the necessity of reading it.--She was now
14595
in perfect charity with Frank Churchill; she wanted no explanations, she
14596
wanted only to have her thoughts to herself--and as for understanding
14597
any thing he wrote, she was sure she was incapable of it.--It must be
14598
waded through, however. She opened the packet; it was too surely so;--a
14599
note from Mrs. Weston to herself, ushered in the letter from Frank to
14600
Mrs. Weston.
14601
14602
“I have the greatest pleasure, my dear Emma, in forwarding to you the
14603
enclosed. I know what thorough justice you will do it, and have scarcely
14604
a doubt of its happy effect.--I think we shall never materially disagree
14605
about the writer again; but I will not delay you by a long preface.--We
14606
are quite well.--This letter has been the cure of all the little
14607
nervousness I have been feeling lately.--I did not quite like your looks
14608
on Tuesday, but it was an ungenial morning; and though you will never
14609
own being affected by weather, I think every body feels a north-east
14610
wind.--I felt for your dear father very much in the storm of Tuesday
14611
afternoon and yesterday morning, but had the comfort of hearing last
14612
night, by Mr. Perry, that it had not made him ill.
14613
14614
“Yours ever,
14615
“A. W.”
14616
14617
[To Mrs. Weston.]
14618
14619
14620
WINDSOR-JULY.
14621
MY DEAR MADAM,
14622
14623
“If I made myself intelligible yesterday, this letter will be
14624
expected; but expected or not, I know it will be read with candour and
14625
indulgence.--You are all goodness, and I believe there will be need of
14626
even all your goodness to allow for some parts of my past conduct.--But
14627
I have been forgiven by one who had still more to resent. My courage
14628
rises while I write. It is very difficult for the prosperous to be
14629
humble. I have already met with such success in two applications for
14630
pardon, that I may be in danger of thinking myself too sure of yours,
14631
and of those among your friends who have had any ground of offence.--You
14632
must all endeavour to comprehend the exact nature of my situation when I
14633
first arrived at Randalls; you must consider me as having a secret which
14634
was to be kept at all hazards. This was the fact. My right to place
14635
myself in a situation requiring such concealment, is another question.
14636
I shall not discuss it here. For my temptation to _think_ it a right,
14637
I refer every caviller to a brick house, sashed windows below, and
14638
casements above, in Highbury. I dared not address her openly; my
14639
difficulties in the then state of Enscombe must be too well known to
14640
require definition; and I was fortunate enough to prevail, before we
14641
parted at Weymouth, and to induce the most upright female mind in the
14642
creation to stoop in charity to a secret engagement.--Had she refused, I
14643
should have gone mad.--But you will be ready to say, what was your
14644
hope in doing this?--What did you look forward to?--To any thing, every
14645
thing--to time, chance, circumstance, slow effects, sudden bursts,
14646
perseverance and weariness, health and sickness. Every possibility of
14647
good was before me, and the first of blessings secured, in obtaining her
14648
promises of faith and correspondence. If you need farther explanation,
14649
I have the honour, my dear madam, of being your husband's son, and
14650
the advantage of inheriting a disposition to hope for good, which no
14651
inheritance of houses or lands can ever equal the value of.--See
14652
me, then, under these circumstances, arriving on my first visit to
14653
Randalls;--and here I am conscious of wrong, for that visit might have
14654
been sooner paid. You will look back and see that I did not come till
14655
Miss Fairfax was in Highbury; and as _you_ were the person slighted, you
14656
will forgive me instantly; but I must work on my father's compassion, by
14657
reminding him, that so long as I absented myself from his house, so long
14658
I lost the blessing of knowing you. My behaviour, during the very
14659
happy fortnight which I spent with you, did not, I hope, lay me open to
14660
reprehension, excepting on one point. And now I come to the principal,
14661
the only important part of my conduct while belonging to you, which
14662
excites my own anxiety, or requires very solicitous explanation. With
14663
the greatest respect, and the warmest friendship, do I mention Miss
14664
Woodhouse; my father perhaps will think I ought to add, with the deepest
14665
humiliation.--A few words which dropped from him yesterday spoke his
14666
opinion, and some censure I acknowledge myself liable to.--My behaviour
14667
to Miss Woodhouse indicated, I believe, more than it ought.--In order to
14668
assist a concealment so essential to me, I was led on to make more than
14669
an allowable use of the sort of intimacy into which we were immediately
14670
thrown.--I cannot deny that Miss Woodhouse was my ostensible object--but
14671
I am sure you will believe the declaration, that had I not been
14672
convinced of her indifference, I would not have been induced by any
14673
selfish views to go on.--Amiable and delightful as Miss Woodhouse is,
14674
she never gave me the idea of a young woman likely to be attached; and
14675
that she was perfectly free from any tendency to being attached to me,
14676
was as much my conviction as my wish.--She received my attentions with
14677
an easy, friendly, goodhumoured playfulness, which exactly suited me.
14678
We seemed to understand each other. From our relative situation, those
14679
attentions were her due, and were felt to be so.--Whether Miss Woodhouse
14680
began really to understand me before the expiration of that fortnight,
14681
I cannot say;--when I called to take leave of her, I remember that I was
14682
within a moment of confessing the truth, and I then fancied she was not
14683
without suspicion; but I have no doubt of her having since detected me,
14684
at least in some degree.--She may not have surmised the whole, but her
14685
quickness must have penetrated a part. I cannot doubt it. You will find,
14686
whenever the subject becomes freed from its present restraints, that it
14687
did not take her wholly by surprize. She frequently gave me hints of it.
14688
I remember her telling me at the ball, that I owed Mrs. Elton gratitude
14689
for her attentions to Miss Fairfax.--I hope this history of my conduct
14690
towards her will be admitted by you and my father as great extenuation
14691
of what you saw amiss. While you considered me as having sinned against
14692
Emma Woodhouse, I could deserve nothing from either. Acquit me here, and
14693
procure for me, when it is allowable, the acquittal and good wishes
14694
of that said Emma Woodhouse, whom I regard with so much brotherly
14695
affection, as to long to have her as deeply and as happily in love as
14696
myself.--Whatever strange things I said or did during that fortnight,
14697
you have now a key to. My heart was in Highbury, and my business was to
14698
get my body thither as often as might be, and with the least suspicion.
14699
If you remember any queernesses, set them all to the right account.--Of
14700
the pianoforte so much talked of, I feel it only necessary to say, that
14701
its being ordered was absolutely unknown to Miss F--, who would never
14702
have allowed me to send it, had any choice been given her.--The
14703
delicacy of her mind throughout the whole engagement, my dear madam,
14704
is much beyond my power of doing justice to. You will soon, I earnestly
14705
hope, know her thoroughly yourself.--No description can describe her.
14706
She must tell you herself what she is--yet not by word, for never
14707
was there a human creature who would so designedly suppress her own
14708
merit.--Since I began this letter, which will be longer than I foresaw,
14709
I have heard from her.--She gives a good account of her own health; but
14710
as she never complains, I dare not depend. I want to have your opinion
14711
of her looks. I know you will soon call on her; she is living in dread
14712
of the visit. Perhaps it is paid already. Let me hear from you without
14713
delay; I am impatient for a thousand particulars. Remember how few
14714
minutes I was at Randalls, and in how bewildered, how mad a state: and
14715
I am not much better yet; still insane either from happiness or
14716
misery. When I think of the kindness and favour I have met with, of her
14717
excellence and patience, and my uncle's generosity, I am mad with joy:
14718
but when I recollect all the uneasiness I occasioned her, and how little
14719
I deserve to be forgiven, I am mad with anger. If I could but see her
14720
again!--But I must not propose it yet. My uncle has been too good for me
14721
to encroach.--I must still add to this long letter. You have not heard
14722
all that you ought to hear. I could not give any connected detail
14723
yesterday; but the suddenness, and, in one light, the unseasonableness
14724
with which the affair burst out, needs explanation; for though the event
14725
of the 26th ult., as you will conclude, immediately opened to me the
14726
happiest prospects, I should not have presumed on such early measures,
14727
but from the very particular circumstances, which left me not an hour to
14728
lose. I should myself have shrunk from any thing so hasty, and she
14729
would have felt every scruple of mine with multiplied strength and
14730
refinement.--But I had no choice. The hasty engagement she had entered
14731
into with that woman--Here, my dear madam, I was obliged to leave off
14732
abruptly, to recollect and compose myself.--I have been walking over
14733
the country, and am now, I hope, rational enough to make the rest of
14734
my letter what it ought to be.--It is, in fact, a most mortifying
14735
retrospect for me. I behaved shamefully. And here I can admit, that
14736
my manners to Miss W., in being unpleasant to Miss F., were highly
14737
blameable. _She_ disapproved them, which ought to have been enough.--My
14738
plea of concealing the truth she did not think sufficient.--She was
14739
displeased; I thought unreasonably so: I thought her, on a thousand
14740
occasions, unnecessarily scrupulous and cautious: I thought her even
14741
cold. But she was always right. If I had followed her judgment, and
14742
subdued my spirits to the level of what she deemed proper, I should have
14743
escaped the greatest unhappiness I have ever known.--We quarrelled.--
14744
Do you remember the morning spent at Donwell?--_There_ every little
14745
dissatisfaction that had occurred before came to a crisis. I was late;
14746
I met her walking home by herself, and wanted to walk with her, but she
14747
would not suffer it. She absolutely refused to allow me, which I then
14748
thought most unreasonable. Now, however, I see nothing in it but a very
14749
natural and consistent degree of discretion. While I, to blind the
14750
world to our engagement, was behaving one hour with objectionable
14751
particularity to another woman, was she to be consenting the next to a
14752
proposal which might have made every previous caution useless?--Had we
14753
been met walking together between Donwell and Highbury, the truth must
14754
have been suspected.--I was mad enough, however, to resent.--I doubted
14755
her affection. I doubted it more the next day on Box Hill; when,
14756
provoked by such conduct on my side, such shameful, insolent neglect
14757
of her, and such apparent devotion to Miss W., as it would have been
14758
impossible for any woman of sense to endure, she spoke her resentment in
14759
a form of words perfectly intelligible to me.--In short, my dear
14760
madam, it was a quarrel blameless on her side, abominable on mine; and
14761
I returned the same evening to Richmond, though I might have staid with
14762
you till the next morning, merely because I would be as angry with
14763
her as possible. Even then, I was not such a fool as not to mean to
14764
be reconciled in time; but I was the injured person, injured by her
14765
coldness, and I went away determined that she should make the first
14766
advances.--I shall always congratulate myself that you were not of
14767
the Box Hill party. Had you witnessed my behaviour there, I can hardly
14768
suppose you would ever have thought well of me again. Its effect upon
14769
her appears in the immediate resolution it produced: as soon as she
14770
found I was really gone from Randalls, she closed with the offer of that
14771
officious Mrs. Elton; the whole system of whose treatment of her, by the
14772
bye, has ever filled me with indignation and hatred. I must not quarrel
14773
with a spirit of forbearance which has been so richly extended towards
14774
myself; but, otherwise, I should loudly protest against the share of it
14775
which that woman has known.--'Jane,' indeed!--You will observe that I
14776
have not yet indulged myself in calling her by that name, even to you.
14777
Think, then, what I must have endured in hearing it bandied between
14778
the Eltons with all the vulgarity of needless repetition, and all the
14779
insolence of imaginary superiority. Have patience with me, I shall soon
14780
have done.--She closed with this offer, resolving to break with me
14781
entirely, and wrote the next day to tell me that we never were to meet
14782
again.--_She_ _felt_ _the_ _engagement_ _to_ _be_ _a_ _source_ _of_
14783
_repentance_ _and_ _misery_ _to_ _each_: _she_ _dissolved_ _it_.--This
14784
letter reached me on the very morning of my poor aunt's death. I
14785
answered it within an hour; but from the confusion of my mind, and the
14786
multiplicity of business falling on me at once, my answer, instead of
14787
being sent with all the many other letters of that day, was locked up in
14788
my writing-desk; and I, trusting that I had written enough, though but
14789
a few lines, to satisfy her, remained without any uneasiness.--I was
14790
rather disappointed that I did not hear from her again speedily; but I
14791
made excuses for her, and was too busy, and--may I add?--too cheerful
14792
in my views to be captious.--We removed to Windsor; and two
14793
days afterwards I received a parcel from her, my own letters all
14794
returned!--and a few lines at the same time by the post, stating her
14795
extreme surprize at not having had the smallest reply to her last; and
14796
adding, that as silence on such a point could not be misconstrued,
14797
and as it must be equally desirable to both to have every subordinate
14798
arrangement concluded as soon as possible, she now sent me, by a safe
14799
conveyance, all my letters, and requested, that if I could not directly
14800
command hers, so as to send them to Highbury within a week, I would
14801
forward them after that period to her at--: in short, the full direction
14802
to Mr. Smallridge's, near Bristol, stared me in the face. I knew the
14803
name, the place, I knew all about it, and instantly saw what she had
14804
been doing. It was perfectly accordant with that resolution of character
14805
which I knew her to possess; and the secrecy she had maintained, as to
14806
any such design in her former letter, was equally descriptive of its
14807
anxious delicacy. For the world would not she have seemed to threaten
14808
me.--Imagine the shock; imagine how, till I had actually detected my
14809
own blunder, I raved at the blunders of the post.--What was to be
14810
done?--One thing only.--I must speak to my uncle. Without his sanction I
14811
could not hope to be listened to again.--I spoke; circumstances were
14812
in my favour; the late event had softened away his pride, and he was,
14813
earlier than I could have anticipated, wholly reconciled and complying;
14814
and could say at last, poor man! with a deep sigh, that he wished I
14815
might find as much happiness in the marriage state as he had done.--I
14816
felt that it would be of a different sort.--Are you disposed to pity
14817
me for what I must have suffered in opening the cause to him, for my
14818
suspense while all was at stake?--No; do not pity me till I reached
14819
Highbury, and saw how ill I had made her. Do not pity me till I saw her
14820
wan, sick looks.--I reached Highbury at the time of day when, from my
14821
knowledge of their late breakfast hour, I was certain of a good chance
14822
of finding her alone.--I was not disappointed; and at last I was not
14823
disappointed either in the object of my journey. A great deal of very
14824
reasonable, very just displeasure I had to persuade away. But it is
14825
done; we are reconciled, dearer, much dearer, than ever, and no moment's
14826
uneasiness can ever occur between us again. Now, my dear madam, I will
14827
release you; but I could not conclude before. A thousand and a thousand
14828
thanks for all the kindness you have ever shewn me, and ten thousand for
14829
the attentions your heart will dictate towards her.--If you think me in
14830
a way to be happier than I deserve, I am quite of your opinion.--Miss
14831
W. calls me the child of good fortune. I hope she is right.--In one
14832
respect, my good fortune is undoubted, that of being able to subscribe
14833
myself,
14834
14835
Your obliged and affectionate Son,
14836
14837
F. C. WESTON CHURCHILL.
14838
14839
14840
14841
CHAPTER XV
14842
14843
14844
This letter must make its way to Emma's feelings. She was obliged, in
14845
spite of her previous determination to the contrary, to do it all the
14846
justice that Mrs. Weston foretold. As soon as she came to her own name,
14847
it was irresistible; every line relating to herself was interesting,
14848
and almost every line agreeable; and when this charm ceased, the subject
14849
could still maintain itself, by the natural return of her former regard
14850
for the writer, and the very strong attraction which any picture of
14851
love must have for her at that moment. She never stopt till she had gone
14852
through the whole; and though it was impossible not to feel that he had
14853
been wrong, yet he had been less wrong than she had supposed--and he had
14854
suffered, and was very sorry--and he was so grateful to Mrs. Weston, and
14855
so much in love with Miss Fairfax, and she was so happy herself, that
14856
there was no being severe; and could he have entered the room, she must
14857
have shaken hands with him as heartily as ever.
14858
14859
She thought so well of the letter, that when Mr. Knightley came again,
14860
she desired him to read it. She was sure of Mrs. Weston's wishing it to
14861
be communicated; especially to one, who, like Mr. Knightley, had seen so
14862
much to blame in his conduct.
14863
14864
“I shall be very glad to look it over,” said he; “but it seems long. I
14865
will take it home with me at night.”
14866
14867
But that would not do. Mr. Weston was to call in the evening, and she
14868
must return it by him.
14869
14870
“I would rather be talking to you,” he replied; “but as it seems a
14871
matter of justice, it shall be done.”
14872
14873
He began--stopping, however, almost directly to say, “Had I been offered
14874
the sight of one of this gentleman's letters to his mother-in-law a few
14875
months ago, Emma, it would not have been taken with such indifference.”
14876
14877
He proceeded a little farther, reading to himself; and then, with a
14878
smile, observed, “Humph! a fine complimentary opening: But it is his
14879
way. One man's style must not be the rule of another's. We will not be
14880
severe.”
14881
14882
“It will be natural for me,” he added shortly afterwards, “to speak my
14883
opinion aloud as I read. By doing it, I shall feel that I am near you.
14884
It will not be so great a loss of time: but if you dislike it--”
14885
14886
“Not at all. I should wish it.”
14887
14888
Mr. Knightley returned to his reading with greater alacrity.
14889
14890
“He trifles here,” said he, “as to the temptation. He knows he is wrong,
14891
and has nothing rational to urge.--Bad.--He ought not to have formed the
14892
engagement.--'His father's disposition:'--he is unjust, however, to his
14893
father. Mr. Weston's sanguine temper was a blessing on all his upright
14894
and honourable exertions; but Mr. Weston earned every present comfort
14895
before he endeavoured to gain it.--Very true; he did not come till Miss
14896
Fairfax was here.”
14897
14898
“And I have not forgotten,” said Emma, “how sure you were that he might
14899
have come sooner if he would. You pass it over very handsomely--but you
14900
were perfectly right.”
14901
14902
“I was not quite impartial in my judgment, Emma:--but yet, I think--had
14903
_you_ not been in the case--I should still have distrusted him.”
14904
14905
When he came to Miss Woodhouse, he was obliged to read the whole of it
14906
aloud--all that related to her, with a smile; a look; a shake of the
14907
head; a word or two of assent, or disapprobation; or merely of love, as
14908
the subject required; concluding, however, seriously, and, after steady
14909
reflection, thus--
14910
14911
“Very bad--though it might have been worse.--Playing a most dangerous
14912
game. Too much indebted to the event for his acquittal.--No judge of
14913
his own manners by you.--Always deceived in fact by his own wishes, and
14914
regardless of little besides his own convenience.--Fancying you to have
14915
fathomed his secret. Natural enough!--his own mind full of intrigue,
14916
that he should suspect it in others.--Mystery; Finesse--how they pervert
14917
the understanding! My Emma, does not every thing serve to prove more
14918
and more the beauty of truth and sincerity in all our dealings with each
14919
other?”
14920
14921
Emma agreed to it, and with a blush of sensibility on Harriet's account,
14922
which she could not give any sincere explanation of.
14923
14924
“You had better go on,” said she.
14925
14926
He did so, but very soon stopt again to say, “the pianoforte! Ah! That
14927
was the act of a very, very young man, one too young to consider whether
14928
the inconvenience of it might not very much exceed the pleasure. A
14929
boyish scheme, indeed!--I cannot comprehend a man's wishing to give a
14930
woman any proof of affection which he knows she would rather dispense
14931
with; and he did know that she would have prevented the instrument's
14932
coming if she could.”
14933
14934
After this, he made some progress without any pause. Frank Churchill's
14935
confession of having behaved shamefully was the first thing to call for
14936
more than a word in passing.
14937
14938
“I perfectly agree with you, sir,”--was then his remark. “You did behave
14939
very shamefully. You never wrote a truer line.” And having gone through
14940
what immediately followed of the basis of their disagreement, and his
14941
persisting to act in direct opposition to Jane Fairfax's sense of right,
14942
he made a fuller pause to say, “This is very bad.--He had induced her
14943
to place herself, for his sake, in a situation of extreme difficulty and
14944
uneasiness, and it should have been his first object to prevent her from
14945
suffering unnecessarily.--She must have had much more to contend
14946
with, in carrying on the correspondence, than he could. He should have
14947
respected even unreasonable scruples, had there been such; but hers were
14948
all reasonable. We must look to her one fault, and remember that she
14949
had done a wrong thing in consenting to the engagement, to bear that she
14950
should have been in such a state of punishment.”
14951
14952
Emma knew that he was now getting to the Box Hill party, and grew
14953
uncomfortable. Her own behaviour had been so very improper! She was
14954
deeply ashamed, and a little afraid of his next look. It was all read,
14955
however, steadily, attentively, and without the smallest remark; and,
14956
excepting one momentary glance at her, instantly withdrawn, in the fear
14957
of giving pain--no remembrance of Box Hill seemed to exist.
14958
14959
“There is no saying much for the delicacy of our good friends, the
14960
Eltons,” was his next observation.--“His feelings are natural.--What!
14961
actually resolve to break with him entirely!--She felt the engagement to
14962
be a source of repentance and misery to each--she dissolved it.--What a
14963
view this gives of her sense of his behaviour!--Well, he must be a most
14964
extraordinary--”
14965
14966
“Nay, nay, read on.--You will find how very much he suffers.”
14967
14968
“I hope he does,” replied Mr. Knightley coolly, and resuming the letter.
14969
“'Smallridge!'--What does this mean? What is all this?”
14970
14971
“She had engaged to go as governess to Mrs. Smallridge's children--a
14972
dear friend of Mrs. Elton's--a neighbour of Maple Grove; and, by the
14973
bye, I wonder how Mrs. Elton bears the disappointment?”
14974
14975
“Say nothing, my dear Emma, while you oblige me to read--not even of
14976
Mrs. Elton. Only one page more. I shall soon have done. What a letter
14977
the man writes!”
14978
14979
“I wish you would read it with a kinder spirit towards him.”
14980
14981
“Well, there _is_ feeling here.--He does seem to have suffered in
14982
finding her ill.--Certainly, I can have no doubt of his being fond of
14983
her. 'Dearer, much dearer than ever.' I hope he may long continue to
14984
feel all the value of such a reconciliation.--He is a very liberal
14985
thanker, with his thousands and tens of thousands.--'Happier than I
14986
deserve.' Come, he knows himself there. 'Miss Woodhouse calls me the
14987
child of good fortune.'--Those were Miss Woodhouse's words, were they?--
14988
And a fine ending--and there is the letter. The child of good fortune!
14989
That was your name for him, was it?”
14990
14991
“You do not appear so well satisfied with his letter as I am; but still
14992
you must, at least I hope you must, think the better of him for it. I
14993
hope it does him some service with you.”
14994
14995
“Yes, certainly it does. He has had great faults, faults of
14996
inconsideration and thoughtlessness; and I am very much of his opinion
14997
in thinking him likely to be happier than he deserves: but still as he
14998
is, beyond a doubt, really attached to Miss Fairfax, and will soon, it
14999
may be hoped, have the advantage of being constantly with her, I am very
15000
ready to believe his character will improve, and acquire from hers the
15001
steadiness and delicacy of principle that it wants. And now, let me talk
15002
to you of something else. I have another person's interest at present
15003
so much at heart, that I cannot think any longer about Frank Churchill.
15004
Ever since I left you this morning, Emma, my mind has been hard at work
15005
on one subject.”
15006
15007
The subject followed; it was in plain, unaffected, gentlemanlike
15008
English, such as Mr. Knightley used even to the woman he was in love
15009
with, how to be able to ask her to marry him, without attacking the
15010
happiness of her father. Emma's answer was ready at the first word.
15011
“While her dear father lived, any change of condition must be impossible
15012
for her. She could never quit him.” Part only of this answer, however,
15013
was admitted. The impossibility of her quitting her father, Mr.
15014
Knightley felt as strongly as herself; but the inadmissibility of any
15015
other change, he could not agree to. He had been thinking it over most
15016
deeply, most intently; he had at first hoped to induce Mr. Woodhouse to
15017
remove with her to Donwell; he had wanted to believe it feasible, but
15018
his knowledge of Mr. Woodhouse would not suffer him to deceive himself
15019
long; and now he confessed his persuasion, that such a transplantation
15020
would be a risk of her father's comfort, perhaps even of his life, which
15021
must not be hazarded. Mr. Woodhouse taken from Hartfield!--No, he felt
15022
that it ought not to be attempted. But the plan which had arisen on the
15023
sacrifice of this, he trusted his dearest Emma would not find in any
15024
respect objectionable; it was, that he should be received at Hartfield;
15025
that so long as her father's happiness--in other words, his life--required
15026
Hartfield to continue her home, it should be his likewise.
15027
15028
Of their all removing to Donwell, Emma had already had her own passing
15029
thoughts. Like him, she had tried the scheme and rejected it; but such
15030
an alternative as this had not occurred to her. She was sensible of all
15031
the affection it evinced. She felt that, in quitting Donwell, he must
15032
be sacrificing a great deal of independence of hours and habits; that
15033
in living constantly with her father, and in no house of his own, there
15034
would be much, very much, to be borne with. She promised to think of it,
15035
and advised him to think of it more; but he was fully convinced, that no
15036
reflection could alter his wishes or his opinion on the subject. He had
15037
given it, he could assure her, very long and calm consideration; he had
15038
been walking away from William Larkins the whole morning, to have his
15039
thoughts to himself.
15040
15041
“Ah! there is one difficulty unprovided for,” cried Emma. “I am sure
15042
William Larkins will not like it. You must get his consent before you
15043
ask mine.”
15044
15045
She promised, however, to think of it; and pretty nearly promised,
15046
moreover, to think of it, with the intention of finding it a very good
15047
scheme.
15048
15049
It is remarkable, that Emma, in the many, very many, points of view in
15050
which she was now beginning to consider Donwell Abbey, was never
15051
struck with any sense of injury to her nephew Henry, whose rights as
15052
heir-expectant had formerly been so tenaciously regarded. Think she must
15053
of the possible difference to the poor little boy; and yet she only
15054
gave herself a saucy conscious smile about it, and found amusement in
15055
detecting the real cause of that violent dislike of Mr. Knightley's
15056
marrying Jane Fairfax, or any body else, which at the time she had
15057
wholly imputed to the amiable solicitude of the sister and the aunt.
15058
15059
This proposal of his, this plan of marrying and continuing at
15060
Hartfield--the more she contemplated it, the more pleasing it became.
15061
His evils seemed to lessen, her own advantages to increase, their mutual
15062
good to outweigh every drawback. Such a companion for herself in the
15063
periods of anxiety and cheerlessness before her!--Such a partner in
15064
all those duties and cares to which time must be giving increase of
15065
melancholy!
15066
15067
She would have been too happy but for poor Harriet; but every blessing
15068
of her own seemed to involve and advance the sufferings of her friend,
15069
who must now be even excluded from Hartfield. The delightful family
15070
party which Emma was securing for herself, poor Harriet must, in mere
15071
charitable caution, be kept at a distance from. She would be a loser in
15072
every way. Emma could not deplore her future absence as any deduction
15073
from her own enjoyment. In such a party, Harriet would be rather a
15074
dead weight than otherwise; but for the poor girl herself, it seemed a
15075
peculiarly cruel necessity that was to be placing her in such a state of
15076
unmerited punishment.
15077
15078
In time, of course, Mr. Knightley would be forgotten, that is,
15079
supplanted; but this could not be expected to happen very early. Mr.
15080
Knightley himself would be doing nothing to assist the cure;--not
15081
like Mr. Elton. Mr. Knightley, always so kind, so feeling, so truly
15082
considerate for every body, would never deserve to be less worshipped
15083
than now; and it really was too much to hope even of Harriet, that she
15084
could be in love with more than _three_ men in one year.
15085
15086
15087
15088
CHAPTER XVI
15089
15090
15091
It was a very great relief to Emma to find Harriet as desirous as
15092
herself to avoid a meeting. Their intercourse was painful enough by
15093
letter. How much worse, had they been obliged to meet!
15094
15095
Harriet expressed herself very much as might be supposed, without
15096
reproaches, or apparent sense of ill-usage; and yet Emma fancied there
15097
was a something of resentment, a something bordering on it in her style,
15098
which increased the desirableness of their being separate.--It might be
15099
only her own consciousness; but it seemed as if an angel only could have
15100
been quite without resentment under such a stroke.
15101
15102
She had no difficulty in procuring Isabella's invitation; and she was
15103
fortunate in having a sufficient reason for asking it, without resorting
15104
to invention.--There was a tooth amiss. Harriet really wished, and
15105
had wished some time, to consult a dentist. Mrs. John Knightley was
15106
delighted to be of use; any thing of ill health was a recommendation to
15107
her--and though not so fond of a dentist as of a Mr. Wingfield, she was
15108
quite eager to have Harriet under her care.--When it was thus settled
15109
on her sister's side, Emma proposed it to her friend, and found her
15110
very persuadable.--Harriet was to go; she was invited for at least a
15111
fortnight; she was to be conveyed in Mr. Woodhouse's carriage.--It was
15112
all arranged, it was all completed, and Harriet was safe in Brunswick
15113
Square.
15114
15115
Now Emma could, indeed, enjoy Mr. Knightley's visits; now she could
15116
talk, and she could listen with true happiness, unchecked by that sense
15117
of injustice, of guilt, of something most painful, which had haunted her
15118
when remembering how disappointed a heart was near her, how much might
15119
at that moment, and at a little distance, be enduring by the feelings
15120
which she had led astray herself.
15121
15122
The difference of Harriet at Mrs. Goddard's, or in London, made perhaps
15123
an unreasonable difference in Emma's sensations; but she could not think
15124
of her in London without objects of curiosity and employment, which must
15125
be averting the past, and carrying her out of herself.
15126
15127
She would not allow any other anxiety to succeed directly to the place
15128
in her mind which Harriet had occupied. There was a communication before
15129
her, one which _she_ only could be competent to make--the confession of
15130
her engagement to her father; but she would have nothing to do with it
15131
at present.--She had resolved to defer the disclosure till Mrs. Weston
15132
were safe and well. No additional agitation should be thrown at this
15133
period among those she loved--and the evil should not act on herself
15134
by anticipation before the appointed time.--A fortnight, at least, of
15135
leisure and peace of mind, to crown every warmer, but more agitating,
15136
delight, should be hers.
15137
15138
She soon resolved, equally as a duty and a pleasure, to employ half an
15139
hour of this holiday of spirits in calling on Miss Fairfax.--She ought
15140
to go--and she was longing to see her; the resemblance of their present
15141
situations increasing every other motive of goodwill. It would be a
15142
_secret_ satisfaction; but the consciousness of a similarity of prospect
15143
would certainly add to the interest with which she should attend to any
15144
thing Jane might communicate.
15145
15146
She went--she had driven once unsuccessfully to the door, but had not
15147
been into the house since the morning after Box Hill, when poor Jane had
15148
been in such distress as had filled her with compassion, though all the
15149
worst of her sufferings had been unsuspected.--The fear of being still
15150
unwelcome, determined her, though assured of their being at home, to
15151
wait in the passage, and send up her name.--She heard Patty announcing
15152
it; but no such bustle succeeded as poor Miss Bates had before made so
15153
happily intelligible.--No; she heard nothing but the instant reply of,
15154
“Beg her to walk up;”--and a moment afterwards she was met on the stairs
15155
by Jane herself, coming eagerly forward, as if no other reception of her
15156
were felt sufficient.--Emma had never seen her look so well, so lovely,
15157
so engaging. There was consciousness, animation, and warmth; there was
15158
every thing which her countenance or manner could ever have wanted.--
15159
She came forward with an offered hand; and said, in a low, but very
15160
feeling tone,
15161
15162
“This is most kind, indeed!--Miss Woodhouse, it is impossible for me
15163
to express--I hope you will believe--Excuse me for being so entirely
15164
without words.”
15165
15166
Emma was gratified, and would soon have shewn no want of words, if the
15167
sound of Mrs. Elton's voice from the sitting-room had not checked
15168
her, and made it expedient to compress all her friendly and all her
15169
congratulatory sensations into a very, very earnest shake of the hand.
15170
15171
Mrs. Bates and Mrs. Elton were together. Miss Bates was out, which
15172
accounted for the previous tranquillity. Emma could have wished Mrs.
15173
Elton elsewhere; but she was in a humour to have patience with every
15174
body; and as Mrs. Elton met her with unusual graciousness, she hoped the
15175
rencontre would do them no harm.
15176
15177
She soon believed herself to penetrate Mrs. Elton's thoughts, and
15178
understand why she was, like herself, in happy spirits; it was being in
15179
Miss Fairfax's confidence, and fancying herself acquainted with what was
15180
still a secret to other people. Emma saw symptoms of it immediately in
15181
the expression of her face; and while paying her own compliments to Mrs.
15182
Bates, and appearing to attend to the good old lady's replies, she saw
15183
her with a sort of anxious parade of mystery fold up a letter which she
15184
had apparently been reading aloud to Miss Fairfax, and return it into
15185
the purple and gold reticule by her side, saying, with significant nods,
15186
15187
“We can finish this some other time, you know. You and I shall not want
15188
opportunities. And, in fact, you have heard all the essential already. I
15189
only wanted to prove to you that Mrs. S. admits our apology, and is
15190
not offended. You see how delightfully she writes. Oh! she is a sweet
15191
creature! You would have doated on her, had you gone.--But not a word
15192
more. Let us be discreet--quite on our good behaviour.--Hush!--You
15193
remember those lines--I forget the poem at this moment:
15194
15195
“For when a lady's in the case,
15196
“You know all other things give place.”
15197
15198
Now I say, my dear, in _our_ case, for _lady_, read----mum! a word to
15199
the wise.--I am in a fine flow of spirits, an't I? But I want to set
15200
your heart at ease as to Mrs. S.--_My_ representation, you see, has
15201
quite appeased her.”
15202
15203
And again, on Emma's merely turning her head to look at Mrs. Bates's
15204
knitting, she added, in a half whisper,
15205
15206
“I mentioned no _names_, you will observe.--Oh! no; cautious as a
15207
minister of state. I managed it extremely well.”
15208
15209
Emma could not doubt. It was a palpable display, repeated on every
15210
possible occasion. When they had all talked a little while in harmony of
15211
the weather and Mrs. Weston, she found herself abruptly addressed with,
15212
15213
“Do not you think, Miss Woodhouse, our saucy little friend here is
15214
charmingly recovered?--Do not you think her cure does Perry the highest
15215
credit?--(here was a side-glance of great meaning at Jane.) Upon my
15216
word, Perry has restored her in a wonderful short time!--Oh! if you had
15217
seen her, as I did, when she was at the worst!”--And when Mrs. Bates
15218
was saying something to Emma, whispered farther, “We do not say a word
15219
of any _assistance_ that Perry might have; not a word of a certain young
15220
physician from Windsor.--Oh! no; Perry shall have all the credit.”
15221
15222
“I have scarce had the pleasure of seeing you, Miss Woodhouse,” she
15223
shortly afterwards began, “since the party to Box Hill. Very pleasant
15224
party. But yet I think there was something wanting. Things did not
15225
seem--that is, there seemed a little cloud upon the spirits of some.--So
15226
it appeared to me at least, but I might be mistaken. However, I think
15227
it answered so far as to tempt one to go again. What say you both to our
15228
collecting the same party, and exploring to Box Hill again, while the
15229
fine weather lasts?--It must be the same party, you know, quite the
15230
same party, not _one_ exception.”
15231
15232
Soon after this Miss Bates came in, and Emma could not help being
15233
diverted by the perplexity of her first answer to herself, resulting,
15234
she supposed, from doubt of what might be said, and impatience to say
15235
every thing.
15236
15237
“Thank you, dear Miss Woodhouse, you are all kindness.--It is impossible
15238
to say--Yes, indeed, I quite understand--dearest Jane's prospects--that
15239
is, I do not mean.--But she is charmingly recovered.--How is Mr.
15240
Woodhouse?--I am so glad.--Quite out of my power.--Such a happy little
15241
circle as you find us here.--Yes, indeed.--Charming young man!--that
15242
is--so very friendly; I mean good Mr. Perry!--such attention to
15243
Jane!”--And from her great, her more than commonly thankful delight
15244
towards Mrs. Elton for being there, Emma guessed that there had been a
15245
little show of resentment towards Jane, from the vicarage quarter,
15246
which was now graciously overcome.--After a few whispers, indeed, which
15247
placed it beyond a guess, Mrs. Elton, speaking louder, said,
15248
15249
“Yes, here I am, my good friend; and here I have been so long, that
15250
anywhere else I should think it necessary to apologise; but, the truth
15251
is, that I am waiting for my lord and master. He promised to join me
15252
here, and pay his respects to you.”
15253
15254
“What! are we to have the pleasure of a call from Mr. Elton?--That will
15255
be a favour indeed! for I know gentlemen do not like morning visits, and
15256
Mr. Elton's time is so engaged.”
15257
15258
“Upon my word it is, Miss Bates.--He really is engaged from morning to
15259
night.--There is no end of people's coming to him, on some pretence or
15260
other.--The magistrates, and overseers, and churchwardens, are always
15261
wanting his opinion. They seem not able to do any thing without
15262
him.--'Upon my word, Mr. E.,' I often say, 'rather you than I.--I do
15263
not know what would become of my crayons and my instrument, if I had
15264
half so many applicants.'--Bad enough as it is, for I absolutely neglect
15265
them both to an unpardonable degree.--I believe I have not played a bar
15266
this fortnight.--However, he is coming, I assure you: yes, indeed, on
15267
purpose to wait on you all.” And putting up her hand to screen her
15268
words from Emma--“A congratulatory visit, you know.--Oh! yes, quite
15269
indispensable.”
15270
15271
Miss Bates looked about her, so happily--!
15272
15273
“He promised to come to me as soon as he could disengage himself
15274
from Knightley; but he and Knightley are shut up together in deep
15275
consultation.--Mr. E. is Knightley's right hand.”
15276
15277
Emma would not have smiled for the world, and only said, “Is Mr. Elton
15278
gone on foot to Donwell?--He will have a hot walk.”
15279
15280
“Oh! no, it is a meeting at the Crown, a regular meeting. Weston and
15281
Cole will be there too; but one is apt to speak only of those who
15282
lead.--I fancy Mr. E. and Knightley have every thing their own way.”
15283
15284
“Have not you mistaken the day?” said Emma. “I am almost certain that
15285
the meeting at the Crown is not till to-morrow.--Mr. Knightley was at
15286
Hartfield yesterday, and spoke of it as for Saturday.”
15287
15288
“Oh! no, the meeting is certainly to-day,” was the abrupt answer, which
15289
denoted the impossibility of any blunder on Mrs. Elton's side.--“I do
15290
believe,” she continued, “this is the most troublesome parish that ever
15291
was. We never heard of such things at Maple Grove.”
15292
15293
“Your parish there was small,” said Jane.
15294
15295
“Upon my word, my dear, I do not know, for I never heard the subject
15296
talked of.”
15297
15298
“But it is proved by the smallness of the school, which I have heard
15299
you speak of, as under the patronage of your sister and Mrs. Bragge; the
15300
only school, and not more than five-and-twenty children.”
15301
15302
“Ah! you clever creature, that's very true. What a thinking brain you
15303
have! I say, Jane, what a perfect character you and I should make, if we
15304
could be shaken together. My liveliness and your solidity would produce
15305
perfection.--Not that I presume to insinuate, however, that _some_
15306
people may not think _you_ perfection already.--But hush!--not a word,
15307
if you please.”
15308
15309
It seemed an unnecessary caution; Jane was wanting to give her words,
15310
not to Mrs. Elton, but to Miss Woodhouse, as the latter plainly saw.
15311
The wish of distinguishing her, as far as civility permitted, was very
15312
evident, though it could not often proceed beyond a look.
15313
15314
Mr. Elton made his appearance. His lady greeted him with some of her
15315
sparkling vivacity.
15316
15317
“Very pretty, sir, upon my word; to send me on here, to be an
15318
encumbrance to my friends, so long before you vouchsafe to come!--But
15319
you knew what a dutiful creature you had to deal with. You knew I should
15320
not stir till my lord and master appeared.--Here have I been sitting
15321
this hour, giving these young ladies a sample of true conjugal
15322
obedience--for who can say, you know, how soon it may be wanted?”
15323
15324
Mr. Elton was so hot and tired, that all this wit seemed thrown away.
15325
His civilities to the other ladies must be paid; but his subsequent
15326
object was to lament over himself for the heat he was suffering, and the
15327
walk he had had for nothing.
15328
15329
“When I got to Donwell,” said he, “Knightley could not be found. Very
15330
odd! very unaccountable! after the note I sent him this morning, and the
15331
message he returned, that he should certainly be at home till one.”
15332
15333
“Donwell!” cried his wife.--“My dear Mr. E., you have not been to
15334
Donwell!--You mean the Crown; you come from the meeting at the Crown.”
15335
15336
“No, no, that's to-morrow; and I particularly wanted to see Knightley
15337
to-day on that very account.--Such a dreadful broiling morning!--I went
15338
over the fields too--(speaking in a tone of great ill-usage,) which made
15339
it so much the worse. And then not to find him at home! I assure you
15340
I am not at all pleased. And no apology left, no message for me. The
15341
housekeeper declared she knew nothing of my being expected.--Very
15342
extraordinary!--And nobody knew at all which way he was gone. Perhaps
15343
to Hartfield, perhaps to the Abbey Mill, perhaps into his woods.--Miss
15344
Woodhouse, this is not like our friend Knightley!--Can you explain it?”
15345
15346
Emma amused herself by protesting that it was very extraordinary,
15347
indeed, and that she had not a syllable to say for him.
15348
15349
“I cannot imagine,” said Mrs. Elton, (feeling the indignity as a wife
15350
ought to do,) “I cannot imagine how he could do such a thing by you, of
15351
all people in the world! The very last person whom one should expect to
15352
be forgotten!--My dear Mr. E., he must have left a message for you, I am
15353
sure he must.--Not even Knightley could be so very eccentric;--and his
15354
servants forgot it. Depend upon it, that was the case: and very likely
15355
to happen with the Donwell servants, who are all, I have often observed,
15356
extremely awkward and remiss.--I am sure I would not have such a
15357
creature as his Harry stand at our sideboard for any consideration. And
15358
as for Mrs. Hodges, Wright holds her very cheap indeed.--She promised
15359
Wright a receipt, and never sent it.”
15360
15361
“I met William Larkins,” continued Mr. Elton, “as I got near the house,
15362
and he told me I should not find his master at home, but I did not
15363
believe him.--William seemed rather out of humour. He did not know what
15364
was come to his master lately, he said, but he could hardly ever get the
15365
speech of him. I have nothing to do with William's wants, but it really
15366
is of very great importance that _I_ should see Knightley to-day; and it
15367
becomes a matter, therefore, of very serious inconvenience that I should
15368
have had this hot walk to no purpose.”
15369
15370
Emma felt that she could not do better than go home directly. In
15371
all probability she was at this very time waited for there; and Mr.
15372
Knightley might be preserved from sinking deeper in aggression towards
15373
Mr. Elton, if not towards William Larkins.
15374
15375
She was pleased, on taking leave, to find Miss Fairfax determined to
15376
attend her out of the room, to go with her even downstairs; it gave her
15377
an opportunity which she immediately made use of, to say,
15378
15379
“It is as well, perhaps, that I have not had the possibility. Had you
15380
not been surrounded by other friends, I might have been tempted to
15381
introduce a subject, to ask questions, to speak more openly than might
15382
have been strictly correct.--I feel that I should certainly have been
15383
impertinent.”
15384
15385
“Oh!” cried Jane, with a blush and an hesitation which Emma thought
15386
infinitely more becoming to her than all the elegance of all her usual
15387
composure--“there would have been no danger. The danger would have
15388
been of my wearying you. You could not have gratified me more than
15389
by expressing an interest--. Indeed, Miss Woodhouse, (speaking more
15390
collectedly,) with the consciousness which I have of misconduct, very
15391
great misconduct, it is particularly consoling to me to know that those
15392
of my friends, whose good opinion is most worth preserving, are not
15393
disgusted to such a degree as to--I have not time for half that I could
15394
wish to say. I long to make apologies, excuses, to urge something for
15395
myself. I feel it so very due. But, unfortunately--in short, if your
15396
compassion does not stand my friend--”
15397
15398
“Oh! you are too scrupulous, indeed you are,” cried Emma warmly, and
15399
taking her hand. “You owe me no apologies; and every body to whom you
15400
might be supposed to owe them, is so perfectly satisfied, so delighted
15401
even--”
15402
15403
“You are very kind, but I know what my manners were to you.--So
15404
cold and artificial!--I had always a part to act.--It was a life of
15405
deceit!--I know that I must have disgusted you.”
15406
15407
“Pray say no more. I feel that all the apologies should be on my side.
15408
Let us forgive each other at once. We must do whatever is to be done
15409
quickest, and I think our feelings will lose no time there. I hope you
15410
have pleasant accounts from Windsor?”
15411
15412
“Very.”
15413
15414
“And the next news, I suppose, will be, that we are to lose you--just as
15415
I begin to know you.”
15416
15417
“Oh! as to all that, of course nothing can be thought of yet. I am here
15418
till claimed by Colonel and Mrs. Campbell.”
15419
15420
“Nothing can be actually settled yet, perhaps,” replied Emma,
15421
smiling--“but, excuse me, it must be thought of.”
15422
15423
The smile was returned as Jane answered,
15424
15425
“You are very right; it has been thought of. And I will own to you, (I
15426
am sure it will be safe), that so far as our living with Mr. Churchill
15427
at Enscombe, it is settled. There must be three months, at least, of
15428
deep mourning; but when they are over, I imagine there will be nothing
15429
more to wait for.”
15430
15431
“Thank you, thank you.--This is just what I wanted to be assured
15432
of.--Oh! if you knew how much I love every thing that is decided and
15433
open!--Good-bye, good-bye.”
15434
15435
15436
15437
CHAPTER XVII
15438
15439
15440
Mrs. Weston's friends were all made happy by her safety; and if the
15441
satisfaction of her well-doing could be increased to Emma, it was by
15442
knowing her to be the mother of a little girl. She had been decided in
15443
wishing for a Miss Weston. She would not acknowledge that it was with
15444
any view of making a match for her, hereafter, with either of Isabella's
15445
sons; but she was convinced that a daughter would suit both father
15446
and mother best. It would be a great comfort to Mr. Weston, as he grew
15447
older--and even Mr. Weston might be growing older ten years hence--to
15448
have his fireside enlivened by the sports and the nonsense, the freaks
15449
and the fancies of a child never banished from home; and Mrs. Weston--no
15450
one could doubt that a daughter would be most to her; and it would be
15451
quite a pity that any one who so well knew how to teach, should not have
15452
their powers in exercise again.
15453
15454
“She has had the advantage, you know, of practising on me,” she
15455
continued--“like La Baronne d'Almane on La Comtesse d'Ostalis, in Madame
15456
de Genlis' Adelaide and Theodore, and we shall now see her own little
15457
Adelaide educated on a more perfect plan.”
15458
15459
“That is,” replied Mr. Knightley, “she will indulge her even more than
15460
she did you, and believe that she does not indulge her at all. It will
15461
be the only difference.”
15462
15463
“Poor child!” cried Emma; “at that rate, what will become of her?”
15464
15465
“Nothing very bad.--The fate of thousands. She will be disagreeable
15466
in infancy, and correct herself as she grows older. I am losing all my
15467
bitterness against spoilt children, my dearest Emma. I, who am owing all
15468
my happiness to _you_, would not it be horrible ingratitude in me to be
15469
severe on them?”
15470
15471
Emma laughed, and replied: “But I had the assistance of all your
15472
endeavours to counteract the indulgence of other people. I doubt whether
15473
my own sense would have corrected me without it.”
15474
15475
“Do you?--I have no doubt. Nature gave you understanding:--Miss Taylor
15476
gave you principles. You must have done well. My interference was quite
15477
as likely to do harm as good. It was very natural for you to say, what
15478
right has he to lecture me?--and I am afraid very natural for you to
15479
feel that it was done in a disagreeable manner. I do not believe I did
15480
you any good. The good was all to myself, by making you an object of the
15481
tenderest affection to me. I could not think about you so much without
15482
doating on you, faults and all; and by dint of fancying so many errors,
15483
have been in love with you ever since you were thirteen at least.”
15484
15485
“I am sure you were of use to me,” cried Emma. “I was very often
15486
influenced rightly by you--oftener than I would own at the time. I
15487
am very sure you did me good. And if poor little Anna Weston is to be
15488
spoiled, it will be the greatest humanity in you to do as much for her
15489
as you have done for me, except falling in love with her when she is
15490
thirteen.”
15491
15492
“How often, when you were a girl, have you said to me, with one of your
15493
saucy looks--'Mr. Knightley, I am going to do so-and-so; papa says I
15494
may, or I have Miss Taylor's leave'--something which, you knew, I
15495
did not approve. In such cases my interference was giving you two bad
15496
feelings instead of one.”
15497
15498
“What an amiable creature I was!--No wonder you should hold my speeches
15499
in such affectionate remembrance.”
15500
15501
“'Mr. Knightley.'--You always called me, 'Mr. Knightley;' and, from
15502
habit, it has not so very formal a sound.--And yet it is formal. I want
15503
you to call me something else, but I do not know what.”
15504
15505
“I remember once calling you 'George,' in one of my amiable fits, about
15506
ten years ago. I did it because I thought it would offend you; but, as
15507
you made no objection, I never did it again.”
15508
15509
“And cannot you call me 'George' now?”
15510
15511
“Impossible!--I never can call you any thing but 'Mr. Knightley.' I
15512
will not promise even to equal the elegant terseness of Mrs. Elton, by
15513
calling you Mr. K.--But I will promise,” she added presently, laughing
15514
and blushing--“I will promise to call you once by your Christian name.
15515
I do not say when, but perhaps you may guess where;--in the building in
15516
which N. takes M. for better, for worse.”
15517
15518
Emma grieved that she could not be more openly just to one important
15519
service which his better sense would have rendered her, to the
15520
advice which would have saved her from the worst of all her womanly
15521
follies--her wilful intimacy with Harriet Smith; but it was too tender a
15522
subject.--She could not enter on it.--Harriet was very seldom mentioned
15523
between them. This, on his side, might merely proceed from her not being
15524
thought of; but Emma was rather inclined to attribute it to delicacy,
15525
and a suspicion, from some appearances, that their friendship were
15526
declining. She was aware herself, that, parting under any other
15527
circumstances, they certainly should have corresponded more, and that
15528
her intelligence would not have rested, as it now almost wholly did, on
15529
Isabella's letters. He might observe that it was so. The pain of being
15530
obliged to practise concealment towards him, was very little inferior to
15531
the pain of having made Harriet unhappy.
15532
15533
Isabella sent quite as good an account of her visitor as could be
15534
expected; on her first arrival she had thought her out of spirits, which
15535
appeared perfectly natural, as there was a dentist to be consulted; but,
15536
since that business had been over, she did not appear to find Harriet
15537
different from what she had known her before.--Isabella, to be sure,
15538
was no very quick observer; yet if Harriet had not been equal to playing
15539
with the children, it would not have escaped her. Emma's comforts and
15540
hopes were most agreeably carried on, by Harriet's being to stay longer;
15541
her fortnight was likely to be a month at least. Mr. and Mrs. John
15542
Knightley were to come down in August, and she was invited to remain
15543
till they could bring her back.
15544
15545
“John does not even mention your friend,” said Mr. Knightley. “Here is
15546
his answer, if you like to see it.”
15547
15548
It was the answer to the communication of his intended marriage. Emma
15549
accepted it with a very eager hand, with an impatience all alive to know
15550
what he would say about it, and not at all checked by hearing that her
15551
friend was unmentioned.
15552
15553
“John enters like a brother into my happiness,” continued Mr. Knightley,
15554
“but he is no complimenter; and though I well know him to have,
15555
likewise, a most brotherly affection for you, he is so far from making
15556
flourishes, that any other young woman might think him rather cool in
15557
her praise. But I am not afraid of your seeing what he writes.”
15558
15559
“He writes like a sensible man,” replied Emma, when she had read the
15560
letter. “I honour his sincerity. It is very plain that he considers the
15561
good fortune of the engagement as all on my side, but that he is not
15562
without hope of my growing, in time, as worthy of your affection, as
15563
you think me already. Had he said any thing to bear a different
15564
construction, I should not have believed him.”
15565
15566
“My Emma, he means no such thing. He only means--”
15567
15568
“He and I should differ very little in our estimation of the two,”
15569
interrupted she, with a sort of serious smile--“much less, perhaps, than
15570
he is aware of, if we could enter without ceremony or reserve on the
15571
subject.”
15572
15573
“Emma, my dear Emma--”
15574
15575
“Oh!” she cried with more thorough gaiety, “if you fancy your brother
15576
does not do me justice, only wait till my dear father is in the secret,
15577
and hear his opinion. Depend upon it, he will be much farther from doing
15578
_you_ justice. He will think all the happiness, all the advantage, on
15579
your side of the question; all the merit on mine. I wish I may not
15580
sink into 'poor Emma' with him at once.--His tender compassion towards
15581
oppressed worth can go no farther.”
15582
15583
“Ah!” he cried, “I wish your father might be half as easily convinced as
15584
John will be, of our having every right that equal worth can give, to be
15585
happy together. I am amused by one part of John's letter--did you notice
15586
it?--where he says, that my information did not take him wholly by
15587
surprize, that he was rather in expectation of hearing something of the
15588
kind.”
15589
15590
“If I understand your brother, he only means so far as your having
15591
some thoughts of marrying. He had no idea of me. He seems perfectly
15592
unprepared for that.”
15593
15594
“Yes, yes--but I am amused that he should have seen so far into my
15595
feelings. What has he been judging by?--I am not conscious of any
15596
difference in my spirits or conversation that could prepare him at
15597
this time for my marrying any more than at another.--But it was so, I
15598
suppose. I dare say there was a difference when I was staying with them
15599
the other day. I believe I did not play with the children quite so much
15600
as usual. I remember one evening the poor boys saying, 'Uncle seems
15601
always tired now.'”
15602
15603
The time was coming when the news must spread farther, and other
15604
persons' reception of it tried. As soon as Mrs. Weston was sufficiently
15605
recovered to admit Mr. Woodhouse's visits, Emma having it in view that
15606
her gentle reasonings should be employed in the cause, resolved first to
15607
announce it at home, and then at Randalls.--But how to break it to her
15608
father at last!--She had bound herself to do it, in such an hour of Mr.
15609
Knightley's absence, or when it came to the point her heart would have
15610
failed her, and she must have put it off; but Mr. Knightley was to come
15611
at such a time, and follow up the beginning she was to make.--She was
15612
forced to speak, and to speak cheerfully too. She must not make it a
15613
more decided subject of misery to him, by a melancholy tone herself.
15614
She must not appear to think it a misfortune.--With all the spirits she
15615
could command, she prepared him first for something strange, and then,
15616
in a few words, said, that if his consent and approbation could be
15617
obtained--which, she trusted, would be attended with no difficulty,
15618
since it was a plan to promote the happiness of all--she and Mr.
15619
Knightley meant to marry; by which means Hartfield would receive the
15620
constant addition of that person's company whom she knew he loved, next
15621
to his daughters and Mrs. Weston, best in the world.
15622
15623
Poor man!--it was at first a considerable shock to him, and he tried
15624
earnestly to dissuade her from it. She was reminded, more than once, of
15625
having always said she would never marry, and assured that it would be
15626
a great deal better for her to remain single; and told of poor Isabella,
15627
and poor Miss Taylor.--But it would not do. Emma hung about him
15628
affectionately, and smiled, and said it must be so; and that he must
15629
not class her with Isabella and Mrs. Weston, whose marriages taking them
15630
from Hartfield, had, indeed, made a melancholy change: but she was not
15631
going from Hartfield; she should be always there; she was introducing
15632
no change in their numbers or their comforts but for the better; and she
15633
was very sure that he would be a great deal the happier for having Mr.
15634
Knightley always at hand, when he were once got used to the idea.--Did
15635
he not love Mr. Knightley very much?--He would not deny that he did,
15636
she was sure.--Whom did he ever want to consult on business but Mr.
15637
Knightley?--Who was so useful to him, who so ready to write his letters,
15638
who so glad to assist him?--Who so cheerful, so attentive, so attached
15639
to him?--Would not he like to have him always on the spot?--Yes. That
15640
was all very true. Mr. Knightley could not be there too often; he should
15641
be glad to see him every day;--but they did see him every day as it
15642
was.--Why could not they go on as they had done?
15643
15644
Mr. Woodhouse could not be soon reconciled; but the worst was overcome,
15645
the idea was given; time and continual repetition must do the rest.--To
15646
Emma's entreaties and assurances succeeded Mr. Knightley's, whose fond
15647
praise of her gave the subject even a kind of welcome; and he was soon
15648
used to be talked to by each, on every fair occasion.--They had all
15649
the assistance which Isabella could give, by letters of the strongest
15650
approbation; and Mrs. Weston was ready, on the first meeting, to
15651
consider the subject in the most serviceable light--first, as a settled,
15652
and, secondly, as a good one--well aware of the nearly equal importance
15653
of the two recommendations to Mr. Woodhouse's mind.--It was agreed
15654
upon, as what was to be; and every body by whom he was used to be
15655
guided assuring him that it would be for his happiness; and having some
15656
feelings himself which almost admitted it, he began to think that some
15657
time or other--in another year or two, perhaps--it might not be so very
15658
bad if the marriage did take place.
15659
15660
Mrs. Weston was acting no part, feigning no feelings in all that she
15661
said to him in favour of the event.--She had been extremely surprized,
15662
never more so, than when Emma first opened the affair to her; but she
15663
saw in it only increase of happiness to all, and had no scruple in
15664
urging him to the utmost.--She had such a regard for Mr. Knightley, as
15665
to think he deserved even her dearest Emma; and it was in every respect
15666
so proper, suitable, and unexceptionable a connexion, and in one
15667
respect, one point of the highest importance, so peculiarly eligible,
15668
so singularly fortunate, that now it seemed as if Emma could not safely
15669
have attached herself to any other creature, and that she had herself
15670
been the stupidest of beings in not having thought of it, and wished it
15671
long ago.--How very few of those men in a rank of life to address Emma
15672
would have renounced their own home for Hartfield! And who but Mr.
15673
Knightley could know and bear with Mr. Woodhouse, so as to make such
15674
an arrangement desirable!--The difficulty of disposing of poor Mr.
15675
Woodhouse had been always felt in her husband's plans and her own, for
15676
a marriage between Frank and Emma. How to settle the claims of Enscombe
15677
and Hartfield had been a continual impediment--less acknowledged by Mr.
15678
Weston than by herself--but even he had never been able to finish
15679
the subject better than by saying--“Those matters will take care of
15680
themselves; the young people will find a way.” But here there was
15681
nothing to be shifted off in a wild speculation on the future. It was
15682
all right, all open, all equal. No sacrifice on any side worth the name.
15683
It was a union of the highest promise of felicity in itself, and without
15684
one real, rational difficulty to oppose or delay it.
15685
15686
Mrs. Weston, with her baby on her knee, indulging in such reflections
15687
as these, was one of the happiest women in the world. If any thing could
15688
increase her delight, it was perceiving that the baby would soon have
15689
outgrown its first set of caps.
15690
15691
The news was universally a surprize wherever it spread; and Mr. Weston
15692
had his five minutes share of it; but five minutes were enough to
15693
familiarise the idea to his quickness of mind.--He saw the advantages
15694
of the match, and rejoiced in them with all the constancy of his wife;
15695
but the wonder of it was very soon nothing; and by the end of an hour he
15696
was not far from believing that he had always foreseen it.
15697
15698
“It is to be a secret, I conclude,” said he. “These matters are always a
15699
secret, till it is found out that every body knows them. Only let me be
15700
told when I may speak out.--I wonder whether Jane has any suspicion.”
15701
15702
He went to Highbury the next morning, and satisfied himself on that
15703
point. He told her the news. Was not she like a daughter, his eldest
15704
daughter?--he must tell her; and Miss Bates being present, it passed,
15705
of course, to Mrs. Cole, Mrs. Perry, and Mrs. Elton, immediately
15706
afterwards. It was no more than the principals were prepared for; they
15707
had calculated from the time of its being known at Randalls, how soon it
15708
would be over Highbury; and were thinking of themselves, as the evening
15709
wonder in many a family circle, with great sagacity.
15710
15711
In general, it was a very well approved match. Some might think him, and
15712
others might think her, the most in luck. One set might recommend their
15713
all removing to Donwell, and leaving Hartfield for the John Knightleys;
15714
and another might predict disagreements among their servants; but yet,
15715
upon the whole, there was no serious objection raised, except in one
15716
habitation, the Vicarage.--There, the surprize was not softened by any
15717
satisfaction. Mr. Elton cared little about it, compared with his wife;
15718
he only hoped “the young lady's pride would now be contented;” and
15719
supposed “she had always meant to catch Knightley if she could;” and,
15720
on the point of living at Hartfield, could daringly exclaim, “Rather
15721
he than I!”--But Mrs. Elton was very much discomposed indeed.--“Poor
15722
Knightley! poor fellow!--sad business for him.”--She was extremely
15723
concerned; for, though very eccentric, he had a thousand good
15724
qualities.--How could he be so taken in?--Did not think him at all in
15725
love--not in the least.--Poor Knightley!--There would be an end of all
15726
pleasant intercourse with him.--How happy he had been to come and dine
15727
with them whenever they asked him! But that would be all over now.--Poor
15728
fellow!--No more exploring parties to Donwell made for _her_. Oh!
15729
no; there would be a Mrs. Knightley to throw cold water on every
15730
thing.--Extremely disagreeable! But she was not at all sorry that
15731
she had abused the housekeeper the other day.--Shocking plan, living
15732
together. It would never do. She knew a family near Maple Grove who
15733
had tried it, and been obliged to separate before the end of the first
15734
quarter.
15735
15736
15737
15738
CHAPTER XVIII
15739
15740
15741
Time passed on. A few more to-morrows, and the party from London would
15742
be arriving. It was an alarming change; and Emma was thinking of it one
15743
morning, as what must bring a great deal to agitate and grieve her, when
15744
Mr. Knightley came in, and distressing thoughts were put by. After the
15745
first chat of pleasure he was silent; and then, in a graver tone, began
15746
with,
15747
15748
“I have something to tell you, Emma; some news.”
15749
15750
“Good or bad?” said she, quickly, looking up in his face.
15751
15752
“I do not know which it ought to be called.”
15753
15754
“Oh! good I am sure.--I see it in your countenance. You are trying not
15755
to smile.”
15756
15757
“I am afraid,” said he, composing his features, “I am very much afraid,
15758
my dear Emma, that you will not smile when you hear it.”
15759
15760
“Indeed! but why so?--I can hardly imagine that any thing which pleases
15761
or amuses you, should not please and amuse me too.”
15762
15763
“There is one subject,” he replied, “I hope but one, on which we do not
15764
think alike.” He paused a moment, again smiling, with his eyes fixed on
15765
her face. “Does nothing occur to you?--Do not you recollect?--Harriet
15766
Smith.”
15767
15768
Her cheeks flushed at the name, and she felt afraid of something, though
15769
she knew not what.
15770
15771
“Have you heard from her yourself this morning?” cried he. “You have, I
15772
believe, and know the whole.”
15773
15774
“No, I have not; I know nothing; pray tell me.”
15775
15776
“You are prepared for the worst, I see--and very bad it is. Harriet
15777
Smith marries Robert Martin.”
15778
15779
Emma gave a start, which did not seem like being prepared--and her eyes,
15780
in eager gaze, said, “No, this is impossible!” but her lips were closed.
15781
15782
“It is so, indeed,” continued Mr. Knightley; “I have it from Robert
15783
Martin himself. He left me not half an hour ago.”
15784
15785
She was still looking at him with the most speaking amazement.
15786
15787
“You like it, my Emma, as little as I feared.--I wish our opinions were
15788
the same. But in time they will. Time, you may be sure, will make one
15789
or the other of us think differently; and, in the meanwhile, we need not
15790
talk much on the subject.”
15791
15792
“You mistake me, you quite mistake me,” she replied, exerting herself.
15793
“It is not that such a circumstance would now make me unhappy, but I
15794
cannot believe it. It seems an impossibility!--You cannot mean to say,
15795
that Harriet Smith has accepted Robert Martin. You cannot mean that he
15796
has even proposed to her again--yet. You only mean, that he intends it.”
15797
15798
“I mean that he has done it,” answered Mr. Knightley, with smiling but
15799
determined decision, “and been accepted.”
15800
15801
“Good God!” she cried.--“Well!”--Then having recourse to her workbasket,
15802
in excuse for leaning down her face, and concealing all the exquisite
15803
feelings of delight and entertainment which she knew she must be
15804
expressing, she added, “Well, now tell me every thing; make this
15805
intelligible to me. How, where, when?--Let me know it all. I never was
15806
more surprized--but it does not make me unhappy, I assure you.--How--how
15807
has it been possible?”
15808
15809
“It is a very simple story. He went to town on business three days ago,
15810
and I got him to take charge of some papers which I was wanting to send
15811
to John.--He delivered these papers to John, at his chambers, and was
15812
asked by him to join their party the same evening to Astley's. They were
15813
going to take the two eldest boys to Astley's. The party was to be our
15814
brother and sister, Henry, John--and Miss Smith. My friend Robert could
15815
not resist. They called for him in their way; were all extremely amused;
15816
and my brother asked him to dine with them the next day--which he
15817
did--and in the course of that visit (as I understand) he found an
15818
opportunity of speaking to Harriet; and certainly did not speak
15819
in vain.--She made him, by her acceptance, as happy even as he is
15820
deserving. He came down by yesterday's coach, and was with me this
15821
morning immediately after breakfast, to report his proceedings, first
15822
on my affairs, and then on his own. This is all that I can relate of
15823
the how, where, and when. Your friend Harriet will make a much
15824
longer history when you see her.--She will give you all the minute
15825
particulars, which only woman's language can make interesting.--In our
15826
communications we deal only in the great.--However, I must say, that
15827
Robert Martin's heart seemed for _him_, and to _me_, very overflowing;
15828
and that he did mention, without its being much to the purpose, that
15829
on quitting their box at Astley's, my brother took charge of Mrs. John
15830
Knightley and little John, and he followed with Miss Smith and Henry;
15831
and that at one time they were in such a crowd, as to make Miss Smith
15832
rather uneasy.”
15833
15834
He stopped.--Emma dared not attempt any immediate reply. To speak, she
15835
was sure would be to betray a most unreasonable degree of happiness.
15836
She must wait a moment, or he would think her mad. Her silence disturbed
15837
him; and after observing her a little while, he added,
15838
15839
“Emma, my love, you said that this circumstance would not now make you
15840
unhappy; but I am afraid it gives you more pain than you expected. His
15841
situation is an evil--but you must consider it as what satisfies your
15842
friend; and I will answer for your thinking better and better of him
15843
as you know him more. His good sense and good principles would delight
15844
you.--As far as the man is concerned, you could not wish your friend
15845
in better hands. His rank in society I would alter if I could, which is
15846
saying a great deal I assure you, Emma.--You laugh at me about William
15847
Larkins; but I could quite as ill spare Robert Martin.”
15848
15849
He wanted her to look up and smile; and having now brought herself not
15850
to smile too broadly--she did--cheerfully answering,
15851
15852
“You need not be at any pains to reconcile me to the match. I think
15853
Harriet is doing extremely well. _Her_ connexions may be worse than
15854
_his_. In respectability of character, there can be no doubt that they
15855
are. I have been silent from surprize merely, excessive surprize. You
15856
cannot imagine how suddenly it has come on me! how peculiarly unprepared
15857
I was!--for I had reason to believe her very lately more determined
15858
against him, much more, than she was before.”
15859
15860
“You ought to know your friend best,” replied Mr. Knightley; “but I
15861
should say she was a good-tempered, soft-hearted girl, not likely to be
15862
very, very determined against any young man who told her he loved her.”
15863
15864
Emma could not help laughing as she answered, “Upon my word, I believe
15865
you know her quite as well as I do.--But, Mr. Knightley, are you
15866
perfectly sure that she has absolutely and downright _accepted_ him.
15867
I could suppose she might in time--but can she already?--Did not you
15868
misunderstand him?--You were both talking of other things; of business,
15869
shows of cattle, or new drills--and might not you, in the confusion of
15870
so many subjects, mistake him?--It was not Harriet's hand that he was
15871
certain of--it was the dimensions of some famous ox.”
15872
15873
The contrast between the countenance and air of Mr. Knightley and Robert
15874
Martin was, at this moment, so strong to Emma's feelings, and so strong
15875
was the recollection of all that had so recently passed on Harriet's
15876
side, so fresh the sound of those words, spoken with such emphasis,
15877
“No, I hope I know better than to think of Robert Martin,” that she was
15878
really expecting the intelligence to prove, in some measure, premature.
15879
It could not be otherwise.
15880
15881
“Do you dare say this?” cried Mr. Knightley. “Do you dare to suppose me
15882
so great a blockhead, as not to know what a man is talking of?--What do
15883
you deserve?”
15884
15885
“Oh! I always deserve the best treatment, because I never put up with
15886
any other; and, therefore, you must give me a plain, direct answer. Are
15887
you quite sure that you understand the terms on which Mr. Martin and
15888
Harriet now are?”
15889
15890
“I am quite sure,” he replied, speaking very distinctly, “that he
15891
told me she had accepted him; and that there was no obscurity, nothing
15892
doubtful, in the words he used; and I think I can give you a proof that
15893
it must be so. He asked my opinion as to what he was now to do. He knew
15894
of no one but Mrs. Goddard to whom he could apply for information of
15895
her relations or friends. Could I mention any thing more fit to be done,
15896
than to go to Mrs. Goddard? I assured him that I could not. Then, he
15897
said, he would endeavour to see her in the course of this day.”
15898
15899
“I am perfectly satisfied,” replied Emma, with the brightest smiles,
15900
“and most sincerely wish them happy.”
15901
15902
“You are materially changed since we talked on this subject before.”
15903
15904
“I hope so--for at that time I was a fool.”
15905
15906
“And I am changed also; for I am now very willing to grant you all
15907
Harriet's good qualities. I have taken some pains for your sake, and for
15908
Robert Martin's sake, (whom I have always had reason to believe as much
15909
in love with her as ever,) to get acquainted with her. I have often
15910
talked to her a good deal. You must have seen that I did. Sometimes,
15911
indeed, I have thought you were half suspecting me of pleading poor
15912
Martin's cause, which was never the case; but, from all my observations,
15913
I am convinced of her being an artless, amiable girl, with very good
15914
notions, very seriously good principles, and placing her happiness in
15915
the affections and utility of domestic life.--Much of this, I have no
15916
doubt, she may thank you for.”
15917
15918
“Me!” cried Emma, shaking her head.--“Ah! poor Harriet!”
15919
15920
She checked herself, however, and submitted quietly to a little more
15921
praise than she deserved.
15922
15923
Their conversation was soon afterwards closed by the entrance of her
15924
father. She was not sorry. She wanted to be alone. Her mind was in a
15925
state of flutter and wonder, which made it impossible for her to be
15926
collected. She was in dancing, singing, exclaiming spirits; and till she
15927
had moved about, and talked to herself, and laughed and reflected, she
15928
could be fit for nothing rational.
15929
15930
Her father's business was to announce James's being gone out to put the
15931
horses to, preparatory to their now daily drive to Randalls; and she
15932
had, therefore, an immediate excuse for disappearing.
15933
15934
The joy, the gratitude, the exquisite delight of her sensations may be
15935
imagined. The sole grievance and alloy thus removed in the prospect of
15936
Harriet's welfare, she was really in danger of becoming too happy for
15937
security.--What had she to wish for? Nothing, but to grow more worthy of
15938
him, whose intentions and judgment had been ever so superior to her own.
15939
Nothing, but that the lessons of her past folly might teach her humility
15940
and circumspection in future.
15941
15942
Serious she was, very serious in her thankfulness, and in her
15943
resolutions; and yet there was no preventing a laugh, sometimes in the
15944
very midst of them. She must laugh at such a close! Such an end of the
15945
doleful disappointment of five weeks back! Such a heart--such a Harriet!
15946
15947
Now there would be pleasure in her returning--Every thing would be a
15948
pleasure. It would be a great pleasure to know Robert Martin.
15949
15950
High in the rank of her most serious and heartfelt felicities, was the
15951
reflection that all necessity of concealment from Mr. Knightley would
15952
soon be over. The disguise, equivocation, mystery, so hateful to her to
15953
practise, might soon be over. She could now look forward to giving him
15954
that full and perfect confidence which her disposition was most ready to
15955
welcome as a duty.
15956
15957
In the gayest and happiest spirits she set forward with her father; not
15958
always listening, but always agreeing to what he said; and, whether in
15959
speech or silence, conniving at the comfortable persuasion of his
15960
being obliged to go to Randalls every day, or poor Mrs. Weston would be
15961
disappointed.
15962
15963
They arrived.--Mrs. Weston was alone in the drawing-room:--but hardly
15964
had they been told of the baby, and Mr. Woodhouse received the thanks
15965
for coming, which he asked for, when a glimpse was caught through the
15966
blind, of two figures passing near the window.
15967
15968
“It is Frank and Miss Fairfax,” said Mrs. Weston. “I was just going to
15969
tell you of our agreeable surprize in seeing him arrive this morning. He
15970
stays till to-morrow, and Miss Fairfax has been persuaded to spend the
15971
day with us.--They are coming in, I hope.”
15972
15973
In half a minute they were in the room. Emma was extremely glad to
15974
see him--but there was a degree of confusion--a number of embarrassing
15975
recollections on each side. They met readily and smiling, but with a
15976
consciousness which at first allowed little to be said; and having all
15977
sat down again, there was for some time such a blank in the circle, that
15978
Emma began to doubt whether the wish now indulged, which she had long
15979
felt, of seeing Frank Churchill once more, and of seeing him with Jane,
15980
would yield its proportion of pleasure. When Mr. Weston joined the
15981
party, however, and when the baby was fetched, there was no longer a
15982
want of subject or animation--or of courage and opportunity for Frank
15983
Churchill to draw near her and say,
15984
15985
“I have to thank you, Miss Woodhouse, for a very kind forgiving message
15986
in one of Mrs. Weston's letters. I hope time has not made you less
15987
willing to pardon. I hope you do not retract what you then said.”
15988
15989
“No, indeed,” cried Emma, most happy to begin, “not in the least. I am
15990
particularly glad to see and shake hands with you--and to give you joy
15991
in person.”
15992
15993
He thanked her with all his heart, and continued some time to speak with
15994
serious feeling of his gratitude and happiness.
15995
15996
“Is not she looking well?” said he, turning his eyes towards Jane.
15997
“Better than she ever used to do?--You see how my father and Mrs. Weston
15998
doat upon her.”
15999
16000
But his spirits were soon rising again, and with laughing eyes, after
16001
mentioning the expected return of the Campbells, he named the name of
16002
Dixon.--Emma blushed, and forbade its being pronounced in her hearing.
16003
16004
“I can never think of it,” she cried, “without extreme shame.”
16005
16006
“The shame,” he answered, “is all mine, or ought to be. But is it
16007
possible that you had no suspicion?--I mean of late. Early, I know, you
16008
had none.”
16009
16010
“I never had the smallest, I assure you.”
16011
16012
“That appears quite wonderful. I was once very near--and I wish I
16013
had--it would have been better. But though I was always doing wrong
16014
things, they were very bad wrong things, and such as did me no
16015
service.--It would have been a much better transgression had I broken
16016
the bond of secrecy and told you every thing.”
16017
16018
“It is not now worth a regret,” said Emma.
16019
16020
“I have some hope,” resumed he, “of my uncle's being persuaded to pay a
16021
visit at Randalls; he wants to be introduced to her. When the Campbells
16022
are returned, we shall meet them in London, and continue there, I trust,
16023
till we may carry her northward.--But now, I am at such a distance from
16024
her--is not it hard, Miss Woodhouse?--Till this morning, we have not
16025
once met since the day of reconciliation. Do not you pity me?”
16026
16027
Emma spoke her pity so very kindly, that with a sudden accession of gay
16028
thought, he cried,
16029
16030
“Ah! by the bye,” then sinking his voice, and looking demure for the
16031
moment--“I hope Mr. Knightley is well?” He paused.--She coloured and
16032
laughed.--“I know you saw my letter, and think you may remember my wish
16033
in your favour. Let me return your congratulations.--I assure you that
16034
I have heard the news with the warmest interest and satisfaction.--He is
16035
a man whom I cannot presume to praise.”
16036
16037
Emma was delighted, and only wanted him to go on in the same style; but
16038
his mind was the next moment in his own concerns and with his own Jane,
16039
and his next words were,
16040
16041
“Did you ever see such a skin?--such smoothness! such delicacy!--and
16042
yet without being actually fair.--One cannot call her fair. It is a
16043
most uncommon complexion, with her dark eye-lashes and hair--a most
16044
distinguishing complexion! So peculiarly the lady in it.--Just colour
16045
enough for beauty.”
16046
16047
“I have always admired her complexion,” replied Emma, archly; “but
16048
do not I remember the time when you found fault with her for being so
16049
pale?--When we first began to talk of her.--Have you quite forgotten?”
16050
16051
“Oh! no--what an impudent dog I was!--How could I dare--”
16052
16053
But he laughed so heartily at the recollection, that Emma could not help
16054
saying,
16055
16056
“I do suspect that in the midst of your perplexities at that time, you
16057
had very great amusement in tricking us all.--I am sure you had.--I am
16058
sure it was a consolation to you.”
16059
16060
“Oh! no, no, no--how can you suspect me of such a thing? I was the most
16061
miserable wretch!”
16062
16063
“Not quite so miserable as to be insensible to mirth. I am sure it was a
16064
source of high entertainment to you, to feel that you were taking us
16065
all in.--Perhaps I am the readier to suspect, because, to tell you the
16066
truth, I think it might have been some amusement to myself in the same
16067
situation. I think there is a little likeness between us.”
16068
16069
He bowed.
16070
16071
“If not in our dispositions,” she presently added, with a look of true
16072
sensibility, “there is a likeness in our destiny; the destiny which bids
16073
fair to connect us with two characters so much superior to our own.”
16074
16075
“True, true,” he answered, warmly. “No, not true on your side. You can
16076
have no superior, but most true on mine.--She is a complete angel. Look
16077
at her. Is not she an angel in every gesture? Observe the turn of her
16078
throat. Observe her eyes, as she is looking up at my father.--You will
16079
be glad to hear (inclining his head, and whispering seriously) that my
16080
uncle means to give her all my aunt's jewels. They are to be new set.
16081
I am resolved to have some in an ornament for the head. Will not it be
16082
beautiful in her dark hair?”
16083
16084
“Very beautiful, indeed,” replied Emma; and she spoke so kindly, that he
16085
gratefully burst out,
16086
16087
“How delighted I am to see you again! and to see you in such excellent
16088
looks!--I would not have missed this meeting for the world. I should
16089
certainly have called at Hartfield, had you failed to come.”
16090
16091
The others had been talking of the child, Mrs. Weston giving an account
16092
of a little alarm she had been under, the evening before, from the
16093
infant's appearing not quite well. She believed she had been foolish,
16094
but it had alarmed her, and she had been within half a minute of sending
16095
for Mr. Perry. Perhaps she ought to be ashamed, but Mr. Weston had been
16096
almost as uneasy as herself.--In ten minutes, however, the child had
16097
been perfectly well again. This was her history; and particularly
16098
interesting it was to Mr. Woodhouse, who commended her very much for
16099
thinking of sending for Perry, and only regretted that she had not done
16100
it. “She should always send for Perry, if the child appeared in the
16101
slightest degree disordered, were it only for a moment. She could not be
16102
too soon alarmed, nor send for Perry too often. It was a pity, perhaps,
16103
that he had not come last night; for, though the child seemed well now,
16104
very well considering, it would probably have been better if Perry had
16105
seen it.”
16106
16107
Frank Churchill caught the name.
16108
16109
“Perry!” said he to Emma, and trying, as he spoke, to catch Miss
16110
Fairfax's eye. “My friend Mr. Perry! What are they saying about Mr.
16111
Perry?--Has he been here this morning?--And how does he travel now?--Has
16112
he set up his carriage?”
16113
16114
Emma soon recollected, and understood him; and while she joined in the
16115
laugh, it was evident from Jane's countenance that she too was really
16116
hearing him, though trying to seem deaf.
16117
16118
“Such an extraordinary dream of mine!” he cried. “I can never think of
16119
it without laughing.--She hears us, she hears us, Miss Woodhouse. I see
16120
it in her cheek, her smile, her vain attempt to frown. Look at her. Do
16121
not you see that, at this instant, the very passage of her own letter,
16122
which sent me the report, is passing under her eye--that the whole
16123
blunder is spread before her--that she can attend to nothing else,
16124
though pretending to listen to the others?”
16125
16126
Jane was forced to smile completely, for a moment; and the smile partly
16127
remained as she turned towards him, and said in a conscious, low, yet
16128
steady voice,
16129
16130
“How you can bear such recollections, is astonishing to me!--They
16131
_will_ sometimes obtrude--but how you can court them!”
16132
16133
He had a great deal to say in return, and very entertainingly; but
16134
Emma's feelings were chiefly with Jane, in the argument; and on leaving
16135
Randalls, and falling naturally into a comparison of the two men, she
16136
felt, that pleased as she had been to see Frank Churchill, and really
16137
regarding him as she did with friendship, she had never been more
16138
sensible of Mr. Knightley's high superiority of character. The happiness
16139
of this most happy day, received its completion, in the animated
16140
contemplation of his worth which this comparison produced.
16141
16142
16143
16144
CHAPTER XIX
16145
16146
16147
If Emma had still, at intervals, an anxious feeling for Harriet, a
16148
momentary doubt of its being possible for her to be really cured of her
16149
attachment to Mr. Knightley, and really able to accept another man from
16150
unbiased inclination, it was not long that she had to suffer from the
16151
recurrence of any such uncertainty. A very few days brought the party
16152
from London, and she had no sooner an opportunity of being one hour
16153
alone with Harriet, than she became perfectly satisfied--unaccountable
16154
as it was!--that Robert Martin had thoroughly supplanted Mr. Knightley,
16155
and was now forming all her views of happiness.
16156
16157
Harriet was a little distressed--did look a little foolish at first:
16158
but having once owned that she had been presumptuous and silly, and
16159
self-deceived, before, her pain and confusion seemed to die away with
16160
the words, and leave her without a care for the past, and with the
16161
fullest exultation in the present and future; for, as to her friend's
16162
approbation, Emma had instantly removed every fear of that nature, by
16163
meeting her with the most unqualified congratulations.--Harriet was
16164
most happy to give every particular of the evening at Astley's, and the
16165
dinner the next day; she could dwell on it all with the utmost delight.
16166
But what did such particulars explain?--The fact was, as Emma could now
16167
acknowledge, that Harriet had always liked Robert Martin; and that his
16168
continuing to love her had been irresistible.--Beyond this, it must ever
16169
be unintelligible to Emma.
16170
16171
The event, however, was most joyful; and every day was giving her fresh
16172
reason for thinking so.--Harriet's parentage became known. She proved
16173
to be the daughter of a tradesman, rich enough to afford her the
16174
comfortable maintenance which had ever been hers, and decent enough to
16175
have always wished for concealment.--Such was the blood of gentility
16176
which Emma had formerly been so ready to vouch for!--It was likely to
16177
be as untainted, perhaps, as the blood of many a gentleman: but what
16178
a connexion had she been preparing for Mr. Knightley--or for the
16179
Churchills--or even for Mr. Elton!--The stain of illegitimacy,
16180
unbleached by nobility or wealth, would have been a stain indeed.
16181
16182
No objection was raised on the father's side; the young man was treated
16183
liberally; it was all as it should be: and as Emma became acquainted
16184
with Robert Martin, who was now introduced at Hartfield, she fully
16185
acknowledged in him all the appearance of sense and worth which could
16186
bid fairest for her little friend. She had no doubt of Harriet's
16187
happiness with any good-tempered man; but with him, and in the home he
16188
offered, there would be the hope of more, of security, stability, and
16189
improvement. She would be placed in the midst of those who loved her,
16190
and who had better sense than herself; retired enough for safety,
16191
and occupied enough for cheerfulness. She would be never led into
16192
temptation, nor left for it to find her out. She would be respectable
16193
and happy; and Emma admitted her to be the luckiest creature in the
16194
world, to have created so steady and persevering an affection in such a
16195
man;--or, if not quite the luckiest, to yield only to herself.
16196
16197
Harriet, necessarily drawn away by her engagements with the Martins,
16198
was less and less at Hartfield; which was not to be regretted.--The
16199
intimacy between her and Emma must sink; their friendship must change
16200
into a calmer sort of goodwill; and, fortunately, what ought to be,
16201
and must be, seemed already beginning, and in the most gradual, natural
16202
manner.
16203
16204
Before the end of September, Emma attended Harriet to church, and saw
16205
her hand bestowed on Robert Martin with so complete a satisfaction, as
16206
no remembrances, even connected with Mr. Elton as he stood before them,
16207
could impair.--Perhaps, indeed, at that time she scarcely saw Mr. Elton,
16208
but as the clergyman whose blessing at the altar might next fall on
16209
herself.--Robert Martin and Harriet Smith, the latest couple engaged of
16210
the three, were the first to be married.
16211
16212
Jane Fairfax had already quitted Highbury, and was restored to the
16213
comforts of her beloved home with the Campbells.--The Mr. Churchills
16214
were also in town; and they were only waiting for November.
16215
16216
The intermediate month was the one fixed on, as far as they dared, by
16217
Emma and Mr. Knightley.--They had determined that their marriage ought
16218
to be concluded while John and Isabella were still at Hartfield, to
16219
allow them the fortnight's absence in a tour to the seaside, which was
16220
the plan.--John and Isabella, and every other friend, were agreed in
16221
approving it. But Mr. Woodhouse--how was Mr. Woodhouse to be induced
16222
to consent?--he, who had never yet alluded to their marriage but as a
16223
distant event.
16224
16225
When first sounded on the subject, he was so miserable, that they were
16226
almost hopeless.--A second allusion, indeed, gave less pain.--He
16227
began to think it was to be, and that he could not prevent it--a very
16228
promising step of the mind on its way to resignation. Still, however, he
16229
was not happy. Nay, he appeared so much otherwise, that his daughter's
16230
courage failed. She could not bear to see him suffering, to know
16231
him fancying himself neglected; and though her understanding almost
16232
acquiesced in the assurance of both the Mr. Knightleys, that when
16233
once the event were over, his distress would be soon over too, she
16234
hesitated--she could not proceed.
16235
16236
In this state of suspense they were befriended, not by any sudden
16237
illumination of Mr. Woodhouse's mind, or any wonderful change of his
16238
nervous system, but by the operation of the same system in another
16239
way.--Mrs. Weston's poultry-house was robbed one night of all her
16240
turkeys--evidently by the ingenuity of man. Other poultry-yards in
16241
the neighbourhood also suffered.--Pilfering was _housebreaking_ to Mr.
16242
Woodhouse's fears.--He was very uneasy; and but for the sense of his
16243
son-in-law's protection, would have been under wretched alarm every
16244
night of his life. The strength, resolution, and presence of mind of the
16245
Mr. Knightleys, commanded his fullest dependence. While either of them
16246
protected him and his, Hartfield was safe.--But Mr. John Knightley must
16247
be in London again by the end of the first week in November.
16248
16249
The result of this distress was, that, with a much more voluntary,
16250
cheerful consent than his daughter had ever presumed to hope for at the
16251
moment, she was able to fix her wedding-day--and Mr. Elton was called
16252
on, within a month from the marriage of Mr. and Mrs. Robert Martin, to
16253
join the hands of Mr. Knightley and Miss Woodhouse.
16254
16255
The wedding was very much like other weddings, where the parties have
16256
no taste for finery or parade; and Mrs. Elton, from the particulars
16257
detailed by her husband, thought it all extremely shabby, and very
16258
inferior to her own.--“Very little white satin, very few lace veils; a
16259
most pitiful business!--Selina would stare when she heard of it.”--But,
16260
in spite of these deficiencies, the wishes, the hopes, the confidence,
16261
the predictions of the small band of true friends who witnessed the
16262
ceremony, were fully answered in the perfect happiness of the union.
16263
16264
16265
16266
FINIS
16267
16268
16269
16270
16271
16272
16273
End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Emma, by Jane Austen
16274
16275
*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK EMMA ***
16276
16277
***** This file should be named 158-0.txt or 158-0.zip *****
16278
This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
16279
http://www.gutenberg.org/1/5/158/
16280
16281
Produced by An Anonymous Volunteer
16282
16283
Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
16284
will be renamed.
16285
16286
Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
16287
one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
16288
(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
16289
permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
16290
set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
16291
copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
16292
protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
16293
Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
16294
charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
16295
do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
16296
rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
16297
such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
16298
research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
16299
practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
16300
subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
16301
redistribution.
16302
16303
16304
16305
*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
16306
16307
THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
16308
PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
16309
16310
To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
16311
distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
16312
(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
16313
Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
16314
Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
16315
http://gutenberg.org/license).
16316
16317
16318
Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
16319
electronic works
16320
16321
1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
16322
electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
16323
and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
16324
(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
16325
the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
16326
all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
16327
If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
16328
Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
16329
terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
16330
entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
16331
16332
1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be
16333
used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
16334
agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
16335
things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
16336
even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
16337
paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
16338
Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
16339
and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
16340
works. See paragraph 1.E below.
16341
16342
1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the Foundation”
16343
or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
16344
Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
16345
collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
16346
individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
16347
located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
16348
copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
16349
works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
16350
are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
16351
Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
16352
freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
16353
this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
16354
the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
16355
keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
16356
Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
16357
16358
1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
16359
what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
16360
a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
16361
the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
16362
before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
16363
creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
16364
Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
16365
the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
16366
States.
16367
16368
1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
16369
16370
1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
16371
access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
16372
whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
16373
phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the phrase “Project
16374
Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
16375
copied or distributed:
16376
16377
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
16378
almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
16379
re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
16380
with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
16381
16382
1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
16383
from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
16384
posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
16385
and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
16386
or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
16387
with the phrase “Project Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the
16388
work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
16389
through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
16390
Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
16391
1.E.9.
16392
16393
1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
16394
with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
16395
must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
16396
terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
16397
to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
16398
permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
16399
16400
1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
16401
License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
16402
work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
16403
16404
1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
16405
electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
16406
prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
16407
active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
16408
Gutenberg-tm License.
16409
16410
1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
16411
compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
16412
word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
16413
distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
16414
“Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official version
16415
posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
16416
you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
16417
copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
16418
request, of the work in its original “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other
16419
form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
16420
License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
16421
16422
1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
16423
performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
16424
unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
16425
16426
1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
16427
access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
16428
that
16429
16430
- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
16431
the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
16432
you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
16433
owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
16434
has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
16435
Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
16436
must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
16437
prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
16438
returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
16439
sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
16440
address specified in Section 4, “Information about donations to
16441
the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation.”
16442
16443
- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
16444
you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
16445
does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
16446
License. You must require such a user to return or
16447
destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
16448
and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
16449
Project Gutenberg-tm works.
16450
16451
- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
16452
money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
16453
electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
16454
of receipt of the work.
16455
16456
- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
16457
distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
16458
16459
1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
16460
electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
16461
forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
16462
both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
16463
Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
16464
Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
16465
16466
1.F.
16467
16468
1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
16469
effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
16470
public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
16471
collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
16472
works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
16473
“Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
16474
corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
16475
property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
16476
computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
16477
your equipment.
16478
16479
1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right
16480
of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
16481
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
16482
Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
16483
Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
16484
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
16485
fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
16486
LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
16487
PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
16488
TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
16489
LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
16490
INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
16491
DAMAGE.
16492
16493
1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
16494
defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
16495
receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
16496
written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
16497
received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
16498
your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
16499
the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
16500
refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
16501
providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
16502
receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
16503
is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
16504
opportunities to fix the problem.
16505
16506
1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
16507
in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
16508
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
16509
WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
16510
16511
1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
16512
warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
16513
If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
16514
law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
16515
interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
16516
the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
16517
provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
16518
16519
1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
16520
trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
16521
providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
16522
with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
16523
promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
16524
harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
16525
that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
16526
or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
16527
work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
16528
Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
16529
16530
16531
Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
16532
16533
Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
16534
electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
16535
including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
16536
because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
16537
people in all walks of life.
16538
16539
Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
16540
assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
16541
goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
16542
remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
16543
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
16544
and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
16545
To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
16546
and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
16547
and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
16548
16549
16550
Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
16551
Foundation
16552
16553
The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
16554
501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
16555
state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
16556
Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
16557
number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
16558
http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
16559
Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
16560
permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
16561
16562
The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
16563
Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
16564
throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
16565
809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
16566
[email protected]. Email contact links and up to date contact
16567
information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
16568
page at http://pglaf.org
16569
16570
For additional contact information:
16571
Dr. Gregory B. Newby
16572
Chief Executive and Director
16573
[email protected]
16574
16575
16576
Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
16577
Literary Archive Foundation
16578
16579
Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
16580
spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
16581
increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
16582
freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
16583
array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
16584
($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
16585
status with the IRS.
16586
16587
The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
16588
charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
16589
States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
16590
considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
16591
with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
16592
where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
16593
SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
16594
particular state visit http://pglaf.org
16595
16596
While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
16597
have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
16598
against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
16599
approach us with offers to donate.
16600
16601
International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
16602
any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
16603
outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
16604
16605
Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
16606
methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
16607
ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
16608
To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
16609
16610
16611
Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
16612
works.
16613
16614
Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
16615
concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
16616
with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
16617
Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
16618
16619
16620
Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
16621
editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
16622
unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
16623
keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
16624
16625
16626
Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
16627
16628
http://www.gutenberg.org
16629
16630
This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
16631
including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
16632
Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
16633
subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
16634
16635